Andrew’s Dilemma
By, Cain129
Synopsis: Andrew is not your normal teenage boy, and has spent most of his short life trying to live up to everyone’s expectations for him and has suffered physical and emotion abuse, eventually this leads him to attempt to take his own life.
I just couldn’t take it anymore. Nothing I did made a difference, I had tried for years to live up to what everyone expected from me. The more I tried. the more depressed I became. There was no hope for me and I couldn’t continue living a lie anymore. There was no one that I could turn to for help, not even my parents.
My fathers name is Jake Roberts and he was a star football player in his teens. He had been offered a full college scholarship until he blew out his knee in his last year of high school, then ended up going into the military. Dad moved up in the ranks pretty fast. He was doing pretty well, except that he liked to drink a little too much. Eventually he lost control, and due to his lack of judgment, the men under his command died.
He was discharged and sent home in disgrace. Dad continued his drinking, and if he wasn’t getting into fights, he was being pulled over by the police for driving under the influence. This continued until the car accident where he lost control of his car and hit someone. He ended up going to jail.
A year later he was released. A part of the conditions of his release was he couldn’t drink and had to attend meetings. Shortly after he was released, he met my Sarah my mother. The two of them quickly hit it off, and a year later, them were married. I came along almost a year later. Dad was ecstatic when mom broke the new to him that he was going to have a son. He had already started planning the outcome what my life would be, and with his help, I was going to be everything that he wasn’t.
The only real problem with that idea was I sucked when it came to sports, and I didn’t inherit those skills that my dad valued. Instead I took after my mother for the most part. Unlike my dad, who at was my age was a husky kid that was grew to be very muscular, I was a skinny kid that didn’t weight more 110 pounds. Even so, dad believed I was capable and was pretty much blind when it came to accepting the truth, For years he pushed me to workout and build my up my body but all that happened was I toned up and became faster.
Yes, I was in excellent shape because of dad’s workouts. They really did nothing for me and when he didn’t see the results that he looking for . . God help me. At first it was just mental abuse, Over time, he became physically abusive. I tried talking to mom but as far as she was concerned dad could do no wrong.
She used to say that when I was older, I would be thanking him. The truth was that these were his dreams, not mine. As the days went by, I started to hate him for being unable to see past what he wanted. The only other outlets that I had were my friends. Megan and Jennifer and I spent most of my free time with them until the three of us started high school.
It was about that time when my life started really going down hill,Up to then,at least I’d had someone that I could talk to. When we hit high school the lines were drawn. Megan and Jennifer fell into the popular crowd. I was pretty much a non entity, and I really didn’t seem to fit in anywhere. The only thing that made me remotely “popular” was that the bullies seemed to take a liking to me.
The same thing had happened in Junior High School. After receiving beating after beating from the bullies, dad finally agreed to letting me take Tae Kwon Do lessons. In High School, there were new bullies and most of them knew nothing about me. A few of them
did try to beat on me. It was mostly just one on one, but when they realized that it didn’t work, they started coming after me as a group.
There was one time, though that Megan and Jennifer stepped in to try to help me. The biggest surprise was Scotty. He was new to the area and had just started at our school. He was very well built and later turned out to be the schools new quarterback. When he saw us, he didn’t realize that I was a boy. What he saw was a girl being beat on by a couple of guys. He took offense to that, and came over to put an end too things.
After it was over with. he found out that I wasn’t a girl. He took a lot of ribbing himself, but he was a nice guy and never let it get to him. I really didn’t know why, but he continued to step in when he saw that I was in trouble. I guess he did it to show the girls that he was a nice guy, and throughout the school year he never really seemed to have a moment where there wasn’t a pretty girl at his side.
Because of this, things did get somewhat better. I still received the occasional faggot comment. I could handle that. What I found the hardest to handle was the loss of Megan and Jennifer. I knew the truth, that it was the peer pressure that made them end our friendship. I really couldn’t blame them, hanging around me would have been social suicide.
The two of them did try to be nice about it and they felt they had plenty of reasons. We were teenagers now, and they were dating. They felt that it wasn’t healthy for a boy to only be friends with girls. The truth was much different. Just like Megan and Jennifer, I had also begun to enter puberty. Unlike the both of them, however, I found myself attracted to my own gender. Of all the people I could fall for, it turned out I was attracted to Scotty. It was a confusing time for me, and I was full of self hatred.
Over time though, the more that I thought about being gay, the less sense it made, I was a guy and the thought of being with another guy felt somewhat dirty. I knew deep down that there was some kind of attraction. Then one day I was watching a television show, and of all things, it was the Jerry Springer show. They had transvestites and transsexuals on this episode of the show. Of course, it was really hard to take it seriously, considering everyone was sleeping with everyone else.
It was just entertainment but it made me think. I went online and checked out a few websites. I found one that had real information. There were also stories on the site that were writing about the troubles that many of them had, and as I read more, I started seeing myself in the stories.
I came to the conclusion fast that I was not gay nor was I a transvestite. The few times that I had experimented, dressing in my mothers clothes, I had felt no sexual arousement of any kind. When I thought back through my memories, I could finally see just how messed up I was.
Deep down I had never really been a boy. Okay, maybe physically I was, but emotionally I had always been a girl. As I read further, I started to realize just how hard my life was going to be, I was already dealing with the depression and thoughts of suicide because I just couldn’t see any other solution that would end my pain.
After I realized that I was transgendered, my life didn’t get any better. I became more depressed, because I couldn’t be the person that I wanted to be. The depression was made worse because I still had to deal with my home life and the insanity of high school. The worst part of it was that summer was coming in a couple of months. My dad, in one of his drunken brainstorms, came up with a new idea of how he could make a man out of me and had signed me up for a military style boot camp.
I really lost it with him, and told him that I was not going and that I was done with sports and everything else,including his workouts. Dad completely exploded. He started calling me a good for nothing faggot, then in a fit of rage punched me. I went flying into the end table, and hit my head hard. The impact had knocked me out. When I came around, mom had a cold pack on my face and dad was no where to be seen. I knew that I should have called the police but I was scared.
When he did come back he said that he was sorry, and that it was the booze that made him loose control, he said that he would stop drinking and he did for about a week. During that time he was moody all the time, and it was like walking on egg shells. I would like to say that was the last time that he hit me, but it wasn’t. The beatings continued, as did the mental abuse.
I felt so alone and even picked up the phone a few times to call Megan or Jennifer but never let it ring through. The next morning I woke up and I just didn’t feel right, I remember getting ready for school and after going down stairs, dad was in a rage and was going on about how the little faggot had taken his money. The little faggot that he was referring to was me, and I had not been near his wallet but I could tell just from one look at him that I was in trouble.
The moment that be saw me, he started yelling at me, demanding that I hand over his money. It didn’t matter that I wasn’t the one that took it. It wouldn’t make a difference to him, no matter what I said. When he started coming toward me, I knew that there was nothing that I could say or do and just braced myself for the attack, but it didn’t happen. Mom had stepped in between us, and she told him that I didn’t have the money and it was in her purse where it had been since he gave it to her last night.
He just grabbed the money and left. I was pretty much at the end of my rope and couldn’t take anymore. I went into the bathroom, locked the door behind me and started crying. I just couldn’t take it anymore I opened the medicine cabinet and took out a bottle of mom’s sleeping pills and put them in my jacket pocket, then sat down and tried to steady my nerves before I had to leave for school.
After a while I was able to get my emotions under control enough and went over to the mirror. I saw that my eyes were blood shot from crying I tried rinsing them out with cold water and that did help some and as I left the bathroom and could hear mom crying in the kitchen.
While I walked I thought about what I was about to do. It took me close to 15 minutes to make it to school, normally I would have gone straight to home room but I had other plans in mind today and made my way to the gym. It was a fitting place for years it had caused me so much grief now it would bring me peace.
The gym would be empty till second period I would have plenty of time. I made my way inside and worked my way behind the bleacher until I was against the wall and took a seat on the floor. I thought about what I was about to do as I felt the tears start running down my face again and just said two words’ “Fuck it” then swallowed the contents of the bottle.
As I lay there, I thought that if there was a GGGGod, maybe he would take pity on me and give me another chance and just maybe I would be normal. I could feel the pills kicking in and took out my note book and wrote a letter to my parents then sat it down next to me as then I passed out hoping never to wake up.
Dear Mom and Dad,
I am sorry that I couldn’t be the person that you wanted me to be, believe me I have tried but the more that I try the worse I feel inside. I am tired of fighting with you and everyone else including myself, I can’t keep on living a lie but I can’t be the person that I need to be maybe if there is a god, you will be giving a real son and I will be giving a chance to live the life that I should have.
Dad I don’t blame you for what you have done, I know you were doing it for my own good, at least that is the way you saw it. I just wish that you could have accepted me for the person I was and not the person you wanted me to be.
Mom I love you and I know that you have suffered as much as I have with the beatings and I am sorry, part of me feels responsible for that because most of it was directed at me, but now that I am gone maybe things for you will be better.
Anyway I am getting sleepy; I am sorry that I could not make you both happy but I did love you both and hope you find happiness.
Andrew
Megan was on her way to the gym. It was second period and they were playing soccer outside today, provided that the weather held up. It was looking pretty cloudy, and they were calling for a thunder storm later in the day. On the way to the gym she met up with Amy and Brenda and the three of them continued on to the gym.
“So are you going to be able to make the game later Amy?” asked Megan
“Yeah mom said it was alright, I just wish that I could have made the cheerleading team”
“There is always next year”, Brenda said with a smile.
Everyone felt bad for Amy; she would have been a great addition to the team, but because she had moved here in the middle of the school year, she wasn’t allowed to join a team. She still showed up for most of the games just to be there with her friends and support the team.
After everyone changed, they gathered inside the gym. Mrs. Anderson was already waiting and after everyone settled down, she looked around and saw that everyone was there.
“Alright girls, I don’t know how long the weather is going to hold out, but we are going to take the game outside. If the weather gets worse then we will have to come inside. Everyone, please grab something and meet me on the field.”
Megan grabbed the bag with the balls while Amy and Brenda took one of the nets outside. Once they had everything setup they started the game. They played for about a half hour before the lightning started, followed by the thunder. They continued the game until it started to lightly rain, then Mrs. Anderson told everyone that they were going to continue inside. They packed everything up again and carried it inside and continued the game with about 10 minutes left in the game.
Megan managed to steal the ball from Brenda but only ended up losing it when another girl tried to take it and the ball went flying behind the bleachers. Rather then stopping to retrieve the ball, they just used another one and continued the game. Mrs. Anderson called an end to the game, and Megan headed behind the bleachers to retrieve the lost ball, when she made a startling discovery.
At first she didn’t know who it was that was laying on the floor, but as she got closer she was able to see that it was Andrew.
“Andrew, are you all right?” She asked, as she got closer. There was no response.
Megan moved close and tried shaking him, but when she did the empty bottle of pill fell out of his hand. Fearing the worse she tried shaking him harder and yelling for him to wake up, but nothing happened. Megan checked his pulse, and she was able to find it but could tell that it was very weak. Megan turned and screamed for help.
Mrs. Anderson came running when she heard Megan scream for help. Soon she was at Megan’s side. She recognized the boy immediately. Megan handed her the empty bottle, she looked at it then yelled for someone to get to a phone and call 911 for help. She then checked Andrew again and shook him. Like Megan she receive no response. She then tried to check the child’s pulse and found that there was none. She started doing CPR on the child.
Megan was scared to death and blamed herself. She had known that something was wrong; she also knew that Andrew had tried calling her because his number was on her phone’s display. Why didn’t she call him back she thought to herself.
Megan broke down crying as she watched Mrs. Anderson trying to revive her friend and prayed that he would be alright. Eventually they were able to get his heart started again, and right about that time they could hear the ambulance siren getting closer to the school.
The whole time that Mrs. Anderson worked on Andrew, Megan held his hand and told him everything was going to be alright. It was at that moment she decided that being popular with the other kids really wasn’t that important. When she looked at Andrew she knew that whatever happened to lead him to this place might not have happen had she been available but she was going to make the time now if he would let her.
When the ambulance arrived, word had already started getting around the school that Andrew had tried taking his own life. As he was being wheeled out on a stretcher, Megan refuse to let go of him and eventually Mrs. Anderson said that Megan could go with him to the hospital and that she would call Megan’s parents and let her know that their daughter was at the hospital with a friend.
The ride to the hospital was a hectic one. Along the way the monitor that was keeping track of Andrews pulse stopped. They had to use the Defibrillator to restart his heart again. Megan was afraid that she was going to watch him die right in front of her. Once the ambulance pulled into the hospital the doctors were ready and waiting. They took him into Emergency immediately. The nurse asked Megan some questions.
Megan was able to give them his full name and the empty bottle of pills that she had found next to Andrew. She was then told to take a seat while they worked on Andrew. While she waited her phone went off. She saw that it was it was Jennifer calling.
“Hi Jennifer, I guess you heard?”
“It’s all over the school, how is he doing?” She asked, anxiously.
“He is not doing well, Jennifer. We almost lost him on the drive to the hospital”
“I never thought that Andrew would do anything like this”
“It was a complete shock to me too, Jennifer. I guess I knew things were bad but not like this.”
“You know that this might not have happened if we had been there Megan. I feel so guilty.”
“I have been thinking the same thing, Jennifer. I am not going to walk away again, even if it costs me all my friends, he needs us more then they do Jennifer.”
“You’re right Megan, whatever it takes, you can count on me.”
“Thanks, Jennifer. I better let you go for now, I expect mom too be calling soon.”
“Alright Megan. Give me a call later and let me know what’s going on.”
“Sure Jennifer, talk to you later”, I said as I ended the call.
Megan waited for what seemed like forever and not knowing anything was driving her crazy. She was about to get up and go over to the nursing station when she seen her mom getting off the elevator. When she seen her mom she ran over to her.
Janice took her daughter into her arms and held her, then after there embrace she took Megan’s hand and led her over to the waiting room and took a seat beside Megan.
“The waiting is driving me crazy! Mom, you’re a doctor will they talk to you?”
“Sorry honey, its hospital policy the only people they will talk to are family members.” She said. “I do know what they are doing honey, when a patient comes in from overdosing they have to pump his stomach to get rid of the pills that are still in his system, they will then monitor him for awhile and once he is stable they will have someone from Psychiatry talk to him.
Once that is done they admit him and depending on the patient he could be here for up to 6 months. I have seen patients that have had to stay longer then that too.”
Megan looked over at her mother, “6 months! Isn’t that an awfully long time?”
“Yes honey, it is. The stay is usually determined by the patient’s needs. I don’t know if Andrew will let the doctors help him. Andrew has major trust issues and until those are addressed then I am afraid there is not a lot that anyone can do for him.”
Megan looked over at her mother, “He trusts you, mom.”
“I’m retired, honey. I am not really equipped to deal with this. Andrew will need around the clock care for a while, otherwise he might try hurting himself again.”
“Please mom! I know that you can help him, and I know that Daddy would help, too. Jennifer already said she would do whatever she could to help, and I will too.”
“Honey, your father and I will have to talk about it, and Andrew’s parents would have to agree.”
“Thanks mom, I know it’s a lot to ask but I know if anyone can help him it’s you.”
Inside of the emergency room there was another problem altogether Dr. Masters made a shocking discovery once he had a chance to have a good look at his patient, he realized that he was dealing with much more then just a suicide attempt. There were clear signs of child abuse, the child was covered in bruises. He turned to Nancy, the RN that had been assigned to work with him and said,” I guess we know part of the reason the child tried to end his life”
Nancy looked really angry. “The poor child, I hope they throw the book at his parents.”
Dr. Masters walked over to the phone and dialed the number for Child Protective Services and waited till a worker came on the line. Eventually a worker came on the phone,” Child Protective Services, Karen Evans, speaking, how can I help you.”
“Hi Karen, my name is John Masters, I am a doctor at the Toronto General Hospital. I have a patient that came into emergency this morning after a suicide attempt. While treating him, we discovered that there are signs of suspected child abuse.
The child’s name is Andrew James Steeves. We have been trying to contact his parents all morning, but there has been no answer at his home.”
Karen began the paperwork on her computer. “I will contact the police immediately. Someone will be there to take a statement from you. Make sure that the child has no contact with his parents until we can make sure that this is a case of child abuse and not something else.”
“Alright Karen, I will have someone from security remain outside his door. When he was brought in, he was accompanied by a young girl with him. Should I have her stick around to talk to the police too?”
“She might be able to answer some questions. Is there a place you can take her so that Andrew’s parents won’t see her?”
“I will have her moved to the doctor’s lounge. Its private and the only ones that have access to it are other doctors.”
“All right, Doctor Masters. that should work. Please keep me informed on the child’s status.”
“Thanks, Karen,” Dr. Masters said, as he ended the call.”
After Dr. Masters ended the call, he called for security, then headed over to the nursing station and looked at Andrew’s chart. He found the name of the girl that had come in with him. Her name was Megan Roberts, he read as he headed over to the waiting room. As he went inside he was surprised to see a familiar face.
“Janice it’s been alone time, I take it that this little beauty is your daughter”
Janice smiled, “It’s been along time, John. How’s the family?”
“Everyone is great Janice; I am surprised to see you here though.”
“Megan and Andrew have been friends for years; it’s a shame that our reunion has to take place over such grim circumstances.”
“I hate to be all business but I really need to talk to you and your daughter about Andrew”, asked John
“Sure John is there somewhere you have in mind?”
John looked over at Janice and then Megan, “How about the three of us head over to the doctor’s lounge what I need to tell you I can’t really speak out here.”
After a short walk Janice and Megan found themselves in the doctor’s lounge and John told them to have a seat then took one himself.
He then looked over at Megan then Janice, “I wouldn’t normally be talking to you about this but the police are going to be here shortly to take a statement from me and they will also want to talk to Megan.”
“Let me take a guess, you suspect child abuse”, Janice said with showing her discuss.
“Yes the child has bruises all over him and from what I can tell, this has been going on for some time now.”
Megan looked over at the both of them, “I knew he was having a hard time with his parents but he never said a word to me about it being this bad.”
“It doesn’t really matter now, Megan. What is important is finding a way to help Andrew get though this”, Janice said as she put her arm around Megan.
Janice looked over at Dr. Masters, “I am thinking that there maybe other issues that are going to need to be resolved first and they may have played a part in the abuse and the suicide attempt.”
“What do you think the problem is Janice?” asked John.
“I think that it is possible that Andrew may be a transgendered. I have noticed things over the years that he seemed to be taking on female characteristics rather then male.”
John thought for a minute,” If that is the case then it is not going to be easy on him”
Megan looked over at her mother,” What is Transgendered?”
Janice looked over at her daughter, “Andrew my have been born a male physically, but mentally he could be as much a girl as you and I are.”
Megan looked over at her mother,” That would explain a lot mom, whenever we would hang out together it was like he was one of the girls.”
“The question is, will he admit to being transgendered?” asked John.
“I really don’t think so John, Andrew has been in hiding for along time and because of his relationships there are bound to be trust issues. I don’t thing he is going to talk to anyone till he feels that he can trust them and they are going too really support him.”
John looked over at Janice, “If you are right then he maybe here along time Janice, I don’t feel that releasing him is a good idea, next time we might not be lucky enough to get to him on time”
“You really think that he will try this again” asked Megan
“He has to find away to deal with being transgendered, otherwise it’s only a matter of time before he tries again.” John said sadly
John looked over at Janice, “I really hate to ask you, because I know that you are retired, but you maybe the solution to our problem, Andrew needs someone he trusts and right now there may be only one person that he will open up to and I think we both know who that person is, Janice.”
“Megan and I have already talked about it, and I am willing to take him on as a patient but I left my practice because I wanted to raise a family, so this is something I will have to talk to Steve about first and even if I did take him on I really don’t think the hospital is where Andrew needs to be. He needs to be somewhere that he can feel comfortable and cared for. If I could become his legal guardian, he would be coming home with me while he is under my care.”
It was around 3 pm when Sarah had returned home from visiting her sisters. Jake still hadn’t returned home from whatever rock he was hiding under and as she was coming into the living room she could hear the answering machine beeping which indicated that there was a message waiting so she walked over and hit the play button thinking it was most likely Jake that had called. To her surprise, it was the hospital and they were calling about Andrew. She thought that he must have been in another fight and ended up getting hurt but the message sounded pretty urgent. So she called the hospital and asked for Dr. Masters.
It took a few minutes before Dr. Masters came on the phone,” Hello, this is Dr. Masters. How may I help you?” He asked.
“Hello Dr. Masters, this is Sarah Roberts calling. I just got in and was checking my messages. How is my son doing?”
“Your son is doing fine at this time, Mrs. Roberts. A report has been filed with Child Protective Services, so I’m prevented from discussing it. It would best if you and husband speak with them, before you do anything else. I’m afraid the hospital will not allow you contact with your son until this matter is resolved.”
To be continued in Chapter Three
Andrew’s Dilemma
Part 2
By, Cain129
Synopsis: After being found by Megan at school after his failed suicide attempt Andrew is admitted to the hospital. At first the doctor thinks that he is only dealing with a suicide victim but soon discovers that Andrew is also a victim of child abuse.
Chapter Three
Sarah Roberts is a complete mess as she gets off the phone with Dr. Masters. Her son was in the hospital and they wouldn’t even give her an update on his status. She knew this day would likely come but deep down never accepted it. Jake was hard on Andrew she knew this but she also understood why. The child was weak minded compared to other boys and acted more like a daughter then a son.
What Jake did had to be done and there was nothing wrong with disciplining your child. Granted, sometimes Jake took it a little too far, but what he done had been out of love for Andrew. Now, because of the stupid laws that took parents rights away, kids were becoming completely out of control. Sarah was really angry as she went though all the other messages on her phone there was one from the principal at school. It said that Andrew had tried to take his own life and was taken to the hospital.
Sarah just shook her head. “Just great. I bet everyone in town knows now.”
She then grabbed the phone and dialed Frank’s cell phone. She made her way into the kitchen and grabbed a bottle of wine from inside the fridge, then sat down and poured herself a glass and waited for Jake to answer. It took a few minutes before Jake answered the phone, and from the sound of his voice and the noise in the background Sarah knew that he was still at the tavern.
“Yeah Sarah, what do you want?” he replied,
“Jake I just got home there was a message waiting Andrew is in the hospital”
“What did the little bastard do now, and what’s it going to cost us?” Jake growled.
“He tried to kill himself and honey the police are involved,” Sarah said sadly
“I will be home in ten minutes Sarah, and then we’re going to the hospital and getting our son!” Jake said hanging up the phone and storming out of the bar.
[-][+][-]
Meanwhile, back at the hospital there is a knock on the door of the doctor’s lounge. John got up to answer the door and found Nancy standing there, along with a police officer.
“John, this is Detective Johnston, he is here to take your statement.” The two of them came inside and took a seat.
Detective Johnston put out his hand to introduce himself. “Just call me Mason there is no reason for us to be so formal.”
“All right, Mason, My name is John Masters. I am the doctor that is taking care of Andrew Roberts, and this Megan, she is a friend of Andrews and also the one that found him. I’d also like to introduce you to Janice Tanner, who is Megan’s mother
“It’s nice to meet all of you”He said, then turned to John and said, “I think that we will start with your statement first then I will move on to Megan’s”
John began. “I guess the best place to start is that Andrew was admitted after a failed suicide attempt. While I was examining him, I discovered that the child was covered in bruises. Some were old, but others looked fairly recent. It was at that point that I filed the child abuse report with Child Protective Services.”
“What made you believe that it was child abuse?”asked the detective.
John thought for a minute. “The sizes of the bruises indicate that they were done by an adult that was pretty tall and muscular.”
Mason turned to Megan, “How long have Andrew and you been friends Megan?”
“I have known Andrew since we started school together.”
“Has Andrew ever talked to you about his home life?” asked Mason.
“Andrew and I haven’t really been talking for awhile.” She said. “When the two of us last spoke, he had said that he was having trouble at home with his parents.”
“Can you be more specific Megan?” Mason asked, writing in his pad.
“Andrew used to say that his father was really into football when he was Andrew’s age, and he wants Andrew to play as well. That’s not what Andrew wants, he hates sports. His father doesn’t seem to care, and has been making him work out. Every year, he makes him tryout for the team but he is too small, and the other boys would kill him.”
“I also have this, too,” Megan said, taking a notepad out of her purse. “Inside is a letter to his parents that explains why he tried to take his life. With everything going on, I just haven’t had a chance to give it to anyone.”
Mason reached over and took the notepad. With Dr, Master’s approval, he walked over to the photocopier and made copies of the pages, then handed back the original and but the copy in a folder.
“I’ll have you hang onto the original for now because Children’s Services will most likely want to see it. ” Mason told her. “Thank you for saving it.”
[-][+][-]
Mason was looking over everything he had written. He turned to Megan and asked her, “Have you ever seen bruises on Andrew before today?”
“Yes but I never really thought much about it. There is always some bully at school that wants to use him as a punching bag.” She said sadly.
Mason looked a little angry, “It sounds like Andrew has had a rough time, both athome and at school.” Mason felt for the child, as he knew what it was like. He had been a small kid as well, and had his own childhood demons.
After he finished writing everything down, he turned to John. “When do you think it would be a good time for me to come in and talk to Andrew?”
John thought for a second. “I would wait until he recovers from the pills that he has taken. They may still be in his system and I think that he should be fully conscious before he is able to give you a full statement.”
While they were finishing up, something was going on at the nursing station, there was a lot of yelling, and John got up look out the door. A couple was arguing with the nurse, and the man was demanding to see his son. The nurse was refusing to let him anywhere near the child. Mason came over and joined John by the window, then said “Letme guess, these are Andrew’s parents.”
“Yes, I believe you are correct,” John said with a frown.
Within seconds there was a security guard there trying to calm down Jake Roberts. Jake was definitely drunk and very defiant. There is no use trying to talk to a drunk. Within a minute a fight broke out between the security guard and Jake Roberts and even in his present state Jake was more then a match for the security guard, having had years of military training. If the guard was not careful, Jake could kill him.
Mason called for assistance and ran over to help the security guard, but by the time he reached them the guard was already lying on the floor and Mason was forced to fight off Jake himself.
The whole time that they were fighting, Sarah kept telling Jake to stop, but he was not listening to her at all.
Mason was no slouch, and was pretty much able to hold his own for the most part. Still, he needed help to finish things and bring the drunk under control. When another couple of security guards arrived, they were finally able to take Jake down long enough for Mason to use his handcuffs and take Jake into custody.
Mason then turned to Sarah,” My next stop would have been your home but it looks like the three of us will have our talk at the station, it’s your choice you can come on your own or I can take you in the same way as your husband.”
“I will come along peacefully,”Sarah said with tears running down her face.
The whole time this was going on Megan and her mother watched from the safety of the doctor’s lounge. Neither one of them wanted to risk being seen by Jake or Sarah. John had quickly run over to attend to the security guard who had been hurt in the fight with Jake Roberts.
[-][+][-]
Chapter Four
The ride home seemed to take forever for Megan it had been a hard day for her. She never thought that she would ever witness anything like she had today. Seeing the fight between Jake Roberts had scared her, and made her wonder how Andrew had been able to cope as well as he had, considering what his home life must have been like. Up till now she had thought the only real problems a teenager had were deciding what to wear, or who she should date. After today she knew that life was not so black and white.
“Penny for your thoughts honey”, asked Janice
“I was just thinking about Andrew, mom. I never realized how hard he had it.”
Janice frowned,“He has been through more then most people can handle honey”
“I wish that I had known that before, Mom. I could have been there for him.”
“Well Megan we all make mistakes. I was once your age too, and believe me honey, I made plenty! I learned from them though, and so will you. If you really care for Andrew, then be the friend that he needs, baby.” Janice said with a smile
“Mom, are you going to become Andrew’s doctor?”
“I think so. After everything that I have seen today, I don’t think that I can walk away.”
“What about Dad?”
“He will be alright with it too, Megan, once we explain what happened, honey.”
“Thanks, mom”
“I appreciate it, but I am not doing it for you, honey, I am doing it for Andrew.”
[-][+][-]
After arriving home, they checked the answering machine. It was full of messages from the kids at school. Most of them were looking for the latest gossip, which unfortunately was about Andrew’s suicide attempt. For most of them, she just hit the erase button. She came to one from Jennifer, so she picked up the phone, took a seat on the couch and dialed Jennifer’s number.
“Hi Jennifer, it’s me.”
“Hi Megan, how did everything go?”
“Not very good sis, it was terrible,” She cried.
“Is Andrew all right?” asked Jennifer, sounding really worried.
“Sorry Jennifer, Yes, Andrew’s going to be fine. It’s just that the doctor found bruises all over him and the police were there and when Andrew’s parents arrived there was a big fight between Andrew’s father and the police. It was really scary. Andrew was abused for a long time, but he was too scared to say anything,”Megan said in frustration.
“Damn, Megan, what is going to happen now?” asked Jennifer
“Mom is going to take care of him, he needs people that he can trust and right now that is a very short list of people.”
“Is there anything that I can do to help?” sheasked. “Maybe, Jennifer. It looks like he will be staying here for awhile, once he is out of the hospital”
“Whatever you need me to do Megan, count me in”
“Jennifer, you know how the kids at school are, they won’t understand”
“I know, Megan, but there are some things more important than being popular.”
“You don’t know how happy it makes me feel to hear you say that, Jennifer.”
“I got to run, Megan, my mom wants help with supper. I will call you later, love you.”
“Love you too Jennifer, Talk to you later, bye”
[-][+][-]
After ending the call with Jennifer I joined mom in the kitchen, she was busy peeling potatoes, “Is there anything that I can do to help, Mom?”
She looked over at me. “There is chicken in the fridge, and shake and bake in the cabinet, honey.”
About a half hour late, Anthony Tanner arrived home from work. He’d had a long day and couldn’t wait for his supper, but he could tell immediately that something was wrong. He could read his family like a book and once they were all seated at the table, Janice told him everything that had happened. Anthony was not a very emotional kind of guy, nor was he the violent type. After hearing what had happened to Andrew though, he wanted nothing more than to find Jake and beat the pulp out of him.
Anthony looked at his wife and then his daughter, “Andrew is welcome here, no matter how long it takes.”
“Honey, if Andrew is going to live here, you need to know everything.” Janice told him.
“What do I need to know other than that the child was abused Janice?” asked Anthony.
“Andrew may be a transsexual, and if he is, then he needs to be treated.”
“If the child didn’t already have a hard enough time, he has to deal with this too?” Anthony said with a frown.
“Are you alright with that, honey?” asked Janice
“If being a girl is makes Andrew happy, then I am fine with it.” Anthony said.
With everyone in agreement, a plan was made. Andrew would have somewhere safe to call home and there would be people there that were willing to help him. There was only one other problem that needed to be solved. Would Andrew be willing to accept their help? Only time would tell.
End of part two
To be continued in part three
Andrew’s Dilemma
Part 3
By, Cain129
Synopsis: Andrew is recovering from a failed suicide attempt, while in the hospital the truth starts to come forth of why he tried to take his own life. Andrew is not your normal teenager and doesn’t have the same problems as most kids his age. Andrew is a transsexual and also a victim of child abuse but there is hope thanks to the people that are in his life and a plan has been put into motion to help him but the question is will Andrew accept the help.
Chapter Four
Friends and Enemies
After spending the night locked up at the police station, Jake Roberts is finally released and allowed to go home. Once again he had found himself behind bars. It was a place that he had told himself that he would never return too. Sarah had been released hours ago and had taken the car.
Jake had no choice but to take a cab home, but home wasn’t the place that he was going. He hailed a cab and told the driver to take him to James’ Gate, which was a tavern that he spent most of his time at. After last night, he needed to have a drink to calm his nerves.
An hour after he had arrived and had a few beers in him, he was still fuming with anger toward Andrew. It was his fault. If he hadn’t tried to take his own life, none of this would have happened. The child was weak! Jake made up his mind, somehow he would find away to get to him, and keep him quiet. He was not going to jail. All he was trying to do was make a man out of his son, and what did he get for it?
Jake downed another bottle and ordered another one. He was not going home, anyway. The last thing he wanted to hear was his stupid wife saying ‘I told you so.’ Jake had other plans and it was better that Sarah didn’t know.
[-][+][-]
Megan was glad to be home from school, as she and Jennifer flopped down on Megan’s bed. It had been a rough day for the both of them. There were some kids at school that were really interested in Andrew’s condition, but then there were the others. They seemed me be more interested in bashing him, saying that only a coward would take their own life. It made both Jennifer and Megan sick. These people had their heads so far up there ass that with a light they could see their own tonsils.
Megan looked over at Jennifer, “You know when Andrew does go back to school it’s not going to be easy for him. The other kids will see to that.”
“It might best for Andrew if he changes schools.” Jennifer said sadly.
“You might be right, Jen. At least he would be starting with a clean slate.”
“Do you have any idea what we can do to help him Megan?” asked Jennifer,
“I really don’t know what to tell you Jennifer. The problem is that there was so much going on in his life that neither of us knew about. The only thing I have of his is his notebook and I took a look at it last night, I think it’s more of a journal then a notebook, but I didn’t feel that it would be right reading it. because it’s private.
“I guess that you’re right, Megan, but if we can us it to help him, then would it be sobad if we read it?” Jennifer asked as she frowned, thoughtfully.
Megan thought about it, then walked over to her knapsack and took it out and handed it over to Jennifer. Jennifer opened it up, as Megan joined her on the bed and started reading from the date the journal began. Most of it was pretty much stuff the two of them already knew about. As they read through it, they both started to understand that frustration was a normal part of Andrew’s life.
The journal chronicled the years of mental and physical abused that Andrew suffered at the hands of his family, and the struggles that he had to deal with at school. The hardest part though, was when it came to the entries that he wrote about the friendship that he had shared with the both of them, and the effect that followed when they ended the friendship.
Andrew felt alone and abandoned, and blamed himself, If he was different then maybe the friendship wouldn’t have ended. He wished more then anything that he had been born a girl and hated everything about his life and even hated himself. Throughout the journal he spoke of ending his life and how many times that he had even planned it out. Until recently, something had made him hold on, but whatever that reason was, it was gone now. He had finally made an attempt to take his own life and given a chance, they were afraid that he would try again.
[-][+][-]
Jennifer closed the journal. She had tears in her eyes and when she looked over at Megan, she realized that she was not the only one that had been crying. They both knew why Andrew had given up on life, under the same conditions it could have been either one of them.
Neither one knew what to say, they were both in shock. It was Jennifer that spoke up first. “Iwish that I never read that. It was better, not knowing.”
“I know Jennifer, it hurts me too, but we didn’t know it was that bad”Megan said as she wiped the tears from her eyes.
“I guess we know what needs to be done now.” Jennifer said.
“Yeah, Jennifer we do.” Megan agreed, and reached over to give her friend a hug.
”We’ll do it together.” Jennifer said returning the hug.
[-][+][-]
Chapter Five
Andrew awakens
God, my head hurts. I slowly open my eyes and everything is a blur, but slowly my eyes start to come into focus and I am able to see my surroundings and realize that I am in the hospital. I discover that I am strapped to the bed and unable to do anything. The pain that I feel inside is still there, why couldn’t they just let me go? I don’t want to be here. I just can’t help it, I find myself crying like a baby and hating myself for not being stronger.
[-][+][-]
Sitting at the nursing station is Amy, as she is working, she notices activity on Andrew’s monitors and sees that he is awake and goes over to check on him. When she gets closer to his room she hears the sound of his crying. As she enters, she can see he is struggling with his bindings, which for the most part was a waste of time. She knew very well that there was no way to get out of them without someone helping and that wasn’t going to happen yet.
“I see you’re awake finally.” Amy said, startling the boy as she enters the room.
“Hi Andrew, I am Amy and I am your nurse, Can I get you anything?”
“You could take these off,” I said, referring to the restraints
“Sorry honey, I can’t do that until your doctor says it’s alright.”
“You know these are useless”,I said, angrily.“When I am out of here I will try again and next time I will get it right”
“Maybe you will, and maybe you won’t. Andrew, that is up to you.”
“You have no idea what it’s like for me! Why do you even care, nobody else does.”
“Maybe I don’t know what its like to be you, Andrew, but let me take a guess. Right now you are pissed off at yourself for being caught, and you took those pills because you were tired of everything. You hate yourself, because nothing seems to make you happy and you feel that no one understands you? Am I getting close yet, or should I continue?”
I looked over at Amy, everything she said was exactly how I was felt inside. It really pissed me off that she could read me so well, “How do you know all this?”
Amy looked over at me. “You are not the only one that has tried to taketheir own life, honey.”
She then unbuttoned the sleeves to her shirt and showed me her wrists. There were scars across both wrists.
I looked over at her wrists, surprised.” I guess you do know how I feel.”
“Maybe not everything, but enough that I can understand how you are feeling”, Amy said with a smile.
“I am not saying that what you went through wasn’t as bad, Amy. I am differentthan you are, and there is nothing anyone can do to make my life better.” I said in frustration.
“Andrew you don’t know that, things change and so can people. I did.” Amy said with a smile.
“It’s impossible. I have tried but nothing works and God, I am so tired of fighting everything and everyone. I just want to be at peace, I am so tired of hiding!” I said as my emotions started to take over. I couldn’t help but start crying.
Amy looked at me for a minute, I could see that she was thinking, “Andrew there is nothing wrong with being gay, if that is the problem. You just need to accept who you are and stop fighting it! Believe me, I understand! I fought for years, but all fighting ever did was cause me to do something stupid. After I embraced who I was, my life got better. The same can be true for you too, Andrew.”
I looked over at her, and couldn’t help but laugh “I’m sorry Amy, but I’m not gay. If that was the case, I could accept it and move on, but all you had to accept was the fact that you are attracted to the same sex.”
I thought about it for a minute then figured maybe if anyone would understand me, Amy could. I looked over at her. “Amy, the reason that I am here is that I wasborn a boy, and I guess I look like a boy, but inside I am a girl, and I always have been! The thought of spending my life stuck like this is unbearable.”
There, I said it finally, I thought to myself and it actually felt good. It was like a weight was lifted.
Amy looked over at me and smiled, “Honey if you want to be a girl then there are things that you can do about it, and there is help available to you.”
“It’s impossible my parents would never agree”, I said sadly
“If your parents don’t agree, then to hell with them! Andrew, this is your life we’re talking about.”
“When I came out of the closet, my parents didn’t approve of me, either. They disowned me, because in their words. ‘I was a disgrace against God’s plan’. I know that there is a God, and no matter what they say, He loves me! He put the right people in my life when I needed them the most, otherwise I would be dead right now. I think the same is true for you, Andrew.”
I thought about what she said, andshe was right. Maybe there was hope for me after all, but it was up to me to make the right choices. Up to now I had been trying to live up to everyone else’s expectations and only ended up hurting myself. Maybe it was time I stopped living for everyone else, and started living for myself.
“Listen Andrew I have to get going but I will drop back later if you want to continue our talk”, Amy said with a smile.
I looked over at Amy, “Thank Amy, I know that it’s not your job to talk to me like this.”
Andrew, let’s just keep what was said between there two of us, “I don’t mind talking about my life to you, but I really don’t want everyone knowing.” Amy said as she left.
Chapter Six
Actions and consequences
The hospital can be a lonely place for anyone, but when you are tied down to a bed there really isn’t much you can do, other than sleep or debate the meaning of life. As for myself I choose sleep, considering I probably still had some of the sleeping pills running through my system, it really didn’t give me much of a choice. The talk that I had with Amy had really helped. Up till now, I had been alone with my thoughts and afraid to voice what was really bothering me.
I don’t know how long that I had slept but I was awoken when a man in a white jacket came into my room. I was still half asleep so his entrance had scared me at first. He had a chart in his hand as he approached my bed.
I assumed that he was my doctor. Once he was next to my bed, he smiled.
“Hi Andrew, I’m Dr. John Masters, and I’ll be your doctor while you are with us. You gave us all a good scare yesterday, how are you feeling this morning?”
“Tired, but alright I guess.”I said as he was looking in his chart
“I had a talk with Amy earlier, and she told me some things about you. I want you to understand that I am not here to judge you; my job is to take care of your medical needs. Since you are here already, I’d like you to talk to a doctor that I know, her job is to help people like yourself decide which path seems right to take. If it is your choice to become a girl, then she can help you achieve that. How do you feel about seeing her?”
I thought about what he had just said to me. I wanted more than anything to finally be a whole person inside, and I knew that if it was possible I would do anything, I broke down and cried.“Yes, please! I can’t stand my life, and I would rather die then be forced to live like this.”
“All right, Andrew. She will be in to see you this afternoon. If you promise me that you won’t try to hurt yourself, I will tell the nurse to remove your bonds but if you don’t behave they will be put back on, do you understand me, Andrew?”
“I promise that will behave, if what you said is true then I have no reason to.”
“It’s true Andrew, but you will need to be patient this kind of thing takes time.” Dr. John said, and then left me to think about what he had just told me.
It was around three in the afternoon when I heard a knock on my door and I was pretty surprised to see Megan’s mother, Janice come through the door. I looked over at her and she smiled and said, “How are you doing Andrew?”
“I felt a little embarrassed having her visit me where that she knew what I had done.”Why are you here Janice?” I asked
“Well Andrew someone that I cared about needed help”. Janice said with a smile
I couldn’t help it as the tears started to flow, it had been awhile since I had felt wanted. I looked over at her as she sat down on the bed next to me. I really didn’t know what to say. I finally told her how embarrassed I felt with her knowing what I did.
“Andrew, you’re not the first kid to be overwhelmed and do something silly. You have more than enough reasons that drove you to this. I know about the abuse and I knew for years that you were most likely a transsexual, Andrew. The two of us are going to work through all this together, all right?”
Janice then reached over and gave me a hug and said everything was going to be alright, and I actually started believing her.
“My parents, they are not going to be happy with any of this, especially my dad”
“Andrew, there really isn’t much your parents can do about anything. The moment he laid a hand on you, he lost that right, and when this goes to court he will likely end up in jail.” Janice said sadly
“What about my mom, she didn’t do anything wrong?”
“You’re right Andrew, she didn’t do anything. If you were my son and your dad was beating you, I would have packed up our bags and moved out. A mother protects her child, she doesn’t let them be abused, I really don’t know much about your mother, but I suspect that she came from an abusive home herself.
In the meanwhile Andrew, you will be coming home with me, once they release you. You will be part of our family, until we can figure out what is best for you.”
“What about Megan? Does she want me there?”
“Megan was the one that found you, Andrew. She spent most of yesterday here in the hospital, worrying about you. It was her idea that I become your doctor. So yes, she wants you to come home with us. “
I was a little shocked that she was spent all of yesterday with me, and then I thought about how it must have felt for her finding me and watching me dying. It must have scared her half to death, seeing that.
Janice left a little while later, but said that she would be in tomorrow morning. If the doctor said it was all right, then I would be leaving with her later that morning.
That night I was barely able to sleep. I kept having bad dreams. In most of them I was really happy and I was a girl with lots of friends and there was Scotty, the two of us were together, everything was perfect and I felt truly happy as he held me in his arms, but that is where things started going bad.
Out of nowhere, my dad shows up and he is wearing army fatigues and holding a gun. He yells at me and calls me a little fucking faggot, then opens fire, killing everyone, all my friends and then Scotty. When he is done firing he points the gun at me and says run if you want, bitch. That is when I woke up screaming and covered in sweat.
Even after I calmed down, I was so worked up that I couldn’t get back to sleep. I found myself walking the halls outside of my room. A few of the nurses asked me why I was out of bed and I just told them that I couldn’t sleep. I was told not to leave the ward, and I was fine with that. There really wasn’t anywhere else for me to go.
I eventually found the TV room and lay down on the couch and watched the Conan O’Brien show. At least it took my mind off things for awhile but I soon found myself tiring out, and before I knew it I had fallen asleep on the couch.
“What are you doing in here Andrew?” asked Amy.
“Hi Amy, I had some bad dreams last night and ended up here guess I fell asleep.”
“We’d better be getting you back to your room honey, otherwise they are going to have security out looking for you.”
“Alright Amy, I’m coming.”
After the two of us were back in my room, Amy took a seat on the bed next to me. “So, do you want to tell me about the dreams, Andrew?”
I told her about the dreams that I was having, and she just sat there and listened till I was finished before she said anything.
“Andrew after I tried hurting myself, I had all kinds of weird dreams and they scared me eventually as I started dealing with things they started going away. Just be patient and talk about what is bothering you. If you hold all that crap in, it will only eat you alive.”
“Why are you telling me all this, Amy?”
“I guess it’s because the two of us are a lot alike and I think we could be friends.”
“I would like that, Amy.”
“So would I Andrew, but tell me do you have another name that you use?”
I smiled,“Yes Amy, its Jessica or Jesse for short.”
End of part Three
To be continued in part four
Andrew’s Dilemma
Part 4
By, Cain129
Synopsis: Andrew finally wakes up and finds that he is no longer alone. For the first time in his life, he admits openly that he is a transsexual. With the help of a few caring people, he decides to give life another chance and follow his dreams.
Chapter Seven
The hospital for me had been a scary place, but I remember Amy telling me that God sometime puts the right people in you life when you most needed them. I was starting to see that she may have been right. I had spent years hiding who I really was inside, out of fear mostly, but then Amy came along and showed me that I didn’t have to hide the truth anymore, I could follow my dreams. At first I had been kind of worried that it was just something to make me hold on, but then Dr. Masters said the same thing, then lastly Megan’s mother Janice had agreed with them.
Earlier that morning, Amy had found me sleeping in the TV room at the hospital. The two of us went back to my room and had a talk about the dreams that I had been having. After we talked I did feel better. Toward the end of the conversation she asked me if I had another name that I sometimes went by and I smiled at her and told her. “Its Jessica, or Jesse for short.”
I remember her smiling then she said that it was nice to finally meet the real me. After that the two of us talked like sisters and she shared with me what it was like for her when she finally came out of the closet and also the pain that she felt when her family rejected her because she was a lesbian. I could see the pain in her eyes as she spoke to me about losing her family, especially her little sister Beth. The two of them had been close and it had been three years since she had seen her.
Like Amy I knew how it felt to be rejected by those that you loved, and I told her about my life and how for years I had tried to live up to what was expected of me. No matter how hard that I had tried, I could never please my parents. There was always something that I wasn’t doing well enough. Mom and I had never really been close, I think that maybe she blamed herself for what was happening.
In truth, my mother was a complete mystery to me as was her family. There were no grandparents that visited. There was only my aunt Jackie who I had rarely seen and the few times that she was over all she did was drink and complain about men. Dad’s side of the family was more outgoing but most of them were heavy drinkers and spent most of their time in and out of jail. The sad part was that Dad was the most stable of all of them. If you were to ask me how I felt about mom and dad, even with everything that has happened, I would be lying if I said that I didn’t love them.
Amy looked over at me, “It’s alright to love them Andrew, even with everything that has happened in my life I still love my parents and my little sister. The problem is Andrew you are going to have to stand up to your parents, otherwise you will never be free to follow your dreams.”
“I know, Amy but I don’t think I am ready to face them yet,” I said with a frown.
Amy smiled, “Give it time Andrew you don’t need to do everything right away.”
“Amy, do you think that you can do me a favor?”
“Sure Andrew, what do you want me to do?”
“Please stop calling me Andrew, when we’re alone, I’d rather just be Jessica.”
“Alright Jessica, if that’s what you want.”Amy said with a smile.
The two of us talked for a few more minute before Amy had to leave. She said that she would drop in on her break and she would talk me outside for a bit. I thought to myself after she left that whoever was lucky enough to land that girl would be really lucky. After breakfast, I had an unexpected visitor knocking on my door. When I looked over I could see that he was wearing a delivery uniform and was carrying a parcel. He smiled and said are you Andrew Roberts?
I looked over at him, “Yes I am Andrew”
“I just need you to sign here and I will be on my way”, He said with a smile.
After I signed for the parcel he handed to me then left, I looked at the parcel for a name and found that it was sent by a John Smith. I thought to myself, who the hell is John Smith. Maybe it was someone from school but I was more concerned with what the contents were and open the box. Once I had it opened I reached in to removed the packing and felt something really soft and kind of furry thinking it was a stuffed animal I grabbed hold and pulled it out to take a look as I pulled my hand out and send what I was holding it scared me half to death.
It was a dead rat and someone had cut its throat, as I looked at my hand it was covered in blood. I could help but scream as I looked at it. The sound of my voice caught Amy’s attention causing her to come running when she seen the dead rat lying on my bed she came running over.
Amy looked at the me the grabbed some paper towel and picked up the rat then put it back in the box and at the same time pulled out an envelope she didn’t wait for me to open it and opened it herself. She read the note then said I better call the police.
“Amy what does it say?” I asked.
“Honey, you really don’t want to know.”
I looked at her. “Yes Amy, I have to know”
Amy handed me back the note and I started reading it. “The only good rat is a deadrat, remember that.”
It was at that moment I knew who the package was really from. It was Dad’s way of telling me to keep my mouth shut, and the rat represented me. While I was letting what the letter said sink in Amy had gone to the bath room and returned with a wet cloth and was using it to clean the blood off my hands.
“That was from you dad wasn’t it Jessica?” asked Amy
“Yeah I think so Amy; he is the only one that would do something like that.”
“Do you think he would try to hurt you?”Amy asked.
“He doesn’t want to go back to Jail, and he knows if I talk to the police that he will.”
“Jessica, I need to go call the police, are you going to be all right here? You can always come to the nursing station with me if you want”
I looked over at Amy, “I’ll join you. I really don’t want to be alone right now.”
[-][+][-]
Chapter Eight
I had been sitting in the lounge for about an hour watching television, when I head someone calling my name. When I turned around, there was a police officer standing at the door. He looked to be around 40 years old but was pretty cute, although he kind of looked like he had been in a fight with Rocky Balboa.
“Hi Andrew, I am Detective Johnston. I’ve been assigned to your case. I understand that you received a parcel today? Would you mind showing it to me, Andrew?”
Detective Johnston and I then made our way back to my room. The parcel was sitting on the counter under the window where I had left it. He then picked up the package and looked at the contents then read the note that was attached.
“Listen Andrew this is your father’s way of trying to keep you quiet, he already knows that when this goes to court that he is going to be ending up in jail. We really don’t need you to press charges against your father; we have more then enough evidence with the doctor’s report to prosecute. It would be better if you were involved. If you are there in court people will see that you are the victim in all this and it makes it harder for the defense.”
Detective Johnson then took that parcel as evidence and said he was going to have the letter checked for fingerprints.
“I don’t know if I can do it. I know my father, when he makes up his mind aboutsomething he doesn’t stop, he will come after me.” I said, feeling afraid.
“Andrew he isn’t going to hurt you again, I can promise you! There is a court order in place that if either one of your parents try to make contact with you, both of them will end up being arrested and held till we go to court.”
“That’s not going to stop my dad! I know that if he wants to find me he will. I guess that I really have no choice, either way he is not going to leave me alone till this goes to court, is he?
“I don’t think so Andrew, the parcel here is likely just the start of things. He may send more, but after you leave the hospital, he isn’t going to know where you are, so you should be safe. I will give you my cell phone number if anything happens, just give me a call.
I took his card and placed it on the table next to my bed, then I told him everything about my relationship with my parents and he wrote everything down. It was about that time that I heard a knocking on my door. It was Dr. Masters and Janice. They could see that we were busy, and said that they would come back, but Detective Johnson said that he was finished and then stood up.
“We will talk again Andrew! You’re a very brave kid, and you have my number callme if you need me” Then he left me with Dr. Masters and Janice.
Word had already made its way around the hospital about the parcel that I had received. Neither of them was happy about it, but the good news was that after a quick checkup by Dr. Masters, he said that I could leave with Janice.
[-][+][-]
Before I left the hospital, I wanted to talk to Amy, in the short time that I had known her she had become someone that I really cared about and I was going to miss seeing her. Janice and I made our way over to the nursing station where she was busy working. When she saw me coming she smiled.
“I guess you are going home, Andrew.”
“Yes but I wanted to see you first Amy, and thank you for being here for me.”
“This isn’t goodbye Andrew, we will see each other again”, she said with a smile.
“I would like that Amy, you’re like a sister to me now.” I said and gave her a hug.
Amy gave me her number. “Call me anytime.” then she whispered “Jessica”
She gave me a hug and we said our goodbyes.
[-][+][-]
The drive to Janice’s home was a long one. I was pretty much lost in thought for most of it, wondering how my life was going to be now. Things were different. My secret was finally out in the open and I had some hard choices ahead of me, but I felt that I could handle things as long as I didn’t have to do it alone.
“You’re pretty quiet Andrew, what’s on your mind?” asked Janice.
“I guess I’m just wondering what happens now?”I said with a frown.
“What do you want to happen, Andrew?”
“To be honest, I still feel pretty overwhelmed”
“Well honey let’s just take things a day at a time for now and we will let tomorrowtake care of itself.”Janice said with a smile.
End of part Four
To be continued in part Five
Part 5
By, Cain129
Synopsis: Andrew’s time in the hospital may have been short, but it was enough to put him on the right track, thanks to the help of a very understanding nurse. Now with the help of Janice and those around her, Jessica is finally free to come forth! Life is never that easy though, and there will be struggles ahead. His parents will make sure of that. Can he overcome the struggle and become the person that he always believed he was? Time will tell.
The homecoming
The ride to my new home really didn’t take that long. Janice and I talked most of the way about how I was feeling, but to be honest I was dealing with mixed emotions. Everything was somehow messed up. Having received that terrible package from my father had thrown me through a loop; I really didn’t know how to deal with the fact that my own father had such hatred towards me. Even with all he’d done to me, I still loved him. Was I crazy for feeling this way? Then there was my mother. She never really hurt me, other than the odd nasty comment. No, she had never laid a hand on me, but she never protected me either. I didn’t know what to make of her. Was she that blind to the truth? Didn’t she see that what was happening was getting out of control, or was it the truth that she simply didn’t really care what happened to me?
When it came to my father it was simple. He hated everything about me, so he did the only thing that he could do to try and change me. In the end he failed. At least I understood what he was doing, and why. With my mother there was no rhyme or reason to her actions. Janice said that if I were her son, she would have taken me and left. I believed her, because I knew she placed her family first. Maybe if I’d had a mother like her, my life would have been a lot better. I used to envy the relationship that Megan had with Janice. It made me jealous, because I wanted that kind of relationship with my mother. Instead for the most part I was left to fend for myself, living in a world that was unforgiving and refused to accept anything or anyone different.
I wanted to be happy and find a place that would accept me for the person that I really was, but after years of hiding the truth from everyone, I was still very defensive. It had become a big part of my life. Now I had to let go of many of those defenses if I was going to move forward and become Jessica. I was so scared that everything would come crashing down like in my dreams, and I’d find myself back home with my parents. I guess that being forced to live a life that is not my own is what scares me the most.
It was around 1 pm when Janice and I arrived at her home. Megan was still at school and wouldn’t be home till around 4 pm, so it was just Janice and I at home for the moment. I had been to Megan’s house plenty of times over the years, but this time things were different. It would also be my home for the foreseeable future, until they figured out what to do with me. Even that scared me. There really aren’t many foster care homes out there that want a transsexual, or even know how to deal with the issues that I would have to live with. For the time being though, I was safe.
“You’ve been pretty quiet Andrew, is something wrong?” Janice asked.
“I was just thinking, all I have are the clothes that I’m wearing, Janice.”
“We’ll sort that out later, Andrew. The clothes you’re wearing are fine for now.”
Janice led me over to the guest room and said that it was mine for as long as I needed it, then asked me if I was hungry. I was very hungry, as we had left the hospital before dinner was served. The two of us went into the kitchen and she took some chicken out of the fridge, and then turned to me,
“I hope you don’t mind leftovers?”
“Whatever you have is fine Janice, I’m not fussy.”
“Andrew we really need to have a talk.”Janice said as she joined me at the table.
“What do you what to talk about, Janice?”
She looked me in the eye. “Well honey, you have some serious choices that need to be made. The only one that can make these choices is you. I can advise you and support you, but in the end it’s your life and you need to be happy. Anthony knows about you and so does Megan. They accept the fact that you want to be a girl, so there really is no reason for you to hide anymore. If you want to be Jessica while you are here, none of us will mind. In fact, I think it’s probably best for you right now.
I thought about what Janice was saying, I didn’t have to hide anymore. I could just be myself for a change.
Nervously, I looked over at Janice. “Will you help me?”
The road less traveled
Jake Roberts made his way into the bank and walked up to the teller. He closed his account, and fifteen minutes later he left with his life savings. He had been on his way home to pick up a few things and noticed the police car parked out front of his home, so he pulled into a neighbor’s driveway, turned around and drove off in the opposite direction. As he drove off he was cursing. Things were not going well; he thought that the little present that he had sent his son would have been enough to keep his mouth shut. He could see now that he was going to have to take it up a notch.
Jake picked up his cell phone and made a call to his brother James, it only took a few minutes before he answered,
“What’s up, Jake?”
“James, I need you to do me a favor. The police are looking for me, and I need another car. It’s got to be something with 4 wheel drive.”
It was 3 pm when Jake arrived at the address where James said that he would meet him and true to his word, there waiting for Jake was a four wheel drive Subaru. Jake climbed in beside his brother James.
“So, do you want to tell me what’s going on Jake?” asked James
“Andrew tied to kill himself and ended up at the hospital. Because they found bruises on him, they’re trying to charge me with child abuse. Yes, I beat him, but it was for his own good. You know how the boy is, James. God, how many times did our dad beat us and it wasn’t abuse, it was to teach us a lesson. This is no different.”
James looked over at his brother “What are you going to do now? “
“I’ll do whatever I have to do, James. There’s no way that I’m going back to jail.”
“There’s always the hunting camp.” James suggested, with a smile. “It’s remote and well hidden. If you can get theboyalone up there, then you can talk some sense into him.”
You could see that Jake was thinking, and then he turned to his brother “That might just work. Once he’s released from the hospital, though, I have no idea where they’re going to send him.” Jake said, frustrated
James looked over at Jake. “There is always Brian. I am sure that he could figure something out, that is, if you want to deal with him?”
Jake thought about what his brother said. Yes, Brian could help, but whenever you dealt with Brian there was a price to pay. Still, he knew all the right people, and it would take him very little time to find Andrew. Jake looked over at James. “Make the arrangements with Brian and tell him to give me a call.”
Meanwhile, back at the Roberts residence, Sarah had an unexpected visitor. Detective Johnston had arrived and was looking for her husband. The note left with the package came back clean and since it had been printed, it didn’t really give them anything to work with other then a signature that didn’t match Jake’s.
Mason was just hoping to catch a break and have Jake slip up so he could take him into custody. When he talked to Sarah, she told him that he never came home after being released from jail, and she had no idea where he was. Mason believed her because she really didn’t have any reason to lie to him.
Unfortunately, Sarah Roberts wasn’t the one that the district attorney was after. They wanted Jake, much more then they wanted her. Mason, on the other hand would have loved to arrest both of them and lock them up, but it wasn’t up to him. He would gladly make the arrests, but after that it was up to the courts. Just because someone is arrested and it goes to court, that doesn’t necessarily mean that there will be justice. It was something he had seen every day. People committing crimes and they were obviously guilty, but somehow they ended up walking free, or getting little time in jail, and to hell with the victims.
There were times that he had thought about handing in his badge and going into business for himself. There was so much corruption that reached even into the police department, the people he was supposed to trust to watch his back. How can you trust someone that is on the take? Obviously, he couldn’t. There were only a few people within the force that he really trusted. That was just the way things were today.
Mason left the Robert’s house, and then he started checking out most of Jake’s known hangouts. He came up empty, as no one had seen him, or they weren’t talking.
After dinner, Janice and I went upstairs to Megan’s room to find something to wear. I was really excited. I had dressed up before in private but this was different. There was no reason for me to hide it from anyone. Before, there had always been the fear of being caught by my parents. Knowing Dad, there would have been hell to pay, and as far as Mom goes, she would have encouraged him. Either way I would have been in big trouble. Now here I was, standing next to Janice, going though Megan’s closet trying to find the perfect outfit for Jessica’s debut. It only took me a few minutes and I found what I was looking for. It was a nice baby blue sundress that I had loved ever since Megan bought it. I looked over at Janice,”
“Do you think she will mind?” I said, as I held the dress up to show Janice.
“Megan won’t mind at all, honey. You will need a little ‘up top’ to pull it off though! I think I may have just the thing though.” Janice said with a smile.”
Janice dug around on the top shelf of the closet and eventually found what she was looking for and pulled down a small box and handed it to me. When I opened it I found what looked like two breasts.
Janice smiled. “These are helpers, a lot of girls use them until they start growing their own. They should do the job for now! It would be better though if we went out and got you a pair of your own, but these will work for now. We will need to get you
something a bit more realistic.”
For the next half hour, I washed my hair, and then Janice did her best to cut and style it so that it would look good, but still left enough that I could easily go back to being Andrew if I chose. As for myself, given a choice I knew I wouldn’t be choosing to go back to that existence, but she said that short steps were best for now.
Janice left me for a few minutes so that I could get dressed. The dress fit perfectly, which surprised me because I had always thought that girls had wider hips. I wasn’t complaining. I liked the fact that it fit me like a glove. When Janice came back in and took a look for herself she was also surprised that it fit me so well.
The final step was makeup, and as I was seated in front of Megan’s vanity, I was dying to see the results. Janice had covered the mirror, saying she didn’t want me to see how I looked until she was finished. So I sat there and waited. She finally said that she was finished, and when she pulled the towel off the mirror, I was completely in shock! In the mirror looking back at me was a beautiful teenage girl.
As I looked at myself in the mirror, I knew that Andrew was gone for good. I liked what I saw, and I felt that I had found the real me. In time, I would have the body to match, but even if I had to live with the body that I have now, I would be happy as long as I could just be the real me.
Janice looked over at me. “How does it feel, honey?”
I smiled back at Janice.“This is the real me, Janice, and I don’t want to go back”
“I have to say, Andrew, you do look the part.” Janice said with a smile.
“Andrew is a mask that I have had to wear. This is the real me, and my name is Jessica.”
“It’s nice to finely meet you, Jessica.”Janice said with a big smile.
After that Janice gave me some space, and went downstairs to get some work done while I spent some time in my new bedroom. The room had been used mostly by Anthony, Megan’s father, who used it mainly as a music studio. I wasn’t surprised to find his guitar and keyboard still there. It had been awhile since I last played either instrument. I had taken lessons in school and my teacher said that I had a gift when it came to music. With all of the workouts and stuff at home, I just didn’t have the time to really sit down and practice. I walked over to the keyboard and took a seat and hit the power button. It made a buzzing noise as it came to life. I started playing a few of the keys and doing an exercise that my teacher had giving us.
I was surprised how fast it came back to me. After a few tries, I tried playing a song by Martina McBride called Concrete Angel. It was a song that really hit home for me. I had always liked it, but watching the video always brought me to tears. It was such an emotional song. It took me a few attempts to get it right but eventually I started playing and singing the lyrics to the song. By the time I reached the end of the song, I was completely oblivious to the fact that I had gained an audience. Megan and Jennifer had made it home from school, and had pretty much snuck up on me while I was lost in the song.
When I turned around I found both of them there. When they saw me they both came running over, and before I knew what was happening, I was being hugged to death by the both of them.
“God, Andrew is that really you?” asked Megan
I nodded. “Yes Megan, this is the real me. My name is Jessica, now.”
Jennifer smiled, “You look so beautiful, Jessica. That dress really suits you!”
“Yeah Jessica, it fits you like a glove and it’s definitely your color.” Megan said. She looked at me with a serious expression. “You know, Jessica, we’re really very sorry about what happened. Jennifer and I were complete idiots, and we would understand if you didn’t want to be friends again.”
I looked over at the both of them and could see that they were telling the truth. Deep down I knew that there was no possible way that I could be mad at either one of them. I just smiled at them.
”Let’s just leave that in the past, please?”
Over the next couple of hours, the three of us got to know one another again. It was like nothing had happened, but things were different now. I was no longer the odd one out I was one of them now and they treated me as such and held back nothing from me. It felt nice to finely be accepted for the person that I really was, a teenage girl. I seriously doubted that just because I was free to live my life as I wanted that everything was going to turn out perfect. Whatever happened, I knew that I didn’t have to deal with it alone anymore.
Meanwhile, across town Jake had booked himself into a hotel using a fake name. Jake and his brother James had been drinking most of the afternoon, waiting for Brian to call. It was around 4:30 pm when Jake’s cell phone finally rings.
After Jake checked the number, he knew that it was Brian. He hit the answer button on the phone.
“Hi Brian, thanks for calling.”
“Hi Jake, what’s up?” asked Brian
“I need your help Brian I’m up on charges for child abuse. I need to find out where they have my son, so I can talk some sense into him.”
“You know the people that I work for Jake; they’re going to expect something from you in return.”
“I know, Brian, but I don’t want to go to jail! I just need to have Andrew tell them that it wasn’t me abusing him”
“I’ll make a few calls Jake, but I’m promising nothing.” Brian said, ending the call.
“How did it go?” asked James
Jake frowned, “I think he’ll help, but I feel like I’ve just sold my soul to the devil.”
“That’s because you just did, Jake. Welcome to the family.” James said with a grin.
To be continued in part Six
Part 6 By, Cain129
Synopsis: After Andrew is released from the hospital, Janice takes him home and helps him become Jessica for the first time. Now that Jessica is finally free she intends to make Andrew a distant memory, and with the help of her friends she intends to build the life that she has always dreamed of having.
Chapter Eleven
Anthony Tanner had just about finished work for the day when his phone rang. Being after 4 pm, his secretary had already finished, so he took the call himself.
“Hello, Anthony Tanner speaking.”
“Hi Anthony, its Bill. I’ve been on the phone with Children’s Services, and you and Janice have been given temporary guardianship over Andrew Roberts. Janice already knows, and has taken him home from the hospital. All the paperwork should be ready early Monday morning.”
“Thanks Bill, but how did you manage to get it through this fast?”
“Well I can’t take all the credit for that, it turns out that Dr. Masters has been talking to Children’s Services on your behalf and has convinced them that Janice and you are the best prepared to take care of Andrew. Due to his medical issues and the fact that your wife is a licensed psychiatrist, the judge didn’t contest the placement. He has also extended the court order to prevent Andrew’s parents from contact with anyone in your family. “
“Thanks for taking care of everything, Bill. Give my best to Carol for me.”
“Your welcome, Anthony, take care!” Bill said as he ended the call.
After Anthony finished, he looked around his office. He headed downstairs to his car to make the drive home. He was glad Bill had told him Janice had already taken Andrew home. He had never expected to find that the process had already been started while Andrew was still in the hospital.
By the time that Anthony made it home he was starving and hoped that Janice had supper ready. when he walked through the door, it was like a mad house of giggling girls. He saw that Megan had a couple of friends over. He knew Jennifer well; she was like part of the family. This new girl looked somewhat familiar, but he couldn’t place where he seen her before. He thought she was pretty, though, and would probably end up breaking some hearts.
When he looked around, he didn’t see Andrew. “Where is Andrew, Megan?”
It was at that moment everyone started laughing, except the new girl. The pretty stranger just looked at him and smiled. “Mr. Tanner I go by Jessica now.”
Nothing had prepared him for this, what he was looking at was not what he was expecting to see. He expected to see a boy pretending to be a girl. The vision before him was anything but that! What he saw was a girl; there was no sign of the boy that he had known.
“Wow Jessica, if I didn’t see it with my own eyes I wouldn’t believe it,”Anthony said, surprised. “Girls you’re going to need to have a talk to her about boys soon! Something tells me it won’t be long before they start coming around.”
“Stop it Mr. Tanner”, I said blushing.
“Jessica, Daddy’s right, it won’t be long before someone makes a move on you.” Megan said with a big smile on her face.
“Yeah, looking like you do, it’s only a matter of time!” Jennifer said with a smile.
It was at that point that Janice came into the room. She had been listening to everything from the comfort of the kitchen.
”Alright girls, I think Jessica has enough to worry about right now. Boys can wait, andAnthony, stop encouraging them.”Janice said, smiling as she took a seat on the couch.
[-][+][-]
As I sat at the table the one thing that I noticed was how lively the atmosphere was. Everyone was talking and enjoying each others company. It was nothing like what I was used to at home. There, nobody really talked to one another, it was like, eat as fast as you can and move on to the next thing. Here, everyone was talking about their day, even Jennifer was still here and it seemed normal, like she was more a member of the family then a friend.
I would never invite anyone into my home; there were just too many secrets there. I would never have known how my family would act towards me having a guest over. Dad didn’t really care for the friends that I had because most of my friends were girls. Even if they had been boys, I still think he would have found a reason to complain. There was just no winning with him.
But here, everything was calm and when I looked around the room, that tension that I used to feel all the time was gone. It’s strange the things that you can get used to when you have no choice in the matter. Here, we were all sitting at the table, enjoying a meal together as a family. I loved every minute of it.
Chapter 12
Jennifer gone home, and we were sitting around relaxing. I felt comfortable in with the Tanners, but I still had this sinking feeling deep inside my stomach. When I looked around I saw a family that seemed to support one another, and even invited someone as messed up as me to live with them.
Until recently, I had believed that behind closed doors all parents were pretty much the same. As I watched Anthony with Megan, I could see that there was a special bond between them that I had never really experienced, and would have given anything to know what that felt like. Deep down, I knew that a relationship like that with my parents was impossible. I couldn’t take watching them any longer and headed over to my room and closed the door behind me, I just wanted to be alone.
“What’s wrong with Jessica?” asked Megan to her father.
“I think its going to take her some time to adjust, honey, She’s been through a lotand I think she’s feeling overwhelmed,” Anthony said with a frown.
“Should I go and check on her daddy?”
“Just give her some space Megan. When she’s ready, she’ll come out on her own.”
“I’m just worried about her Daddy; she’s been through so much.”
“I know honey, but we can only do so much for her, she needs to find her own way and I’m afraid that’s going to take some time.”
[-][+][-]
I sat in my room doing nothing. I just felt so miserable inside, and the more I thought about things, the angrier I felt towards my family. Part of me just wanted to confront my parents and tell them how I felt, but what was the use? They couldn’t see past their own point of view. I walked over to the phone and dialed Amy’s number. If anyone understood how I was feeling, she would. The phone rang through a few times then I heard her voice on the other end.
“Hello?”
“Amy, it’s me, Jessica. Can we talk?”
“Sure Jessica, is anything wrong?”
“No Amy, it’s been great, Janice even helped me dressed up today. It’s been wonderful.”
“Why do I feel a ‘but’ coming, Jessica?”, asked Amy
“It just doesn’t feel right, Amy, I feel like any minute now, the floor is going to open up and swallow me.”
Amy started laughing, “Honey it’s just your first day and you are with a real family that cares for one another. You’re just not used to it yet. You need to give it some time and try to enjoy yourself. Stop analyzing everything.”
I thought about what Amy was saying, and I guess she was right. I just needed to relax and stop worrying.
“Amy, maybe you’re right, it’s just that I have seen how everyone is here,” Amy heard the sadness in the little girl’s voice. “I guess it pisses me off that I couldn’t have that same feeling with my family. “
“I know honey, for years I wished my mom and dad would accept me, but it never happened. From what I have seen and heard about your family, honey, you are better off without them. The only thing you will find hanging on to them Jessica is pain.”
“Thanks Amy, I needed someone to kick me when I was down.” Jessica said, sarcastically.
No, honey, you needed a kick in the butt to help you remember that you are in a better place.” Amy said laughing. “I have tomorrow off Jessica; want to take in a movie, my treat?”
“Sounds like fun Amy, but I will have to check with Janice. What time do you have in mind?”
“I will pick you up around 6 pm, we can grab a bite to eat then catch the 7pm show if that alright with you, Jessica?
“Sure, I will talk to Janice and give you a call tomorrow to let you know. Thanks Amy, I guess that I just need someone to talk to that understands.”
“That’s alright Jessica, call me anytime you need to talk, I really don’t mind. I will talk to you tomorrow, byes!”
“Bye, Amy,” I said as I ended the call.
I felt much better after talking with Amy, the two of us had an understanding. I just hoped that I could be as good a friend to her as she has been to me.
[-][+][-]
As I was lying on my bed I thought about what Amy was telling me. In truth, I knew I was jealous of Megan’s relationship with her parents. From what I could see, this was a family with lots of support for one another. It went completely against everything that I had come to expect as normal family relations. I think part of the reason it hurt me so much was that I knew this was all temporary. Soon I would be in foster care, or maybe a group home. Neither of them were things that I was looking forward to experiencing.
Chapter 13
As I was lying on the bed I heard a light tapping on my door, so I went over and opened it.
“Is everything alright?” Megan asked, looking worried.
I smiled, “Yes Megan. I guess that all of this was just a little overwhelming for me.”
“What do you mean Jessica?” Asked Megan
I reached out my hand and pulled her inside the room then the two of us flopped down on my bed. I looked over at her, “Megan I’m not used to all this. To you, this is all normal, but when I look at how your family relates to one another, it’s just not normal to me. It was never like this with my family, and I guess that I’m a little jealous because I would have given anything to have what you have here.”
Megan sat there thinking for a minute, “I guess that I never really looked at it like that. I guess that I’ve just taken everything for granted. I’m sorry that it bothers you, Jessica. No one here wants to make you unhappy.”
“It’s just going to take me time Megan, I’m still happier here then I’ve been in a long time, Just look at what I’m wearing, if I tried wearing this at home, Dad would’ve gone completely nuts and Mom, she’d have had a few crude remarks and encouraged dad to do something about me.
This summer, his latest plan was sending me to a military style boot camp for the summer I guess a summer being in a place like that would make ‘a man’ out of me. That’s what finally did it for me. Up till then, committing suicide had only been thoughts. I guess that everyone has their breaking point and that was mine.”
Megan looked over at me and shook her head, “Jennifer I really can’t see you in a place like that and I really can’t see you spending a summer there turning you into a man. The truth is that you’re a woman inside. This was never a phase for you, the person you are right now is the real you, isn’t it?”
“Yes Megan, this is the real me. Andrew was always a mask that I had to wear.”
“I really doubt then that spending the summer there would’ve done anything to you other then make you miserable.”Megan said with a smile.
Megan pointed over to the keyboard. “Why don’t you play something for me?”
“What do you want me to play?”
“I don’t care, just play something, Jessica.”Megan said with a smile.
“Alright,” I said and walked over to the acoustic guitar and gave it a couple of strums to see if it was tuned and found that it was. Then I thought for a minute about what to play, and came up with a song that I liked.
I decided on a song by the Dixie Chicks, called Landslide. I’d always loved the song. I guess that I was a country girl at heart and started playing and singing the lyrics to the song. While I played and sang the song, I noticed Anthony standing outside my door with a big smile on his face. I remember going with Megan a few times when Anthony’s band was playing. They had been pretty good, but the band broke up a few years ago. Megan looked like she was enjoying herself as I finished up the song; she turned to her Father and smiled.
“Jessica is pretty good, right Daddy?”
Anthony came into the room. and said “She is really good!”
He went over and grabbed his other guitar and looked over at me.
“Let’s try playing together, Jessica.”
I looked over at him and smiled. ”What do you want to play?
“How about ‘American Honey’?”Anthony suggested.
“I don’t really know that one that well, Anthony.” I admitted.
“Here Jessica, I’ll play it, and once you’re ready, you come in.” Anthony said with a smile.
“Alright, I’ll give it a try.” I said with a frown.
I liked the song; I had heard it on the radio a few times and pretty much knew the words well enough. I thought I could sing it, but playing it was another story. I usually had to hear it a few times before I could actually play it myself. I guess that was part of the gift my music teacher said that I had.
So as Anthony played the song, I watched the cords that he was playing. I found myself following him as he changed the cords until I had it, then he turned to me.
“Think you’re ready?”
I nodded and the two of us started playing together. At first Anthony was doing the singing, then he nodded to me to take over. Soon the two of us were taking turns and doing the choruses together. I had to admit that the two of us sounded pretty good together! If we practiced and had our timing right, we would have sounded really good. When we finished, Anthony continued on and played “Paint It Black” by the Rolling Stones. I found myself playing along right with him.
As the two of us played, we soon had a small audiences with Megan and Janice sitting on the bed listening. After awhile I found myself starting to get tired, and Anthony could tell. We called an end to our jam section.
Before bed Megan came downstairs and knocked on my door. After I opened it I noticed that she was carrying a blue nightgown.
“I thought that you might need something to wear to bed, Jessica”, Megan said with a smile and handed me a nice blue nightgown.
I smiled, “Thanks Megan, guess that I’ll be going on a shopping trip soon. Seems I need a little of everything.”
“That’s cool Jessica. I’ll get a hold of Jennifer and we’ll hit the mall. It’ll be fun!”
“Maybe, but I’ve got no idea how I’m going to pay for everything I need.”
“I wouldn’t worry about that. I’m sure that Mom and Dad will figure something out, and I’m thinking that Children’s Services is likely going to be paying for most of the stuff you need anyway.”
“Guess things are going to be different for me now; I don’t even know what I’m going to do about school. Everyone knows what I did, Megan. It was bad enough before now, so to people that see me I’ll always be that boy that tried to kill himself.”
“Maybe at first it will be that way Jessica, but I’m sure it’ll eventually blow over. You know how kids are, something will happen in a few weeks, and the kids will move on to the next big thing.
“To be honest I don’t even know if I want to go back to that school, if given a choice I’d like to remain Jessica and attend school and have a clean slate.”
“I can’t say that I’d blame you Jessica. You might be surprised how many people would be cool with you becoming a girl, it’s not like you were the manliest boy. I know for a fact that there were some students there that already thought you were a girl.”
“Really, Megan?”
“Yeah, Jennifer and I used to laugh about it because we knew the truth. But knowing what we know now I guess Jennifer and I were wrong, too.
I smiled, “Well, it’s not like I had girl written all over me.”
“Actually you did, Jessica. We were just too blind to see the truth till now.”
“Well, we better be getting to bed before Mom says something.”
“Goodnight, Sis,” Megan said, then leaned over and gave me a hug.
I leaned over and returned the hug and said goodnight. I waited till Megan left, then changed into my nightgown, thinking about the fact that she had just called me her sister.
[-][+][-]
It was around 11pm when Jake and his brother arrived at the hunting camp. Being out in the middle of nowhere, there was no electricity or phone. They lit the place up using lanterns, and had the wood stove for heating the place and cooking. Not that either one of them were planning on doing much cooking there. Outside of the camp was a river that was perfect for fishing. Both Jake and James loved fishing, it was the perfect excuse to have a couple of cold beer, and neither really cared if they caught anything. Jake had tried to get Andrew interested in fishing and hunting, but the boy was too timid and would sooner scare the animals away then shoot one.
Jake looked around. “This is perfect James, now we just need Brian to find Andrew and put an end to all this. You know that eventually they’re going to expect you do some work for them Jake, and you know what they are going to want.”
“I don’t want to think about it James. The sooner this is over, the better.”
“Alright, Jake. It’s your life, but it might have been better taking the time.”
“Why are you saying this James, it was your idea to call Brian.”
“Yeah, it was Jake, but you’re not planning on just talkin’ to Andrew are you?”
“That’s up to the boy, James.”
“Just so you know that I am not going to jail, so the first sign of trouble, I am out of here,” James said.
“It won’t get to that, believe me. Andrew is a freaking sissy, all I have to do is put the fear of God into him and he will do whatever I tell him to.”
“I sure hope you’re right Jake.” James said, as he opened another beer.
“I know that I’m right! Look, all we have to do is get him here, and for that, I’ll need your help. The police know what I look like, and they’ll be looking for me. They’re not looking for you, James, so you’re going to be my eyes and ears and when the time comes we’ll make our move.
End of part Six
Part 7
By, Cain129
Special Thanks to Wren Phoenix for the editing.
Synopsis: Jessica starts to settle into her new life with the Tanners, but finds the adjustment difficult. Life with the Tanners is completely different then anything that Jessica has experienced before and as Jessica tries to find her place in this new world, she is haunted by the past and afraid of what the future holds.
Jessica’s Journey
There is a saying in hamlet that says “”To thine own self be true”. I’ve never really paid much attention to those words but these days it seems to make a lot more sense to me. All of my life I’ve been pretending to be someone that I’m not. I’ve spent vast amounts of time and energy creating and maintaining Andrew, but have come to the realization that the more that I tried to become what everyone wanted of me, the more at odds I became with the real me.
It has been a couple days now since I came to live with the Tanners and embraced who I really was inside, but to say that it has been easy would be an understatement. It is never easy putting the past behind you and trying to move forward into an unseen future.
In an ideal world everyone would be accepted for whom they were and diversity would be a good thing, but that world doesn’t really exist. Our world is one where sociality dictates what is considered normal, and those like me fall outside what is considered the norm. We hide in the fringes of society, feeling alone and unloved by those around us. They say things like “If you do as I ask, I’ll love you.” Is that real love? Isn’t it really just a form of control that pulls at our emotional strings?
I am sitting here in my room wondering what next, where do I go from here. The worst part of doing something stupid is living with the consequences of your actions. When you look into someone’s eyes and wonder, do they know what I did? Are they talking about me? Shame is a terrible thing to carry around with you. Look at the people that care for you and what you put them through at the time. You think that you’re the only person that you are hurting, but that is insanity. You become blind to everything around you except your own pain. If you are lucky like I was, you survive and realize that what you have done to the ones that cared about you.
End of Journal entry
After having a quick bath, I slowly got dressed. Not having many choices at the moment, I chose the blue sundress that I’d borrowed from Megan. It would have to do for now. There were so many things that I was going to need for my new life, most of all clothes! I lost everything that I’d owned, not that I really wanted any of it anyways. Everything that I’d owned was for a boy, and I was going to start living as a girl. That meant that I was going to need a lot more in my wardrobe.
After I brushed my hair, I made my way to the kitchen and found Janice busy getting breakfast ready. She smiled when she saw me.
“Good morning Jessica, breakfast will be ready in a bit,” Janice said smiling.
“Need any help?”
“No sweetie, but could you get Megan up?”
“Alight Janice,” I said, and headed for Megan’s room.
Megan’s room was on the second floor across from her parents, so I tried to be really quiet. Not wanting to wake up Anthony, I made it to Megan’s room and gave a few light taps. There was no response, so I opened the door and made my way inside. I approached Megan’s bed and gave her shoulder a gentle shake.
“Time to wake up, Megan.”
“Just a few minutes, Mom.” She replied.
Clearly, she was still asleep. So I did the only thing that a girl could do at the moment. I jumped up on the bed and shook her, while at the same time telling her to wake up. Before I knew it, she was firing one pillow after another at me as I ran giggling out of the room.
When I made it to the kitchen, I smiled innocently and told Janice she would be right down. I was right; a few minutes later she came into the kitchen and gave me a swat to the back of the head, which had us both giggling. Feigning innocence, I smiled.
“Now, what was that for?” I asked, playing little miss innocent.
She gave me a toothy smile and said, “Oh, youknow exactly why, missy!”
“All right girls, behave yourselves.” Janice said with a big smile and she placed plates of eggs and bacon in front of Megan and I, then joined us at the table with a plate of her own.
Janice looked over at me. “We really need to get you sorted for clothes, Jessica. Do you feel up to doing some shopping later?”
I looked over at Janice, “I guess I’m a little scared. I’ve never been out dressed as Jessica, what if someone recognizes me?”
“There’s always that risk, honey.” Janice smiled. “To be honest, at the moment you look nothing like Andrew, and you had no trouble fooling Anthony last night.”
I thought about what Janice had said. It was true, Anthony hadn’t known who I was, and all I was wearing was a sundress and a little make up. Maybe I could pull it off. If I was going to be living full time as a girl, then I’d have to leave the house sooner or later. It might as well be today, I thought.
Megan looked over at me. “Don’t worry I’ll be with you, and so will Jennifer, if Mom doesn’t mind her coming along.”
Janice looked over at her daughter. “Sure, honey. It’ll be a ladies day out.”
I looked over at the both of them, “All right, I’ll go, but I reserve the right to be a little scared.”
“Don’t worry, honey. If at anytime it feels too much for you to handle, you just tell me andwe’ll leave.” Janice promised with a smile.
Knowing that I had all the control on whether we stayed or came home made me feel a lot more comfortable. A little while later, we pulled into the parking lot at the Westgate Mall. I was scared to death, but with Megan on one side of me and Jennifer on the other, while Janice covered the rear, there was only one direction left for me to go. That was through the entrance of the mall.
Jessica’s first outing!!
As we walked through the mall, it felt like everyone was watching me and knew my secret, so I was already memorizing the fastest route back to Janice’s car.
“Relax, Jessica! You’re doing fine!” Megan said with a smile.
“I am so nervous. Megan.” I said in a whisper.
“You’re doing great,” Jennifer insisted, giving my hand a reassuring squeeze.
The first stop we made was the Walmart, where I found myself modeling numerous dresses, jeans and blouses. Janice handed me a black skirt and white blouse and told me to try it on. I soon found myself waiting in line to use the changing room. As I waited, Megan and Jennifer were both busy picking out outfits of their own for me to model.
I felt really nervous, but I kept telling myself that I could do this. Eventually my turn came and I made my way inside. Locking the door behind me, I tried on my first outfit. It was the one that Janice had picked out for me. The blouse fit me really well, but I found the black skirt a little tight. When I came out, the girls had me move around a little so they could see how it looked.
“What do you think, Jessica?” Janice asked as she looked me over.
“I like it, but I think the skirt’s a little too tight, Janice.”
Janice looked at it, carefully.“I think that’s just the style, honey.”
I thought to myself that it must have been designed for a boy, because boys had different curves then girls do and it fit me like a glove. They must have made a mistake when the made the skirt because there was no way that I had the same curves as a girl. I sighed. No matter how much I wanted to have the body of a girl, the reality is that I am a boy under these clothes..
The next stop was the lingerie section. I found myself starting to relax a bit and actually started having a good time. The three of us shopped for another hour, hitting the different stores and eventually ended up outside the salon. Jennifer noticed the sign said, “Free ear piercing.” It was one of those deals if you bought something for a certain price they pierced your ears for you. I soon found myself inside, having my ears pierced. When I walked out, I had two diamond studs in each lobe.
Janice had also bought me some makeup, after she and the beautician decided what my skin tone was. Both Megan and Jennifer wanted me to get my hair done but I really wasn’t ready for that yet. I didn’t know what the future held and if I had to put on the Andrew mask again, I wanted to be able to do it without having to explain my hair. Lots of boys have both ears pierced these days, so that wouldn’t really be an issue.
After awhile, Janice said she had a few places that she needed to go, and gave Megan some money. She said that she would meet the three of us in the food court. We headed over to the food court and hit McDonald’s. After we had our food we headed over to the seating area and found a free table.
“How are you doing?” Asked Megan.
“All right, I guess. I still find myself wondering if anyone knows.”
“You have nothing to worry about Jessica. You look, move and talk like a girl and believe me if anyone is looking, all they are seeing is a beautiful teenage girl.” Jennifer said with a smile.
As the three of us were talking and enjoying our meal, I saw Gerry, Daniel and Scotty walking into the food court. As soon as I saw them, I could feel my heart start beating really fast.
Megan looked at me, worriedly. “What’s wrong, Jessica?”
Then she looked over and saw what had spooked me.
“Relax, Jessica! They don’t know who you are, and if they do come over, we’ll just tell them you’re my cousin, and you are just visiting.” Megan reassured me with a smile.
“Are you sure they won’t recognize me?” I said, a little afraid.
I found myself looking over that way. I just couldn’t help myself; it was Scotty, after all. I’d had a crush on him for what felt like ages.
“Jessica, stop staring, they’re going to come over.” Jennifer said in a way that the boys wouldn’t see her.
I looked over at Jennifer. “I’m sorry, guess that I’m just a little bit nervous.”
I tried not to, but I kept finding myself looking over every now and then. All of a sudden, as I was sneaking a look over at him, he turned his head and saw me checking him out. To my surprise, he smiled back at me. Then he turned to one of is friends, and pointed over our way.
Megan looked over at me. “Oh, you’ve done it now!”
The three guys started walking over towards our table. I could feel the butterflies going wild inside my tummy the closer that Scotty got to our table. When they finally arrived, Scotty looked over at me, then Megan and Jennifer.
“Hi Megan, Jennifer.” He nodded, and then he turned to me and smiled. “Hi I’m Scotty. You must be new, because I never forget a pretty face.”
I thought to myself, Wow, what an original line! The way he said it still had me blushing, though. When I was finally able to speak, I smiled nervously.
“I’m Jessica; it’s nice to meet you Scotty.”
“It’s nice to meet you too, Jessica.” he said sweetly then turned to and introduced his friends Gerry and Daniel. I said hi to the both of them, but found that I was having trouble concentrating. Scotty turned to Megan and Jennifer, and then asked if we minded them joining us. Megan looked over at me to see if I was all right. She just shook her head and the guys joined us. Scotty took a seat next to me.
Scotty turned to me, “So, where are you from Jessica?
I really wasn’t used to this kind of attention. I did my best not to look like a total freak, and told him I was just visiting here from Calgary, and that I hadn’t really been here very long.
“You’ll like it here; the people are pretty cool for the most part. If you ever need a guide, I would love to show you around.” Scotty said with a smile.
Wow, I thought to myself, that was fast, he barely even knows me and he is already making a move. I looked over at him, wanting to accept his offer. I was still scared, though, and I think that Megan could tell I was getting in over my head. She calmly came to the rescue.
“That might be hard, Scotty. Jessica’s just visiting and her parents don’t really like her dating.”
Scotty turned to me. “It doesn’t have to be a date; I am just showing a friend around town, that’s all.”
I looked over at him then Megan who just shrugged her shoulders.
I looked over at Scotty. God, why did he have to be so cute! “I really don’t know how long my parents are planning on staying, but I guess that I could give you a call if I am free sometime.”
Scotty smiled, then reached over and picked up my receipt. He wrote his name and number down on it.
“I really hope that you can find the time. Jessica.” he said making a sad puppy dog face.
I smiled, “We’ll see, Scotty.”
Scotty looked over at Megan, “You guys have plans for next weekend?”
Megan looked over. “No, why?”
“The band is playing at the Bronx next Saturday. If you’re not doing anything, you should all come. We just got a new lead singer and she is really good.”
Megan looked at Jennifer. “What do you think?”
She smiled. “Maybe we’ll see you there!”
Scotty looked over at me and smiled. “I hope to see you there, Jessica.”
It was about that time that I saw Janice coming. Thank God, I thought with relief, the stress was going to kill me!
When she reached the table, she smiled. “Hello! Ready to get going girls?”
We nodded, said our goodbyes to the guys and were on our way.
“God, I’m so glad that is over!” I said, leaning back against the car seat. Megan smiled.
“I think that Jessica has a crush on Scotty.” Megan said with a giggle.”
I looked over at Megan. “No, I do not have a crush on Scotty.” I didn’t even believe me.
“Sure Jessica.” Jennifer giggled loudly.
“All right, girls. That’s enough, leave Jessica alone. If she likes Scotty that’s her business,” Janice shook her head. God, it’s like I have another daughter! Janice thought to herself. She put the car in drive and left the parking lot.
I thought to myself, it would really be cool if I could date Scotty, but it wasn’t a good idea. I wasn’t a real girl and it wasn’t fair to Scotty, even if we did like one another. He wants a girl friend, not a freak like me.
Parental Blues
Jake woke to the sound of his phone going off. It was his wife calling. Since he had decided to run, he hadn’t taken her calls. He was paranoid that the Cops were listening and would be tracing her calls. So he hit the busy button and set the phone down on the table.
It was the middle of the afternoon, and he had one hell of a headache, He looked over and found that James had already left. For the moment, he had the place to himself. That suited him fine he needed to get the place ready, but the first thing he needed was to a drink to clear the cobwebs out of his head.
Jake then picked up the bottle of whiskey and poured it into a glass. He drank it and poured another. Then walked over to his bag and took out the battery powered drill and a latch, along with some screws. He installed the bracket, and then lined it up so that he could padlock the door from the outside.
After he finished up with the door, he moved to the windows and drilled a medal bracket that had bars running across then lifted up and placed the locking bracket in place and drilled the screws into place there was no way anyone was going to be able to exit the cabin though the windows. After he finished up he spent a few minutes testing the bars form both sides of the cabin and the bars held tight.
The last step was for him to secure the inside of the cabin, which he did by installing a deadbolt that required a key to open. Once Jake was sure that the cabin was ready, all that needed to be done was wait for the right moment and grab the boy, but he forgot that he was still waiting on Brian.
Sarah Roberts was a complete mess. It had been four days since she had last seen or heard from her husband. She had even contacted the police a few times, just to check if they were holding him. They knew nothing about his whereabouts, and the more that she thought about it, the angrier she became. It was all Andrew’s fault, and because of him, she was about to lose everything, even their home. She detested the idea of being destitute and having to depend of the charity of others, but if something didn’t happen by the end of the month, she would have no choice but to move in with her sister.
Word had already started getting around about what had happened. People were not stupid, they could piece together that more was going on than just a child’s suicide attempt. With the police hanging around the area, looking for Jake, people that they had considered friends started shying away from Sarah. They didn’t want any part of what was going on.
Sarah felt that her life was pretty much over in Burnaby. She figured that they would be looking for a fresh start somewhere, just her and Jake. As far as she was concerned, Andrew was the cause of all there hardships. They were better off without him. Once all this craziness was over, they would be leaving together. Sarah went back to her packing. Without Jakes help, it was going to be a big job.
It had been a lot of fun, for the most part. Once I got past the initial fear of being outside the house as a girl, and even though it had been stressful dealing with Scotty, it did manage to do one thing. I was no longer afraid to be seen in public. If Scotty saw me as a girl, one that he wanted to date, then I knew that everyone else would see the same thing. This gave me a new confidence.
Once we made it home, Jennifer and Megan helped me sort and put everything away. When we finished, we headed into the kitchen and grabbed a few cans of coke, then took a seat at the table. Janice came in carrying a bag and said, “Here Jessica, I picked these up for you at the mall, she then handed me the bag. Inside was a white box, which I opened and found two really expensive breast forms that were almost a perfect match to my skin.
“I ran over and gave Janice a big hug and kiss. “Thank you Janice these are perfect.”
“This type glues on, Jessica. You can pretty much wear them with anything.” Janice said with a big smile, seeing how excited having them made me.
After we finished Janice told me to come with her and she would give me a hand putting them on. Once the two of us were alone, she told me to take off my shirt and bra, which really didn’t take me very long. When she took the breast forms out of the box, she looked over at me.
“You may find them a little cold until they adjust to your body temperature.” She then ran her hand across my chest. “How often do you shave Andrew?
I looked over at her. “I have never had to shave at least not yet”
“That’s a bit surprising. Boys your age have usually started by now.”
“I really don’t mind Janice. It makes things easier.” I said with a smile.
“Maybe, honey, but its not really normal.” Janice said, frowning thoughtfully.
Janice started to attach the first breast form, but as she was pressing it against me, I winced in pain.
“Does that hurt you Jessica?” asked Janice.
“Just a little bit.” I said as I rubbed the area that was hurting.
Janice ran her hand over me and lightly pressed here and there then did the same to the other one.
“Jessica, how long has it been like this?”
I looked at he, nervously. “Maybe a couple of months, why? Is something wrong?”
“I really don’t want to worry you, but I think we need to get you in for a checkup.”
Janice then helped me glue the breast forms in place and once I was dressed I looked like I had grown my own real breasts.
After Janice and I were finished she said that she needed to make a few calls and I soon found myself upstairs with Jennifer and Megan. As soon as I was outside the door I could hear the two of them talking and when they saw me they quickly went quiet. I looked at the both of them.
“Something tells me that whatever you are talking about concerns me.” I said with a frown.
I walked in and joined the two of them on the bed, Jennifer looked over at me.
“It’s just that we think Scotty likes you. You like Scotty, don’t you Jessica?”
“All right so I like Scotty.” I admitted. “It’s not like the two of us are going to get together and have babies or anything.”
“Well, there’s nothing really stopping you from dating him.” Megan said with a smile.
“Yes, there is, Megan, This thing between my legs would be a sure way to kill any romance between the two of us.”
“Not if you’re careful,” Jennifer said, smiling. “You plan on going for the operation, right?”
I looked over at her, “Yes, I plan on getting a sex change, but the most that’ll happen is that they’ll give me hormones for the next few years.”
Megan looked over at me. “Just because you’re not complete, it doesn’t mean that you can’t date. It just means you can’t go all the way with them and everything else is open game.”
I thought about what they were saying and guessed that they were right, I could still date someone but if they wanted more then what I could give them then I would have to break it off, who knows there might be someone out there willing to take things slow, but I would never know if I didn’t leave myself open to the idea.
It was around four o’clock when I noticed the time. I needed to make a call, so I went downstairs and found Janice in the kitchen.
“Janice, Amy asked me if I wanted to go to a movie tonight with her, is it alright?”
“Who is Amy, Jessica?” asked Janice
“She was my nurse at the hospital and well, she has been through a lot of the same things I have, and the two of us became friends.”
“All right Jessica, but I want to meet her first. What time is she coming?”
“Amy said she would pick me up around 6 pm, were going to grab something to eat and catch the 7 pm movie.”
“All right call her and tell her that you can go, but I want to meet her first, Jessica.”
“Thanks, Janice” I said with a smile.
Jake was sitting outside the cabin drinking a beer when his cell went off. He looked at the caller id, and he saw that it was Brian.
“Hi Brian, tell me you have some good news.”
“Yes Jake, but Vincent wants to talk to you first.”
“Be at Benny’s Steakhouse tomorrow at 3 pm and Jake, you’d better come sober.”
To be continued in part Eight
Andrew’s Dilemma
Part 8
By, Cain129
Special Thanks to Wren Phoenix for the editing.
Synopsis: Jessica spent her first day out in public, and somehow made it back in one piece. She had run into Scotty for the first time as a girl, and the sparks have begun to fly between the two of them. Jessica would love to get to know him better, but is afraid to allow him to get close. She’s very afraid that he could discover her secret. At the same time Jake Roberts is busy getting ready for a heartfelt reunion with his son.
There’s no such thing as a free ride
Jake found himself in a spot after waking up. He badly wanted a drink, but knew that he had to hold off, at least until after his meeting at 3 pm. From what Brian had said, Vincent didn’t like his people drinking when they were supposed to be working. This made Jake feel uncomfortable, he’d never been the type to take orders. He was much more comfortable giving them. That was the way it had been in the Army, until that unfortunate business that cost him his career. He needed Vincent’s help if he was going to stay out of jail, though. He wasn’t thinking about the consequences of his actions. At this time, Jake was too fueled by anger.
There was a small town maybe a half hour’s drive away, so he got in his car and rode into town. There he found a small restaurant. The waitress came over with a menu and a cup of coffee. Jake’s hand was really shaking as he poured the milk and sugar into the cup, but managed to do it without making to much of a mess. He ended up wearing some when he tried to take his first drink. If this was any indication of what his day was going to be like, he knew it was going to be a terrible day. He placed his order, and then thought quietly, while taking another drink of his coffee.
After having his breakfast. Jake returned to the Cabin. He was really struggling with himself, as there was a bottle of whiskey that had been calling out to him all day. If he didn’t have to be at his 3pm appointment, he would have getting into it a long time ago. The people that he needed to deal with wanted him sober for the meeting and he didn’t dare cross them. Brian had told him plenty of horror stories about what they did to the people that had.
Even he was beginning to wonder why he had ever agreed to any of this. At the time, it had seemed like a good idea. Being sober for the first time in a long while had let him begin to think clearly, but now it was too late to back out. He had set things in motion and the people that he was dealing with wouldn’t appreciate his wasting their time.
So at 3 pm, a sober Jake Roberts walked through the doors of the restaurant. As he entered he saw Brian sitting with a couple of other men. When Brian saw Jake, he waved him over to the table. Jake nodded and walked over to the table and waited till he was invited to take a seat with them. After he took a seat, Brian turned to the man sitting next to him.
“Jake Roberts, this is Vincent.”
Vincent reached across the table and shook Jake’s hand.
“Brian tells me you have a problem that you need help with?”
“Yes sir, I am trying to find my son.” replied Jake.
“I can help you, but there is always a cost. If I do this for you, then I will expect something from you.” Vincent said with a smile.
“What do you need?” asked Jake.
“Brian tells me you are pretty good with your hands. I need someone to collect some loans that are outstanding. If you take care of this, then I will help you, Jake.”
Jake looked over at Vincent. “Who and where?”
[-][+][-]
It was around 5:00 and I was inside my bedroom. Amy was supposed to be here around 5:30 to pick me up. I was really looking forward to seeing her. In the short time that I had known her, she had become an important part of my life. I think it was the fact that the two of us shared so much in common including the pain that we had both suffered.
Megan had offered to help me with my makeup, but I wanted to do it myself and found that I could, provided I had the time. Everything was a learning experience for me, including makeup and hair. It was something that I had to do for myself if I was ever going to be independent. After my fourth try, I finally felt that I was done. When I looked in the mirror I liked the results.
I knew that I didn’t really need to wear makeup, let alone dress up, but this was a special night. Amy was going to meet the real me tonight. Until recently she had only known me as Andrew and I hoped that I would never have to put on that mask again. At the moment, Andrew was the last thing I wanted to be thinking about. He was the past and Jessica was my future. I had chosen the little blue sundress that I had bought at the mall; I loved it from the moment that I had seen it. It fit me like a second skin and the flowered pattern on it was awesome. As far as foot wear went I hadn’t mastered heels yet so I went with a pair of sandals.
After I finished up in the kitchen, I joined Anthony in the living room; he had his guitar out and a binder in front of him. He had been playing this song over and over again. He looked pretty frustrated; I took a seat on the couch next to him.
“What’s wrong”, I asked him
He looked at me. “It’s just this song that I have been writing. I have had it running through my mind now for quite a while, but can never seem to get it sounding the way that I want. Something is missing.”
I looked at him. “Why don’t you play it for me Anthony?”
Anthony nodded and started playing it through. As I listened to him play, I noticed that the song wasn’t the problem. It was more in how it was being played. When he finished, I looked over at him and said “Can I give it a try?”
“Be my guest.” He handed me his guitar.
After I took the guitar from him, the first thing that I did was slow it down. I knew that his intention was to make it rock, but when I heard it being played it wasn’t ordinary rock that I heard. It was more of a “rocking country” kind of song, so I played it that way. Although there were no lyrics yet, I could easily see it being an easy song to put to words.”
When I finished playing, I looked over at him. “What do you think?”
“I like it Jessica! It’s a bit different then what I was going for, but your version works better then mine. I’m just wondering what it would sound like with a band behind it.” Anthony said with a smile.
“Well, I don’t have much time right now, because Amy should be here soon. When I get home, we can try playing it together.” I said with a smile.
“That sounds like a plan Jessica, I’ll program the song into the keyboard, that way we can have a piano and drums accompany us.” Anthony said with a smile.
“Do you have any lyrics yet?” I asked.
“Not yet, but since it sounds better as country number, maybe you can come up with something, Jessica!”
“I’ll give it a try Anthony, but it might take me awhile.”
“That’s fine Jessica, I’m not in any hurry, just give it a try!” Anthony said smiling.
[-][+][-]
Chapter 18 - Learning to fly
Anthony and I were so caught up in working out the cords to the song and writing them down, that neither of us heard Amy arrive until we heard the doorbell ring.
“That must be Amy! I’ll let her in!” I yelled, then ran over to the door.
When I opened the door, there was Amy. When she saw me, she just shook her head and smiled.
“Is that really you, Jessica?” She said with a smile.
I smiled back at her. “Yes, Amy, it’s the real me! Please come inside, everyone is dying to meet you.” I took her hand and dragged her inside.
“God, Jessica I am so happy for you. By the way, you look awesome!”
I smiled. “Thanks Amy. It feels wonderful just to be myself, and not have to pretend anymore.”
When I went inside the living room, Janice had joined Anthony. Megan was still upstairs with Jennifer, but I imagined that they would be down soon enough.
“Janice, Anthony, this is my friend Amy.”
Both Anthony and Janice came over and said hello to Amy, then asked her to have a seat and make herself at home.
Janice smiled, “I was a little worried about letting Jessica go out tonight without meeting you first, Amy, She has been through so much and we worry about her because of everything that has happened.”
Amy smiled. “You have nothing to worry about Janice. Jessica is like a little sister to me, and I would never let anything happen to her.”
There is also one other thing that bothers us, Amy, and please don’t take this the wrong way, but there is quite an age difference between the two of you.” Janice said, frowning.
Amy looked at Janice then at Anthony and thought for a few minutes, then turned to me. I nodded to her, telling her it was all right to tell them if she wanted too.
“Jessica and I have a lot in common. The two of us have been through similar situations, and because of that we share a special bond. One that people might not understand.” Amy told her as she undid the buttons on her sleeves of her blouse showing them the scars on her wrists.
Janice looked at Amy. “Oh, I am so sorry Amy! Jessica didn’t tell us about that.”
“Jessica wouldn’t tell anyone, she knows how embarrassing it can be. It’s hard to find someone you can really talk to that understands.” Amy said sadly.
I walked over to Amy and put my arms around her and said, “It’s all right, Sis”
Amy looked over at Janice and Anthony.
“I was about Jessica’s age when I tried taking my own life.” She said. “I was pretty lost and very confused as a kid. Like Andrew, I was also troubled. I realized that I had lesbian feelings. My parent disowned me when I came out to them, and still refuse to accept me to this day. They act like I don’t exist.
It’s been a long hard road for me. When Jessica came into my life, I knew what she was going to be up against. I wanted to help her get through it, because I didn’t have anyone to help me. I didn’t want Jessica to go through what I did alone, and I guess she also reminds me of my little sister, Beth. My sister and I were pretty close, and I guess that I miss having someone like her in my life. I know that Jessica can’t replace what I lost but having her in my life does kinda fill that void.” Amy said with a smile.
I looked over at Janice and Anthony, “Amy was the first person that I met when I woke up. I was tied to the bed and I wasn’t very happy, I guess. I was also pretty rude to Amy. She talked to me anyway, and told me her secrets. She really didn’t have to, it’s not her job, but she did it anyway.
Most of my life, I’ve felt alone. I thought that there was no one out there that could understand me. Amy’s been though a lot of the same experiences, and look at her now. I was planning on ending my life as soon as I found a way out of the hospital, but she showed me that I didn’t have to do it. If I was willing to accept who I was and ask for help, then I could be whoever I wanted to be. Without Amy I wouldn’t be here right now, I’d most likely be dead.”
Janice walked over to Amy. “I’m sorry we put you through all this, but I want you to know you’re always welcome here, Amy. As far as I’m concerned, there is no one that I would rather have as a role model for Jessica then you.”
Anthony smiled and walked over, “I am glad that Jessica has someone like you, and like Janice said, you’re welcome here anytime.”
Amy looked over at the clock, “We’d better get going Jessica, if were going to have something to eat before the movie.”
“Amy, you’re more then welcome to join us for supper. There is plenty to go around!” Janice, said with a smile.
“What do you think, Jessica?” Asked Amy
“It’s fine with me!” I said with a smile.
Megan, Jennifer and Amy hit it off like I knew they would, and over supper everyone got to know each other better. By the time Amy and I left, we were all friends.
I looked over at Amy. “Sorry about the third degree from Janice”
“It’s alright Jessica, you are lucky to have them in your life! They really care about you, and that’s why they’re so protective.” Amy said with a smile as she put the car into drive, and the two of us were off.
End of Part 8
To be continue in part 9
Andrew’s Dilemma
Part 9
By, Cain129
Special Thanks to Wren Phoenix for the editing.
Synopsis: Things are beginning to change for Jessica. A new world has opened for her, and along the way she has been learning to come to grips with the person that she truly is inside. With the help of those around her, she is finally starting to understand how a real family interacts with one another. Jake Roberts, on the other hand has accepted Vincent’s offer and has agreed to be his enforcer. In exchange, Vincent will use his people to track down Andrew. Jessica is not the scared little kid that Andrew was, and Jessica will fight back.<!--break-->
Chapter 19
I had a great time at the movies with Amy. It was really nice being with someone other than Megan and Jennifer. Don’t get me wrong, I love the two of them to pieces! The relationship that Amy and I had was somewhat deeper then even I could understand. Maybe it was because we really didn’t have any family that we could speak of, but when the two of us were together, I didn’t feel quite so alone anymore. When I looked over at her I think that she felt the same way as I did. I guess we were just two lost souls that needed each other.
It really made me happy, knowing that the Tanner’s had accepted her so willingly. I knew that they were just concerned for my safety at first, but once they got to know her, they were able to see that she was special and someone that really meant a lot to me. After Amy dropped me off, I found Janice and Anthony were in the living room watching something on the television and as I was hanging up my jacket, Anthony asked me how my night was.
I smiled. “It was a lot of fun; we saw a really funny movie! Amy took me to see ‘Get Him to the Greek.’ I laughed so hard I almost had a little accident.” I said with a smile.
Anthony smiled, “Those are the best movies, honey. Minus the accidents, that is.”
“Janice and I were talking honey, and we think it’s nice that you have someone like Amy looking out for you”
I took a seat on the couch next to Janice and she asked me how I was feeling, I looked up at here and smiled.
“Life couldn’t be better, thanks for everything you are doing for me.” I said, and leaned over to give her a hug. “Where is Megan anyway?”
“Megan is over at Jennifer’s for the night. You can go over if you want honey. Jennifer said that you were more than welcome to join them when you came home.” Janice said with a smile.
I smiled, “It’s been a long day, and I need to get some sleep, beside if I go over there we’ll be up all night.”
Janice smiled, “You’re right honey. Slumber parties do usually end up that way.”
So for the next couple of hours I stayed up and watch a movie with Janice and Anthony. As we were watching, Janice put her arm around my shoulder. It felt really nice to be held like that. Mom never really showed me any feeling like that, so it felt a little weird at first. It was something that I could really get used to! I was so relaxed that I guess that I fell asleep as she held me. I wished that Anthony and Janice were my parents and not the people who had raised me.
[-][+][-]
As I slept Janice reached over and tapped Anthony’s shoulder, when he turned his head and saw me asleep, he smiled.
“She looks pretty content doesn’t she?”Anthony said with a smile.
“Honey, I don’t know if I can do this.” Janice said with a frown. “Look at her, honey. It’s not so much a doctor that she needs right now, but good parents that accept her. There are plenty of good doctors that can help her with the abuse, but she needs a place to call home and parents that will love and protect her.” Janice said.
“Let me take care of her first.” Anthony said, as he stood up and carried Jessica to her room. He covered her up and closed the door as he left. After returning, he took a seat next to Janice and hit the mute on the remote, then turned towards his wife.
“I think that I know where this is going Janice, I know that you wanted another child but are you sure you want to go down this road?” Anthony said
Janice looked at her husband, “I don’t know, honey. That is the problem. I didn’t expect to develop feelings for her like this, but . . . well, after what happened today with Amy, I can’t help but see the truth. I’m overprotective of her. I thought about how I would have reacted if it had been Megan, and I know I would have felt the same.
I just don’t see her as a patient! All I see is a child that needs a mother and father. Think about it honey. I know we’ve talked about her going into foster care or a group home, but what do you think is going to happen to her there? Is she going to find love and support? I really don’t think so; all she’s going to find is more pain. I worry that no one is going to understand her or accept her. Honey, I don’t want that for Jessica.” Janice said as she started crying.
Anthony took Janice into his arms and held her. “I guess she’s had an effect on me too. I love having her here. It’s nice, having someone around that I can share my interest in music with and teach. I love Megan to death, but she doesn’t have the same interests as I do. She’s into other things, and that’s fine with me. I’m sure that whatever she decides to do with her life, she’ll be a big success. But Jessica hasn’t had the same advantages as Megan and unless she gets some of those things, I don’t really see her making it.
“What are you saying, Anthony?” asked Janice.
“If you want to adopt her, it’s alright with me, Honey.” Anthony said with a smile.
Janice frowned, “We should talk to Megan about it though. It’s going to affect her, she’s always been an only child.”
“Let’s not tell the kids anything for now, Janice; I want to talk to Bill Jonah first. I have no idea how this is going to work, can it be done through the courts or do we need the parents to sign off. The last thing that I want to do is to get Jessica’s hopes up, and then have them come crashing down if something happens to prevent the adoption.”
“All right honey, but I’m going to start looking into finding her another doctor. I don’t feel I should be both a doctor and a mother to her.” Janice said with a smile.
[-][+][-]
The following morning I woke up with awful craps in my tummy. I just didn’t feel very good, but I slowly pulled myself out of bed. I realized that I was still wearing my sundress from last night. I must have fallen asleep while watching the movie with Janice and Anthony. I guess that Anthony carried me to bed, because I really doubted that Janice would have been able to do it on her own.
I slowly made it to the bathroom. After spending the next 10 minutes on the toilet the cramps finely subsided and I started feeling better. I then ran a nice hot bubble bath and climbed inside. The warmth of the water felt nice against my body and was also really relaxing. I thought about last night, how weird it was to spend the night watching television with Janice and Anthony, and how much I enjoyed their company. It also made me sad though, knowing that soon all this would be coming to an end. I would likely end up in a foster care home and I really had no idea what that would mean for Jessica.
After I finished my bath, I pulled the plug and let the water go down the drain. I grabbed a towel and started drying myself off. I rubbed the towel against my chest, and found that putting pressure against the breast forms was really uncomfortable. I thought about taking them off, but really liked how they made me look. Going without them wasn’t an option. I did use the solution to dissolve the glue from them and when I got dressed, I just placed them in the cups of my bra.
I also notice that my tummy was still pretty sore to the touch and I felt bloated. Maybe I was coming down with a stomach flue but I managed to get myself dressed. I was going to just wear a pair of jeans, but I found that with the bloating, they were too uncomfortable. I had a new skirt that we had bought at the mall, and I tried it on. It felt much better, so I just grabbed a white blouse to wear with it.
The next thing that I did was my makeup. I just went with a little lipstick and blush. I wasn’t expecting to be going very far today and to be honest, I really wasn’t feeling like doing anything other then hanging around the house. I made my way to the kitchen and found for the moment that I seemed to be the only one up. This was nothing new to me. When I lived with my parents, I pretty much had to take care of making my own breakfast before going to school.
I grabbed a bowl and mixed up some eggs, then cut up some peppers and shredded some cheddar cheese, then mixed it all together. At the same time, I had a frying pan on the stove with butter melting inside it. I spread the butter around the pan, and then I fried up some bacon. When it was ready, I added it to the mix, then poured the mix into the frying pan and let it cook. I also put some bread in the toaster. I guess the smell of food cooking must have awakened Janice.
“Something sure smells good!” she said, as she made her way into the kitchen.
“I hope you’re hungry, I made enough for all of us.” I said, smiling as she took a seat at the table.
“You could have waited, honey, I would have made something up! I do appreciate that you took care of it this morning.” Janice said smiling.
“It’s alright, Janice I’m used to it. Most of the time when I was living with my parents, if I wanted something to eat I had to take care of it myself. Because of that, I’m a pretty good cook now.” I said with a smile.
“Maybe you could teach Megan, then.” Janice suggested, smiling.
I laughed, “I am not a miracle worker, Janice! I love Megan to pieces, but that girl could find a way to burn water. I remember when she made peanut butter brownies one time. They ended up hard as bricks, but I didn’t have the heart to tell her.”
Janice laughed, “I guess Megan takes after her dad. Anthony is the same way in the kitchen. It’s getting to the point that I’ve barred him from cooking at all. If I am out, count on ordering fast food.”
I laughed. “My dad is the same. I’m sure he would have starved if Mom wasn’t there to take care of him. He rarely eats, but when he does he complains that it tastes bad. It’s not that the food tastes bad, I think it’s because he’s always drinking. It’s got to do something to how the food tastes to him. I’m just glad that I don’t have to be hearing him complain anymore. I guess till recently, it was a normal part of my life. I never really paid much attention to it.” I said with a smile.
“That’s because it was part of your normal life, Jessica. I guess that until now, you’ve tuned that part of your life out. There will be other things that will happen, honey, and I want you to know that if you want to talk about it I am here for you anytime you need me. I know for a fact that Anthony thinks the world of you. Believe me, if you want to talk to him, he’ll make time for you.” Janice said, as she poured us some orange juice.
“Should we get Anthony up, Janice?” I asked
“I’ll go get him, honey; you can finish setting the table.” Janice told her as she stood up.
A few minutes later, Anthony came in followed by Janice; he still looked half asleep. I went over and started putting on a pot of coffee.
“Good morning, honey!” Anthony said, as he came over and gave me a hug while I was filling a plate for him.
“Good morning Anthony.” I said as I handed him a plate for himself and one for Janice, then I filled one for myself and joined the two of them at the table.
“Sorry we never got to work on the song last night, Anthony. I guess that my mind was somewhere else last night and maybe I was also a little tired.”
“That’s alright Jessica; there is lots of time for us to work on that.” Anthony said with a smile and took a bite of his omelet, “God, this is good Jessica! You are welcome to cook anytime you want!”
“Yeah Jessica, this is one of the best omelets I have ever had!” Janice said as she took another bite.
I had to admit to myself that it felt pretty good having people that were thankful whenever you did something nice for them.
“Thanks, it’s really no big deal. I am happy you like it.” I said with a smile.
[-][+][-]
Chapter 20
Sarah Roberts was not having much fun. Not only had she lost her son, but as the days went on, she felt like she’d lost the only man that she had ever really loved. She could feel all her hopes and dreams slipping away as the days went on. She was almost at the end of her rope. Everything felt hopeless and she was thinking that there was really only one thing left for her to do, but she was so paralyzed with fear that she couldn’t do anything about it.
She wondered how her life had reached this point. It was not supposed to be like this. Family was supposed to stick together. She thought to herself, if only Andrew had been born a girl, like the doctors said, then none of this would have happened. Instead she ended up with some kind of freak that neither Jake nor her could understand, let alone help. Deep down, she knew that this was no way to think of her child, but she just couldn’t help herself. It was just the way she felt.
Feeling completely lost she picked up her phone and gave her sister a call. She was tired of being alone with her own thoughts she needed to be with someone till this was over and the only one she could turn too was.
“Hi Sis, can I stay with you for awhile? I think that if I stay here any longer I am going to loose my mind.”
“Sure Sarah, I will make up a bed for you.” Barb said
“Thanks Sis, I will see you in a bit.” Sarah said as she ended the call.
[-][+][-]
After breakfast, Anthony and I worked on the song again trying to get our timing down just right. It took us quite a few tries to get it right, but I didn’t really care. I found myself happier then I had ever been. After the last attempt at the song, I took a seat and started working on the words. As we had played it, the words started forming in my mind. I just needed to get them to paper before I lost them. I listened to Anthony play the song and continued writing whatever came to mind. When he reached the end of the song I was fairly sure that I had it down, but wouldn’t really know till I tried singing it.
The first few attempts were terrible and would have likely made someone with perfect hearing wish that they were deaf. After a few more tries, I made the necessary changes and slowly managed to get though the song once. After a few more tries, we felt we were able to get it right, although there still were a few problems with our timing. That could easily be worked out with more practice. It was around noon when Megan and Jennifer came in. They both wanted to hear the song that Anthony and I had been working on. We found ourselves playing it one more time for everyone. Janice joined us for our first live performance. Well, maybe it wasn’t such a big deal, but they were people and they were alive, anyway. Since I didn’t wake up with a toe tag, I knew that I was all right for another day. We did the song one more time, but this time Anthony and I had the timing perfect. As I sang the song, I could feel the emotions building up inside me. They say a good writer uses his or her life experiences when they write a book or even a song and that is where this song came from. Anthony and I may have done the background music, but every word came from my heart and as I sang the song it brought tears to my eyes. I knew that there was only one name for this song “I’m tired of crying, and you can’t hurt me anymore.”
As I came to the end of the song I was amazed that I was able to finish it. I was so lost in it that I had tuned everyone and everything out. I could hear Megan and Jennifer trying to talk to me, but I was just too worked up. Janice told everyone that she needed to talk to me alone. Once everyone had gone and it was just Janice and I, she took a seat on the bed and just wrapped her arms around me.
“It’s alright baby, let it out. It’s alright to cry, and I know it’s hard. You can’t keep holding it inside, hoping it’ll all go away.”
I found myself fighting the tears, trying to hold on but it was useless. The floodgates opened and I was crying like a baby on Janice’s shoulder. She wrapped me up in her arms and just held me, stroking my hair and telling me everything was going to be alright.
“Why, why, why?” I cried.
“Why, what baby? Tell me.” Janice said as she held me.
“Why don’t they love me? Am I that terrible? God, I wish that I was never born!”
“Don’t say that baby, there is nothing wrong with you.” Janice said, softly.
“Look at me Janice! I’m a freak, I’m not a boy and I’m not a girl, what am I?”
“You are whoever you want to be, Jessica. It’s up to you; just don’t give up on yourself.”
“It’s so hard here, Janice. I see you and Anthony with Megan and it hurts so bad inside. I know that I should be happy for her, but God help me, I’m not! Why does she get to be happy and I my life is so miserable. It’s not fair, Janice!” I wailed.
I started crying harder, but soon I was screaming in pain. The cramps were back and they hurt worse then earlier.
“Jessica, what’s wrong?” Janice asked, as I was grabbing my tummy. Within minutes I heard Janice scream for help as everything went black.
End of part 9
To be continued in part 10
Andrew’s Dilemma
Part 10
By, Cain129
Special Thanks to Wren Phoenix for the editing.
Synopsis: Things are not always as they seem, and every now and then life has a way of throwing its own little surprises into the mix. Sometimes those surprises can be a blessing or a curse. I was screaming in pain. The cramps were back and they hurt worse than earlier. That was when everything went black.<!--break-->
Chapter 21
Janice screamed out to someone call 911; she pulled up Jessica’s blouse and took a look around the area that Jessica had been holding before she passed out. It looked very swollen, and as she pressed on it she could feel that there was a lot of pressure pushing back and there was definite discoloration.
Although Janice’s specialty was not in that kind of medicine, in her years of medical school she’d had to learn many things. To her, it looked like some kind of internal bleeding, possibly her appendix. If that was true, Jessica would have been in pain much longer then she had appeared to be. In any case, Janice knew something was definitely not right with Jessica.
Anthony came running into the room with the phone in hand.
“What’s wrong?” he asked, fearfully.
“I don’t know, honey.” Janice said nervously as she took her pulse.
“I have the operator on the line.” Anthony said. “What do I tell them?”
“Tell them that her pulse is normal and she is breathing fine. She’s in severe pain, and it looks like there could be some internal bleeding.” Janice tried to stay calm, but she couldn’t help being anxious.
Megan and Jennifer were standing at the door. Both of them were crying and very worried about their friend. In the distance you could hear the siren of the ambulance coming closer.
“Mom, what’s wrong with her?” cried Megan.
“I don’t know, honey, but we’re going to find out. Don’t worry baby, believe me, everything will be all right.” Janice held Jessica in her arms, carefully.
[-][+][-]
After the ambulance arrived, Janice climbed in the back with Jessica. Anthony said that he would take the kids with him in the car. The ride to the hospital was a long one. Janice reached into her purse and pulled out her cell phone. She dialed Dr. Masters’ number and listened to it ring a few times before he answered.
“Hi John, Janice here. By any chance are you at the hospital?”
“I’m home, what’s going on? Jessica didn’t try something stupid again, did she?”
“No John, but something else is seriously wrong; we’re in an ambulance right now, headed for the hospital. Is there any way you can get there?”
“I’ll be there as fast as I can. Tell the Doctor on call that she’s my patient and I’ll be there shortly. Can you tell me anything about her condition?”
“She was fine, just upset one minute, and then she started screaming in pain and said something about having really bad cramps and she passed out. When I checked her over, I found that the area felt hard to the touch and it had a bluish discoloration. I’m worried that it could be internal bleeding, John.”
“Don’t worry, we’ll figure it out. I’ll see you at the hospital soon and Janice, it might not be a good idea to have her admitted under his real name. There may be some issues. The police are still looking for Andrews’s father and as far as I know he is still at large.”
“What name should I admit her under then?”
“Admit her under the name of Jessica Dawn Tanner, and when you get the chance, explain to the doctor on call that Jessica is a transsexual. I know most of the doctors at the hospital, and they will keep it quiet. All right Janice, I have to get going. I will see you at the hospital.” John said as he ended the call.
[-][+][-]
After arriving at the hospital, Janice was met by a doctor and nurses that were waiting for them. She told the doctor that Dr. Masters was Jessica’s doctor, and would be in shortly.
He smiled. “That’s fine, but for right now, let’s get her inside and see if we can discover what’s going on.”
Janice followed the doctor into emergency. Once Jessica had been admitted, she filled out the paperwork, then joined Jessica in the examining room.
It was about that time when Jessica started coming around. As she opened her eyes, she was slightly blinded by the lights, but knew that she wasn’t alone. She could feel someone holding her hand, and when she turned her head she could see that it was Janice and she looked like she had been crying.
“God, my tummy hurts! What’s wrong with me?” I asked, wincing from the pain.
“I don’t know baby, but we are going to find out. How long have you been having those cramps, Jessica?” Asked Janice
I looked over at her, while breathing heavily from the pain. “Off and on for a few months. Usually they’re not this bad, and they only last for a few days.”
“When was the last time you saw a doctor, Jessica?”
“I was maybe eight years old, other then recently.”
“Did your mother and father know that you were having pain?” Janice asked her.
“I told Mom, but she said it was just indigestion, and it would go away and it always did, until now, anyway. It hurts really bad, Janice!”
A few minutes later the ER doctor and nurse quickly came into the room, “Hello, I see you’ve finally joined the rest of us, Jessica. I’m Dr, Jennings, and I’ll be taking care of you until Dr. Masters arrives. We’ll get you on some pain medication as soon as we can. I need to know what’s happening, so I’m going to be sending you down to x-ray to get some pictures taken, and the nurse will be taking a little of your blood. Is that all right Jessica?”
I nodded and undid my sleeve on my blouse and the nurse came over. She tried to be gentle but it still hurt, and she filled five vials. Then she took a cotton ball and told me to hold it over where she had taken the blood, while she wrote down the information.
While this was going on, Janice stood up and asked to talk to Dr. Jennings alone.
“There are a few things that you need to know. Jessica is a transsexual and I am counseling her. It might be a good idea that you call x-ray and let them know that she is coming down. They mustn’t make a big deal out of it, as she is very fragile right now. She was apparently abused before my husband and I took her in.”
“You’re telling me that she is a boy?” Dr. Jennings asked, shaking his head. “I would have never guessed. How long has she been in transition?
“It’s been about a week now since she started.” Janice said.
Dr. Jennings shook his head, “That is unbelievable. I have seen transsexuals before, but never one so convincing.”
Janice smiled. “She is not trying to convince anyone, this is the person she has always been. The only difference is her clothes.”
Dr. Jennings and Janice returned to Jessica, and Dr. Jennings walked over to her. “Hang in there, you’re very brave. If it means anything, you make a very beautiful young lady, too.”
I soon found myself being quickly taken down to x-ray. I hoped this wouldn’t take long; I was in a lot of pain! I tried to tell Janice that she didn’t have to come, I would be all right, but she refused to leave my side.
I looked over at her. “You told Dr. Jennings about me, didn’t you?
“Yes honey, when you get to x-ray, you will have to have to undress. I’m sure they’ll notice that you’re not complete yet. I wanted to make sure that they knew that you were coming. I hope you don’t mind, Jessica?”
“It’s alright, I understand you are doing what you feel is right.”
“You need to understand something baby. I will not let anyone hurt you, and if anyone does, God help them!” Janice said
I was overtaken by what Janice had just said, and found myself crying again.
“Hang in there honey, we’ll find out what’s wrong.” Janice said, squeezing my hand.
“It’s not the pain, Janice, I am just happy”, I said with a smile.
[-][+][-]
Janice was right I had to get undress but she helped me and I soon found myself in a hospital robe and lying on the stretcher, then the attendant smiled at me.
“Hi Jessica, I’m Tracy. We are going to do our best not to hurt you at all. The doctor has ordered an ultrasound to look at what is going on inside you. Just relax, sweetie.” She then rubbed gel all over my tummy and took the wand and slowly ran it up and down my tummy and as she worked she kept talking to me.
She smiled, “You know Jessica, you are not what I expected.”
“What do you mean?” I asked.
“Well, when Doctor Jennings told me that you were coming, I was expecting to see a boy dressed as a girl. Looking at you, though, I don’t see a boy at all.” She then turned back to the monitor, and then looked at me with a look of shock on her face.
“What is it I asked?”
“I think it would be best if you waited to talk to your doctor. I have something else that I need to do Jessica, and it might be a little embarrassing, but it’s important.”
I said alright. She then pulled my panties down lower, put more gel on me and ran the wand over me for a few more minutes, and then told me that we were finished.
Jessica, I think you are a very brave girl. Don’t let anyone tell you otherwise, and believe me life is full of surprises, Tracy said as I was being wheeled out of the room.
Chapter 22
After Janice and I returned to emergency and I was wheeled back into my room, Janice said she was going to make a quick run to the waiting room to let everyone know what was going on, but she would be back in a few minutes. As I lay on the bed a nurse came in carrying a needle.
“Dr. Jennings ordered this for you; it will help to ease your pain, honey.”
I let her inject me with it and found that after it started working, the pain was much less. I could still feel the pressure down below. At least it wasn’t hurting like it was.
[-][+][-]
When Janice entered the waiting room she found her family waiting, Anthony came over to her and gave her a hug, “How is she doing?”
“She’s in a lot of pain but holding on. We’re just waiting on the results of her blood work and an ultrasound, when those come in we should know more. Why don’t you go see her Anthony? I’m sure she’d like to see you, and I’ll let Megan know what is going on.”
“All right, what room is she in?” He asked.
“She’s in the third room on the right,” Janice said, taking a seat next to her daughter.
“How’s Jessica doing Mom?” asked Megan.
“She’s going to be all right honey, but she’s in a lot of pain right now. I need to ask you something, honey. Your father and I were going to wait but I think that it’s important that you and I discuss it now. How would you feel if Jessica stayed with us permanently?
“What do you mean, like, adopt her Mom?”
“Maybe honey, we are not even sure if we can, that will be up to the courts.“
“I don’t know Mom; this was supposed to be temporary. Don’t get me wrong, I like Jessica a lot, but this is different. We would be sisters.”
“I know Megan, you would be sisters, but I need you to look at the bigger picture. Put yourself in Jessica’s shoes. Think about what your life would be like if you were in her place, having her parents and living her life. Tell me how you would feel.” Janice suggested, hoping that her daughter would understand.
“Honey, I want you to think about this for awhile. If we do this, it’s going to be a decision that is going to affect all of us including Jessica. That poor girl is scared to death and has no idea what is going to happen to her. She will likely end up in foster care, living with people who neither love her nor accept her, and that is no life for her. She needs a real family that will love her, and we can do that as family.
Now I think that we should join your father, the results should be back soon and Jessica is going to need us, okay?”
[-][+][-]
Megan thought about what her mother had been saying. She tried to put herself in Jessica’s position and thought about what it had been like for Andrew, living with his parents, and everything that she had read about in his journal. The life that Andrew led was a sad one, full of pain and suffering at the hands of people that should have loved and protected him.
She thought about what happened once he moved into her home, and was allowed to just be himself. That’s when Jessica finally emerged. Jessica was a fragile girl that was slowly starting to break free of her bonds. There was this look in Jessica’s eyes that Andrew never really had. Andrew had always had sad, empty eyes like someone that was waiting to die. Jessica, her eyes were bright and lively, she wanted to live and she was always happy and you could see it in her eyes especially when she was with Megan’s parents.
Megan worried about Jessica, but she was also a little jealous. At times it almost felt like they were starting to care for Jessica more than they did her. Deep down, she knew that it wasn’t true, though. Seeing how sick Jessica was at the moment, the only thing that she could think about was that someone she cared about was hurting, and it was time that she grew up. She walked over to Jessica and climbed on the bed with her and gave her a hug
I looked up at Megan. “What was that for?”
“Because I love you, Sis, but I could kick your butt for dragging me back here.” Megan said, smiling.
“I love you too, Megan,” I said, returning the hug with one of my own.
[-][+][-]
An hour later, Dr. Masters arrived carrying a patient chart in his hand. He had a big smile on his face.
“You must love hospitals; that’s the only time I get to see you! It’s a good thing that you came in though, because we’re going to have to operate.”
“What’s wrong with me, Doc?” I asked him.
“You, my young lady, have a condition called Congenital Adrenal Hyperplasia”
“What the hell is that?” I asked.
“Let’s just put it this way honey, when we did the ultrasound, what we found was a complete surprise. Inside, you have all the normal female reproductive organs, like ovaries and fallopian tubes, and all that stuff.”
“How is that possible? I have a penis!” I said in shock.
“The condition tends to work that way, Jessica. Most patients appear to be male until puberty, then they start to develop. You are just a late bloomer. The immediate problem is that you are having your period as we speak, and unfortunately there is nowhere for the discharge to go. That is why you are having the painful cramps and swelling. When we’re done with you, though, everything will be as God intended it to be.”
“I was a girl all along?” I said, in utter shock.
“Yes Jessica, you are a girl and you always have been.” Dr. Masters said with a big smile.
As I sat there, I was in complete shock. I was overwhelmed by my emotions. Megan just held me and told me she was so happy for me, as did Janice and Anthony. All I was able to do was cry, because for the first time in my life, I truly believed that dreams could come true.
End of part 10
To be continued in part 11
Andrew’s Dilemma
Part 11
By, Cain129
Special Thanks to Wren Phoenix for the editing.
Synopsis: All of my life I believed that there was no such thing as miracles. I’ve prayed ever since I first came to understand whom and what I really was, but everything that I had known had pretty much changed over night with just six words. “You have always been a girl.” How is it possible? I really don’t know, nor do I really care. To me, it was a miracle and a gift beyond all comparison, even though I’m pretty much scared to death.
Chapter 23
Dreams Sometime Do Come True!!!
Shock is a funny thing, especially the way it can numb you to just about everything around you. I was completely in shock. I tried to understand just how I could be a girl, but no one knew it, other than me, that is. I had always known deep down that I was a girl trapped in the wrong body. Over the years I had come to accept that this was my fate, and I would be stuck this way for the rest of my life.
I thought about all the times that I came home from school battered and bruised. My father would tell me to be a man, and stand up for myself. All of those wasted nights I spent in my room, crying to a God that never seemed to listen to me. I would pray that he would make me normal, like everyone else. Nothing ever changed, if anything, it seemed that things kept getting worse.
There are many ways to change yourself, but when you truly hate your own body, it can be so hard. I had hated everything about myself for so long. It seemed that I would never have any happiness, only pain and despair. As I looked around the room I saw Janice with tears of happiness in her eyes. Megan was hugging me, telling how happy she was for me, and then there was Anthony, smiling from ear to ear.
They may not have been my family, but they did love and support me. I mean, what is a family, really? It can’t just be blood. My own life experience has taught me that just giving birth to a child doesn’t make you a mother. Neither does donating sperm make you a father. The thing that makes someone a real parent is their actions.
After the initial shock of the news set in, I became more vocal. I had been so overwhelmed after learning the truth. So when Janice asked me how I was feeling, I just smiled.
“Almost normal, for the first time in my life.”
Megan looked over at her mother and father.
“Mom, you know what we were talking about earlier? Let’s do it, but I want to tell her, is that alright?”
Janice looked at Anthony. “I’m sorry honey, but with everything that was happening I just couldn’t wait.”
“Its fine, honey. We’ll find a way to make this work, I just know it.” Anthony looked at Megan. “Go ahead Megan, tell her”
Megan smiled at me,” Jessica you are already like a sister to me, and we want to make it legal and adopt you.”
Janice smiled at me as did Anthony, then she asked me. “Would that be all right with you Jessica?”
Heading those words, I broke down crying like a baby again and could barely speak other then just a few words. “……Yes, I would like that!!!”
Anthony sat on my bed and took my hand. “Jessica, we will try to make this happen, but it will be up to the courts to make the decision. They will most likely want to talk to you about it, so just tell them what you want, honey.”
“All right, Daddy.” I said as I wiped the tears from my eyes, Janice came over and took me into her arms and gave me a hug and kiss.
“Welcome to the family, baby.” She said as she held me tight.
I looked over at Megan and whispered. “Thanks, Sis.”
She smiled. “Just get better Jessica, you and I have a lot of work ahead of us.”
I smiled at her. “You know that none of this would have been possible without you, Sis. I know we’ve had our hard times, but I love you to death.”
“I love you too, Jessica.” Megan said as she hugged me.
A little while later I was wheeled down to the operating room, scared to death. Janice stayed with me the whole time. Before they put me out I asked her to call Amy and let her know what happened. Janice smiled at me.
“Don’t worry honey, I’ll call her! Now go to sleep and when you wake up, we’ll be starting a whole new journey together as mother and daughter!” She kissed me just before they gave me an injection and I was soon asleep.
[-][+][-]
Chapter 24
After 16 years labor, Jessica emerges
I’d like to say I woke up to a perfect world that was all love and wonderful, but if that was the case, chances are I was in a medical coma and living in some twisted alternate universe. In reality, I woke up in more pain then I had ever felt before and it didn’t take very long before I would need something to deal with it. I looked over and found Janice stretched out in the chair, sleeping beside me. When I looked at the clock it was 6 am. She had spent the whole night with me. I’d never known or really expected her to, but I was thankful that she did. I called out to her, and she slowly stirred.
“Good morning Jessica, how’s ‘my girl’?”
“It hurts really bad, Mommy.”
“Let me get the nurse for you baby, Dr. Masters left something for the pain.”
“Thanks, Mom.” I said with a smile.
A few minutes passed before Mom returned, followed by a nurse.
She smiled at me. “It’s good to see you decided to join the living again. I have something here for the pain.”
She then handed me a cup that had 3 pills inside, and poured me a cup of water. I swallowed it all down quickly. Not only was I in pain, but my throat was very dry. The nurse said she would be back to check on me later then left me with my new mom.
“You didn’t have to stay all night, I would have understood mom”, I said
“It’s alright honey; I wouldn’t have been able to sleep anyway.” Janice said with a smile.
“Were you able to get a hold of Amy last night?”
“Yes honey and she said that she would be in to see you sometime this morning”
“Do you have any idea how long it will be before I can go home, Mom?”
“I would guess a few days at least honey, Dr. Masters is not the kind of man that will send you home unless he feels you’re ready. Your stay would likely be at least a week or more if it wasn’t for the fact that he knows that I am capable of taking care of you.
“All this feels like a dream and I don’t want to wake up, Mom.”
“It’s not a dream baby, it’s all real and soon you will be home where you belong.”
“Can I ask you something Mom?”
“Sure Honey, what is it?”
“Why would you want to adopt someone like me, especially with all my problems?”
“I am going to be honest with you honey, when Megan first asked me to take care of you, I was against it. I had made a promise to my family that I would be a mother first. The day that you tried to take your life, Megan and I saw firsthand how violent your father was. He came here with every intention of taking you home, not for your own good but to protect himself. Had Detective Johnson not been here, he might have got to you. I was really scared that if he got his hands on you, something bad would have happened.
It was at that moment that I made up my mind, honey. I needed to protect you, because there was no one else that could. Then you came home with me and against my better judgment, I let you become Jessica full time. I knew that it would make you happy and I couldn’t stand the thought of you trying to hurt yourself. So, I let you do what you had to, and something wonderful started to happen, I watched you start to blossom and come out of your shell. I slowly started seeing the real you and the person that you could become.
Anthony and I have talked for along time about having another child, but it just never happened. Then you came along and needed a family that loved and supported you. There was also another problem, a doctor is not supposed to become emotionally attached to a patient. I broke that rule, because I couldn’t see you as a patient. I started seeing you as a mother sees a daughter and not as a doctor. It happened really fast and it was the same for Anthony. The longer you stayed, the harder it was for us, because we didn’t want to let you go.
It’s harder for Megan though, and she might need sometime to adjust. She has been an only child all of her life, and now she has a sister to deal with. She loves you so much that I believe that everything will work out fine.” Janice said with a smile.
“I have been so scared about having to leave, Mom. I’ve heard so many stories about group homes and foster care. I don’t think that I could have stayed there and still be safe.”
“Anthony and I were also worried about that. We brought you home with us to help you, and sending you there felt like we were fattening you up, just to feed you to the wolves.”
“What about my other parents, do you really think they will let me go without a fight?”
“I don’t think that they will have much choice Jessica; it will not be up to them. The courts will decide what is best for you, and with everything that has happened in the past, I really can’t see them having much say. Then there is the fact that you are 16, Jessica. You have the right to choose for yourself where you want to live.”
I thought about what Mom had just said. I had the choice, and if that was the case then I already knew the answer. I would choose to stay, and be their daughter and Megan’s sister. These were the people that loved, supported and accepted me even with all of my problems, rather than try to change me and make me something that I wasn’t. They embraced me for the person that I really was, and because of that, I was free. “Jessica Dawn Tanner”was finally born.
It was a painful birth, but considering the first sixteen years of my life, this pain was welcomed. It meant everything was about to change for me. Andrew was gone forever and I would never have to wear that mask again. When it comes to change, nothing really changes without some kind of action. For me, it was time to stop playing the victim and start fighting for what I wanted from life, which meant I would have to eventually confront my birth parents.
Andrew was scared and couldn’t stand up to his parents, but Jessica was different. She had something that Andrew never had. Jessica had the love and support of a family that would stand by her and that was all she really needed.
“How is my girl doing”, asked Janice
“All right I guess, just thinking that eventually I’ll have to confront my parents.”
“You’ll have plenty of time for that, honey. Right now it’s more important that you get better so you can come home!”, Janice said with a smile.
I smiled at Janice. “I wish that we could go now! I’ve never really had a place where I felt safe until I moved in with your family. I found it hard at first, everything was so different than what I was used to, especially how you all related to one another. I wanted so much to have what that kind of relationship with my own parents.”
“Jessica, the relationship that you had with your parents was never a healthy one. I suspect that most of the problems that you had with your parents were mostly of their own making! I think if we were able to go back in time and see what their childhood was like, we’d find that there was a lot of abuse. It doesn’t make what they did to you right, but both of them were damaged goods from an early age. It’s very likely that they were abused just like you were, and if something isn’t done it can be passed to the next generation. You’re the lucky one, Jessica. You can break the mold and become someone else. There is no reason that you need to follow their example.” Janice said with a smile.
I thought about that, and almost felt sorry for my parents. Maybe someday I could forgive them, but it wouldn’t be today. Too much had happened and it takes time to heal. Maybe some wounds can never be healed.
[-][+][-]
Chapter 25
Between love and Hatred
I could tell that Mom was exhausted, but she refused to leave my side until I finally told her that if she didn’t go home and get some rest, I was going to climb out of bed, crawl to the nearest pay phone, call Daddy and tell him to drag her home. Yes, it was a bluff! It would have been impossible for me to even get out of bed, considering I had wires attached all over my body, and these nasty looking tubes running out of me in the most inconvenient places. She did get the hint and with a hug and kiss she was on her way.
At around 8am they started dropping off our breakfast, but to be honest I was too sick to really eat anything. The guy that was delivering the food did leave me some orange juice and toast. There really wasn’t much I could do, other then lay in bed and watch the nurses and doctors running around outside my room. For the most part, it wasn’t very entertaining. There was this one patient, a woman that looked to be in her late 60’s, that kept getting lost and wondering from room to room. The poor woman didn’t know where she was, and was looking for her family.
God bless her soul though, she was a very sweet old lady and kept escaping her room. She called me Darla, and I think she thought I was her daughter. She told me theses stories about when she was my age. I had to admit that the old lady had lived a colorful life, and her stories were pretty funny too. Eventually her nurse came and they moved her off to another wing that I guess was more secure. I was kind of sad seeing her go, she was good company, but it was probably for the best. She needed more care then they could give her here, and God forbid if she wandered off and ended up somehow hurting herself.
[-][+][-]
Jake Roberts was a busy man lately and not really all that happy either. Working for Vincent was starting to become a real pain in the ass. He was never alone! Vincent had assigned one of his goons to follow him around while he collected the money that was owed. Most of the time, just the sight of Jake and Rocco was enough to make the people pay up what was owed. Jake had his own plans that he wanted to get started on, and Vincent had yet to pay up on his part of the deal.
Rocco, on the other hand, had little use for Jake; Rocco was Vincent’s cousin and he didn’t think that they should have any part in this stupid scheme. He was a family man, even though what he did for a living was not legal. He believed that family was everything, and Jake didn’t give a shit about his family. When Vincent told him to keep an eye on Jake, it was more of a babysitting job to him. Jake was a useless drunk. He might have once been useful to them with his years of military training but not anymore. Vincent liked a challenge, though. He thought if they could get him off the bottle, they could make good use of his skills.
Jake was hurting. It had been 2 days and he’d barely had anything to drink. It was driving him crazy. Every time he thought he was going to get a few minutes of peace there was Rocco and another job. All he wanted was just to have a few drinks, but nothing was working out like he had planned. Over the last couple of days, there were other things that were starting to get to him. Being unable to drink meant he was being forced to deal with things sober that he had been burying for years. He just knew if he could get away from Rocco, for even a few hours, he’d be able to have a few drinks to calm his mind. At the moment, that wasn’t an option.
“Let’s get going Jake, We have a few more stops to make before supper.” Rocco said.
[-][+][-]
As Jessica lay in bed she heard a knock outside the door. When she looked over, she saw Amy standing there holding a bouquet of flowers and a big stuffed teddy bear.
“Feel up for some company?” She said with a big smile.
“Come on in, Amy!” I said with a smile as I looked at the teddy bear.
Amy came over and gave me a hug and kiss. “I was so worried about you when Janice called, but then she told me everything. I just couldn’t believe it! You’ve always been a girl, that’s a real miracle honey!” Amy said smiling from ear to ear.
“I know what you mean Amy, I am still waiting to wake up and find out it’s a dream.”
“Yeah, a dream come true!” Amy said with a smile.
“So much has happened, Amy. Discovering that I really am a girl, and being adopted by the Tanners, things like this never happen to me.”
“The Tanners are going to adopt you, Jessica?” Amy said surprised.
“Yeah, Amy, they broke the news to me last night before I went down to surgery.”
“That’s great news! I am so happy for you, Jessica. I think you are pretty lucky; you’ve been through so much. You deserve to be happy and have a family that loves and accepts you”, Amy said with a smile.
“Amy, you know that the two of us will always be like sisters. I never want to loose that. Having you in my life really means a lot to me.” I said and gave her a hug.
“I feel the same way little sister and there is so much that I need to teach you.” Amy said with a smile.
“That’s true! I missed out on a lot of stuff, but it’s nice to know that I have someone like you that I can talk to, Amy. When I get out of here you will have to come over for supper. I will even cook!” I said, grinning.
“You know how to cook?” Amy asked.
“Yes, and I am pretty good at it. It’s the least that I can do for everything that you have done for me.”
“Believe it or not, Jessica, you have done a lot for me, too.”
“I don’t know about that, Amy. If anything, it’s the other way around.”
“Jessica, I know that you have felt alone for a long time, but you’re not the only one. I’ve felt the same way for quite a while. I do have someone special in my life, her name is Tara. I love her to death, but I miss my family. I miss being able to spend time with my little sister Beth. It’s worse for me around the holidays, because most of the time the only person I have to spend them with is Tara. She has her own family that she spends the holidays with. They always invite me, too, but it just isn’t the same.”
I felt sorry for Amy. I would be spared that fate thanks to the Tanners. I looked over at Amy.
“You know, Sis, there’s no reason you need to ever feel alone. I’ll always be there for you, anytime you need me. All you have to do is pick up the phone and I’ll be there.”
Amy leaned over and gave me a big hug. “You have no idea what that means to me.” Amy said wiping the tears from her eyes.
“I think that I do Amy.” I said as I hugged her back.
“Look at us, both crying.” Amy said with a giggle.
“It’s all right, Amy. We’re girls and were allowed to be emotional at times.”
End of part 11
To be continued in part 12
Part 12 By, Cain129
Synopsis: There is an old saying that says life is what you make it. These days, I firmly believe it to be true. I used to believe that God hated me. I was born into a world that wouldn’t accept me and I spent years praying to God to make me normal like other kids. My prayers remained unanswered, and I tried to end my suffering and take my own life. I guess that God finally took pity on me and decided to finally answer my prayers. They also say that he works in mysterious ways, and I’m living proof of that.
He turned my whole life completely upside down. He took me out of a uncaring home and placed me with a real family, one that loves and supports me, He gave me friends that would stand by me, no matter what. Of all the gifts that he gave me, the greatest gift of all was to make me a normal teenage girl.
Chapter 26
Sarah’s Story
Sarah Roberts was not having a very good time dealing with the loss of her family. She missed her husband terribly, and was even starting to miss her son. Andrew had always been there, and he would have at least tried to comfort her in his own way. It was all the fighting between Andrew and Jake that bothered her most. She knew deep down that what had happened really wasn’t his fault. She had needed someone to blame. It was easier than looking within her for the real answers.
She thought about the day that her Doctor said that she was pregnant with a baby girl. It was the happiest day of her life, but there was also a part of her that was terrified to be a mother. She had come from an abusive home herself and told herself that it would be different for her child. She was marrying a great guy that really loved her and wanted to have a family with her.
In truth, though, Sarah was filled with fear. She had suffered years of abuse at the hands of her own father, both mental and sexual abuse. Because of this, she had always had problems with trusting others and had very little self worth. Sarah’s mother had always refused to accept that the abuse was actually happening.
Sarah dealt with the abuse the only way she knew how, by hiding from it and keeping the secrets to herself. Never daring to talk to anyone about what was going on at home, and even blaming herself for the abuse. It continued for years, and then she met a man that made her feel special and treated her like she was a princess. At first, she was afraid to let him get close to her.
She was afraid if she let him get to close, he would turn and run. Jake kept coming around, and slowly he broke down Sarah’s defenses. Jake was honest with her, and told her about what happened overseas. He had ended up in jail because of his drinking. Sarah worried about that, because she really didn’t want another man like her father in her life. Jake had been sober for the last two years and she decided that she would give him a chance.
She had made the mistake and told Jake about the abuse. This had created a rift in the family. One day when the family was having a get together, Sarah’s father had said something to her which Jake took offense to, and he beat up her father. This pretty much ended all contact she had with her parents.
Sarah was so worried after that day that Jake would just walk away, not wanting to deal with all of the baggage. When he called her and said we need to talk, she was scared to death that he was going to break it off with her. He had picked a nice restaurant at least, but to her surprise he asked her to marry him instead. After the shock of his proposal she said yes, with Jake she felt loved and protected. She wanted nothing more then to be his wife and when he ordered the champagne for the two of them, it was all right because it was a special occasion.
Most of Sarah’s family had turned their back on her because of what had happened with Jake and her father. It was a small wedding, with mostly his family in attendance. The only family member on her side was her sister Janet and a few Sarah’s friends had come to support her as well. After their marriage, the two of them settled into a life together. When the Doctor said that she was pregnant and was going to have a baby girl, it was the happiest day of her life.
When Sarah broke the news to Jake, things started to change. Jake started spending more time working, and with the money rented a larger home for them. They spent hours shopping for everything that a little girl would need. By the time Sarah went into labor, they thought they had everything, but it was not meant to be. In the place of the baby girl that they had been expecting, there was a beautiful little baby boy.
Jake was happy although he had blown a lot of money, but he had always wanted to have a son to do things with. Sarah loved the child but felt let down, she was looking forward to being a mother and having a little girl that she could do mother/daughter things with.
Things changed even more after that. Jake continued to working late, and a year later he found himself drinking with the guys after work. He hadn’t really planned on having anything, but sitting with the guys, he’d said hell with it, and ordered a beer. That one drink had eventually led to insanity.
Chapter 27
I spent most of the morning resting. Amy had to start her shift, but I was glad that she took the time to visit. She said that she would drop in for another visit later in the day. It was around 11 am when I woke up to the sound of people arriving with Megan and Jennifer following close behind.
“I am so happy for you!” Jessica said, hugging me. “Megan told me, and I just couldn’t believe it.”
“Me either Jennifer, I keep expecting to wake up and this has all been a dream”
“It’s not a dream Jessica.” Megan said, grinning.
“So how is my girl doing?” Anthony asked, as he kissed her forehead.
“I’m still pretty sore, but the medicine helps a lot.”
“Give it a couple days, and you should be feeling much better.” Anthony told her.
“Look Jessica, Daddy brought in his guitar for you!” Megan said happily.
I looked at Anthony. “Are you sure that is a good idea? What if someone steals it?”
Anthony smiled, “It’s alright Jessica, I am not too worried about it. I really doubt that it will go missing, just keep it in the closet when you’re not using it.”
“Alright Daddy, I will take good care of it.”
[-][+][-]
“Mom talked to Amy last night, has she been in to visit yet?” asked Megan.
“She dropped in before work, the two of us had a long talk, and she will back in later.”
“That’s cool, I really like Amy.” Jennifer said with a smile.
“Yeah, she is really nice, we should have her over, Daddy.” Megan said.
I looked over at Megan, “I have already invited her over. Once I’m feeling better, I I’m going to make us all supper. Yes, Jennifer, you’re invited too. I can always use someone to do up the dishes when I’m done.” I said, giving her a wink.
“Thanks a lot Jessica. I ‘d hit you with one of those pillows, but I’d likely end up hurting you!” Jennifer said, and then laughed.
I looked over at Dad. “So how’s Mom doing?”
“She’s doing alright honey, nothing to worry about. She’s home, sleeping in.”
“I felt kind of bad. She was here all night, and it couldn’t have been very comfortable.”
“She would have stayed, anyway. That’s just the way she is, honey.” Anthony said.
“You don’t know this yet, but when Mom makes up her mind, there is no talking her out of it.” Megan said, smiling.
Jennifer looked over at me, “When you are out of here, Jessica, and feeling better we’re going to have a sleep over at my place.”
“All right, I’ll be there Jennifer. It should be a lot of fun!” I said.
“As long as you’re not the first to fall asleep!” Megan and Jennifer laughed
“All right, what happens to the person who falls asleep first?”
“We can’t tell you while Dad is here, it’s a girl thing.” Megan said with a laugh.
I just shook my head. “What have I got myself into?”
“You’re the one that wanted to be a girl.” Jennifer said laughing
“Yeah, I guess you’re right there, Jennifer.”I said and tossed a pillow at her.
Soon everyone was laughing. Jennifer went to toss the pillow at me, but Megan caught it and started hitting Jennifer with it.
“Did I give you permission to beat on my little sister?” Megan said, hitting Jennifer with it.
I couldn’t help but laugh as I watched the two of them attacking one another with the pillows. It hurt like hell, but it was still fun to watch, until Dad put an end to it anyway. We had a good visit, but soon they had to get going and to be honest I was still feeling pretty tired out. After they left I end up falling asleep again.
[-][+][-]
It was around 4 pm when Amy arrived, she looked pretty tired out. I guess she had a busy day, but it was nice to see her.
“Hi, honey!” She said as she took a seat next to me. “How was your day?”
“I guess that it was alright. Dad dropped in with Megan and Jennifer for a little while. He dropped off his guitar for me to play around with.”
“That’s cool, have you been playing long?” Asked Amy.
“I took it up a few years ago, but I really didn’t have much time for it.” I said.
“I am sorry, honey. I can’t really stay too long tonight, my girlfriend Tara is picking me up. I hope you don’t mind, but I asked her to meet me here. She has been dying to meet you.” Amy said frowning.
I smiled, “It’s alright Amy, and I want to meet her. If she’s a part of your life, then she must be pretty cool.”
“Thanks Jessica, she is very important to me, just like you are honey.”
“So Jessica, what kind of music do you like?” Amy asked as she picked up the guitar.
“Mostly rock and country, but I’ll play anything, as long as it’s good.” I said.
“Play something for me,” Amy said, and handed me the guitar.
I took the guitar and thought about what to play, then started a song by Sarah Mclachlan called “Arms of an Angel.”
It took me a few minutes to get comfortable enough to actually play. Once I had the guitar in a decent position, I started playing the chords to the song and singing the lyrics. It was a beautiful song and I sang it the best that I could.
After I finished playing I continued into another song, this time something more upbeat. I played Taylor Swift’s “Fifteen.” As I played the song, I sang the words and found myself really getting into the song. It felt good to just unwind and I found that it also took my mind off the pain that I had been feeling.
When I finished, Amy smiled and shook her head. “You are pretty good, Jessica!”
“Thanks Amy, I’ve always loved to sing and play music.”
“You should really consider doing this for a living.” Amy said with a smile.
“No Amy, I think one operation is enough.” I said a completely serious tone.
“No silly, playing music!” Amy said and laughed.
I handed her back the guitar. “I don’t know, maybe someday, but for now I just have so much on my plate. It would be nice to make money doing something that I really love.”
[-][+][-]
There was a knock outside my door and when Amy and I looked, there was Mom. She looked a lot better then she did this morning. I guess she really needed the rest. Mom came in and leaned over and gave me a hug and kiss.
“How’s my girl doing?” she asked me with a smile and then gave Amy a hug, It’s nice to see you again Amy. I hope she hasn’t been talking your ears off.
I laughed. “No Mom, I’ve been a good girl.”
“Jessica was just playing me a couple of songs. She’s pretty good, isn’t she?” Amy said with a smile.
“You should hear her when she has a band playing behind her. Ever since Jessica moved in, she and Anthony haven’t giving me a moment’s peace.”
“Come on Mom, it’s not that bad!” I said smiling.
“Actually, it’s a lot of fun.” Mom admitted, then turned to Amy. “You should come over sometime. If you’re seeing anyone, they would be welcome, too.” Janice said.
“I’d like that Janice!” Amy said.
[-][+][-]
The three of us spent the next fifteen minutes talking back and forth, and then Tara arrived. Tara was very pretty. I could see what Amy must have seen in her and you could tell that the two of them were very much in love. Amy met her with a hug. You could see that their embrace was much more then just two friends.
Amy turned to Janice and I. “Everyone, this is my girlfriend Tara. Tara, this little lady in bed is Jessica, and this is her mother, Janice.”
I smiled and said, “It’s nice to meet you, Tara.”
“It’s nice to finally meet you too Jessica! I have heard so much about you.” Tara said, “and it’s nice to meet you too Janice. How are you doing Jessica?”
“Just a little sore, but glad that it’s finally over, and I can get on with my life.”
“Amy has told me a lot about you, Jessica. I’m glad that the two of you found one another. I know that it hasn’t been an easy road for Amy, and it’s nice to know she has someone like you to look out for her.
I smiled, “Amy is like a sister to me. I’m sure that the two of us will always be close.”
“I’m glad to hear that, Jessica. I hope that the two of us can get to know one another better, too.” Tara said smiling. “I’m afraid that Amy and I better get going. We are meeting my mom for supper. I hope we can all get together soon.” Tara said with a smile.
Amy gave me a hug and kiss. “I will see you tomorrow, Sis.”
I smiled. “Thanks for visiting, Amy. It was nice to meet you, Tara.”
Janice smiled. “I hope we can all get together soon. Have a nice supper girls.”
[-][+][-]
After everyone left and it was just Janice and I. She went into her purse.
“I have something here for you, honey.” She pulled out a new cell phone and handed it to me. “This way you can always call us if you are lonely, honey.”
“You didn’t have to, Mom. I would have been all right.”
“I know, honey, but every girl should carry one especially when they’re out.” Janice said, smiling. “It’s all set up and has texting, so you’re ready to go honey.”
“Thanks Mom, you’re the greatest!” I said and gave her a hug.
I wonder where Doctor Masters is, Mom? I thought that I would see him today.
“He will likely be in tomorrow morning, honey. It must be his day off, has anyone been in to see you?”
“Just my nurse, but then again, I have been pretty tired and sleeping. I might not have noticed if anyone has been in.”
“Are you in any pain honey? I could get the nurse for you.”
“It’s not that bad now, Mom, as long as I’m not moving around much. I imagine it will be worse once I am up and walking.”
“It will be honey, especially with the stitches. You will have to take your time when you walk for awhile, at least at first.” Janice said with a frown. “Anthony has given our lawyer a call, and we have already started the process of adopting you. It will still take a while, but Bill is filling out the paperwork. It should be sent out this week. He’s also working on getting your name and birth records changed to reflect who you are now.”
“I guess it wouldn’t be good to use my old identification. Something tells me there might be a problem when I go to get my driver’s license.” I said smiling.
“There is also school, wherever you decide to go, you will be attending as a girl. Your transcripts are under Andrew Roberts, so that has to be changed to Jessica Dawn Tanner.” Janice said, as she climbed up on the bed and laid next to me. I placed my head against her shoulder and found myself cuddling with her.
“You know, Jessica, it’s not going to be easy now, just because you are a girl. There are still plenty of things from your past that you will need to deal with if you want to be really happy.” Janice said, as she caressed my hair.
“I know Mom, I have been thinking the same thing. Eventually, I will have to deal with what my parents did to me. For now, I just want to enjoy the life I have now. Being a girl is a dream come true and being a part of your family is a dream come true for me. So for now, I am just going to enjoy what I have, and will worry about everything else later, Mom. All right, Mom.”
“Sure baby,” Mom said, and kissed me on the forehead.
End of part 12
To be continued in part 13
Synopsis: After Jessica’s operation, she’s starting to settle into her new life and the challenges that are sure to follow. With her new outlook on life comes new strength, and she’s ready to do whatever it takes to have the life she’s always dreamed of. She still has people in her life that she has to deal with, most notably her parents.
Chapter 28
Jessica lay in bed, thinking about where she was going from here. She was living comfortably with Anthony and Janice, but she knew that it would be only a matter of time. Her birth parents’ would soon try to mess everything up for her. Knowing this, she knew that it was finally time. She had put this call off for far too long, mostly out of fear. She knew that it was unavoidable, so she dialed the number. The phone rang through and an operator came on.
“Could I speak to Detective Johnson?” She asked politely, although she found this very uncomfortable.
An hour later, Mason arrived. He looked a little puzzled as he poked his head in the door.
“Sorry, I must have the wrong room.” He said, and then looked at his notepad.
“No, Detective, you have the right room.” She smiled.
“Andrew? Is that really you?” asked Mason.
“Yes, Mason, there have been a few small changes since the two of us last talked. I go by Jessica now.” She said with a smile. “I had a medical condition and it made me appear to be a boy, but the doctors have fixed that now.”
“Are you all right with that?” He asked.
“Yes,” I said happily. “I have believed for years that I was really a girl.”
“Well then, I am happy for you, Jessica. So what can I do for you?”
“The last time that we spoke, you said that it would be better if I pressed charges against my parents. I am ready now, and will tell you everything.”
“All right, Jessica,” he said, opening a folder. “I’m listening.”
[-][+][-]
Statement of Andrew Roberts:
Relationship with Father: Jake Roberts
I have a medical condition called ‘Congenital Adrenal Hyperplasia’, and because of it I was wrongly identified as a boy at birth. I’ve spent most of my life living as a male. The medical condition was only recently discovered, but I’ve always known that I was a girl. My family was unaware of my condition, and my father thought I was just gay, or a sissy. He did everything he could to try to make a man out of me. At first it was mostly mental abuse, name calling and stuff like that, but over time it became physical abuse and beatings.
My dad was really into sports when he was my age, and wanted nothing more than for me to follow in his footsteps. Because of my size, it was never really practical, though. He refused to see that, and he felt that if I worked out every day, it would make me stronger and able to play like other boys my age.
I worked out every day, but because I was really a girl, I toned up but didn’t put on muscle like Dad expected. He would take it out on me, usually calling me names. Sometimes when he drank, it would become physical and he would beat me. This became a normal routine between the two of us. One day, I’d had enough and told him that I wasn’t going to do it anymore.
Dad had been drinking pretty heavy that day and I really should have known better. I was just so sick and sore. He lost control and started beating on me. If Mom hadn’t been there to calm him down, he might have killed me. He was just so angry! I had seen him angry but never like that. It was like he was a whole other person.
After that I stayed home from school for a week. Mom and Dad were afraid if anyone saw me, the police would be called. After Dad came home, he said was really sorry for what he had done. He promised to stop drinking and never hit me again, but that only lasted for about a week, and it started all over again. Towards the end, it was like walking on egg shells all time. For the most part, I did my best to avoid him and spent most of my time hiding in my room. I hoped he would leave me alone, but he always found me.
The day I tried to take my life was one of the worst. He thought I had taken his money out of his wallet, but he had given it to Mom the night before. He had forgotten, and he came after me. Mom had to remind him that she had the money. He still looked like he was going to kill me. If Mom hadn’t been there, God only knows what would have happened. I’d had enough; I just couldn’t take it anymore. I just wanted to be at peace, so I took Mom’s pills, and I swallowed them. I knew that I would never be hurt again.”
“Alright Jessica, I think I have enough to move forward with your father. Now can you tell me about the relationship that you had with your mother?” Mason asked.
Statement of Andrew Roberts:
Relationship with Mother: Sarah Roberts
Mom and I were never really close, I mean, she never hit me or anything like that. She also never really did anything to help me, either. For the most part, she took my dad’s side. I guess that she believed that he knew what was best for me. She just followed his lead most of the time. I can remember that there were a few times she stepped in, but it may have just happened to protect Dad. To be honest, I really don’t know. She knew about the abuse, and for whatever reason, she did nothing to help me.
Janice and I have talked about what happened, and she said that if she was my mother, she would have packed her bags and taken me away from my father. That’s what my mother should have done, but she chooses to stay and put herself first. I wanted her to take me and leave so many times, but I guess that she just never really loved me, or at least not enough to protect me.”
Jessica broke down, crying as Mason patted her back.
“All right, Jessica. I have everything that I need for now”, Mason said, gently. “I know that it wasn’t easy for you to do this. I believe that it might help give you some closure. Jessica, I should warn you that we are looking for your father. He has disappeared and if he should try to contact you, I want you to call me immediately. We have no idea what he is up to but I am betting that it’s not good.”
“Alright Mason, if he tries to contact me, you’ll be the first to know. What if my mom tries to contact me?”
“At the moment, Jessica, there is a court order preventing either of your parents from contacting you. The last time you were in the hospital and you received that dead rat, we believed it came from your father, but the signature didn’t match his.
We were unable to really do anything at the time, but it was enough for the judge that signed the restraining order against your parents. We need to bring your father in for questioning, but we haven’t been able to locate him, and your mother seems to have no idea where he is hiding.
“Do you think my father will try something?” I asked worried
“I really don’t know your father well enough, Jessica. Do you think he is capable of trying something?” asked Mason
“When it comes to my father, I wouldn’t put it past him, especially if he’s been drinking.” I said with a frown.
“All right, Jessica. I have everything that I think I need. I would imagine that someone will be contacting you from the courts within the next week. As far as a court date, to be honest it could be a while. These things tend to take time but if you have any problems, you can call me anytime. You’ve got my number,” Mason said with a smile, and then he was on his way.
It was around 10 am when Dr. Masters and a nurse came strolling into my room. He had a big smile on his face. “So how is Jessica doing this morning?” he asked, as he took a seat next to my bed.
“I am feeling much better today, and the pain is not as bad as it was yesterday.”
“That is good Jessica; I really hate having to give out the pain meds.” Dr. Masters said
“All right, Jessica, let’s have a look and see how you are healing,”
I slowly pulled up my gown and Dr. Masters started removing my dressings and took a look around the area, he then smiled, there is still a lot of swelling but otherwise you are healing nicely Jessica. I think that we will be discharging you within the next couple of days.
“That would be great Dr, Masters, but do you think it would be all right for me to maybe get rid of this catheter? It gets pretty boring here, and it would be nice to be able to maybe take a walk, sometime.”
“Alright Jessica I will have someone remove it and I don’t think you need the IV anymore either, so I will have that removed too.”
I smiled. “Thanks, Dr. Masters.”
“You’re welcome, Jessica”, he said, and then left to see his next patient.
Chapter 29
The sound of knocking woke Jake up from a deep sleep.
“Just a second!” He said, pulling himself out of bed. He looked at his clock, and he could see that it was 7am.
“Damn it!” he said to himself as he quickly finished getting dressed and opened the door. It was Rocco and he was carrying a cup of coffee. He handed it to Jake.
“Time to pull yourself together and get to work.” Rocco said with a smile.
“Has Vincent found my son?” asked Jake.
“You can ask him yourself, Jake. He want too see you in an hour.” Rocco said.
“Want to know something Jake? If it was up to me, I would put a bullet in your head. Don’t ask me why Vincent would even want a piece of crap like you working for him.”
Jake smiled. “It’s not up to you, though. Is it, Rocco?”
“Maybe not, but believe me, you are living on borrowed time. When Vincent gets tired of you, I will be the first too know. Now let’s get going, Vincent doesn’t like to wait.” Rocco said.
Jake and Rocco met up with Vincent an hour later at Vincent’s home. “Damn it, Terrie, I told you already, you’re not going and that is the end of it!
“But Daddy everyone is going to be there, it’s not fair!” Screamed his daughter, as she ran upstairs to her room.
“Sorry about that.” Vincent said, and told Jake to take a seat. “I have good news and bad news Jake. The good news is my informant has found out where your son is living. He is with a family. I think you might know them, Anthony and Janice Tanner?”
Jake shook his head. *It figures that they would be involved. Now all I have to do is get Andrew to the cabin.*
Vincent looked over at Jake. “It’s not the time for you to run off doing something stupid. You just can’t walk over there and take your son.”
“Well, what am I supposed to do then?” asked Jake
“The police are looking for you and chances are if you show your face, they’ll grab you. If you’re going to do this, we need to have someone else grab the kid.” Vincent said smiling, “Maybe someone like Rocco.”
“Vincent, you know how I feel about this. I don’t want any part of it.” Rocco said.
“Rocco, if I ask you to do something, you do it.” Vincent told him, calmly.
Rocco knew that if he went against Vincent, it would place his own family in danger. The last thing he wanted was his family harmed.
There was only one thing he could do; he would have to grab Andrew. If he was going to do this, then it would be on his terms.
[-][+][-]
Sarah Roberts was busy helping her sister Janet make breakfast. She had been cutting some potatoes to make hash browns, and accidentally cut her hand. The cut was deep enough that it was going to need stitches.
Sarah and Janet found themselves at the hospital, waiting to see a doctor. Like most visits to the hospital, there was a long wait before Sarah would be able to see a doctor. Sarah really didn’t want to go but Janet insisted when they couldn’t get her cut to stop bleeding.
Sarah really hated hospitals, as she was very afraid of them. She knew she would end up with a doctor that would know who she was. Okay, she thought. Maybe she was a bit paranoid, but so much had happened lately that she wasn’t really thinking straight.
Janet had been trying for the last couple of days to get Sarah into a doctor because she was pretty close to a complete nervous break down. This might actually be a blessing in disguise. Janet doubted that Sarah would ever be able to get Andrew back and she hoped that wherever Andrew was, he was getting the help he needed.
“Janet, lets get out of here. It’s not that bad.” Sarah said, looking at the exit.
Janet looked at Sarah. “Then why are you still bleeding? Sarah, we aren’t going anywhere until you see a doctor.” Janet said firmly.
“Janet, I’m not a child.” Sarah said, indignantly.
“Then stop acting like one, Sarah.” Janet said in frustration.
“God, I wish Jake would call.” Sarah said sadly.
“Jake’s leaving was the best thing that could have happened. The only reason you are in this mess is because of him.” Janet said firmly.
“Maybe, Janet, but I still love him.” Sarah cried.
Janet hugged her sister. “I know you love him, Sarah. It’s still an unhealthy relationship, and all you’re going to find with that man is unhappiness. He’s already cost you your son.”
“No one forced Andrew to take those pills; he did that on his own!” Sarah said, looking a little angry.
“Then tell me something, Sarah. If Andrew was that depressed, why wouldn’t he at least have tried to talk to you or Jake?”
“I don’t know Janet”, Sarah said
“I know why, Sarah. Jake has been abusing that boy for years, and you knew all about it and you just sat there and let it happen. Just like when it was you being abused by Dad, you said nothing about it because you were too afraid.
Andrew knew that you wouldn’t lift a finger to help him, and if I had known at the time that he was beating Andrew, I would have called the police myself. If you ask me he is better off without the both of you!” Janet said in anger.
Sarah broke down and started crying; hearing those words from her own sister had really hit her hard. Janet had never talked to her like that before and of all people, she thought that she would understand. The truth was, there was no excuse for what Sarah had done, and there was no way she could rationalize it. She was the adult in the relationship and it was her job as Andrew’s Mother. She had failed her son completely.
One of the nurses came over after seeing Sarah crying, and tried asking her what was wrong. Sarah was much too emotionally disturbed, and she was unable to answer. Janet pulled the nurse aside and told her what was going on with Sarah, and how she felt that she might try hurting herself if she didn’t get help.
After Janet explained everything, the nurse said she was going to talk to the emergency room doctor, to see if there was anything that could be done. Janet took a seat next to her sister and put her arm around her. She felt bad that she had betrayed Sarah, but it was the only way that she could get her sister some help.
Chapter 30
It was around 10am when the nurse finely arrived to remove my catheter and the IV. Now, with my new found freedom, I decided to try to taking a walk. At first it was a little painful, but after moving around a bit, I discovered that if I took small steps, it didn’t hurt as much. I made my way over and grabbed Anthony’s guitar and slowly made my way back to my bed. I took a seat and started playing a few songs. I did this for about an hour, just playing around and making up stuff on the guitar. Eventually I got bored and put the guitar away, then took out my cell phone and sent Megan a text.
I sat my phone down and thought that while it would be nice to see Scotty, my life was just way too complicated to even think of having a boyfriend right now!
End of part 13
To be continued in part 14
Andrew’s Dilemma
Part 14
By, Cain129
Special Thanks to Wren Phoenix for the editing.
Synopsis: Andrew has finally become the person that he had always wanted to be and is settling into her new life. Unfortunately, that life is about to become very complicated. Her father now knows where she is living and will stop at nothing to make sure that Andrew never makes it to court. He has powerful allies that could allow him to succeed, except for one variable. Andrew no longer exists, and Jessica is not about to let Jake take away everything that she has worked so hard to gain.
Chapter 31
I found it hard sitting around with really nothing to do. Since the catheter and IV were removed, I was pretty much free to move about, but I wasn’t allowed to leave the ward alone. I spent most of my time in my room or in the recreation room watching TV. They did have a few movies, but most of them were for kids younger than me, and what they did have for my age really wasn’t worth watching.
When Amy dropped in after my lunch, the two of us decided to take a walk while she ate her meal. Amy insisted that if we were going to leave the ward, I would have to use a wheel chair. I knew that I was capable of walking on my own, but she would hear none of it. In the end I agreed and I climbed into the chair.
“How was your morning, Jessica?”
“It was all right, just kind of boring, I guess, so I am very glad you dropped in. There is some good news; Dr. Masters says that I should be able to go home in the next couple of days!”
“That is good news.” Amy agreed. “You’re becoming a regular here!”
“Yeah, I’ve spent way too much time in the hospital lately. I just want to get out of here and start living my life.”
“I guess that I can’t blame you there,” Amy said with a smile. “Do you feel like taking a trip outside the building, Jessica?”
“Sure, Amy. I’d love to get some fresh air.”
It only took us about 10 minutes before we reached the main exit and the two of us were outside. It was a nice sunny day and really warm. Amy pushed the chair over to one of the benches and took a seat next to me.
I smiled. “Oh, it smells so nice Amy, thank you for this.”
“Anytime, Sis!” Amy said smiling.
I looked over at Amy. “Can I ask you a question?”
“Sure honey, you can ask me anything.” Amy reassured me.
“There’s this boy I like, and I think that he likes me, too. I’ve never really dated anyone, let alone a boy! It’s just that every time I see him, well, I feel all funny inside.”
“What you’re feeling is normal, honey. I may not be into boys, but I can remember having those same feelings the first time I found myself attracted to another girl. I was much too afraid to make a move back then, and I was still very much in the closet. I never even talked to her!” Amy giggled.
“I don’t know what I should do about it Amy? He’s asked me out before, but I never called him back, mostly because I wasn’t complete. It wouldn’t have been fair to him then. I’m a girl now and not just in my mind.”
“You need to be careful, honey; just because you’re a girl now, it doesn’t mean that you can’t get hurt emotionally. There are so many experiences that you’ve missed out on and dating is a big step. I think that right now, you should just try to be friends with him and see where that leads. You have all the time in the world, so there’s really no reason to rush anything. Besides, if he really likes you, he won’t try to rush you into anything. He’ll wait until you’re ready for a relationship, Jessica.”
“I guess you’re right Amy, but he’s just so damn hot!” I said with a smile.
“I’m sure he is, Jessica, but you know I’m not the greatest judge of hot guys. I tend to notice their sisters first!” Amy said, laughing, which set Jessica off, too.
“So, do you and Tara have any plans for Sunday?”
“I don’t think so, why?”
“I was just thinking that it would be nice if the two of you dropped over, maybe stay for supper?” I said, hopefully.
“When I see Tara tonight, I will ask her, if we have no plans then the two of us should be able to make it.” Amy said, smiling.
[-][+][-]
The doctor had finally seen Sarah about an hour ago. After a conversation with Janet, though, a counselor had come to see her. She was obviously very depressed, and the counselor felt that she was possibly suicidal. He had given her a choice, to see a doctor from mental health willingly, or he was going to have her held on a 48 hour observation. To say that Sarah was unhappy with Janet was an understatement. If looks could kill, Janet’s head would have exploded off of her shoulders some time ago.
Sarah and Janet were pretty much stuck sitting in a small lounge for the next hour or so, waiting to see the doctor. There was a window that overlooked a small park. Sarah looked outside; she could see that there were some patients wandering around, and even a few staff members. As she looked around, one girl caught her attention. She was maybe 16 years old and looked very pretty. She was also a little pale; no doubt she was recovering from something.
There was another girl with her that was in her 20’s, maybe her sister. She wore a nursing uniform, but from watching the two of them she could tell that the two of them knew one another pretty well. The girl looked so happy, without a care in the world. They were far enough away that Sarah wasn’t able to get a good look at her, but this was the child that she had always wanted. It wasn’t meant to be, though. In her place, she had been giving a little boy that she loved all the same. It didn’t change the fact that she often wished that Andrew had been a baby girl.
After watching for awhile, the two girls looked like they were going inside. As the girls came closer, Sarah was able to get a better look at the two of them. Her eyes zoomed in on the girl in the wheelchair, and she couldn’t believe what she was seeing. The girl in the wheelchair looked just like Andrew!
As she looked more carefully, she could see subtle differences. Sarah could see that this child was happy and had a look in her eyes that Andrew had never had. Her eyes were full of life, while Andrew’s had always seemed sort of lifeless. But could she possibly BE Andrew?
Sarah saw the daughter that she had always wanted, and wanted to run outside and talk to her. She knew at the moment that this wouldn’t be a good idea. She wanted to wait for the right time to talk, once they could be alone. It was at that time that Sarah Roberts was brought back to reality, when she heard a doctor calling her name.
[-][+][-]
It was around 12:45 when we made our way back to my room. Amy only had 15 minutes left of her lunch hour by the time we made it back to my room, so she had to head back to the ward where she was working. We said our goodbyes and I climbed back into my bed.
As I lay in bed, I took out my phone and connected to the internet with it. I went to YouTube and spent the next hour just watching some funny videos, waiting for Mom to arrive. She had said she was bringing Megan and Jennifer with her.
I thought about what I was going to do now. For the first time in my life, I felt like a whole person. Things seemed different somehow, more…relaxed, I guess. Ever since
I’d come to understand who I really was inside, depression had been my constant companion. Because of that, I’d been filled with self hated, and that had eventually lead me to trying to end my own life.
Things were different now. I was no longer depressed and I finally felt complete, no longer living a lie. Best of all, I truly loved the person that I was now! If you really have love for yourself and others, there is no room for self-hatred. It was at that moment that I realized, whatever the future had in store for me, I could handle it and I would be happy.
I guess there is a cost for everything though. To become the real me, I had to endure a lot of emotional pain. Knowing that I was a girl but having to live as a boy, losing my parents . . . that pain still hurt me inside. They never did get to know the real me. The person that they knew was a fabrication. Someone they unknowingly had helped to create. Jessica was the real me. She had always been there, hiding and waiting for her chance to come forth.
I knew I would be all right, though. Even though I had lost my mom and dad, I’d gained so much more. I have Janice and Anthony, and my sisters Amy, Megan and Jennifer. They all know the real me and they love me for who I am. If you ask me what else does a girl need, well, maybe a boyfriend?
It was at the moment my phone rang; when I picked it up I noticed that it was a text from Megan.
[-][+][-]
Chapter 32
Sarah spent the last hour being asked question after question, and wanted nothing more then to get away from that doctor. It was driving her crazy not being in control of things.
Dr. Robbins had no difficulty noticing that Sarah was becoming pretty irate and was also very evasive to his questioning. After talking to her for about 15 minutes, he left the room and went to the waiting room where Janet was waiting. He figured if Sarah refused to talk to him, then maybe her sister would.
“Janet Burke?” Dr. Robbins said as he entered the waiting area
Janet smiled. “Yes Doctor, I’m Janet, how’s my sister doing?”
“She has not been very cooperative.” Dr. Robbins frowned. “I was hoping you would be able to give me some background information about your sister.”
So for the next 20 minutes Janet told him about Sarah’s past and the abuse that she had suffered. She eventually led up to Sarah’s relationship with her son, Andrew. By the time she finished Dr. Robbins had a pretty good idea about the woman that he was dealing with. Sarah was a deeply disturbed woman, one that would need long term care if she was ever able to rebuild her life.
Dr. Robbins looked over at Janet. “Your sister has a lot of problems and from what you’ve told me, she’s done absolutely nothing to deal with them. Because of this, she has taken all of her childhood issues and carried them into her marriage. I would even say that those issues have affected her relationship with her son.
Sarah truly needs to be hospitalized. At the very least, she should be admitted for a few months, that way we could get her started on the right path. I don’t think that she is going to voluntarily agree to being admitted, though.”
Janet thought for a minute. “You’re right; she is not going to let herself be admitted. That only leaves us one choice; you will need to have her committed. Anything that you need me to sign, I will, Doctor.” Janet said sadly. “I know she will hate me, but she will be alive, and feeling better eventually.”
All right, Janet. I will work on getting the paperwork started, and I’ll have someone call you when it’s ready. At the moment, I need to get a hold of a judge. Thank you, Janet, for your help. Don’t worry about Sarah; she is going to get the help she needs.
“Thanks, Doctor Robbins. I know we’re doing the right thing for her.”
[-][+][-]
Rocco had parked his car a few house away from the Tanners home, and had been watching the house. He was waiting for a chance to have a look inside. When he saw Janice leaving around 3pm, he knew that the chance had come. Being careful not to draw attention to himself, he made his way around to the back of the house. After taking a quick look and finding no security system protecting the house, he quickly opened the door and made his way inside.
The first thing he did was to take a look around the house. He found three bedrooms, and he knew that there was no use checking out the master bedroom, because the boy wouldn’t be there. The bedroom across from the master bedroom was definitely a girls room and he couldn’t really see Andrew sleeping there. There was one room downstairs that looked promising. Inside was a double bed and lots of music equipment, but after he went inside and took a look around, he found a closet full of girls clothes, and the dresser had nothing to indicate that there was a boy using the room. This room was also definitely used by a girl, most likely a tomboy, but a girl all the same.
Rocco Left the hours as he found it and made sure that there was no trace that he had been there. Once he made it to his car, he picked up his phone and called Vincent’s number.
“Hey Vincent, it’s Rocco. The information the informant gave us is garbage. I just left the house. Andrew’s not there and if he had been there earlier, he isn’t now.”
“I’ll look into it, Rocco. I’ll get back to you. You’d better tell Jake before he does something stupid.” With that, Vincent ended the call.
*Damn it, I was hoping I was done babysitting that asshole.* Rocco thought to himself as he put the car into drive and headed off to where Jake was hiding out.
After Rocco arrived at Jakes cabin and went inside, he found Jake had already started drinking again, and he just shook his head. A sober Jake he could handle, but when Jake drank, he was loose cannon. Rocco didn’t like drunks or drug addicts. They were a serious and unnecessary risk in his line of business, and they couldn’t be trusted.
Jake lost it when Rocco told him the information that they had received was bogus, and he started yelling at Rocco, saying he was useless. Rocco knew how to deal with out of control drunks. He’d had plenty of experience, so with one quick punch, Jake hit the ground hard and wasn’t moving. Rocco had knocked him out cold, and it felt really good.
Rocco knew that what he was going to do next would piss Jake off more then being knocked out; he poured all of his liquor down the drain.
[-][+][-]
It was around 3:30 pm, when mom arrived with Megan and Jennifer. It was nice to see them but it was also nice seeing the large pizza that Jennifer was carrying.
Mom came over and gave me a hug and kiss. “How’s my girl?” She asked with a smile.
I smiled, hugging her back. “I’m good, Mom. I am really glad to see you guys. Dr. Masters says I will be able to come home soon.”
Mom smiled, “I know honey, he called me this morning and told me the good news.”
“I can’t wait to be home, I’m starting to really hate hospitals.” I said with a frown.
“So, what did you do all day?” asked Megan.
“Not really much. Amy dropped in at lunchtime for a visit, and we went outside for a bit. Other than that, it’s been pretty boring.”
“It must have been nice to get outside for a while, anyway.” Jennifer said.
“Yeah, it was great. I would have loved to stay out longer, but Amy had to get back to work.”
“Well, its cool that she took the time to take you out,” Jennifer said as she sat on the edge of the bed.
“Yeah, Amy is great, I’d really like to do something for her, especially after everything she has done for me.” I said, sadly.
“Why so sad?” Asked Janice.
“I worry about Amy; she is like a sister to me, but her family wants nothing to do with her. I just wish there was more that I could do for her.”
“Honey, I think you are doing plenty for her. The two of you have a bond that most people will never understand, and it’s deeper than just friendship. It makes the two of you like family. Just treat her like she’s your family, and you’ll give her more then you can even imagine.
Anthony and I know she’s like a sister to you. Now that you’re going to become our daughter, I guess that makes her part of our family too, Jessica. We can’t be her parents, but there’s no reason she can’t be a part of our family!” Janice said, smiling as she put her arm around me.
“I like the idea of having another sister, too!’ Megan said with a smile. “It means more presents for me at Christmas!”
Jennifer laughed. “Only you would think of something like that, Megan.”
“What’s wrong with wanting more presents?” Megan asked with a sly little smile.
“I love you guys, even my greedy sister.” I said, referring to Megan.
Soon we were all trying to talk at once, laughing and chatting. It felt really good to have my family here with me, and I knew that we would always be close.
End of part 14
To be continued in part 15
Andrew’s Dilemma
Part 15
By, Cain129
Special Thanks to Wren Phoenix for the editing.
Synopsis: Life for Jessica has been pretty easy until now, but there is a storm coming, and her enemies are slowly closing in on her. Everything is not as it seems and it’s Andrew that they are searching for. but up till now Jessica only existed with a select group of people. Now that Jessica’s mother suspects that her son is living as a girl, what will she do with that information?
Chapter 33
Sarah’s Awaking
Sarah Roberts was not a happy camper. When her sister Janet and Dr. Robbins rejoined her, they broke the news that she was going to be hospitalized for the next 48 hours on a psychiatric evaluation. In her mind she was perfectly fine, and didn’t need to be hospitalized but she was not really being given a choice.
So Sarah reluctantly allowed herself to be admitted against her own better judgment, but she know if she didn’t do it on her own, they would force her into it. At least this way, things might not be as bad, and once she passed their damn evaluation. They would have to leave her alone..
She really didn’t know what to think about the child she had watched earlier. She was almost positive that she had seen Andrew, and it had affected her in a way that she never really expected. There was definitely something about that child, she seemed so different somehow, not like her Andrew at all and yet, after watching for awhile the lines became blurred. She was sure that it was Andrew, and Andrew was a boy, of course. The vibe she was getting off this child though, was defiantly not that of a boy.
When she had watched, what she had seen was a girl, and she had looked so happy and content. Andrew had never had that. If Sarah had been given the choice of the two children, she knew that she would choose the girl any day. Sarah knew that after everything that had happened, the chances of getting Andrew back were next to impossible. To be honest, she knew that she had nothing to offer the child, not anymore anyway. She realized that she had been through too much, and should have never had a child. Maybe someday she really would be ready, but she wasn’t at the moment.
She looked over at Janet, and then at Dr. Robbins.
“I will go willingly,” Sarah said, wiping the tears from her eyes. “I am just so tired of everything, and I only have myself to blame.”
It was at that moment that Sarah accepted the fact that, in her own way, she was just as much a monster as her husband was, maybe even worse.”
After Sarah was settled in, Janet made the drive home. She was happy to know that Sarah was finally going to get help. Even though she had been somewhat reluctant, at least it was a start. She only hoped that once Sarah was there for a while, she would open up to someone. Janet loved her sister, but the truth was, you can’t help someone that is not willing to help themselves. Until now, Sarah had refused to see that she had a problem. It had always been easier to put the blame on everyone else’s back. She had not expected Sarah to agree to be admitted. She had been sure her sister would put up a fight, but for whatever reason Sarah accepted her fate.
Janet guessed that only time would tell if Sarah really wanted to change. It was much easier for Sarah to go back to her old habits. Janet knew change never comes easy. Their father had abused Janet before he had moved on to little Sarah. Perhaps it had been less extreme for Janet, but she knew that as soon as she was old enough, she had done nothing but run. Worse, she had abandoned her sister to their father.
Janet had been unable to do anything but escape. It was several years before she realized she really needed help to deal with what had happened to her, but she had finally found someone to whom she could talk, and it had really helped. Janet felt that it was up to Sarah, now. She had to accept that she would need help in dealing with everything.
Strangely, it had never occurred to Janet that she had simply run away from her sister when she had needed help-again. She let someone else deal with the demons Sarah needed to face. The help Sarah most needed was sitting at home; satisfied that everything was being handled.
[-][+][-]
I’d been in the hospital now for a few days, and for the most part I was in very little pain. I felt that I was ready to go home but Dr. Masters said the he wanted to run some tests before he would allow me to escape. I found myself being visited by the resident vampire, who drained me of five vials of blood and other bodily fluids, which I don’t really think that I need to go into. If Dr. Masters needed them, then the sooner he had his samples, the faster I would be going home.
It was around 6pm when I had a knock on my door, I had been watching a video on my phone when I looked up and saw Anthony smiling at me.
“Daddy!” I soon found myself in his loving arms. I hadn’t seen him in a couple of days, which was normal for him because of his work. Sometimes he had to go out of town for a day or so.
“How’s my girl?” he said with a smile.
“Much better, now that you are here! Do you feel like taking a walk, Daddy?”
“Sure baby, where do you want to go?” Daddy asked me.
“How about we hit the cafeteria and grab something to drink, and then take it outside for a while, Daddy?” I said smiling.
I guess that would be fine but I think that it would be a good idea to use a wheelchair, honey. We don’t want you over doing it, so they‘d ending up keeping you longer!” Anthony said as he pulled the chair over next to my bed.
“Alright Daddy, but I really don’t need it”
“Maybe not, honey. I would feel much better if you used it, though,” he said with a frown.
“No! Not the frown! I surrender!” I’m such a ham, sometimes.
I soon found myself being pushed down the corridor and onto the elevator. It really didn’t take us very long to make it to the cafeteria. After walking off the elevator, it was just around the corner. I ordered a coke and I saw that they had huge Chocolate Macaroons. I had always had a sweet tooth when it came to macaroons, and Daddy ended up buying me a dozen.
It wasn’t long before Daddy and I were outside. There were these beautiful flowers that had been planted near the sidewalk, and I found myself leaning down to smell them. They really had a sweet smell to them, and I would have loved to pick some, but something told me the hospital wouldn’t really appreciate me doing that. I took a seat next to Daddy and once I was comfortable he put his arm around me and just held me.
It felt really nice as he held me, I looked up at him. “Have you found anything our about my adoption or my name change Daddy?”
Not yet sweetheart, just be patient. These things can take time, and besides, we don’t need legal papers to make you our daughter, honey. As far as Janice and I are concerned, you are already our daughter, and you have been since the day you moved in with us Jessica. The paperwork will just make it legal,” Anthony said as he leaned over and kissed my forehead.
Hearing those words really touched my heart, and I found tears running down my face. Anthony just held me and told me it was alright if I wanted to cry.
I smiled, “I am just so happy Anthony. You don’t know what this all means to me. Before, I had nothing and I was alone, scared and so bloody confused, I really thought that it would be better off for everyone if I wasn’t here.”
“I know, baby. Things are different now, you are different, and there is no reason that you will ever have to feel like that again. You have a family that will love and support you no matter what the future holds, that will never change”, Anthony said as he gave me another hug and kiss.
“So where did they have you the last couple of days?” I asked Daddy.
“I was in Seattle. We have a new contract there, and I needed to iron out the details with management.” Anthony said
“I wouldn’t mind maybe seeing Seattle someday.” I said smiling
“It’s not really that far, so maybe we can spend the weekend there this summer.”
“That would be nice, Daddy!”
“I have something that I have wanted to ask you Jessica. If you don’t want to do it, I understand. I know you have a lot going on right now, but I think it would be really fun and the two of us would have a blast.” Anthony said smiling.
“What is it, Daddy?”
“There is a music festival coming up in June, my band used to play there every year but since the band broke up I haven’t been able to attend and have really missed playing my music. The song that we worked on together was one I’d been writing for the festival. I can’t do this alone and I would really like to have you with me.” Anthony said, hopefully.
I thought about what Anthony just said, after everything he and his family had done for me, how could I really say no? I was scared to death about singing in front of that many people, but I also knew that I would do anything to make my family happy. I knew this would mean a lot to Anthony.
I looked over at him and smiled. “I think I’ll be scared to death at the idea of singing in front of all those people Anthony, but if you want to do this, I will do it for you.”
“Don’t worry, everyone is scared at first. We have plenty of time to get you ready for the show and if you feel at anytime that it’s too much, we don’t have to do it. honey”. Anthony said with a big, reassuring smile.
“Thanks Daddy, lets just see how it goes. If we’re going to do this, then we’re going to need to find the time to practice together and I think that we will need to find a decent band.”
“Let me worry about finding a decent band Jessica”, Anthony said smiling.
“All right, Daddy knows best!” I said smiling.
[-][+][-]
Chapter 34
Jessica’s Homecoming
Anthony stayed till visiting hours were over, and after he dropped me off at my room he was on his way. I thought about the two of us performing at the festival together. We would still have to audition, so nothing was really set and it would be fun whether we the two of us were accepted or not. Even though I was scared, I would do my best to make sure that we were selected if not for myself but for Anthony. As I settled into bed for the night I thought about the possibility of going home in the morning I just hoped that Dr. Masters said it was alright as far as healing went I could do that just as well at home as I could in the hospital.
[-][+][-]
I managed to sleep through the night without to many problems, and I was in very little pain as I slowly climbed out of bed and went to the bath room. Finally, I had to use my new pluming for the first time. It felt really funny having to sit down and go, but I knew that in time I wouldn’t even notice the difference. It kind of stung at first and because there was still plenty of swelling it pretty much went everywhere. So after I finished I took a few minutes to clean up and ran a shower. It would be a while before I was able to have a bath but taking a shower would have to do for the moment.
There were so many things that I wanted to get done once I was released the first thing was I wanted to get my hair cut and styled and maybe even have it colored. It was time for a change; I would bring it up to Janice later. After I finished fixing my hair, I went into my room and grabbed my makeup bag. Granted, I really didn’t have a lot of stuff inside it, but there was still enough to make me presentable. So I returned to the bathroom and used the mirror and a few minutes later I felt much better and was ready to face the day.
Breakfast arrived, which turned out to be bacon and eggs, if you really wanted to call it that. The eggs were overcooked to the point that they were almost tasteless, and the bacon was so hard that it would have been a good idea to have a dentist on call, just to fix all the broken teeth that were to follow. Whoever said breakfast was the best meal of the day must have never spent time in the hospital. It was a good thing that Daddy left me $20.00 last night before leaving because after Dr. Masters visited me, I would be taking a trip to the cafeteria and having a decent breakfast.
As I waited for him to arrive I picked up Anthony’s guitar and started working on a song that had been running through my head. It was a rocking country type song and I still hadn’t come up with any words for it yet. Though I had an idea of what it would be able at the moment I was just trying to get the melody down and once that was finished the words would most likely come to me on there own, that really seemed to be the way it worked for me, not that I really wrote songs very often but lately for some reason I have been feeling really creative and the only thing I could chalk it up to was all the positive changes that have been occurring within my life.
It was around 10 am when Dr. Masters arrived and like yesterday he was all smiles.
“Good Morning Jessica How’s my favorite patient this morning?”
I smiled, “I am doing great, but would really like to be going home.”
I don’t see any problem with that Jessica, all your blood work came back and everything looks good, what I was check for was your hormone levels, I just wanted to make sure everything was alright before I released you but are a few things that I want to discuss with you first, up till recently because of your medical condition your body wasn’t producing the right amount of hormones, so your levels were off and that is part of the reason that you have taking so long to develop, but the levels are now starting to rise and you can expect to see major changes within the next few months both mentally and physically, So you need to be prepared for the changes as they start occurring.
“What is going to happen?” I asked
“Most of it is considered normal for a woman Jessica!” The first thing will be your period, now that your body is equipped and it has a place to go, or should I say exit you will have to be ready, there will also be mood swings during that time of month. I can’t tell you how bad they will be because it’s different for every woman.”
“Alright I was expecting the period but not the mood swings”, I said frowning.
“That is part of being a woman Jessica and you will get used to It.”, Dr. Masters said
“I guess you are right, but it is going to still be a little scary the first time.” I said
You’re mother asked me to make an appointment with a doctor from our phyricatric department, so you should be getting a call within the next week Jessica, and I want to see you at least once a month for the next three months.
“Alright Doctor Masters, but is there something that I need to worry about, is that the reason that you want to see me?”
“I don’t think there is anything to worry about Jessica, I just want to keep an eye on your hormone levels and make sure everything is working properly.”
“Alright you know what’s best for me and thank you for everything”, yours welcome Jessica, “I will go and make the arrangements for your discharge and you can call your mother and tell her that I am sending up home.”
[-][+][-]
I was pretty happy about being discharged from the hospital and gave mom a call and told her the good news, she was as happy about it as I was and said she would grab some clothes for me and would be at the hospital around 11 pm. So after getting off the phone with her, I sent a text to Amy and told her that I would be leaving the hospital in a few hours. That way she wouldn’t be waste her lunch hour traveling over to see me, and I also said that I would call her later.
After I finished using my phone, I took a walk down to the recreation room, there was no one around so I walked over and took a seat on the bench in front of the piano, and joined my hands together and cracked my knuckles. I then started playing a new song that I had been hearing on the radio, It took me a few tries to get the melody down then I moved unto the chorus and it took a little more work but I had the whole song within 20 minute, then I started playing the song, by Ronny Dunn, “Bleed Red” and singing the words to the song.
I had been so caught up in the song that I hadn’t noticed that I was no long alone; there were a couple of other patients that had joined me. One was a girl who was maybe 9 years old and a boy about the same age.
“Your pretty good”, the girl said, “I am April and this is James”, she said referring to the boy that was with her.
“Hi April and James, I said with a smile, “I am Jessica it’s nice to meet the both of you.” I said with a smile.
“Have you been playing very long asked April?”
“Not really just a few years I guess”, I said with a smile
“Is it hard to learn?” asked James.
“It can be James, some people are born with a gift and pick it up fast while others take longer I am just lucky I guess because I was born with a gift for music.”
“What else can you play”, Asked April as she joined me on the bench and James stood behind the two of us.
I thought for a minute then started playing the lead in to stand by me on the piano, and started singing the words. It didn’t really take long but by the middle of the song I was no longer singing alone April and James were also singing along with me and the three of us were having a pretty good time together.
It wasn’t long before April and I were being dragged over to take turns playing a video game against James, who pretty much spent that next hours killing the two of us off, but it was cool, we were having lots of fun, but time tends to fly when your having fun and before I knew it I heard my voice being called and when I turned around I saw that it was Janice. So I said my goodbyes to April and James.
A few minutes later Mom and I were back in my room and mom handed me a bag inside it was my baby blue sundress, which just happened to be my favorite. So I soon found myself slipping into it along with a pair of sandals that mom had also brought with her. All that I needed to do now was freshen up my makeup and I was ready to go. I soon found myself sitting back in the dreaded wheel chair and had all of my possessions sitting on my lap being my clothes, a giant teddy bear and flowers.
After mom finished signing all the paper work the two of us headed outside with a nurse pushing the chair while mom went to retrieve her car. The nurse and I only had to wait a few minutes before mom pulled up in front of us and after mom placed my stuff in the backseat I climbed out of the chair and into the passenger side of mom’s car while at the same time, I thanked the nurse for taking such good care of me. Then mom and I were finely on our way.
It was still pretty early in the day and I knew that Megan and Jennifer would still be in school, so I turned to mom, “do you think that we could go somewhere first before we go home?”
“Where do you want to go baby?”
“I am a girl that has lived as a boy most of my life and I want to get my hair done, maybe even have it colored.”
Mom smiled, “Alright honey lets see if I can’t get you in somewhere, but lets grab a coffee at starbucks first mom”’ said with a smile.
Chapter 35
Jake woke up feeling like he had been hit by a truck and slowly pulled himself off the floor, his head hurt like hell. That he could blame on his drinking but as he made his way into the bathroom and saw his face, he was not a happy man he was now sporting a black eye thanks to Rocco. He then headed into the kitchen to put on a pot of coffee after looking around for something to drink and finding nothing he cursed Rocco, and then said that coffee would have to do till he could find something stronger.
As he made his way into the kitchen he could smell that the coffee was already on and there was what smelled like eggs and bacon cooking. As he went through the door he found Rocco busy at the stove, Jake looked over at Rocco where did all this stuff come from. “Well the money came from your wallet”, Rocco said with a smile, and while you were sleeping I did some shopping.
Rocco looked over at Jake, “ The next time you talk to me like you did yesterday you are going to get more then a black eye Jake”, I am not some defenseless child that you car terrorize.”, Rocco said calmly.
Jake nodded, “It won’t happen again” I can promise you that Jake said rubbing his swelling eye. So what about my son, does Vincent have any idea’s where they would take him? Asked Jake
Not yet but believe me if Vincent wants to find someone he can, Rocco said as he flipped the eggs over then poured himself a cup of coffee and one for Jake.
Jake looked at the eggs and bacon then at Rocco, I appreciate that you took the time to make breakfast but I don’t think that I am going to be able to hold anything down.
You have a problem Jake, and blaming your son for it, isn’t the solution, you created this mess because of your drinking, none of it would have happened had you not been drinking and even if you can silence your son, your problems are not going to go away there only going to become worse. It’s not my job to baby sit you Jake, but you would have done something stupid last night because you were drinking and acting like a complete asshole.
Jake your biggest problem besides the drinking is you don’t think things through first instead you just react to it, which is good for something’s but you need to think things though before you act on them, if you had gone to the Tanner’s last night what do you think would have happened, someone would have called the police and even if Andrew had been there how far do you think you would have getting before the police caught you. If you ask me it wouldn’t have taking them very long.
Just so you know I had a call from Vincent last night your wife Sarah was admitted at Ottawa General Hospital on a 48 hour psychiatric evaluation. “How did Vincent find this out?” asked Jake.
Vincent is the kind of guy that keeps track on all of the people that works for him, including there families. It makes it easier him to keep you quiet if your get arrested knowing that he can get to your family any time he wishes but in your case Jake, “I doubt that even matters because the only person that you really care about is yourself.” Rocco said with a frown.
“That is pretty cold Rocco”, Jake said
“Then prove me wrong Jake”, Leave Andrew alone you have the power to end this anytime you want Jake”, Rocco said
“I can’t too much has happened and already, I would end up in jail”, Jake said
“Yes you would Jake but if that happens it will be easy time for you, we can make sure of it”, Rocco said as he took a drink of his coffee.
Jake thought about it for a few minutes, “No if I can get to Andrew, I can guarantee that he will keep quiet.” Without having to worry about going to jail, it is pretty much his word against mine.
“Maybe Jake but things don’t always work out the way you plan them too, that is why you came looking for our help”, Rocco said
“I am done talking about it Rocco, I am not going to change my mind”. Jake said trying to remain calm.
“Alright Jake it’s your funeral”, Rocco said in frustration.
[-][+][-]
After mom and I arrived at starbucks and had our drinks in front of us the two of us grabbed a table outside, being such a nice day it would have been a sin to spend it inside. So as the two of us relaxed she took out her phone and made a call to her salon to see if they would be able to squeeze me in. So after mom talked to this woman for a few minutes and explained that I just got out of the hospital they agreed to squeeze me in for 1 pm, which was pretty cool but left mom and I two hours to kill before we had to be a the salon for the appointment.
So giving we had a couple of hours to kill mom and I headed to the mall to grab a bite to eat and do a little bit of shopping. Considering my present condition it was pretty slow going but mom was patient with me and even let me take breaks now and then just too rest by the time we left the mall I had a nice little black dress that mom insisted on buying, her logic was that I would be needing it eventually when we went out to dinner or if I had a date. She had also picked out a pair of black shoes, I had no idea how I was going to walk in the because of the size of the heels but mom insisted that I would get used to it in no time at all.
Mom and I arrived at the Salon with 10 minutes to spare and once inside Mom talked to a woman there and then the both of them came over.
“Hi Jessica, I am Dianne and I will be taking care of you today.”
“Hi Dianne, It’s nice to meet you and thanks for squeezing me in”
“It’s not a problem honey, with you just getting out of the hospital and all how could I say no”, Dianne said with a smile.
I followed Dianne to an empty chair in the back of the Salon and she spent a few minutes playing with my hair. I can see why you needed to see me. “What have you been washing your hair with Jessica a flame thrower”. Dianne said laughing.
I smiled, “I guess you can say that I have been a tomboy for quiet awhile, It’s time for something new”, I said with a smile.
Dianne smiled, “well I would say it’s about time a girl as pretty as you should not hide yourself away from the world.
“Thanks Dianne”, I said smiling
“So what do you have in mind honey?” asked Dianne
“I guess that I would like my hair to be darker to start with”, I am not sure of the style though, I said smiling.
Diane reached over to the counter and pulled out a book and started thumbing through the pages and then looked over at me and went back to the book till she found something she liked then showed me the picture I looked at it then to Dianne.
“Do you really think this is me?” I said frowning
Dianne smiled, “It’s perfect for you Jessica and easy for you to take care of.”
I turned to mom,” what do you think?”
Mom smiled, “I think Dianne is right it’s prefect for you honey.”
“Alright Dianne let’s do it”, I said nervously.
End of part 15
To be continued in part 16
Andrew’s Dilemma
Part 16
By, Cain129
Special Thanks to Wren Phoenix for the editing.
Synopsis: After spending the last four days in the hospital, I was finally released. I was ready to face whatever life was going to throw at me. Thanks to Anthony and Janice, I was also ready to stop playing the victim, and stand up to my birth parents. It would be hard, and also scary, but I needed closure on that part of my life.
They say you can forgive anyone, but the truth is, you can never really forget. I could forgive my birth parents for the crap that they put me through, but some scars run too deep, especially the emotional ones.
Chapter 36
After being released from the hospital, I asked Mom to take me to the hair salon. A few hours later, I found myself sitting in a chair, having my hair done. I had picked the style out of a book, with the help of my mother and Dianne, the lady that was doing my hair. I had also decided on changing the color. For the next hour, Dianne was washing, cutting and styling my hair. I was pretty excited, and couldn’t wait to see the end result! While I waited under the dryer, a woman came over and started doing my nails. This was a whole new experience for me, and I was really enjoying myself. By the time she was done, I was sporting some new acrylic nails that were a light shade of red on my hands and feet.
It was really the first time that I’d had long nails, let alone having them painted. They looked really cool, and I just hoped they wouldn’t get all messed up when I played guitar. I guess there are plenty of women musicians out there, and they could play having longer nails. If they could do it, there was no reason that I couldn’t. After my hair was dried, Dianne spent about ten minutes playing with it. Then she took a few minute to remove my makeup, and proceeded to redo it properly. She explained what she was doing as she did my makeup, so I could do it myself next time. I really doubted that I would ever have the gift that she did when it came to doing makeup. Still, I listened to everything she said and would try my best to recreate it later.
When Dianne finished, I had a chance to see what I looked like. I was pretty much blown away by the job that Dianne had done. I loved the way that I looked, the hair style was perfect and I now had jet black hair.
It would take awhile for me to get used to it, but it really made a big difference. She had done a great job on my makeup, and I could see the results turning a few heads, but in a good way.
“Thanks, Dianne, I love everything you did. Its hard to believe that is really me.”
Dianne smiled. “Honey, everything was already there, all I had to do was draw it out.”
“Thanks Dianne, the next time I need something done, I’ll be asking for you,” I promised, smiling.
“That’s great Jessica, call me anytime, I would love to have you.” Dianne said with a big smile.
[-][+][-]
After Mom paid the bill, we said goodbye to Dianne, then the two of us were on our way. As we made our way to Mom’s car, she smiled.
“You look beautiful honey. Dianne was right about you, Honey. You are way too beautiful to have ever been a boy.”
“Thanks, Mom. Seeing myself now, it’s hard to believe that I was ever Andrew.”
“That’s because you never really were Andrew, honey; this is the real you, baby. It always has been, and Jessica is here to stay!” Mom said, as she put her arm around me.
During the ride home, I found that I was thinking a lot about everything. I had taken my first steps at taking back my own life. It was not going to be an easy road for me, but I knew for the first time in my life that I was doing the right thing.
Janice looked over at me. “What’s going on, honey?”
“I guess I’m just thinking about how much things have changed within the last month. It’s really pretty hard to believe.”
“Well, it’s a little too late to be changing your mind now, honey.” Janice said, giggling.
“Yeah, I guess there is no turning back now!” I said, not that I would change a thing. I had everything a girl needed to be happy now.
“Mom, I called Mason, and I am pressing charges against my parents.”
“When did you do that, honey?” asked Mom.
“I called yesterday, and he came and took my statement. It’s the only way that I will be able to move on.”
“I do wish that you had talked to me first, honey. I understand that this is something you feel you have to do, and I’m proud of you.” Janice said as she reached out and squeezed my hand.
“When Anthony gets home tonight, I’ll have him call Bill. We need to get you prepared to go to court, and Bill would be the best person to help you when it comes to what might happen in court.” Janice said.
“You’re right Mom, I’m sorry; I should have talked to you first. I guess when I made up my mind I didn’t want to wait. I was afraid that I might have lost my nerve, and not gone through with it. Now that it’s over with, I am committed to finishing this.” I said, sighing sadly.
“I know this is hard for you, Jessica. They’re your parents, and there will always be a part of you that loves them! But they had no right to put you through that hell. Sometimes it feels like you need to get some justice, and in a situation like this, it means going to count and exposing them. At least this way they have to take responsibility for their actions.” Mom said sympathetically.
I thought about what she’d said. It was true that I did love my parents, and I wished more than anything that it could have been different. The truth was that they didn’t really love me, at least, not in the way a mother or father should love their child. They were incapable of being supportive and providing the kind of care that I needed. Janice and Anthony had accepted me, even before they had known the truth about me, and they gave me something that no one, not even my parents, had ever given me before. They loved me, even though I was kind of messed up.
When it came to my real parents, I felt that they neither loved nor nurtured me because I didn’t live up to their expectations. I suspect that even if I had it wouldn’t have charge anything. Our home had never been a warm, stable or loving environment, not like it is living with Janice, Anthony and Megan. Since I became a part of their family, I am no longer afraid, because I know that whatever happens, I’m no longer alone. There is no need to hold the pain inside anymore, because it’s all right to share and talk about it. Thinking about that made me look over at my mom.
“I love you, Mom.” I said, as I wiped the tears from my eyes.
“I love you too, baby!” Mom said with a smile. She reached over and gave my hand a squeeze.
[-][+][-]
After arriving home, Mom and I made up some chicken salad sandwiches for lunch. We were both pretty hungry, and we hadn’t had time to have a decent meal, between shopping and going to the Salon. After the two of us ate, I did up the dishes because mom had a few calls that she needed to make. I finished up, then went into the living room and laid down on the couch. I turned on the TV and started channel surfing, trying to find something worth watching.
There really wasn’t much to watch, other than soaps and talk shows. Neither really appealed to me, and I eventually just turned it to CMT and watched music videos. I was glad to be home, and as I listened to the music, it really wasn’t very long before I drifted off to sleep.
[-][+][-]
Chapter 37
Meanwhile back at the hospital, Sarah found herself pretty much on lockdown and wondering if she had made a mistake. The staff was pretty nice for the most part and they really only bothered her when it was time for her take her medicine. She just hoped that they would only hold her for a few days and send her home. If not, they might try to keep her in the hospital longer. The worst part of being admitted to this ward was that Sarah couldn’t just leave without approval from a nurse or doctor, even if it was just a walk, outside or to the cafeteria. This would make it harder for her to find Andrew. She was sure that the teenage girl she had seen was Andrew. After all, she had given birth to the child, and she felt that she should be able to recognize her own child.
The one question that bothered her, more than anything else, was why the hospital would allow Andrew to be dressed like a girl. She knew that he was a boy, because she was the one that changed his diapers and bathed him. There was no doubt in her mind about it. She couldn’t help but see that the girl had this glow to her that was just not there when it came to her son. She would somehow find Andrew, and when she did, maybe she would have the answers. For the moment, though, she had to deal with the hospital staff. She wanted to find a way to get off the ward, and if she had to play their games she would. Whatever it took, if it meant she would have the freedom she needed.
Sarah made her way over to the window and looked outside. There was no sign of the child today. As she stood there she thought about her life. For most of her adult life she had buried everything that had happened. Now, though, everything was starting to fall apart and she no longer had the same control over her emotions that she once had. It was at that moment that she heard someone calling her name. When she turned around she saw that it was Dr. Robbins.
“Sorry, I guess that I was kind of lost in thought, Dr. Robbins.” Sarah said as she took a seat on her bed.
Dr. Robbins took a seat across from her, “Do you want to take about it?”
“Not really, I guess that I am just overwhelmed with everything.” Sarah said as she started crying. “I never wanted to be here, doctor. I just came in for a cut, not to be admitted.”
“I’m sorry, but everything that your sister told me about your past and recent events tells me that you are walking a very fine and dangerous line. She is afraid you might try taking your own life, and to be honest, I have similar concerns, Sarah. It’s my job to take care of you and sometimes I have no choice but to admit someone, even if they don’t want to be admitted. I have a responsibility as a doctor to cause no harm and letting a patient go home that may be suicidal is something that I can’t do. I want you to understand that as your doctor, my primary concern is you, not your husband or son.”
Sarah looked over at Dr. Robbins. “I don’t think anyone can help me and if I was to be honest with you I wouldn’t even know where to start. “
Dr. Robbins looked at her. “Maybe the best place to start is the beginning, Sarah?”
Sarah was scared to open up to anyone, but deep down there was a part of her that truly needed to open up, and she decided that she had nothing left to lose.
Sarah looked at Dr. Robbins.”It’s not easy for me to talk about myself. I’ve always been this way, and the only ones that I can blame are my parents. My mother was never really there for me. My father, well, he spent most of his time after work drinking with his friends, and when he would come home at first, he would sneak into Janet’s room. I remember hearing her crying late at night. One day I came home from school and she was gone. I was too young at the time to understand why she had left, but shortly after she left, it was my room that he was sneaking into.
At first he would just hold me close, maybe kiss or touch me. He used to say that he loved me whenever he was with me. Eventually he did more with me besides just the hugging and kissing, and he made me do things to him.”
“What did he have you do Sarah?” asked Dr. Robbins
“At first it was just oral sex, but later it became much more,” She said wiping the tears from her eyes.
“Did you ever talk to your mother about what was happening Sarah?”
“I tried to, numerous times, but she refused to listen to me.” Sarah said crying.
‘How did that make you feel Sarah?” asked Dr. Robbins
“I felt worthless, unloved and unwanted by my own mother.” Sarah said crying, “At least with my father I felt wanted and loved, even if what the two of us were doing was wrong.”
“So I take it your home was not a very happy place for you, with everything that was happening there. What about school?” asked Dr. Robbins
“I had a few friends that I used to talk with, but there was really no one that I trusted or could turn to for help. I guess that I was also afraid of ending up in an orphanage if I told anyone, and like dad used to say, they wouldn’t believe me anyway.
“So when did you leave home, Sarah?”
“I left home shortly after my 18th birthday, and shortly after that I met Jake. A year later the two of us married, and then Andrew came along”
“So tell me about your relationship with Jake?” asked Dr. Robbins
“Jake was a good man back then, but he liked to drink a little more then he should.”
“Was he even abusive with you mentally or physically Sarah?”
“Jake never hit me, but from time to time he would get angry and say things that he shouldn’t have but he always apologized to me once he calmed down.”
“What was the main reason for most of the fighting between Jake and yourself?” asked Dr. Robbins
Sarah sighed.“I guess mostly it was about our son, Andrew.”
“When it comes to your son, what was it about him that used to make the two of you fight?” Dr. Robbins asked, frowning.
“Andrew wasn’t really what either of us expected; we were told that we were having a daughter, but instead, I had a boy. Jake was really happy, at the idea of having a little boy he could do things with, you know, the whole father and son thing. Andrew wasn’t like most boys; there was something wrong with the child from the start. When Jake used to get made at Andrew, he would say that he should have had a daughter instead of a sissy for a son. It might have been cruel, but he was right. Andrew was more girl then boy, right from the start.
“How did it make you feel, having a sissy, as your husband would say?”
“I loved Andrew, but there was nothing I could do for him. Jake tried everything he could think of to help the child, but nothing worked. I guess rather then fight with Jake over Andrew, I kind of just let him deal with things.”
“Did you ever take Andrew to see a doctor that specialized in gender issues, Sarah?”
“Jake wouldn’t have anything to do with it, and I can’t blame him, we both wanted a normal son, not a boy dressed in girl’s clothes.” Sarah said sadly.
Dr. Robbins looked over at Sarah, “You might not realize it, Sarah, but there are conditions where a child is born one gender, in Andrew’s case male, but the brain chemistry isn’t male but female. If this is the case with your son, there is absolutely nothing you or your husband could have done to change him. It would be like trying to change an apple into an orange it’s impossible. The only way you would have known for sure about Andrew was if he was taken to a specialist, which neither you or your husband were willing to do.
“If I understand you right, Dr. Robbins, you’re saying that Andrew might actually be a girl inside?” Sarah said rather shocked.
“I can’t answer that question for you Sarah, you’re son needs to see a specialist that deals with that sort of condition, but if he is, there really is only one treatment that works, his mind and body would have to come into balance. In other words he is already a genetic female mentally; he would just need to have the surgery to become one physically.”
Sarah sat there in shock. If Dr. Robbins was correct, she’d had a daughter all along and was too blind to see the truth. Had she listened to her child, maybe they would still be a family. Sarah had known Andrew had been wearing her clothes at least a few times, and felt sick thinking that he had been doing something in them. She had kept it to herself, because she knew that Jake would completely lose control and likely put Andrew in the hospital. She’d kept her mouth shut and never said anything, but now she knew that if she had told Jake about Andrew there would have been nothing he could have done to change Andrew other then hurt him.
Dr. Robbins looked over at Sarah, “I think that we have done enough for today, but I’d like you to try something. Maybe it will help you understand your son better. I want you to look at your life and experiences, and think about Andrew. I am betting that the two of you have a lot in common, Sarah.”
“All right, Dr. Robbins. When will I be seeing you again?” asked Sarah.
“I’ll be in tomorrow afternoon, and the two of us will have another talk.”
“Dr. Robbins, thanks. I have to admit that I feel better now.” Sarah said.
[-][+][-]
It was around 3 pm when I turned off the television and made my way outside and took a seat on the steps. I don’t know why I was even thinking it, but I was starting to think about returning to school. It had been over a month now since I last attended school. If I’d had any friends, then I am sure that I would have missed them. I guess that things were different now, and there was a part of me that wanted to reach out to other people.
I was scared of being hurt again, but I knew that it was time that I started making a life for myself and did my own thing. But what was my own thing? For so long everything that I had done was to please my parents, and now they were not part of my life anymore. I could choose what I thought was right for me. I had my new family, and I knew whatever I chose to do, they would be there to support me.
I guess that I just needed to figure out the million dollar question. “Who was Jessica Dawn Tanner?” Seems like an easy question to answer, but not when you spent the last 16 years of your life going by the name “Andrew Roberts.”
Something told me that those questions would be answered in the next few months, with the help of the doctor that Janice arranged for me to see. Still, in the end it would be up to me to choose, and to be honest it felt nice only having to worry about myself and not what other people would think. I guess deep down, I knew that my life would never be the same. The emotional pain that had been following me most of my life was finally gone.
I no longer feared life as I used to, and most importantly I was looking forward to the future, something I never used to pay much attention to. I guess when you are crippled with thoughts of suicide, the only future you can see is a painful one. But like my sister Amy, I’m now a survivor, and I’ve learned that there is always hope, even when I can’t see it. So whatever the future had in store I would deal with it a day at a time, and be the person that I was meant to be.
It was at that moment that I saw Megan and Jennifer turning the corner. When they saw me sitting on the step, it wasn’t very long before the three of us were have a group hug. It felt great to be home with the people that I loved, and for the rest of the night we were one big happy family.
[-][+][-]
“Had I known what the future had in store for us, I would have run away as far as I could, but for the moment, I would rather stay in the present.”
End of Part 16
To be continued in part 17
Synopsis: After spending a week in the hospital, Dr. Masters gave me a clean bill of health and sent me home. To say that I was happy to finally be going home was an understatement! After mom picked me up, the two of us headed to the salon. Where I had my hair cut, colored and styled. This had been something that I’ve wanted to have done for the longest time.
Vincent sat in front of his desk. There was a police officer sitting across from him, and he looked very nervous. You could see the sweat running down his face.
“I don’t know what to tell you, Vincent. The information in the file said that Andrew Roberts was at that address.”
“I don’t care what the file says, Nick. Rocco already checked the Tanners home and Andrew is not there. I pay you good money Nick, now I expect you to find Andrew Roberts. If you don’t find him, expect a visit. Do you understand me?” Vincent asked calmly.
“Yes, I understand, sir.” Nick said, wiping the sweat from his brow.
“Now, get out of my sight, and you better come back with results.” Vincent said.
“I will!” Nick said as he left.
Once Vincent was alone, he picked up the phone and called Rocco. The phone rang a few times before Rocco answered.
“Hi Vincent, what can I do for you?” asked Rocco.
“I just talked to Nick, he’s going to look into things, but something here isn’t adding up. I want you to keep an eye on the Tanners, find out everything you can. The boy may not be staying with them, but it’s possible that they know where to find him.” Vincent said.
“All right, Vincent, I’ll get on top of it right away. I think you need to have someone keep an eye on Jake. He was drinking last night, and was ready to do something stupid. If you ask me, dealing with Jake is only going to come back and bite us. We should walk away from him, before he brings us down with him.”
“Don’t worry about Jake, I can deal with him.” Vincent said.
“I hope you’re right, Vincent. You know how I feel about it.” Rocco said, frustrated.
“Yeah, I know, but you’re not the one in charge, I am.” Vincent said calmly and hung up the phone.
*You might be in charge for now, Vincent, but things change.* Rocco said to himself as he slammed the phone down.
Rocco grabbed his coat and headed out the door, leaving Jake to his own devices. He climbed into his car and made the ride into town. He didn’t like this at all, and knew that if he didn’t do something soon, everything was going to go straight to hell. Rocco had been thinking all night, and only came up with three options. The first would be to take out Vincent. This would likely cause a feud within the family, and place his own family in jeopardy.
The second plan was easier, but still had risks. He could go to John Adams for help, and make it look like Vincent was taken out by a rival. The third option was still risky, but it had the best chance for success. He could set up Jake Roberts. All it would take is a few drinks to get him riled up, and then set him loose. He’d place an anonymous call to the police and once they had Jake, it wouldn’t take long before he would break, and tell them everything.
Of course, this would also mean that Rocco would be implicated when Jake talked to the police. He could end up in jail, something that he really wasn’t looking forward to. This left him with only one option, he would have to talk to the police himself, but there was a problem with that idea, as well. Vincent had too many cops on his payroll, and it would only take one person to open their mouth and screw up everything. This meant Rocco needed to find someone Vincent hadn’t bought, which was easier said than done. There might be a way that he could find someone; he’d just need to pay the district attorney a visit.
If Rocco played his card right, he could be running the whole show himself. What he was about to do was still a gamble, which meant he still needed to find where Andrew was. Vincent was right; the Tanners were the only real lead that he could follow. He would wait till he found Andrew, and then make his move. Rocco smiled to himself. *Jake is going to be having lots of fun soon.*
It was around 10 am when I finally decided to make it out of bed. Slowly, I made my way into the bathroom. As I did my business, I could still feel the stinging from where they operated on me, but it seemed to be less each day. It had been a week already since I’d had my operation, and the redness and swelling was slowly going away. I hoped that there wasn’t any major scarring, but from what Dr. Masters said, it wouldn’t be a problem. I guess time would tell though.
After I wiped myself and flushed the toilet, I made my way over to the mirror. When I looked in the mirror, I couldn’t help but smile. I had a major case of bed head, but I could still see a bit of the styling that Dianne did to it yesterday. The change in color made me look very different, almost as if Andrew had never really existed. I guess it was time to face the world, so I ran a hot shower, slipped out of my nightie and climbed inside.
It felt good as the warm water hit my body. There was something else different as I lathered up with the soap and ran my hands over my body. I could feel my nipples become erect. Over the last week they seemed to be more sensitive then they had ever been before my operation. I guessed it was because my body was creating the new levels of hormones now. Like Dr. Masters said, I could expect plenty of changes, and this was just one of them.
The change that I wasn’t looking forward to was my period, especially if the cramps were anything like what had lead me to the hospital. I really doubted that it would be as bad. Before, there had been nowhere for it to go, but now I was just as equipped as any other woman was, in every way that mattered.
I reached over and turned off the water, then slowly climbed out, grabbed a towel to dry myself off, then made my way into my room. I still wasn’t comfortable wearing jeans because of the surgery, so I chose a black skirt, white blouse and my bra and panties. I didn’t bother with attaching the breast forms with the glue, because my budding breasts were already sensitive enough as they were. I just placed some tissue under them and when I put on the bra I wore it looser the normal. I found that way it bothered me less.
After I finished dressing, I spent the next 15 minutes styling my hair. I was able to recreate the job that Dianne had done, but it took a little work. I knew that in time, I would get better. I then moved to my makeup, which was a lot easier now. I’ve had lots of practice doing my own makeup and when I looked in the mirror, I liked what I saw. I couldn’t wait to get out of the house and have some fun.
The first step was to get Megan out of bed. That girl could sleep her life a way if given a chance. I made my way upstairs to her room and sure enough, I could hear her snoring. I sneaked up to her with a wicked smile. I reached under the blankets and started tickling her, and within minutes she was threatening to kill me. It didn’t really make all that much sense, considering she was giggling the whole time she was yelling at me. As I ran out of the room laughing, she nailed me in the back of the head with her pillow.
“Time to get up Sis, we have things to do and places to go!” I said with a smile, and made my way downstairs.
When I enter the kitchen, Mom was standing by the stove making pancakes and Daddy was sitting at the table, reading the paper and drinking a coffee, I walked over to Mom and gave her a kiss, then did the same with Daddy.
“I take it you woke Megan up?” Asked Daddy
” Yeah, something tells me that she is up.” I smiled, grinning. “It’s so cool having a sister.”
“Yeah I think so, too. By the way, Jessica, have you ever heard the saying that payback is a ‘You know what’?” Megan said with an evil grin.
“I love you too, Sis.” The two of us started giggling.
Janice looked over at the two of us. “God help me, am I really ready for two girls?”
“Mommy, we are perfect angels.” Megan said with a smile.
“Perfect angels!” Daddy said, laughing. “More like little devils this morning!”
“Megan and I giggled, and then I looked over at her. She smiled and nodded, and before Daddy knew what was happening, the two of us attacked him. Before long we had him on the floor, laughing his head off. Well, until he turned the tables on us, and the next thing we knew he was tickling me and Megan. Thankfully, Megan got the worst of it, and Daddy went easy on me.
It was at that moment that Mom started yelling, “All right kids, that’s enough, and that goes for you too, Anthony!”
Soon all of us were laughing together and I loved every moment of it. This was how a real family was supposed to be.
After Megan and I did up the dishes, we gave Jennifer a call. The three of us decided that we were going to head over to the mall and check out the deals. I really wasn’t planning on buying anything consider Janice had already spent a small fortune on me already but she insisted that there was still so much that I needed especially since I would be starting back to school soon. She handed me her bank card and said to take $100.00 off it and told Megan to make sure that I got clothes that were appropriate for school.
Jennifer’s mother, Caroline, said that she would pick us up and drop us off at the mall, So Megan and I headed outside to wait for her to arrive. It didn’t take her very long, considering she only lives a few houses away, Megan and I could have just walked over, but after Jennifer told her mother that I had just got out of the hospital, she wouldn’t take no for an answer. I think that Caroline wanted to get a good look at me now. There weren’t too many people that knew me, but she was one of them, Jennifer had told her the truth about me, and I couldn’t blame her. When I attempted to take my life, Megan had been with me, and she’d had Mom there to comfort her, but the only person Jennifer had to turn to was her mother. Caroline was always nice to me, so I really wasn’t worried at all about her knowing the truth.
When Megan and I climbed into Caroline’s car she was all smiles, “God, this is unbelievable! You look so pretty Jessica, and wow, I love the hair!”
“Thanks, Mom took me to have it done yesterday. I love the job they did too.” I said smiling.
Caroline smiled, “I am also really happy that you can finally be the real you, honey. I always knew deep down that you were to pretty to have ever be a boy.”
“Thanks, Caroline,” I said blushing. “I’m just happy to be myself, and not have to pretend anymore.”
“Well honey, as far as I am concerned, Andrew never existed.” Caroline said, smiling.
Once Caroline pulled the car up to the main entrance of the mall and placed the car in park. She turned around to face Megan and I. “Why don’t the two of you come over tonight, you’re both welcome to spend the night. We can order a pizza and have a movie night.”
I looked over at Megan and she smiled.
“What time should we be there?” asked Megan.
Jennifer smiled. “How about around 6pm?”
“That’s fine with me.” I said with a smile, and then turned to look over at Megan and Jennifer. “And no funny business, I am still recovering.”
“Well, there goes my fun!” Megan said with a smile.
I thought about it for a minute. Something told me that I’d better be the last one to go to sleep. I didn’t trust either one of them as far as I could throw them, and that wasn’t very far. I smiled to myself though, *If I’m the last to fall asleep, then maybe I could have some fun at their expense.*
Jennifer looked at me, and then turned to Megan. “Your sister is up to something”
“She’s always up to something, and when she smiles, you know that its trouble.” Megan said with a smile.
“Hey, I take offense to that statement! I have an adorable smile.” I said, pouting.
Rocco had been parked a few houses past Jessica and Megan’s home, watching carefully. When he saw the two girls come outside and wait for their friend, he decided to follow them. He hoped that they would lead him to wherever Andrew was staying. Rocco followed behind them far enough that he could see where the girls were going, but also far enough that they couldn’t tell that he was following them.
After the girls pulled into the mall he found a place to park close enough to the entrance that he could watch the girls while at the same time follow them inside. Once inside the mall he followed the three girls at a distance, but made it look like he was shopping, the girls made a straight line to the ladies department. This really made it hard for him to follow them and not look out of place.
Luckily there the men’s department was close enough that he could keep an eye on them, even though he was still a fair distance away. He could hear anything they were saying, Rocco picked out a few pairs of shoes and sneakers, then took a seat on the bench and made it look like he was trying on some new shoes. He walked around in them and kept an eye on the girls.
Hew watched the girls for what seem like hours, as they went from store to store like a swarm of locusts, devouring everything in sight. In reality though, it had only been about 40 minutes, and Rocco was happy to see them moving on. There was only so many shoes that he could try on. The next stop the girls made was the food court where they ordered something to eat, Rocco was happy to finally have a break, as he ordered a coffee and a sandwich himself. He grabbed a seat at a table that was close enough that he could keep an eye on the girls, and listen in on there conversation.
“That was a lot of fun I said as I took a bite out of my sandwich.”
“Yeah it doesn’t help either that your still recovering from your surgery.” Jennifer said sympathetically.
“Give it a few more weeks Jessica, and you‘ll be good as new.” Megan said smiling.
“I can deal with it, considering everything I’ve been through.”
“It was pretty cool of your mom, inviting us over like that, Jennifer.”
“Yeah, it was. I think she was just using it as an excuse to get to know you better, Jessica. With everything that’s happened, I think mom is still pretty shocked.”
“What should I bring? You know this is my first sleep over, Jennifer?”
“You can bring anything you want, just make sure that you bring a sleeping bag and some makeup. Well I have some makeup but not really much.”
I turned to Megan. “How about a sleeping bag, is there an extra one lying around at home?”
While Rocco listened to the girls talk, something just didn’t sound right. The girl Jessica, who he figured out was Megan’s sister, kept referring back to her sister Megan and asking questions that she really should have already known. If they were sisters, about the same age with a similar background, wouldn’t it stand to reason that she would know what was in her household like the sleeping bags? Then there was the makeup. Two girls, about the same age, with the same mother- wouldn’t she have provided pretty much the same amounts to both girls?
And then there was Jennifer. Why was her mother so interested in getting to know a girl that she supposedly had known for years? No, something didn’t make sense here at all. Rocco finished his lunch and left the girls to there own devices. He had other plans. He needed to find out as much about Jessica Tanner as he could, and the first place that he was going to was her school. If she had just got out of the hospital, then there should be a record of her being there. This might be a long shot, but maybe things were not as they seemed, and someone was hiding in plan sight.
As we finished our lunch, we still had a whole day to kill and a ton of shopping bags that needed to be dropped off at home before we could really do anything else. There was still one store that I wanted to hit before we left and that was the jewelry shop where I had my ears pierced. I really didn’t have anything other then the studs and a couple pairs of earrings. So the three of us soon found our way over to the store, but along the way I hit the bank machine and reached into my purse and pulled out Andrew’s bank card. I had five hundred dollars that had been sitting there for almost a year. It wouldn’t do Andrew any good, but it would be really helpful to Jessica.
So I placed the card into the machine and entered my pin then withdrew that whole the whole amount, placed the cash into my purse, then destroyed my card and threw it in the trash bin. I wouldn’t need it anymore, my next bank account would be under the name Jessica Tanner.
Once I was in the store the three of us made our way through the store and I bought close to two hundred dollars worth of jewelry. Megan and Jennifer were off looking at something when I came across this really nice necklace that had this little silver plate on it that was blank which meant that they could be engraved. When I looked at the price they were twenty dollars a piece. I called over the lady that was working behind the counter and ask her how much for it would cost for four of them engraved with the words, “Always Sisters, Forever Friends." The lady said it would cost $100 but since I was buying four necklaces and a ton of other jewelry she wouldn’t charge me for the engraving, which was fine with me.
So I paid for everything and she gave me a receipt, and then told me to drop back in a couple of days with my receipt, and the necklaces would be ready to be picked up. I thanked her, and soon the three of us were heading out of the store and heading down towards the exit. I decided that it would be easier just to take a cab home, rather than call Caroline. As we were taking the corner, someone slammed right into me, knocking me to the ground. I was kind of dazed for a moment, and as I looked up, the light was kind of blinding me. I could hear someone talking to me,
“God, Jessica! I am so sorry, are you all right?” As I slowly pulled myself together, I was wondering how this guy knew my name. Once I was sitting up and was not blinded by the light, I had no problem figuring out who he was. Scotty was looking very concerned about me.
I couldn’t help but smile. “Hi Scotty, yes, I’m fine, just a little shook up.“
He reached out and led me over to a bench. “Are you sure Jessica? I hit you pretty hard!”
“Scotty, I’m fine, but if you really want to make up for it, you could give us a drive home.” I said with a smile.
“Sure, Jessica,” he said. “Just let me get the car, and I’ll meet you at the door.”
He grabbed the cart that Megan had been pushing, and took it outside with him.
Megan and Jennifer were all giggles.
“What?” I said, looked over at them”
“Scotty really likes you girl.” Jennifer said smiling
“Yeah sis, he definitely likes you. He asks about you all the time.” Megan said
“Maybe you should get to know him? Who knows, you might hit it off! You really can’t use the excuse that it’s not fair to him anymore.” Jennifer said smiling.
I thought about it as the three of us walked towards the exit. I was a girl, mentally and physically. There was no reason that I had to be alone, especially when there was a guy that liked me, and I liked him just as much. I looked over at Megan and Jennifer. “You’re right, there’s no reason that I couldn’t date Scotty if I really wanted to,” I said with a smile.
After the three of us went out front, we didn’t really need to wait very long before Scotty pulled up in front of us. Megan and Jennifer climbed into the back of the car which left me sitting up front with Scotty. I climbed inside and shut the door behind me, then once everyone had their seat belts on, Scotty put the car into drive and we were headed home.
“While Scotty drove he looked over at me. “I thought you were only visiting with your parents Jessica? Don’t get me wrong, I am glad to see you, but I wish you would have given me a call.” Scotty said
“Sorry about that Scotty, but at the time I really didn’t know if I was going to be staying or not and I really didn’t think it was a good idea to go out with anyone until things were settled.”
“Are things settled now?” Scotty asked.
I smiled, “Yeah Scotty, and I’m here to stay, I’m living at Megan’s now.”
“Then maybe we can go out sometime Jessica?” Scotty asked flashing those puppy dog eyes at me. I thought to myself, how could I possibility say no, even if I wanted to, looking into those blue eyes of his.
“I’d like that, Scotty”, I said, smiling.
Meanwhile in the back Megan and Jennifer were making kissing noises and giggling like crazy, I turned to Scotty.
“Do you have anything in here that I can hit my sisters with?”
“Well there is a baseball bat in the trunk, if you’d like, I’m more the willing to pull over.” Scotty said, then the two of us started laughing
“Hey Sis, that’s not funny!” Megan said with a mock look of disgust on her face that only made me laugh harder.
Jennifer looked over at Megan, “I think we’ve created a monster. “
“Yeah Jennifer, I think you’re right.” Megan said with a smile.
After we arrived at home, Megan and Jennifer carried my bags inside, while I stayed outside. Scotty and I talked for a bit. It was really nice seeing him again, and we made plans to take in a movie later in the week. This time, I gave him my phone number. After Scotty left and I went inside, I was hit with 101 questions, mostly form Megan and Jennifer, but when Mom came out she asked to talk to me alone. Megan and Jennifer headed upstairs to her room, and I took a seat on the couch with Mom. She smiled at me, so I knew that I wasn’t in trouble at least.
“I knew that the two of us would have to have this talk sooner or later, but I wasn’t expecting to do it now. I get the feeling that this is a good time, though.” Mom said.
“It’s just a date, we’re not going to be doing anything, Mom.” I said, looking into her eyes.
“I know honey, you may have spent most of your life living as a boy, but deep down you never really were a boy. Because of that you don’t really know much about how a boy reacts when he is attracted to a girl. I am not just talking about sexual contact, sweetheart. When a boy likes a girl, his emotions tend to lean him more toward physical contact, but for a woman, it’s more of an emotional connection. That’s not to say that physical contact isn’t important to us too, because it is a very important part of the relationship. You just need to be careful, honey.”
So much has happened to you, and the last thing you need is to get caught up with a guy that keeps you from thinking straight. You’re a normal girl now, in every way, baby. That means that you can also get pregnant, and believe me you are just learning what its like to be a teenage girl. The last thing you need is to become a mother, at least not yet, honey. I know that if you get involved with a boy, then eventually he is going to want you to have sex with him. All I ask is that you think things through before doing something you will regret later. If you choose to have sex, at least make sure you are on the pill, and he is wearing a condom.”
I looked at mom and smiled. “It’s all right, Mom. I promise that I will be careful. I know that I’m not ready to have sex with anyone. I just want what everyone else does, Scotty is a nice guy and he really likes me, and I have had this thing for him for ages. If it works out, then that will be nice. If not, I am sure someone else will come along.”I said with a smile.
Andrew’s Dilemma
Part 18
By, Cain129
Special Thanks to Wren Phoenix for the editing.
Synopsis: I’ve had a very strange and confusing life, and it’s never easy putting together the puzzle that had been made from it. Today, things are becoming much better, thanks to the people around me, but there’s still a void, though. It somehow continues to eat away at me. See, I’ve always had to pretend to be someone I really wasn’t, and I’ve never had a chance to really care about someone else. No one has ever really been close to me, especially when it came to my real ‘opposite sex”-you know, Boys!
I’m really no different from any other girl, and I have the same hopes, desires and feelings. I’ve just never really able to express them. Things are different now; there is no reason for me to be alone. Should I follow my heart? A part of me says yes, but there’s still that other little voice that says I’m really a fake, and not good enough. If I try to be the real me and share my heart, I’ll only get hurt. I’ve decided to take the risk; I choose to follow my heart.
Chapter 41
After leaving the Mall, Rocco decided to call a friend of his. He needed someone that could access the school’s computer, and he knew that it wasn’t him. He made a quick call to his friend Wayne, and they had agreed to meet outside the school. Being that it was a weekend, there would be no one there and the two of them could take their time.
Rocco took an experienced look at the school’s security system, and he had no trouble figuring out that all he had to do was cut the phone line. Even if the alarm went off, it wouldn’t be able to dial out and notify the security company that had the school’s contract. So after he cut the phone line, it was pretty much smooth sailing. Once the two of them were inside, Rocco finished disabling the alarm.
The two of them only had so much time before the security company would figure out that the connection to the school had been cut. They had to make the most of their time, and they headed to the school office. Wayne went to work, quickly breaking through the computer’s security. The first thing he tried was all the simple passwords that people tend to put on their systems. When that didn’t work he restarted the computer and put it in safe mode, which pretty much by bypassed the password but still didn’t give him access to the files. It did give him the ability to access the control panel, and from there he chose users and created a new account, then set himself up as an administrator. Once it was restarted, all he had to do was log into the new account that he’d just created. He then turned to Rocco. “Whoever locked down this computer was a complete moron.”
Wayne pulled a jump drive out of his bag and plugged it into the computers USB port. He copied the contents of the computers hard drive, which took about 15 minutes and while Wayne worked, Rocco kept an eye open for any trouble that might arise. It seemed to take forever but soon the computer made a beeping noise and a box popped up which said that the transfer was completed. Wayne unplugged it from the computer and placed the jump drive into his bag.
“Do we have everything?” asked Rocco.
“Yeah, all I have to do is plug the drive into my computer at home and we can access everything that was on the computer. C’mon, Rocco, let’s get out of here.” Wayne said, looking nervous as he closed his knapsack.
It only took them 20 minutes to drive to Wayne’s home. The first thing Wayne did was to start up the computer and while it was loading, he went into the kitchen and put on a pot of coffee.
“How long will it take for you to get the information off the drive?” Rocco asked, impatiently.
“Not very long. All I need to do is plug in the drive and do a search for the person that you are looking for. I have access to everything that was on the school computer.” Wayne said with a smile.
“I’m glad you’re working for me, Wayne.” Rocco said with a smile.
After the coffee was brewed and Wayne poured a cup for Rocco and himself, he took a seat in front of his computer and plugged in the jump drive. Soon another drive appeared on his computer which he clicked on and then turned to Rocco. “Alright we’re ready, who am I looking for ?” asked Wayne
“See what you can find on Andrew Roberts,” Rocco said as he took a seat next to Wayne and watched what his friend was doing.
It only took a few minutes before Wayne pulled up Andrew’s file. He turned to Rocco. “Okay, I found him. What do you want me to look for?” Wayne said.
“Check the last time he attended school.” Rocco said
“It’s been a little over a month since he was last in school. There is a note attached, lets see what is says.” Wayne read the note. “It says return date unknown, under a doctor’s care for attempted suicide. Shit man, what does Vincent want with this kid?” Wayne said looking worried.
The kid is the son of a dirt bag that he has working for him.” Rocco said,
Wayne looked at Rocco. “Please tell me you’re not going after this child?”
“That’s what Vincent wants me to do.” Rocco said
Wayne looked at Rocco.” C’mon, tell me you’re not going to do this!”
“Don’t worry, I have my own plans, Wayne. At the moment, I need to find out everything that I can about Andrew Roberts, including his whereabouts.” Rocco said frowning.
“Listen Rocco, whatever you’re planning, if you need me, I am there. Like you, I’ve had enough of Vincent, he’s done some stupid things before but this takes the cake, putting a hit on a child.” Wayne said in anger.
“The first step is to find out everything that we can, I have another name that I want you to check Wayne, see what you can find out about a Jessica Tanner.” Rocco said.
Wayne typed in the name and found nothing. He tried just the last name, and found Megan Tanner, but there was no Jessica. He turned to Rocco.
“There is no record of a Jessica Tanner on the computer.” He then went online and checked under birth records for a Jessica Tanner and came up with a huge list, he then turned to Rocco, “How old is she and what are her parents names?”
“I would guess she is around sixteen and her parents are Anthony and Janice Tanner.” Rocco told him.
Wayne put the new search parameters into the computer and the only birth record that came up was Megan Tanner. He then turned to Rocco.
“There is no Jessica Tanner at least until recently.” Rocco started putting the pieces together. Andrew Roberts and Jessica Tanner were probably the same person. He turned to Wayne.
“They’re the same person. Jessica is Andrew Roberts!” Rocco said in shock.
Rocco couldn’t believe it. The child he saw at the mall was definitely a girl. The way she walked, talked and expressed herself was perfect. There had to be more to this. He’d find out soon enough, but he knew that it was only a matter of time before Vincent figured out the truth. Especially considering how quickly it had been for Rocco to put the pieces together. He had to do something fast, if he was going to protect the child. Rocco really didn’t care how Andrew dressed. Whether male or female, that child was still in danger. If Jake found out that his son was dressed as a girl, he would likely loose it and really hurt the child, or worse. Rocco was determined not to let that happen.
Chapter 42
Sarah Roberts had been in the hospital now for a several days. The first few days had been the hardest for her, but she had continued to open up to Dr. Robbins. Each day the two of them spoke together, and he was able to draw more out of her. For the first time in her life, she felt comfortable talking about her past. Dr. Robbins mostly just listened and asked question every now and then, but didn’t pass judgment on her. She had spent the last couple of days reflecting over her life, just like she had been asked to by Dr. Robbins. She was starting to see things clearly.
She used to say that she would never be like her mother, and would always love and protect her children. Somewhere along the way, she had become just as bad as her mother was, if not worse. She had hurt her child, and there was no excuse for what she’d done. She had been so caught up in her own pain that she couldn’t see that her own child was in danger. Because of her inability to protect her child, she had lost him forever.
She knew that Andrew would never forgive her, how could he? She couldn’t forgive her own parents for the hell that they had put her though. All she could do now was take responsibility for her own actions, and maybe someday she would have a relationship with her child. That would be up to Andrew. She knew that there was nothing she could do that would make up for what had happened. Only time could possibly fix things.
Andrew may never want anything to do with her again, but she’d made up her mind that she could at least protect Andrew from Jake. She would keep what she suspected to herself. If Andrew was living as a girl, then Jake wouldn’t be hearing about it from her. There was nothing else that she could offer her son, other than her silence.
Dr. Robbins had visited her today and told her that she was free to go home if she wanted to. If she did, though, he told her that she would be leaving with many of the same problems that she had come into the hospital with. He gave her the choice to stay or leave. Sarah thought about what he said. She was depressed, but tired of being the victim. It was time for her to stop hiding and take responsibility for her own life. She chose to stay and continued with her treatment. After all, she felt that there was nothing and nobody waiting for her outside of the hospital.
[-][+][-]
It was around 6 pm when Jessica and Megan got to Jennifer’s home, carrying their sleeping bags and knapsacks. They were met at the door by Caroline, and once inside the girls set up their sleeping bags on the living room floor in front of the television.
“Alright girls, I have to make a trip, make yourselves at home and I’ll be back in about an hour with the pizza.” Caroline said with a smile.
After Caroline left and it was just the three of us, Jennifer said she wanted to bake some cookies. The three of us soon found ourselves in the kitchen making cookie dough, and between the three of us, we couldn’t make up our minds on what kind to make. I wanted peanut butter cookies Megan and Jennifer wanted chocolate chip, we eventually decided on peanut butter chocolate chip.
So after mixing the dough, we put it on two cookie sheets and placed it in the oven. While it cooked we headed into the living room and Jennifer put on some music and Megan and her started dancing. As for myself, well, I really didn’t know how to dance. It wasn’t long before the two of them dragged me into the middle of the room. They decided to teach me the moves, and soon all three of us were dancing and singing along to the songs together.
The three of us were dancing for awhile, when I heard my phone start ringing. I walked over to where I had left my purse and pulled out my phone and hit the answer button.
“Hello?” I answered, pleasantly.
“Hi, Jessica, it’s Scotty. What are you up too?”
“Hi Scotty, not much. We’re just over at Jennifer’s, having a sleep over. How are you doing?” I asked as I headed into the kitchen.
“I’m doing alright Jessica, I’d be better though if I could see you.”
“I guess that you’re going to have to wait.” I said smiling to myself.
“How long?” Scotty asked.
“Well, I have am free tomorrow.” I said, hoping he would be free.
“Cool! How about I pick you up after school, and we can grab a bite to eat?” Scotty suggested.
“Sure, that would be nice Scotty! I better let you go before Megan and Jennifer start making those annoying smooching noises again. I’ll see you tomorrow Scotty.” I said with a smile.
“Alright, have a good time tonight!” Scotty said
“You too, Scotty, bye!” I said, ending the call.
I was really happy as I walked over to the oven and checked the cookies. They were pretty much done, so I put on the oven mitts and took the cookie sheets out of the oven. Placing them on top of the stove to cool, I then turned the oven off. The cookies turned out pretty much perfect and I couldn’t wait to sample them, but I waited and joined Megan and Jennifer in the living room. Once I took a seat on the couch, Megan and Jennifer plopped down on the couch beside me.
“Alright, we want details, little sister.” Megan said with a smile.
“Scotty misses me!” I said, ecstatically.
“That’s fast, Jennifer.” said smiling
“Yeah, really fast!” Megan said, and then turned to me. “So when are you two going out?”
“He’s picking me up after school Monday, and taking me out to supper.” I said with smiling.
“It’s a shame, that you couldn’t wait until I got home Jessica, I would have given you a hand with your makeup.” Megan said
“You should give him a call tomorrow and put off meeting him for about an hour Jessica, that way Megan and I can help you get ready.” Jennifer said smiling
“I guess it wouldn’t hurt to make him wait another hour.” I said
“Cool, Jessica. It’s your first real date and Jennifer and I want it to be perfect” Megan said giving me a hug.
I thought about what they said. It was true, it was my first real date and it was with a guy that I was crazy about. Ever since he saved me from those nasty bullies, he had always been nice to me. Even when he found out that he was protecting another boy, but god bless him he wasn’t like the other kids at school that needed to pick on someone smaller then themselves just to feel good about himself.
The only thing that I wondered was if he would still want to date me if he knew the truth about who I used to be. There really was no reason to tell him right away. As far as I am concerned, I have always been a girl and no, I was no different then Megan or Jennifer. You never really know how people will take news like this and I am sure when I go back to school, there will be kids that won’t believe the truth. I would be honest with Scotty though, if the two of us really hit it off I will tell him everything.
Caroline arrived a few minutes later carrying the two pizzas in one hand and a bag in the other. I ran over to give her a hand, and took the pizzas into the kitchen. Megan and Jennifer went outside and helped Caroline bring in the rest of her bags. As I watched I couldn’t believe that she had done so much within an hour. After she was inside, we gave her a hand putting away the groceries and I turned to her.
“How did you manage to do all this within an hour?”
Caroline smiled. “It really isn’t that hard honey. I made a list ahead of time, and have been shopping at the same place for years. It’s pretty rare that I can’t find what I am looking for there. As far as ordering the pizza goes, I called it in at the super market and picked it up on the way home.
“Guess that I will give you an A+ for time management.” I said smiling
“I saw something while I was out, and picked it up for your mother. I thought she would get a kick out of it.” Caroline reached into her purse and handed me an envelope.
“Would you mind if I take a look?” I asked, being nosey.
“Sure go ahead Jessica.” Caroline said, smiling.
I opened the envelope and pulled out a card. It said “Congratulations, It’s a girl!” Below that was a picture of a baby girl, throwing a tantrum. The baby was evil and hitting the mother over the head with the baby bottle. I started giggling, and couldn’t stop. I handed it to Megan, and it wasn’t long before all of us were laughing.
After recovering, I looked over at Caroline. “Does this mean you think I’m a bad girl?”
Caroline laughed., “No honey, I just though your mom would get a kick out of it. When I saw it, just like you, I got a good laugh out of it.”
I giggled. “Yeah, it’s pretty funny, and she’ll love it.”
[-][+][-]
The rest of the night turned out to be lots of fun. We took turns doing each other’s makeup and hair, and even Caroline joined in. I learned quite a bit that night. We spent the rest of the night watching movies. It was around 2:30 in the morning before we actually fell asleep. Between the pizza, chips, soda and cookies, the three of us were on a sugar high.
It turned out to be a pretty good day and definitely a busy one for me. I had a great time, and it was so nice to just be a teenager and hang out with my friends again. Running into Scotty was also nice, and I was looking forward to our date. There was something that was really bothering me though. Have you even had that eerie feeling that something bad was about to happen? I had been having that feeling all day, and something just didn’t feel right. I hoped it was just paranoia and nothing else, but I just couldn’t seem to shake the feeling. Maybe all I needed was a good night’s sleep; at least, that’s what I hoped.
[-][+][-]
End of part 18
To be continued part 19
Andrew’s Dilemma
Part 19
By, Cain129
Special Thanks to Wren Phoenix for the editing.
Synopsis: Up to this point, Jessica has been kept safe from her father but a net is beginning to close around her, Rocco has figured out who Jessica really is, and her mother Sarah suspects that the girl she saw at the hospital was really Andrew. The question is, now that Rocco knows the truth that Andrew and Jessica are the same person, how long will it be before Vincent puts the pieces together and tells Jake.
Chapter 43
Jessica had a great time at the sleep over. More than anything, she was really excited about her date with Scotty. She found it so hard to believe that a little over a month ago she was living as a teenage boy. So much had changed in such a short time. Jessica always knew deep down that she wasn’t a boy, but she lived in a world that couldn’t accept the truth. Things were different now and her life would never be the same again.
“All right, Jessica, you can look now.” Megan said smiling.
I walked over to the mirror. When I saw my reflection it was hard to believe that the girl looking back was really me, and I couldn’t help but smile. I looked over at Megan and Jennifer.
“Thanks guys, it’s hard to believe this is really me.”
“Scotty’s gonna have a hard time keeping his hands off you, girl!” Jennifer said with a big smile.
“Yeah, she’s right, maybe I should lend you my pepper spray”, Megan said with a big smile.
“I’m not going to use pepper spray on Scotty! You never know though, he might be the one needing the pepper spray.” I said with an evil grin.
“Careful, Jessica, the last thing you need is to get a bad reputation.” Megan said looking very concerned.
I smiled. “I’m just kidding Megan! I don’t even know what to do on a date!”
“Just have fun and be yourself.” Jennifer said, as she put her arm around me. “You look beautiful, and Scotty would be really lucky to have a girlfriend like you.”
“Thanks Jennifer, but I think that I would be the lucky one, having a guy like him. I’ve always liked Scotty, and not just because he happens to be really handsome. Do you guys remember the day that those nasty bullies were beating me up, and Scotty stopped them? Even after he found out that I wasn’t a girl, he still protected me. I guess that was the day I really fell for him. He didn’t have to help me. Most guys would have just walked away, especially after finding out that I was a boy. I guess that I knew from that day on that Scotty was special, and it made me want him all the more. It hurt like hell, every time I saw him with another girl.
Megan smiled. “I hope that it works out for the two of you, Sis.”
“I hope so, too! The two of you would make a good couple.” Jennifer said
“I guess that we’ll just have to wait and see how things go between Scotty and me. Who knows the two of us may have nothing in common.” I said, frowning
Megan smiled. “Really Jessica, I don’t think that will be a problem. I’ve seen the way the two of you are together, there is definitely something there.”
“Yeah, ever since the day that he met you, he’s been asking about you.” Jennifer said smiling. “Like how soon were you coming back?”
[-][+][-]
I thought about what Jennifer said. I could tell that he liked me, just by the way he acted. I felt very nervous inside, and I had these butterflies in my tummy. It’s hard to explain, I guess. I’ve never really felt like this with anyone. I knew what I felt wasn’t love, at least, not yet. There was something between us though, that I knew for sure.
It was around 4 pm when Scotty arrived. Since Megan and Jennifer weren’t done working on me, Mom answered the door and let him in. They were sitting on the couch as I made my way downstairs. I had dressed casually. Mom had told me not to overdress for my first date. I had chosen to wear my black skirt and white blouse. I was still recovering from my operation, and uncomfortable wearing jeans.
As I followed Megan and Jennifer down the stairs, Scotty saw me and he stood up with a big smile.
“God, you look beautiful.” Scotty said, with a “cat that caught the canary” smile.
“Thanks, Scotty.” I said blushed. “You look pretty good yourself.”
“We should get going, before they give away our table”, Scotty said looking at his watch.
“All right.” I picked up my purse and was about to leave, when Mom came over. “Do you have your phone, baby?”
“Yes, Mommy, it’s charged and in my purse.” I said, smiling at her.
“Alright honey, if things don’t work out, call me and I’ll come get you.” Mom said, as she gave me a hug. “I love you, baby.”
My eyes were wet, but I smiled. “I love you more, Mom!”
[-][+][-]
After leaving the house, Scotty walked me to the car and opened my door. He helped me inside, and as I sat down, I felt a pull on my stitches. I winced at the sudden pain, and Scotty looked at me.
“Jessica, are you alright?” he asked, with a concerned look.
“Yeah, I just had surgery last week to fix a birth defect, and the stitches haven’t come out yet.” I didn’t want to explain any further.
“Well, if you need to stop and rest, let me know. The last thing that I want is to make you feel worse.” Scotty said thoughtfully.
I smiled. “Thanks, I’m alright, Scotty. So where are you taking me?” I asked him, to change the subject.
“Since it was our first date, I wanted to go somewhere decent. I have a friend that works over at the Keg Steakhouse, and he said they make excellent steaks. I hope you’re not a strictly veggie kind of girl, but if you are, that’s fine. They have salads and many other things there too.”
I smiled, “Steak’s fine with me, though I do love a good salad.”
“No problem, you can have both!” Scotty said, smiling
“So what do you like to do for fun, Jessica?” He asked.
I thought about it for a minute. Until recently I had been a loner and the only real outlet that I had was my computer. That wasn’t the person that I am now.
“I love music and I play the guitar and piano. Other then that, I mostly just hangout with my friends and see what happens. How about you, what makes your world rock?”
“I guess the both of us are into music. I play lead guitar for my band, but other then that, I play football and baseball. Guess you can say that I am kind of a sports nut.”
“I like baseball, but I’ve never liked football, really. It’s way too rough of a sport.” I admitted with a small frown.
“It’s really not that bad Jessica, everyone is pretty careful for the most part. You’re right; it is a lot more physical than most sports, other then maybe rugby. Now that’s much more dangerous than football! What kind of music are you into, Jessica?”
“I like pretty much anything, as long as you can make out what they’re trying to say, but given a choice, I would choose country, or some of the older rock. What about you, I’ll bet you like rock, Scotty.”
“There is some country I like, but for the most part yeah, I’m into rock and that is pretty much the kind of music we play in our band.”
[-][+][-]
Scotty and I arrived at the restaurant a few minutes later, and found a parking spot. Scotty came around to the passenger side and opened the door for me, and helped me out of his car. I thought to myself, whoever taught his guy manners had sure done a good job! As the two of us made our way to the restaurant, Scotty never released my hand, and to be honest, I really didn’t mind in the least. A girl could get used to this kind of treatment.
Once inside, the waiter saw us to our table and left us with our menus. I had pretty much already decided what I was going to have on the drive over, so I went straight to the desert menu and noticed that they had my favorite, cheese cake. When the waiter returned, I ordered a well cooked steak, Caesar salad and a piece of cheese cake for desert, along with a coke to drink. Scotty ordered the same but ordered a root beer instead of coke.
“I have to say that I was pretty happy when you said that you were staying, but I was pretty surprised that you are going to be living at Megan’s. I take it that things were not going very well with your parents?” asked Scotty.
“Things haven’t been good at home for along time, Scotty. It’s a little hard for me to explain right now but I am really happy to be living with Megan and her parents.”
“When will you be starting school Jessica?”
“To be honest with you, I really don’t know. At the moment I’m waiting for my transcripts, and there are a few other legal issues that Janice and Anthony need to take care of first. Once that’s done, I’ll be starting school, but I’m not sure what school I’ll be attending.”
“I thought that you and I would be going to the same school Jessica, considering that it’s where Megan and Jennifer are too.” He said, frowning
[-][+][-]
I was beginning to think that going out with Scotty might have been a mistake. Not that I didn’t like him, because I really did. I just wasn’t prepared to answer all his questions.
Scotty looked over at me, “Jessica, are you alright?”
I looked over at him. I knew that eventually I was going to have to be honest with him. It wasn’t fair to start a relationship with anyone based on lies and that’s exactly what I was doing with him.”
“I can’t do this Scotty, it’s not fair to you, and it’s not fair to me, either.”
“What are you talking about Jessica?”
“Listen Scotty, what I am going to tell you is really hard for me to say. I really like you and I don’t want to lie to you, so please just let me finish before you say anything. If you don’t want to be with me, then I will understand. Just promise me one thing, that what I’m going to tell you stays between the two of us, alright Scotty?”
“Alright Jessica, I promise. Now what’s bothering you?”
“First off, I’m not who you think I am, Scotty. I used to go by another name ‘til about a month ago, that’s when I started living as Jessica.”
“Please tell me that you’re not a guy?” Scotty said, looking worried
I looked at him, “No Scotty, I’m not a guy but I had to live the last 16 years as one. I was born with a medical condition that the doctors missed, and my parents raised me as a boy. When I reached my teens, my condition became more apparent and finally the doctors were able to figure out what was wrong. I recently had the surgery to correct the problem. I am just like any other woman now, I can even have a baby, if I wanted to Scotty”
Scotty looked at me. It was really hard to figure out what he might have been thinking, I just hoped that he didn’t walk out on me, but he looked at me, puzzled.
“So, are you someone I already know?”
“Yes, the two of us have met before, Scotty. I had a couple of bullies were beating on me, and you stepped in and stopped them.”
Scotty looked at me in shock, then said, “Andrew?”
“Yes, but please don’t call me that, I never was really a boy. I’m Jessica now, and Andrew is nothing more then a painful memory.”
[-][+][-]
“All right I’ll call you Jessica, but I have to admit, this is pretty hard to understand”
“Yeah? Try seeing it from my point of view, Scotty. I’ve always known that something wasn’t right. It wasn’t ‘til I became a teenager that I was able to piece everything together. At first, I thought that I was gay, but that didn’t make sense. Being a guy and being with one sexually felt wrong to me.
I read about transsexuals and that made more sense to me because everything fit, and until recently that’s what I thought was going on. A week ago, I had my first period and well, there was nowhere for it to go, and I ended up in the emergency room.
When they did the tests on me, they found that I was actually a girl all along! Because of my medical condition, my hormone levels were off, I was already developing as a girl, my hips were becoming wider and my breasts were growing, just a lot slower then they should have been for someone my age.”
Scotty looked at me, “It couldn’t have been easy for you to tell me this and I appreciate that you were honest with me. I know that by telling me this, you were taking a risk and I won’t tell anyone. I really doubt they would believe it anyway. Just look at you. I’m having a hard time believing it, myself. It really doesn’t change anything, though.
I’m a boy and you’re a girl. We can’t really change how we feel, or who we’re attracted to. I think that I have always known on some level that you weren’t a boy. That day I stepped in and stopped those guys from beating you up, I didn’t see another guy. I saw a girl that was in trouble and even after I thought I knew the truth it really didn’t matter. To be honest with you, I really don’t know where things are going to go between us Jessica. All I know is that I like you and I don’t care who or what you used to be, all that matters is who you are now.”
Hearing those words from Scotty brought tears to my eyes, I had told him the truth and he accepted me-not only that, he was still interested in seeing me! I had been worried that he’d think I was some kind of freak, but he choose to stay.
I looked at Scotty. “Thank you, I was so afraid to tell you. I was sure you would run.”
“What happened isn’t your fault, and I’d be a fool to walk away over something like that. Had you kept the lie up and told me later, I think there could have been a problem between the two of us. The truth I can handle, but what I can’t handle is being lied too. It’s a terrible way to start a relationship with someone.”
“All right Scotty, from now on I will be honest with you.”
“Good Jessica, because I’d really like to get to know the real you, and not someone you fabricated.” Scotty said, as he reached over and took my hand.
[-][+][-]
Chapter 44
The two of us talked throughout supper and he told me things about himself and I found myself really beginning to warm up to him all the more. He had this serious side to him that I really liked.
“Jessica I know that you are living with the Tanners now, but what happened between you and your parents?”
I looked at Scotty. “My parents and I have never really seen eye to eye. They tried to make me be someone that I really wasn’t. Let’s just say that there was a lot of emotional and physical abuse because I couldn’t live up to their expectations.”
“When it came to my father, he would have loved to have a son like you. You are everything that I wasn’t to him. For years, he tried to mold me to be exactly the kind of guy that you are, and it didn’t matter to him what I wanted. ”
“How do you’re parents feel about having a daughter?”
“They don’t know, Scotty. To be honest, I don’t really want anything to do with either one of my parents!
I pressed charges against them, and I imagine that I will be going to court soon, but things are much better now. Janice and Anthony are trying to adopt me, and I couldn’t ask for better parents.
They stood behind me through everything, especially the suicide attempt that started all of this in the first place. I also have some really good friends now. They know the truth, and they support me.” I said, smiling.
Scotty smiled, “You can count me as one of them now, Jessica.”
“Thanks Scotty, it really means a lot to me, knowing that I can count on you.”
“I’ve never really had anyone in my life that I could really depend on. At least, not until now! My parents were never really there for me, and I had no real friends to speak of, at least until recently.”
“It couldn’t have been easy for you, with everything you were going through, and having no one that you could turn to. I guess I’m lucky, my parents have always been there for me, even when I would do something stupid. They’ve always supported me and I can always turn to them.”
“It wasn’t easy, but thank god, things are different now and I never have to go back to the way things were.” I said smiling.
[-][+][-]
After Scotty paid the bill for our supper he took my hand and the two of us walked back to his car and like before being a perfect gentleman, he opened the door for me and helped me inside, then climbed in beside me.
Scotty looked over at me. “I really don’t want to take you home right now. It’s still early; do you feel like going to Gallager’s and grabbing a coffee?”
“Yeah, Scotty, I’d like that, but I should call home, so they know where I am.” I took my cell phone out of my purse and dialed home.
I waited as the phone rang though and Janice answered, “Hi mom, it’s me I just wanted to let you know that everything is alright, and that I am going to be a little later then planned. Scotty and I are heading over to Gallager’s to have a coffee and talk a little more.”
“All right honey, when can I expect you home?” Mom asked
“I’ll be back in a couple hours, Mommy. I told Scotty the truth and he’s fine with everything. I just thought it was the right thing to do.”
“All right honey, we‘ll talk about it when you get home.” Janice said ending the call.
I looked over at Scotty. “I don’t think that mom is happy that I told you.”
“She’s just worried that I might say something. When I bring you home, we’ll have a talk with her and I’ll let her know that she has nothing to worry about.” Scotty said smiling.
“Thanks Scotty, I think that would make a big difference.”
[-][+][-]
Gallager’s was pretty much a teen hangout, and just about everyone who was popular went there. This was my first time, in the past I’d avoided places like this because I had a target painted on my back. I’d had enough to deal with at school, keeping away from the bullies. The last thing that I’d wanted was to spend my nights hanging out in the same places that they went to. Things were different now; I was no longer that kid that they picked on. I doubted that anyone would clue in that I was ever Andrew Roberts. Especially with my new hair style and makeup, not to mention the way I now dressed.
It also helped that as the two of us made our way inside, Scotty had put his arm around me. This pretty much let everyone in the place know that we were an item. I really didn’t mind it. I was happy and enjoying every minute. Once inside I looked around the place and saw quite a few kids from school. There was a group of them that Scotty waved to as we made our way up to the counter; I noticed a few of them looking over at me. It felt kind of weird being stared at, but feeling Scotty’s arm around me made feel safe.
After ordering our coffees, Scotty and I made our way over to the table where his friends were sitting. It was pretty crowded, but Scotty managed to find two empty chairs and carried them over to the table. I pretty much knew everyone at the table. All the guy were on the football team with Scotty, and the two girls that were with them, Natasha and Britney, were on the cheerleading squad with Megan and Jennifer.
After the two of us took our seats at the table, Scotty introduced me.
“Guys, I’d like you to meet Jessica, she’s Megan’s cousin.”
“Hi, everyone!” I said smiling.
“Hi, Jessica, I’m Brian, and this is my girlfriend Natasha,” referring to the girl sitting next to him. “Across from me is Cliff and his girlfriend, Britney.“
“Where did you move from?” Natasha asked.
“I lived in Vancouver for about a year, but my parents tend to move around a lot. My dad is in the army, so I’ve never really had a permanent home.”
“That must have been hard, just settling in and making friends then, having to leave.” Britney said frowning.
“It’s pretty hard, but I got really tired of it and told my Aunt Janice that I couldn’t handle it anymore. She talked it over with the rest of the family, and it was decided that I’d move in with them. I’m pretty happy with the way things turned out.”
“So, I take it that you’ll be going to our high school then?” Cliff speculated.
“Most likely, but I am not sure when I’ll be starting. There are a bunch of legal papers that are being taken care of over my guardianship, and my transcripts still need to be transferred from Vancouver.” I said with a smile.
“Well, at least you have a vacation for now Jessica, but you will likely have a lot of catching up to do when you start school. If you need any help look me up. I am getting extra credit for tutoring, and I’m sure that I can work you in.” Natasha said
“Thanks Natasha, I’ll have to remember that.” I said
“You should consider trying out for the cheerleading squad Jessica! It’s a lot of fun and we get to travel a lot.” Britney said with a big smile.
“I thought the squad was already full?” Brian asked
Natasha looked over at Brian, “it is full but there is always room for a stand in, just in case one of us can’t make it or gets hurt at the game.”
“That makes sense.” Brian said, and then turned to me, “You should really consider joining it would be a great way to make friends, and Natasha is right, the road trips are a lot of fun. Sometimes they last the whole weekend and usually we all get together after the game and hangout.”
“I really don’t know if it’s for me, but I will consider it.” I promised with a smile.
“So what do you like then, Jessica?” Cliff asked. “Enquiring minds want to know!”
“I play guitar and piano. I guess Country is what I most like, but it’s all good if I like the sound of it.”
Brian smiled. “That’s cool, Jessica. You’re welcome to jam with Scotty and I anytime, although we play mostly newer rock.”
“Thanks Brian, I think that I’d enjoy that.” I said smiling.
[-][+][-]
Scotty and I stayed at Gallager’s for about an hour before we said our goodbyes. I’d never really taken the chance to get to know the gang before, but they were all nice, and I looked forward to seeing them again.
Scott looked over at me. “They like you Jessica, I can tell. The cheerleading squad doesn’t really need anyone; they have more then enough people. That was just an excuse to have you join them.” Scotty said smiling.
“I’m tempted, but it’s not really my thing, Scotty.”
“Maybe not before but it might be now, Jessica, I think you should give it a try, if you don’t like it, there are always other things you can try.” Scotty said as he reached over and held my hand and gave it a squeeze.”
[-][+][-]
After Scotty and I arrived at my home, he was true to his word and walked me to the door and followed me inside. As I predicted Janice was waiting for me in the living room. I could tell that she wanted to talk to me.
Scotty looked over at Mom, “Mrs. Tanner, would you mind if I stayed for a few minutes and talked to you about what Jessica told me?”
“Alright Scotty, please have a seat”, Janice said
Scotty took a seat on the couch next to me then turned to my Mom, “First off, I want to say that I have a lot of respect for you daughter. It wasn’t easy for her to tell me the truth, but I’m happy that she did. I like Jessica a lot and I understand how important it is that we keep the truth a secret. I give you my word that I will not tell a soul, not even my parents and believe me when I say this, she is safe with me! I know who she used to be, but even then I never saw her as a boy, to me she was always a girl, maybe a troubled one, but a girl all the same. I know the truth, and I still want to continue seeing her.
Janice looked at the young man in front of her, she could tell that he was being honest with her, and that he truly cared for Jessica. This bothered her, because Jessica was still very fragile. Here, though, was a young man that was truly interested in her daughter, one who knew the whole truth and still wanted to date Jessica.
She knew that eventually Jessica would start dating boys, but she wasn’t counting on it being so soon. There was so much that she needed to teach her about being a woman, and dating boys was a big part of that. How could she tell Jessica that most of the time, boys her age tended to think with their little head, and not the one on their shoulders, when sitting on the couch beside her was a young man that went against that very argument?
She looked at Scotty,” I can tell that you are telling me the truth. I still don’t think it’s a good idea for Jessica to be dating anyone, but if she really wants to go out with you then I’m not going to stand in her way. I just ask that you remember that if people find out about who she was, then her life could be a living hell.” Janice said frowning.
“Whatever happens between Jessica and me, Mrs. Tanner, you can trust that I will protect her.” Scotty promised, as he reached over and took my hand.
“I believe you, Scotty and I’m putting a lot of faith in you. Please don’t let me down.” Janice said
[-][+][-]
After the three of us finished our talk, I walked Scotty outside. He smiled.
“I guess everything’s going to be alright, now. “
“Yeah, thanks to you Scotty.” I said with a big smile.
“I should get going Jessica; I have a test that I need to study up on for tomorrow. If you are not doing anything tomorrow, why don’t you come to the game? I would love to have you there.” I smiled, “I hate football, Scotty, but I will be there for you.”
“I guess that I will see you then!” He said, looking into my eyes. He didn’t seem to be in any hurry to leave, “I had a great time tonight, Jessica.”
“I did too, Scotty.” I said, wishing he would just hurry up and kiss me already!
It didn’t take him very long. When we looked into each others eyes, he finally made his move. When his lips touched mine, it was instant sparks and it wasn’t long before he was holding me is his arm. The kiss seemed to go on forever and I even went weak in the knees. When it finally ended, I found myself short of breath, with my heart beating in overdrive. If there had been a mirror in front of me, I was sure I must have been a real sight to the eyes.
[-][+][-]
I was kind of sad, seeing him go. I knew I’d see him again tomorrow, but that was a small consolation. As I walked in the door, I saw Mom and Megan, running from the window over to the couch. They’d been watching the little show Scotty and I had been putting on. I didn’t really care one bit, as I flopped down on the couch next to Mom. I looked over at Megan and Mommy, “What an AWESOME night!”
End of Part 19
To be continued in part 20
Special Thanks to Wren Phoenix for the editing.
Synopsis: Jessica’s first date turned out to be a success, and she found in Scotty someone that she could confide in. Although she was afraid the truth would have driven him away, she choose to be honest, and in the end he understood and still wanted to see her. Janice was not happy that Jessica had chosen to tell Scotty the truth, mostly out of fear. After talking with Scotty, though, she realized that he was truly interested in Jessica, and keeping the two of them apart would have been a mistake.
Chapter 43
Shortly after arriving home from my date with Scotty, I found myself pretty much lost in my own little dream world. Tonight had been my first kiss and it was like nothing I had dreamt it would be. I’ve never experienced anything like it before. It was as though electricity was running through me, it made my heart kick into over drive and when it was finally over, I could barely stand because it had taken my breath away.
“Come on, Sis,” Megan cried, “I want details!”
She grabbed me by the hand and dragging me up stairs to her bedroom. I took a seat on her bed and looked over at her.
“What do you want to know?”
“Everything, Jessica.” Megan said with a big smile.
I told Megan everything that had happened, including meeting up with Brian, Cliff, Britney and Natasha. She was a little surprised that I told Scotty the truth and like mom she was worried, but she knew Scotty well enough that if he gave his word on something, he could be trusted. She was glad that I had become friends with Britney and Natasha.
“So what do you think about their offer to make you a stand in?” asked Megan.
“I’m glad that they offered, but I’m not sure if it’s for me. Scotty thinks I should at least give it a try, though.”
“Scotty’s right, Jessica. It may turn out to be something you really like. Besides, you already know four members, it’s not like you would be starting alone.” Megan said
I thought about what Megan said. It might be fun, especially going on the road trips and hanging out after the games. Maybe the problem was that I was such a loner for so many years that I just couldn’t picture myself being a cheerleader. Especially when you consider that one of the requirements was that you had to do the routines in front of a stadium full of people that were watching your every move. I guess there was a big part of me that still feared change.
“You’re thinking about it, aren’t you Jessica?” Megan asked.
I looked over at Megan, “Most of my life I’ve been a loner. I spent most of my time hiding from everyone and everything, that’s part of the reason I’ve survived as long as I have. Things are different now and I am different, but some things will take time. I still have that voice inside me, telling me that I’m not good enough, if I do this, people will find out the truth. I’m terrified of losing everything and having to go back to what my life was like before.
Megan put her arm around me. “I know that you’re scared Jessica, but try to look at what you stand to lose if you walk away from this opportunity. The only way you are going to move forward and become the person that you want to be is by taking risks. Just like you did tonight with Scotty. If you ask me, you took a huge risk telling him the truth, but you did it and it worked out fine. Who knows, you may have gained a boyfriend because of it.” Megan said with a big smile.
What Megan said was true. I was scared, but telling Scotty the truth had been the best thing that I could have done. If things had fallen apart, it would have been worse for him to find out the truth from someone else. I really didn’t want that to happen and being honest with him had worked out for the best.
“Well Megan, I think I’m going to call it a night, it has been a long day and I really need the rest, besides, you have school in the morning. Goodnight, Megan, and thanks for helping me get ready for my date.
“That’s what sisters are for Jessica! I’ll see you in the morning.” Megan said as she gave me a hug. “I’m really happy for you Sis, Scotty’s a good catch.”
“Yeah, he is, but I’m still waiting to wake up and find out this is all a dream.” I said with a smile.
It really didn’t take me very long before I was asleep, I guess that I was very tired and as soon as I changed into my nightgown and hit my pillow, I was asleep. I dreamt of being with Scotty.
[-][+][-]
Chapter 46
It was 8am when Sarah pulled herself out of bed. She had been awakened when one of the hospital staff came into her room carrying a breakfast tray. Since the day that she’d been admitted to the hospital, Dr. Robbins had put her on antidepressants. They did seem to help, but had an unfortunate side affect of making her sleepy most of the time. Sarah really couldn’t complain though, they seemed to be working and her daily talks to Dr. Robbins also seemed to help. There was one area of her life that was really bothering her.
One thing about being in the hospital, especially a psychiatric ward, is that you have plenty of time for self reflection. Sarah was no different than anyone else. She carried a lot of baggage from her childhood, marriage and most importantly, being a mother. That’s the part of her life that bothered her the most. Being away from her husband and the stress of that relationship, she was finally able to see things as they really were. She only wished that this realization had come earlier. She had to take responsibility for her own actions, realizing that not everything that happened to her child had been Jake’s fault. She had also played a part in it. Sarah could see that now, but the question was, what could she do to make amends.
She wanted desperately to tell Andrew how sorry she was for everything that she had done. How can you make amends for a lifetime of pain and neglect? At first, it had been easier to blame Andrew for everything that had happened. It was easier then accepting the truth, that she had been responsible for much of it. How many times had she cried out to her own mother, begging her for protection from the emotional and sexual abuse, but her pleas for help went unanswered? How could a mother allow their child to be hurt like this and do nothing to stop it?
Growing up, Sarah used to say that when she was a mother, she would be everything that her own mother wasn’t and truly believed every word she said. Looking back over the years though, somehow she turned out just like her Mother, if not worse, if that was even possible. Sarah had become the person that she hated most, she still blamed her father for what he had done, but her Mother could have taken her away from her father. She had refused to believe that anything was wrong.
Dr. Robbins felt that attending a support group the hospital held on Monday afternoons would be a good place for her, and she was due to attend her first meeting later in the afternoon. A part of her was afraid to go. She really didn’t want to talk about her problems, other than with Dr. Robbins. He insisted that he could not always be around when she needed to talk, and that she needed to know other woman that had been through similar things. She could see the logic in what he said, but it still scared her.
[-][+][-]
I woke up at 9am. I’d slept well although my dreams had been disturbing. I dreamt that I was at a football game watching Scotty. I was with Megan and Jennifer, standing on the sidelines wearing this skimpy little cheerleading uniform, cheering along with everyone and having a great time. Then I heard a familiar voice coming from the bleachers, and there was my father. He was screaming at me, telling everyone that I was his faggot son, and not really a girl.
I remembered screaming back at him to leave me alone, that I really was a girl. Then from out of nowhere, Steven and Dennis, the dreaded bullies that had been after me for years were holding me down, and before I knew what was happening, they had exposed me to everyone! As I screamed for help, I saw that the dreaded worm was back and I was no longer a girl, just a boy dressed as one. Everyone was laughing, and when I looked over to Scotty for help he just turned his back and walked away.
It really bothered me. At first the dreams had been wonderful, and I had everything that I ever wanted, then everything changed into a nightmare. When I woke up I was pretty upset and I even checked, but sure enough the worm was still gone, thank God. It took me a little while before I pulled myself together. I made my way into the bathroom and ran a hot shower, which seemed to help calm my nerves some. After drying off I changed into just a tee-shirt and a pair of jeans. They were a little uncomfortable at first, but once I moved around a bit, they really weren’t that bad.
I grabbed my makeup bag and used the mirror in the bathroom to do my makeup. I really had no plans ‘til later in the day, so I just went light with some lipstick, blush and mascara. When I was satisfied with the results, I put everything back in my makeup bag and placed it back in my room, then made my way over to the kitchen. I found Mommy sitting at the table having her first coffee of the day, I guess that Megan had all ready left for school; otherwise she would have been in the kitchen, having breakfast. Mom looked up at me as I entered the kitchen.
“Good morning, Sweetheart,” she said with a warm smile.
“Good morning, Mommy.” I grabbed a bowl from the cabinet and filled it with cereal and joined her at the table.
“How did you sleep, honey?” asked Mom.
“Good at first, then everything went straight to hell,” I said as I poured some milk into my bowl of cereal.
“Do you want to talk about it, honey?” She asked.
I gave a quick recap of my nights dreams, and how I felt after waking up. Mom just listened until I was finished before saying a word. She turned to me.
“I think you are just worried honey. There’ve been many changes recently and with everything that is going on with your birth parents, it’s understandable that you are afraid they are going to somehow mess things up. I think once you go to court and able to confront them, these nightmares will stop.” Mom said
“I guess you’re right, I just wish it was over with.”
“Be patient, honey. It will happen. Do you have anything planned for today, Jessica?”
“Not really, other then going to the football game after school is out. When is Dad supposed to be coming home, I kind of miss him.”
“He called last night, honey, things are taking longer then he expected. It looks like it will be another couple of days before he is home, but the good news is that he has nothing planned for the next couple of weeks. We should be seeing much more of him,” she said happily.
“That’s good to hear, I was hoping we could practice for the festival this week.”
“I’m sure that once he’s home, the two of you will have plenty of time to practice!” Mom said with a big smile. “I have a few errands to run this morning, honey, you’re welcome to join me, if you don’t want to just sit around the house.”
“Where are you going?” I asked
“I have to make a trip to see our lawyer, Bill. He called last night; your name change has gone through, so you’re officially Jessica Dawn Roberts, and he has your new birth certificate that is under your new name and sex.”
“Why am I listed as Roberts, and not under Tanner?” I asked Mom
“Bill’s still working on the adoption, honey. When that goes through, we’ll have the last name changed to Tanner.”
“How long will it take for the adoption?”
“The courts have already signed over full custody, honey, so I’m hoping that the adoption won’t take too long. It’s up to the courts, and they tend to have there own schedule.” Mom said, frowning.
[-][+][-]
After I finished breakfast, I did up the dishes, and then we headed into town. The drive took us about a half hour before we arrived at Bill’s office. Mom and I made our way inside and were met by Elaine, Bill’s secretary. She asked us to have a seat and she would let Bill know that Mom and I had arrived. We waited for a few minutes, and then Bill came out of his office and told us to come inside.
Once we took a seat, Bill looked over at me and smiled. “It’s nice to finally meet you, Jessica.”
“It’s nice to meet you too, Mr. Jonah.” I said with a smile.
“Please, call me Bill, Jessica. I have been friends with the Janice and Anthony for years, so there’s no need to be formal, we’re all friends here.”
I smiled “Alright, Bill.”
He turned to Janice. “All the paperwork for Jessica’s adoption is pretty much done and ready to be sent out to the courts. I just need you to sign the forms and I will have Elaine fax them to child services.” He reached over and picked up a folder that was lying on his desk, and then handed it to me.
When I opened the envelope, inside was a new birth certificate and social insurance number. He smiled at me; you are now legally Jessica Dawn Roberts, well, for now anyway. Once the adoption goes through, we’ll arrange to have your last name changed to Tanner. It took a little work but all your school records have been changed to reflect your new identity.
I smiled as I looked at my new identifications cards, “Thank you so much, Bill! This means so much to me.”
“It’s not a problem, I was happy to help.” Bill said with a smile.
Mom and I stayed for another 20 minutes after finishing signing all the papers and talked. I could see why they were such good friends. Bill had a way about him that just seemed to draw people out of their shell.
It wasn’t long before Mom and I had to say our goodbyes, she still had some errands to run before heading back home.
“Feel like making a stop at Starbucks, honey?” asked Mom.
“Sure, I could use something to drink,” I said as I looked at my new id cards.” Guess I’ll need to get my beginners again, if I want to be able to drive.”
“You have plenty of time for that Jessica, but you’re right, it wouldn’t be good if you were stopped using your old driver’s license. “
Chapter 47
Mom and I were sitting at Starbucks having a coffee when her cell phone started ringing. She reached into her purse, took it out, and hit the answer button.
“Hello?”
“This is Dr. Humphrey’s office, calling for Janice Tanner.”
“This is Janice, how can I help you?”
“We had a referral come in from Dr. Masters for Jessica Roberts. I’m calling to setup an appointment for Jessica.”
“Alright, sure just give me a second, so I can write this down.” Mom pulled her agenda out of her purse. “Alright go ahead.”
“There was a cancellation for today at 11am, if you could make it then I could squeeze Jessica in, otherwise the soonest we can get her in is in 3 weeks time.”
“Jessica, there’s a cancellation for 11 this morning at Dr. Humphrey’s office. I have an appointment, but I could drop you off first. Would that be all right with you? Otherwise it will take 3 weeks for you to get back in to see the doctor.”
“It’s alright, Mom. Just drop me off. I can always get a cab home when I’m done.”
Mom went back to the phone. “Alright, I will drop Jessica off for 11 am.”
“I guess we have an hour before the appointment.” I said, and took a drink of my coffee.
“Yeah honey, but it will take us about a half hour for us to get to the hospital from here. I think that we should get going.” She said, looking at her watch.
[-][+][-]
Mom was right, it took us a half hour to make the drive to Dr. Humphrey’s office, and as she was pulling into the parking lot, it looked full.
“Sorry honey but there doesn’t seem much in the way of parking, are you going to be all right going in on your own?
“Sure Mom, I’m a big girl now, I think that I can handle it.”
Mom reached into her purse then took out twenty-five dollars. “This should be enough to cover a cab and also give you a few bucks to grab a bite to eat, I will see you at home honey.”
She leaned over and gave me a hug and kiss.
[-][+][-]
I still had sometime to kill, so I decided to hit the hospital cafeteria and grab a quick bite to eat, so I made my way over to the elevator. I pressed the third floor button, and the elevator made its way too the third floor. I wondered if Amy was working today, I had been meaning to give her a call but so much had been happening. I just never seemed to get around to it. I decided that I would give her a call after my appointment and see if she had any plans for the weekend. It would be nice to maybe get together and take in a movie or just hangout.
After arriving at the cafeteria, I looked at the menu, decided on something light, and ordered the chicken salad sandwich, fries and a coke. After paying the cashier, I made my way over to one of the open tables and took a seat. I was not really looking forward to talking to anyone about my past. All I really wanted to do was move on and put the past behind me. The only problem was, what had happened in the past did have an effect on me, even though I was not letting it get to me. I was still having the nightmares because of the way my birth parents treated me. I hoped that pressing charges against them would help end this, but that wasn’t going to be enough. I knew the only way to find closure would be to confront my birth parents.
After finishing my dinner, I took my phone from my purse and sent Amy a text message.
“Amy, hope U R doing well, I’m fine just 8 then seeing doctor. Wood like to C U maybe get together on wknd and do sumthng if U R free. Will call U L8r, Love sis”
[-][+][-]
It took me a little while before I found Dr. Humphreys office, but once I saw the receptionist and walked over to her desk, “Hi I’m Jessica, I have an appointment to see Dr. Humphrey at 11 am.”
“Hi Jessica, I’m Elaine, it’s nice to meet you. All I need is your health card and I have some papers for you to fill out.” Elaine said with a smile.
“There might be a problem with that.” I said, reaching into my purse, pulling it out and handing it to Elaine.
Elaine took the card, then looked at it and shook her head in disbelief. “I’ve seen transgendered patients before, but never in a million years would have thought that you were one of them, you carry yourself really well.”
I smiled. “I’m not transgendered, Elaine, although I thought that I was for a few years. The truth is that I have a medical condition that caused doctors to believe that I was male. I always knew that I was a girl deep down, but until recently there was no way of proving it.”
“What happened, if you don’t mine me asking?” Elaine said with a frown.
“I’d been getting terrible cramps that turned out to be my period, and because I was born deformed, there was nowhere for it to go. I ended up in the hospital, and after they sent me for the ultrasound they were able to see that I was really a girl.”
“Sounds like you’ve been through an awful lot Jessica. Knowing you were a girl and having to live all those years as a boy must have been hell for you.” Elaine said sympathetically
“It wasn’t easy but things are much better now.” I said smiling
“I’m happy for you Jessica. I better get you to fill out the questionnaire while I figure out how to charge Medicare for your visit, considering Andrew Roberts no longer exists.” Elaine said handing me a clipboard and a pen.
After taking a seat I looked over the questionnaire, it asked an awful lot of questions, and it would take a little while to complete. I started on the first question.
[-][+][-]
Have you felt sad or irritable for at least two weeks? 1. Yes Have you lost interest in activity’s you once enjoyed? 1. Yes 1. Yes Have you had difficulty sleeping or oversleeping? 1. Yes Have you had a loss of energy? 1. Yes Have you feelings of worthlessness or inappropriate guilt? 1. Yes Have you had difficulty concentrating? 1. Yes Have you had recurrent thoughts of death or suicide? 1. Yes Have there ever been any physical confrontations or threats between you and your parents, Do you ever feel afraid of a family member? Tell me about the time you felt most afraid. Has anyone ever caused you to feel threatened or harassed by following you? Has there ever been an order that was meant to limit contact between the two of you, Are you afraid that someone will harm you? Do you think you will be able to speak up for yourself?
After I finished the questionnaire, I handed it back to Elaine, then returned to my seat and waited. I really didn’t have to wait very long before a middle aged woman came out of her office. “Jessica Roberts?” She said with a smile. “Hi, I’m Jessica,” I said with a smile. “It’s nice to meet you, Jessica, you can call me Beth. Let’s go into my office and the two of us can get to know one another.” Beth and I made our way into her office. Once the two of us took a seat, Beth smiled. “Tell me what brings you here. Jessica?” “I really don’t know where to begin, to be honest. I just wish that I could put the past behind me, I’ve tried but it’s not that easy. There always seems to be something that comes up, and it’s like I am reliving what happened all over again. The dreams have been the worst though.” “Tell me about your dreams,” Beth said “They’re always different, but pretty much end the same way, with my father showing up and then everything goes to hell.” “I looked at the questionnaire you filled out Jessica, and with what you’ve been through, you can’t expect to just walk away and forget what happened. It will always be a part of your life. If you work at it though, you can learn to live with what happened and become a stronger person because of what happened.” “It’s hard, though. There are times that I feel like he is watching me and just waiting to strike. I just wish that he could have just accepted me for who I was, but instead he made my life a living hell.” “Why do you think he was pushing you so hard, Jessica?” “Dad wanted the perfect son, someone that was just like him and he wasn’t willing to take no for an answer. I think that he thought that if he pushed me hard enough, I would cooperate with his plans for me. When I didn’t live up to his exceptions, he would get mad and say that I was useless and that I’d never amount to anything. The sad part was, I did try to be the son that he wanted to be. I loved my Dad, and God help me, I still love him! I just wished that he could have loved me, but to him I was a complete disappointment.” Beth handed me some tissue, I couldn’t help but cry as I told her about my life. The more I talked about it. The more I found myself reliving the pain that I’d buried. I’d hoped that I could just leave it in the past but the truth was all that pain and suffering was just waiting for a chance to break free. Andrew and I were the same person and just because I changed my name didn’t mean that I could walk away from who I really was. All that I had experienced was a part of me now and it always would be. Somehow, I had to learn to come to terms with it. After I calmed down some, Beth asked me, “What was your relationship like with your mother like Jessica?” “Mom and I were not very close, as much as I wished we were, but I really didn’t know anything was missing ‘til I moved in with the Tanner’s. When they decided to adopt me, it was the second happiest day of my life.” “What was the happiest day of your life?” She asked. “The happiest day of my life was when Dr. Masters told me that I had been a girl all along. I always knew deep down that I was, but hearing it said aloud validated that what I had known was true. I knew there was no possible way that I could have ever lived up to my father’s expectations. I was never a boy, so how could I ever really understand what it meant to be one?” “Let’s get back to your relationship with your mother, Jessica” “Like I was saying, Beth, when I first moved in with the Tanner’s, it was a bit of a shock for me. I didn’t know how a real family was suppose to act with one another, but one of the first things that I noticed was how close Megan was with Janice and Anthony and how they treated her. At first I was jealous of the love they seemed to share with one another, I never had that kind of relationship with my own parents and wished more then anything that I had parents like Janice and Anthony. Over time they opened their hearts to me and accepted me as there daughter, and for the first time in my life I felt what it was like to really be loved and accepted for who I was. They didn’t care whether I was male or female, they just loved me unconditionally, without expecting anything in return.” I couldn’t help it, I found myself overrun by emotion and broke down crying. It took me a little while to pull myself together, but eventually I did. I turned to Beth, and apologized. “Sorry, I’m not usually this emotional.” “Don’t be sorry honey, everyone cries when they’re in pain. Holding it inside is the worst thing you can do.” Beth said sympathetically “I do think that you’ve had enough for today Jessica, but I think it would do you some good to join a group that deals in emotional and physical abuse. There is one here in the hospital that meets on Mondays. I think being around other people that have been through what you have can help you. Would you be interested in attending?” Beth said with a smile “I guess so, but I don’t think that I’m really able to talk about what happened in front of everyone, Beth.” “You don’t have to talk, just listen to what they have to say. I think you’ll find it helpful and maybe make a few friends that understand what you are going through.” Beth suggested. “Alright, I’ll go, Beth.” I promised, feeling very nervous. “I’ll give them a call and let them know that you’re coming. The meeting is at 2pm, can you make it?” asked Beth “Yes I have no plans, I’ll be there.” “Alright Jessica, I want to see you once a week for now, but if anything comes up in between, you can always call and I will try to squeeze you in.” She said with a smile. “Thanks Beth, I feel like crap, but I know it helps being able to talk about it.” “Be patient, honey, it will get better. You’ve been through quiet a bit and it’s the emotional scars that take the longest to heal.” [-][+][-] Chapter 48 After making an appointment for next week, I spent almost 10 minutes in the bathroom. I looked like a bloody raccoon, my mascara had been running like crazy and using the tissue only managed to spread it out. “Reminder to self, buy waterproof next time.” After cleaning up, I redid my makeup. I then made my way outside the hospital, and took a walk. I needed to clear my mind some. It had been a rough session with Beth, but I really did believe that seeing her was important. I made my way over to Starbucks and ordered a coffee, then found a quiet place to sit and tried not to think about my session with Beth. The last thing I needed to do was breakdown crying again. I took my phone out of my purse and notice there were two messages, one from Amy, which was a response to the one I sent her earlier saying she would love to get together on the weekend and the other one was from Scotty. I smiled as I read that one. Sttng in histry bored 2 Deth rather be thnkng of future wth U, miss U hope 2 C U @ game Reading his text brought a smile to my face and I sent a reply. U R rlly sweet ben hvng ruff dA, Cing UR txt makes big smile. I miss U more. will take cab aftr mting, but need U to take me home I hit the send button, and a few minutes later I got a response back from Scotty. No prob, but mting guys @ Gllgr’s ftr game I sent a replay back Fine w me, room 4 Megan / Jennifer ? I said hitting the send button. A few minutes later I got another message from him, Ys hon lots . Got 2 go f Tch C txt will take phone, C U @ game I sent a quick reply. C U I thought for a minute what it would be like to put a cell phone in a time capsule, so the people in the future could read the texts, and see what was the caused the total destruction of the writing language. I looked at the time it was already 1:45pm, so I had to get going, as it was I would likely just make it back in time. I placed my phone back into my purse and picked up my coffee, then walked back to the hospital. The walk took me a little longer then I had expected and I arrived 5 minutes late. It was all women, which made me feel a little better and we were sitting in a circle. There were a few chairs still empty, in case there were more people to come. Everyone seemed friendly and welcomed me. Once the meeting started, everyone went around the circle introducing them self and when my turn came I said Hi and told them my name. After the introductions were finished, the meeting started. [-][+][-] As the first woman started, she talked about being in an abusive relationship where her husband was a heavy drinker and would take his anger out on her when he came home and things didn’t go the way he wanted. I was really starting to get into what she was saying and there was a part of me that understood because I knew what it was like, it had also happened to me. It was at that point though that my concentration was broking. Three women had entered the room. The third one bothered me the most. It was my mother. The two of us locked eyes on one another, mom looked shocked to see me but I felt nothing but anger toward her. I looked over at the one that had been talking and said sorry, “I liked what you said but I can’t stay, not if that bitch is going to be here.”, I said coldly. Mom looked shaking by the hatred that I had for her. The woman that had been running the meeting stood up; maybe you should go Jessica if you are going to talk like that, she has every right to be here. I looked at the woman, was angry, and totally lost it. “That woman is my mother, and the reason I was abused, and that bitch did nothing, she just let it happen and you are telling me to leave.” I said clenching my fists in anger. Everyone was staring at Mom and I, not really knowing what to say, I really do not think that they ever had anything like this happen before. Nevertheless, the woman that was running the meeting still had to have some kind of order in the room. It was Mom that spoke next, what she said surprised the hell out of me. I thought she was going to out me but she didn’t. Mom looked at me and took a deep breath, “Let her speak, everything she saying is true, I let it all happened. I married a monster, he was very abusive towards her, and I should have stopped him, and taken her out of the home. I know it doesn’t change anything, but I am sorry and if I could honey I would take back everything that I did to you. “It’s way too late for that Mom, but I would like to know how you could let dad hurt me like he did.” I said frowning, and took a seat before falling. I was emotionally exhausted. Mom looked over at the woman running the meeting, “Is it alright if I speak, she will never forgive me but she deserves to know the truth.” The woman nodded, I think mostly because she wanted to know the truth herself. Mom looked over at me, “I didn’t expect to have to talk this soon, but I’ve been sick for along time. Your grandfather abused me, he used to come into my room at night, he did bad things to me, and like your father, he was a heavy drinker. He hurt me bad and I never recovered. This went on for years and I had no one to turn to. I was always afraid. He used to tell me that if I told anyone, no one would believe me. I tried talking to your grandmother about what was happening, but she was no help. She didn’t believe me and I had no one then. not even your aunt Janet. She ran away because your grandfather abused her also. The only difference between your aunt and me is she got help and I buried what happened in the past and pretended it never happened. I used to say I would never be like my parents and I would protect my kids but somehow along the way I turned into your grandmother.” Mom said crying. “…God, I am so sorry baby.” I sat there, shocked at what Mom said. It didn’t make what she did right, but I could understand for the first time why my mom was so screwed up. She was just as much a victim as I was. I wondered for years why I had never seen my grandparents, and I knew the reason why now. My grand parents were monsters just like my father. I looked over at Mom, there was this part of me that felt sorry for her and what she had been through. It couldn’t have been easy for her. I could see now that she was in just as much pain as I was. I looked over at Mom, “I am sorry for what granddad did to you, but it doesn’t make what you did right. You choose to marry dad, you knew he was abusive and it was your responsibility to protect me. I might be able to forgive you someday for what happened but I can never forget, I will have to carry those scars for the rest of my life just like you have to carry yours, Mom.” Mom looked at me. “I don’t expect you to forgive me, not after everything that has happened, but I want you to understand something, your secret is safe. I am done with your father; he will never know that I’ve seen you. Just promise me one thing, have a happy life, and continue getting help, don’t follow my example. Holding everything inside will only destroy you and hurt everyone you love.” I looked over at Mom. “I promise.” I said as I wiped the tears from my eyes. I stayed for the rest of the meeting and listened but had a hard time concentrating. After the meeting was over, Mom came over to me and asked if she could talk to me alone before I left. I nodded and the two of us went to the back of the room were we could talk alone. Mom looked at me. “I saw you outside, the day that I was admitted. You were outside sitting with a friend. When I saw you of course, you looked different but you were happy, that was the first time that I saw the real you. I saw a beautiful young woman, not the son that I thought that I had.” I looked over at her. “My name is Jessica now, and I was always a girl. Mom, do you remember me complaining about those nasty cramps that I was having? They weren’t cramps, Mom, they were the start of my periods. When you saw me outside that day, it was because I was brought into emergency and when the doctors did the x-rays, they found out I had a rare medical condition that made me look like a boy. That was why I could never please Dad. I was a girl all along, it was impossible to be what he wanted me to be.” Mom looked at me, amazed.“I should have listened to you.” I turned to Mom. “There were so many things you should have done Mom, but I am too emotionally drained right now to fight anymore.” “I am too, Jessica. As soon as I get back to my room, I think that I will end up sleeping the rest of the day.” Mom said “What are you doing here anyway?” I asked. “I was going completely crazy, Jessica. I went to stay with your Aunt Janet, and ended up cutting myself. She dragged me here, she thought I was suicidal.” “Were you really thinking of killing yourself”, I asked Mom turned to me, crying. “Yes, I was completely lost and your suicide attempt was the start of it. At first, I blamed you for what happened, because the police were involved and your father and I were going to end up in jail. Then he left and I haven’t seen or heard a word from him since he left. I think you need to be careful Jessica; your father is planning something. He’s crazy and he won’t listen to the truth. I’m willing to accept going to jail for what I did, Jessica, but he’s not. “Thanks Mom, I will talk to the police, but I better get going, I have to meet my boyfriend later. I am not making any promises but if you continue to get help then maybe we can have a relationship, but just so you know, I‘m being adopted by a family that loves and accepts me.” Mom looked over at me. “If this is what you want, then I’m happy for you Jessica, but you should know one thing. I’ve always loved you, even though I never really showed it. I was just too caught up in my own pain to really express how I truly felted inside.” “I love you too, Mom, I always have, even with everything that has happened”, I said, then reached out and I gave her a hug. “Take care, Mom, get better.”
2. No
2. No
Have you had significant change in appetite or body weight?
2. No
2. No
2. No
2. No
2. No
2. No
If so, what happened?
Interfering with your work or education, making repeated phone calls to you, sending
You many unwanted letters, emails, faxes or gifts? If so, what happened?
for example, a PPO, a no-contact order as a condition of bail, or other such order?
Andrew’s Dilemma
Part 21
By, Cain129
Special Thanks to Wren Phoenix for the editing.
Synopsis: Jessica had her first visit to see Dr. Beth Humphrey. It had been an emotional session, but that was only the beginning. Following her doctor’s advice, Jessica agreed to attend a support group for abused woman. To her complete surprise, she discovered that her mother was attending the same meeting. This had been the first time that Jessica had seen her since the suicide attempt. The meeting had turned out to be very emotional for both Jessica and her mother, Sarah. In the end, they both developed a new found understanding of what they had gone through. Still, only time would tell if Jessica and her birth mother would reconcile.
Chapter 49
It had been a hard day for me, and to be honest I was not in any mood to attend the game. I was just emotionally exhausted and all I wanted to do was just go home, go to bed and sleep the rest of the day away. I looked at my watch and decided to send Scotty a text. I just hoped he would understand.
“Hi Hun, can’t m8k the game. Call U L8R” I then hit the send button and placed my phone back in my purse.
I made my way downstairs to the hospital entrance and used the phone to call a taxi. It took about ten minutes but I was soon on my way home.
After arrive home I paid the taxi fare and headed inside, There was no sign of mom, so I had the place to myself, at least until everyone else came home. I headed off to bed and before I knew it, I passed out.
[-][+][-]
Jessica was not the only one physically exhausted. Sarah Roberts was experiencing the exact same symptoms. Like her daughter, she had expected the session to be easier, but these were not normal conditions. Sarah understood the reasons why her daughter had so much anger towards her. Everything that Jessica had said was true.
It did help to tell Jessica the truth. She hoped that in time she would be able to have a relationship with her daughter, if not as a mother, then as a friend. At the moment, even that seemed to be a long shot.
Sarah was also a bit worried about Jessica, she knew that she was in real danger. Jake would stop at nothing once he made his mind up, that was just the way he was. Eventually he would make his move. There was nothing more that Sarah could do for Jessica. Sarah doubted that Jake would listen anyway.
There may have been a time when he would have, but she felt he had completely surrendered to the insanity.
If Jake contacted her, maybe she’d have a chance to help, but he didn’t even know where she was. The odds of Jake contacting her were very slim, and if he did contact her, she would immediately contact the police.
There was only one thing on Sarah’s mind now. She was exhausted, and found herself slowly drifting as she climbed into her bed. Finally, she fell asleep after what had been one of the hardest days in her life.
[-][+][-]
Jake Roberts was not a happy man, and was ready to take matters into his own hands. Even after accepting Vincent’s help he was no closer to finding his son, and having to deal with Rocco everyday was seriously becoming a pain in his backside. It couldn’t be that hard to find his stupid son! It’s not like Andrew was a secret agent or something. He was just a kid; surely, they should have found him by now. Jake decided that he’d had enough of the bullshit. He grabbed his jacket, and headed outside to his car. He wanted answers and was going to find Vincent and get some answers.
[-][+][-]
The drive to Vincent’s home was a long one from the cabin and took Jake almost an hour but eventually, he was pulling into the driveway that lead to Vincent’s private estate part way down Jake came to the guard post and met at the gate by one of the goons that worked for Vincent.
“I am Jake Roberts and I want to take to Vincent.” Jake said impatiently.
“Is he expecting you?” asked the guard
“No, just get on the phone and tell him I’m here.” Jake said in anger
The guard walked over to the phone and called the main house, “I have a Jake Roberts here to see you, should I let him though?”
“Yeah, send him though.” Vincent said ending the call
The guard hit the button that opened the gate and turned towards Jake. “Go on through, Vincent will see you.”
Jake never said another word to the guard, he just drove through and parked his car. He made his way to the front door of Vincent’s home and was met by Vincent’s butler who showed him to Vincent’s study.
“What can I do for you Jake?” Vincent said
“I want answers, Vincent, we had a deal and I have lived up to my part of the deal but I still don’t have my son.” Jake said shaking his fist
Vincent looked at Jake, “I suggest you calm down Jake, I am not someone that you can push around, and most people who have tried are no longer alive.” Vincent said calmly
“Rocco is working on finding your son, and believe me he will find him and when he does you will be the first to know.”
Jake looked at Vincent, “I’m not sure that Rocco wants to find my son.”
“That doesn’t matter; Rocco’s family and he’ll do what I tell him.” Vincent said
“If you are so worried, I’ll assign someone else to find him. I’m telling you though that Rocco is the best when it comes to tracking down people.” Vincent said, trying to keep the peace.
“I think that would be best, Vincent. I know he’s your family, but this is something he doesn’t want to do and because of that, I really don’t think he is going to do as good a job.” Jake said calmly.
“Alright Jake, next time call. The last thing you need right now is to be seen by the police. It would just complicate things for both of us.” Vincent said calmly
After Jake left, Vincent picked up the phone and dialed a number. “Adrian, I have a job for you. I need you to find someone for me, his name is Andrew Roberts, he’s 16 years old and he seems to have dropped off the face to the earth. I will fax you all the information I have, do whatever you need to do. I want this kid found fast.”
[-][+][-]
Chapter 50
I was fast asleep when I head a knocking at my door, which slowly brought me back to reality. I pulled myself together and said come in, and when the door opened I saw Mom standing outside.
“Jessica, are you all right? Megan called saying that something must have happened, because you didn’t go to the game.” Mom looked worried. She came in and took a seat next to me on the bed.
“The whole day went straight to hell, Mom. The appointment with Dr. Humphrey was hard enough, but then she wanted me to go to a support group for abused women. I went, only to find my mother there.” I said sadly.
“What happened”, Mom said worried
“At first I was shocked to see her, and then I was really angry and kind of lost my temper. I was just so angry with her that I called her a bitch and the one that was running the meeting told me that I had to leave and I just lost it completely and told them that she was one of my abusers, the funny thing was, Mom admitted that she did all of it.”
“I asked her how she could just sit there while I was being abused by my father. She told me about her childhood, my grandfather sexually abused her for years. She held it all inside and never went for help, and she gave up.. She is getting help now and I think she really wants to change but I cannot forget what happened. She might have giving birth to me, but she was never really a mother. I never really knew what I was missing until I became part of your family.
“I love my birth mother, but I can never be close to her like I am with you. Someday I might have a relationship with her but as far as I am concerned, you are my mother.”
“We can always ask Dr. Humphrey if there is another group that you can attend Jessica.”
“No Mom, I think that the worst of it is over as far as my mother is concerned. She’s getting help now, and maybe if I’m around, she’ll continue.”
“Are you sure she isn’t going to start trouble Jessica?” Mom said frowning
“I really don’t think, so Mom. I told her that I was being adopted and she seemed to understand and accept that I was moving on.”
“Alright honey, but if she causes you any problems I want to know.” Mom said, looking worried. “Have you had anything to eat, baby?”
“Not since lunch time”, I said yawning. “To be honest, I’m not that hungry.”
“Still Jessica, you should eat something. You’re still recovering from your operation.”
“Alright Mom, give me a few minutes to pull myself together and I’ll join you.”
“Good girl.” She said, reaching over and gave me a hug.
After Mom left, I climbed out of bed and made my way into the bathroom. My eyes still looked bloodshot from all the crying I had done today. I tried rinsing them with cold water, which seemed to help some, but the redness was still there. I guessed that I’d have to wait for them to clear on there own.
I made my way into the kitchen. Mom was sitting at the table peeling potatoes, so I grabbed a knife and joined her. Grabbing a potato, I started peeling too.
“You really don’t have to do that honey, I am doing fine on my own.”
“It’s alright Mommy, I don’t mind.” I said as I continued.
“Will Jennifer be joining us Mom?”
“Yeah, her mother is working the late shift tonight.”
“Does it bother you that she is always eating here?” I asked.
“Not really honey, Caroline gives me so much a week to cover feeding her.”
“That’s good,” I said smiling.
“It hasn’t been easy for Caroline since her husband ran off. She had to go back to work and Jennifer’s father doesn’t want to pay child support.” Mom said sadly.
“He sounds like a real winner.” I said sarcastically.
“I’m afraid there are lots of men just like him out there, honey. The scary part is they all seem perfectly normal until the relationship ends.”
“If they seem so normal, how do you really know if you can trust them, Mom?”
“That’s a good question honey. All I can say is take your time and get to know the guy.”
“Your father and I dated for over a year before the two of us started talking about marriage and it was another year after that before the two of us were married.” Mom said smiling.
“Did the two of you have sex before you were married?”
“Well that’s a little personal. The two of us were pretty intimate, but I wanted to wait ‘til I was married before we had intercourse.”
“It was harder on your father than what it was on me, because I was still a virgin and he was in a band back then and traveled around a lot. He dated quiet a few women before the two of us got together.” Mom said.
I smiled “Dad had groupies?”
“Yes, your father had groupies.” Mom said, giggling, “I was one of them.”
I laughed, finding it hard to believe that Dad was that popular.
“So he must have tried, you know?” I said with a smile.
“Yes, he tried numerous times and I came close to giving in, but I stood my ground. I’ll let you in on a little secret Jessica, A woman has more power then a man does. Eventually you’ll figure this out on your own, but I’ll save you some time. When a man sees something he wants, he’ll do whatever it takes to get it.”
“Your father was no different than any other man. He saw something he wanted and I made it clear to him from the beginning that I was not going to have sex with anyone until I was married.”
“Being a typical guy, though, he kept coming back looking for something that I wasn’t willing to give him. Because I refused to give into him, the two of us ended up spending a lot of time dating and really got to know one another.”
“When Anthony asked me to marry him, I knew that he really loved me because he could have moved on anytime he chose. It would have hurt, but at least I would have known how he really was.” Mom said with a smile.
I thought about what mom had just said, it made perfect sense I was already beginning to see that kind of behavior in the short time that I had known Scotty.
Scotty and I seemed to have good chemistry and definitely seemed like the kind of guy I wanted to be with, but maybe it was best if the two of us didn’t get too serious, and just spent time getting to know each other like Mom and Dad had done.
“I can tell you are deep in thought Jessica, what are you thinking?” asked Mom.
“Just thinking about Scotty, I’ve wanted to be with him for so long and now I have a chance, but I really don’t want to mess things up with him.” I said frowning
Mom smiled at me, “I know you like him, and even a blind man can see he really likes you. Trust me though, Jessica, be yourself, but be firm with him. Remember, you are the one taking all the risks if things go too far. He can’t get pregnant, but you can. Believe me, motherhood is a great thing but not at your age.”
I smiled. “The last thing I am thinking about right now is motherhood. I want to experience life before I even think about that.”
“Just don’t be in too much of a hurry, honey. Enjoy being a kid. It all goes by way too fast, then you are my age wondering where the time went.” Mom said with a smile.
It was about that time that I heard Megan and Jennifer coming in the front door, because of the noise the two of them were making as they came inside.
“Mom?” Megan said from the living room.
“In the kitchen, honey.” Mom replied
A few seconds later Megan came into the kitchen with Jennifer in tow.
“Need any help?” Jennifer said as she took a seat next to me.
“No Jennifer, we’re pretty much finished. How was the game?” I said with a smile
“It was alright, our team won but just barely. Scotty asked me to tell you to give him a call. God, I’ve never seen a guy moping over a girl as much as he does when it comes to you Jessica.” Jennifer said with a smile.
Megan turned to me. “So what happened with you today, Jessica? We were expecting you at the game and you never showed.”
“Let’s just say it was a nasty day, I really wanted to be at the game but I was just way to emotional after seeing Dr. Humphrey. I also had to go to a support group for abused woman, and unfortunately, I ran into my Mom there. I really wasn’t in a very good mood.” I said, frowning.
“What was your mom doing there?” asked Megan.
“I think she had some kind of nervous breakdown, and was hospitalized”
“It couldn’t have been easy for you, being there. If it was me, I would have just left.” Jennifer said, amazed that I stayed.
“I wanted to leave but I was so angry and I wanted answers.”
Megan looked at me. “Did you get the answers that you were looking for Jessica?”
“Yes, but it wasn’t what I had expected. She’s not the monster that I thought she was. I just hope that she can pull her life together, now that she’s getting help.”
“You’re more forgiving then I would be in your place.” Jennifer said frowning.
“I never said that I’ve forgiven her Jennifer, but I understand now why she is so screwed up. It’s easy to place blame when you have none of the facts, but until you walk in the other person’s shoes, you’ll never know what its like to be them. My mom was sexually and mentally abused, and she just buried what happened. She pretended it never happened, and it eventually drove her nearly insane.” I said sadly.
Jennifer shook her head. “I guess you’re right, Jessica, but it doesn’t change how she treated you.”
“No, it doesn’t, but if she truly is trying to change and get better then it’s possible the two of us might be able to find some common ground. It will never really be as mother and daughter.” I said, regretfully.
[-][+][-]
Chapter 51
After supper, Megan, Jennifer and I did up the dishes. After we finished, I went back to my room and gave Scotty a call. The phone rang through a few times before I heard him say,” Hello?”
“Hi Scotty, it’s me, sorry about not making the game, I had a really hard day today.”
“Is there anything I can do to help?”
“Not really, I wish that we could have got together though. I’m afraid that I wouldn’t have been very good company.”
“I’m free now, Jessica, I could always pick you up and we could grab a coffee and maybe go for a ride.”
“I guess that would be alright, Scotty.” I still felt pretty down.
“Give me about 15 minutes, honey, and I will meet you out front.”
“Alright, I will see you then Scotty,” I said hanging up the phone.
[-][+][-]
After I touched up my makeup, I joined Mom in the living room. I looked around for Megan and Jennifer and figured they were upstairs in her room working on their homework. Mom looked at me.
“Are you going out, honey?”
“Yeah, Scotty wants to grab a coffee and maybe go for a drive.”
“Do you have your phone?”
“Yes Mom, it’s in my purse.”
“Alright honey, give me a call if you need me.”
“Sure Mom, but I’ll be alright.” I said with a smile.
[-][+][-]
As I waited outside, I thought about what I was going to do. Things were not as cut and dry as I had once thought especially when it came to my mother. I always knew where I stood with my dad but with Mom, it was different. Was this some kind of twisted plan for me to feel sorry for her or was she being honest with me and wanted to change? A part of me said walk away, but another voice said, “No, She’s being honest and wanted to make amends.” The question was, which voice was the correct one?”
As I watched for Scotty, I noticed this black car. I had seen it a few times before in the area and as I looked over at it, I noticed the driver seemed to be looking over at me and when he saw me looking over his way, he fidgeted like he was trying to look at a map or something, and then drove off. I thought to myself that something wasn’t right and was about to go inside when I saw Scotty pulling up in his dad’s car. I ran over and jumped inside next to him. He smiled. “It’s nice to see you Jessica, I’m glad you decided to come out.”
[-][+][-]
Rocco pulled the car into a parking lot. He had made a mistake, and Jessica had seen him. He was going to need another car now if he was to continue following her. He was about to make a call when his phone started ringing. He looked at his caller display and saw that it was his friend Wayne calling.
“Yeah Wayne, what’s up?” asked Rocco
“I just had a visitor, it was Adrian. We have a problem, Vincent has hired him to find Andrew and we both know it won’t take him long to figure out the truth. If we’re going to do something, we need to do it fast.” Wayne said sounding worried.
“Shit of all the people Vincent could bring in, why does it have to be Adrian?” Rocco said frustrated.
“What did you tell him?” asked Rocco
“I told him that it would take me some time, and I needed the school’s hard drives. That should keep him busy for a while, but he will eventually get them and bring them here for me to get the information. I’ll stall him as long as I can, but we both know that it will look suspicious if it takes me too long to break the security on those drives, considering I’ve broken into major corporations in a matter of a few hours.” Wayne said in frustration.
“Keep Adrian busy for as long as you can Wayne, I need you to make a call for me use the secure phone, call the district attorney’s office and setup a meeting.”
“Where do you want me to tell him to meet you, Rocco?” asked Wayne.
Rocco thought he needed a place that was outside of Vincent territory, where he could talk without word getting back to Vincent. “The only place I can think of is St. Michael’s Church.”
“What do you want to me to tell him?” asked Wayne
“Tell him that I have information that I’m willing to share that can bring down the family, that should be enough to get him there.” Rocco said
“Alright, I’m on it. Be careful, Adrian is dangerous.” Wayne said, worrying about his friend’s safety.
“I know Wayne; I taught him everything he knows.” Rocco said, frustrated.
[-][+][-]
It took Scotty awhile to find a place to park at Gallagher’s but eventually we found one. We made our way inside and found a free table.
“Why don’t you grab a seat Jessica, while I get the coffee? How do you like yours?”
“Cream and Sugar please.” I said with a smile.
Scotty and I were lucky to find a table. As I looked around, there were people still coming in and looking for a place to sit. While I waited for Scotty to return, I couldn’t help but think about everything that had happened today.
Everything that happened made me think of Murphy’s Law. "Anything that can go wrong will go wrong."
That was the kind of day that I was having, at least until now.
I smiled as I saw Scotty coming my way, and thought that I was lucky to have a guy like him in my life.
After Scotty joined me at the table, he turned to me, “So Jessica, do you want to talk about what happened today?”
“There are a lot of things going on right now Scotty, and to be honest with you, I really don’t know where to start.”
“Why don’t you start from the beginning Jessica, we have plenty of time and I promise whatever you tell me it’s not going to scare me away.” Scotty said with a smile.
“Alright, Scotty.” I frowned. “I didn’t really have a good relationship with my parents; my dad was an abusive drunk that used to take out his anger on me, mentally and physically.
My mother was not much better; she just sat there and allowed it to happen. This went on for most of my childhood. I felt so alone back then, and I had no one that I could talk to. Eventually I couldn’t take it anymore and tried to kill myself.
When the Tanners took me in I was pretty messed up. This is before I found out that I was completely female. At that point, I knew that I was a girl deep down but I thought that I was transgendered.
Janice and Anthony accepted me, even though I had all this baggage. They helped me become the person that I am today, but with everything that has happened, I’ve been seeing a doctor, mostly to help me learn to deal with the abuse. I went for my first group session, my doctor felt that it would be good for me to be around other women that have been through the same things that I have.
I followed my doctor’s advice, went to the support group and listened to the woman talk. I actually felt like I was connecting with her. That is until my mom showed up and let’s just say it wasn’t a happy reunion for either of us.”
“Shit, Jessica, what in the hell was she doing there?” Scotty said.
“She had some kind of nervous breakdown, that’s really all I know Scotty”
“Having her there couldn’t have been easy for you Jessica!”
“Believe me, it wasn’t. I was so angry at her and for the first time in my life I was actually able to tell her exactly how I felt about her.”
“It must have felt good on some level, finally being able to talk face to face and tell her how you felt about her.” Scotty said.
“I guess on some level I enjoyed it, but I don’t really know how I am supposed to feel towards her anymore.”’
“What do you mean Jessica?”
“Well for starters, she knew who I was and had seen me at the hospital after my operation. She could have told everyone at the meeting that I was her son. She also admitted everything that I said was the truth. I was sure she would have lied to cover her own ass, but she took responsibility for what she did.”
Scotty looked at me, and I could tell that he was deep in thought. He turned to me. “I would be careful with that one, Jessica. Maybe she is trying to change, but the relationship that the two of you have is unhealthy. I’m afraid that you’ll only end up getting hurt. “
“I know, that’s what I’m afraid of, but part of me wants to believe that she can change. Does that make any sense to you at all Scotty?”
“Yes it does, Jessica. Just try not to get your hopes up. If your mother is serious, then you’ll know in time. Remember, you have people that care about you. Whatever the future holds, you don’t have to face it alone. ”
“Thanks Scotty. It really helps knowing that I can count on you.”
Scotty reached over and took my hand, “You know I care about you. I know we haven’t really known each other very long, but I want you to know that anytime you need me, all you have to do is call and I will be there, no matter what.”
“Thanks Scotty, and if you ever need me, you can always call.” I said with a smile.
“Let’s get out of here, Scotty.”
“Do you want me to take you home?” Scotty asked, looking sad.
“No, Scotty. The last place I want to go right now is home. Let’s go for a drive, I don’t really care where.”
[-][+][-]
Scotty and I eventually ended up at Rockcliff Park, where he parked his car. The two of us just sat there, listening to music and talking. Scotty put his arm around me, and I soon found myself moving closer. The two of us just enjoyed each other’s company.
“This is nice,” I said with a smile.
“Yeah, it is.” Scotty said as he leaned over and kissed me.
I found myself responding in kind and as the two of us kissed, I felt him caressing me. The last thing I was thinking about was the conversation that I had earlier with mom about sex.”
I wasn’t the only one that was getting excited, because as Scotty pulled me closer to him, I felt how excited he really was. I was somewhat flattered in a way but I also knew that I was not ready for that kind of relationship.
”Scotty, we have to stop.” I said, as I tried to catch my breath.
At first, he didn’t seem to hear me, because he kept on kissing me and I felt his hand slip under my shirt.
“Scotty Stop”, I said firmly
Scotty froze. “I’m sorry Jessica; I kind of got carried away.”
I smiled. “It’s alright Scotty, we both got carried away.” I said, blushing.
“Scotty, I am not ready to have sex, I hope you can understand that.”
“It’s alright Jessica, there is no hurry. I am not going anywhere.”
“You could be waiting a long time, Scotty.” I said with a smile.
Scotty smiled. “I love a good challenge.”
“Me too, Scotty, and I can see that I am going to have my hands full with you.”
“I was thinking the same thing about you Jessica.” Scotty said laughing.
“Well, I think you better get me home before Mom comes looking for us.”
“Yeah, I have to finish up my homework before bed anyway.” Scotty said frowning.
[-][+][-]
After arriving home, Scotty walked me to the door. “I had a good time tonight Jessica. Maybe we can do something on the weekend?”
“I will let you know Scotty, I have plans to meet up with a friend but I am sure that we can figure something out. I had a great time tonight too, Scotty and thanks for being there for me.” I said with a smile.
“Anytime, Jessica.” Scotty said, then took me into his arms and kissed me goodnight.
End of part 21
To be continued 22
Andrew’s Dilemma
Part 22
By, Cain129
Special Thanks to Wren Phoenix for the editing.
Synopsis: Life has not been very easy for Jessica lately as she find herself trying to make a new life for herself while at the same time dealing with a past that she wished that she could just leave behind.
Running into her mother and the fight that followed had left her emotionally drained. In a strange way was also therapeutic and gave her a better understanding of who her mother really was. Deep down she no longer hated her mother but could she trust her?
Chapter 52
Adrian had spent most of the day trying to find Andrew Roberts and just as Vincent had said, the child had completely disappeared. There was the record of Andrew at the hospital after a failed suicide attempt but according to the police sources, child services released him to the care of Anthony and Janice Tanner.
If he was to believe the Reports, the child should still be there but Rocco had already been down that road and the only people living at that address was Anthony, his wife and their daughters.
Adrian thought long and hard. He could not see the police placing the child in a safe house, not for a child abuse case. The answer was the Tanners, they had to know where the child was and he hated the idea of what he was about to do. He would first check the schools computers and see what he could find out.
If that turned out to be a dead end then he would grab one of the girls and get some answers. There was one thing that had him concerned. Rocco had taken him under his wing and pretty much taught him everything he knows. This really bothered him. He knew that Rocco would have already done everything that he was about to do, and if that was the case Rocco would have already found the child, considering how long he had been working on the case.
Adrian thought to himself, was Rocco going against the family? If so, where did that leave him? When he joined the organization, he was nothing and barely able to survive. After his parents kicked him out of the house, he was homeless and starving. In those days, he used to hang out of the Denny’s panning for whatever change people would through his way. Almost everyday, he would see Rocco going into the restaurant for breakfast and he would always throw a few dollars his way. Eventually they had become friends and Rocco had brought him into the organization and over the years taught him everything he needed to know and because of that, he was able to make a good life for himself.
Things were different back then though. Vincent hadn’t been the one running things, and since he took over after his father ended up in jail the organization changed along with the way they operated.
Vincent was driven by greed and would do anything if it meant that he could make money. Running drugs and prostitutions were always part of the equation, but Vincent had done the unthinkable and allowed his men to pick up street kids and befriend them after getting them hooked on heroin. After the child was hooked on drugs, they would pimp the child out to the highest bidder.
Adrian hated this part of the business. It made him feel dirty inside, knowing the things that were happening, but he also knew that once you were part of the family there was no going back. If he chose to walk away, it would most likely cost him his life. He was in a position with no easy way out of. If he was right and Rocco was making a move, he would have to do something about it. The question was, could he kill Rocco?
Adrian picked up the phone and dialed a number. “Bobby I have a job for you, I need you to pickup a computer for me.”
[-][+][-]
The time is 2am, and all is quiet except for the faint sound of a security alarm going off at Burnaby High school. Three men make their way inside. One stands guard, while the other two go to the office. They have only one goal and that is to break into the principal’s office. While the two men are busy, the third man disables the alarm system.
Inside the principal’s office, the thieves quickly unhook the tower from the monitor and remove the cables. Within minutes, the job is finished and the three men exit the school, and drive off with the principal’s computer.
[-][+][-]
A half hour later the burglars meet up with Adrian, who has been waiting across town for the computer to be dropped off.
“How did it go?” asked Adrian.
“It was like taking candy from a baby, the security is a joke.”
“So I take it you have the computer then?”
“Yeah Adrian, it’s in the trunk. I’ll get it for you.”
After receiving the computer, Adrian handed an envelope to Bobby, climbed into his car, and headed for home. He would drop it off at Wayne’s in the morning and hoped Wayne would be able to find something in the school records.
[-][+][-]
I woke up early to the sound of knocking, still half asleep, I slowly climbed out of bed and made my way to the door. I opened it to find no one there. I shook my head, and thought to myself, I must still be dreaming. I headed back to bed and climbed under my blankets, I would get another hour or so of sleep but as soon as I closed my eyes.
“Knock, Knock, Knock”
“Damn it, I said to myself climbing out of bed again. I went to open the door and once again there was no one there.”
“Just wait Megan, paybacks a bitch.” I said, then headed back to my bed.
Now fully awake, I was going to go downstairs and girl her piece of my mind, as I approached the door again.
“Knock, knock, knock.”
It was then that I realized that it wasn’t the door it was coming from outside as I peered out the window and found a freaking woodpecker.
I felt like opening the window and throwing my pillow at him, but that would have likely killed the little bugger.
I put on my housecoat and made my way downstairs, thankful that I never flew into Megan as I had planned on doing.
As I entered the kitchen, I found Mom and Megan at the table.
“You’re up early honey”, Mom said with a smile.
I yawned. “You can thank Woody Woodpecker for that.”
Megan and started Mom both started giggling as I told them about waking up to the knocking and thinking that it was Megan being a smartass. In my defense, my bedroom door and the window are almost side-by-side.
“Jessica honey, I was going to head over to the high school later to have you enrolled. I just want to make sure that you are sure you want to attend there, we could always set you up in another school.” Mom said, knowing the trouble I had in the past at that school.
“I’d be lying if I said I wasn’t a little scared about going back, Mom. I think everything will work out, though. Megan and Jennifer will be there, and Scotty will look out for me. Besides, I’ve already started making new friends.”
“Alright honey, but I want you to keep me informed.” Mom said, smiling.
“Don’t worry mom, she’ll be fine. Me and Jennifer will keep her out of trouble.”
“Alright, Megan. I’m just over protective right now, I guess. I want you both home after school, your father’s going to be coming home around supper time and I want to make him something special.” Mom said with a smile.
“Jessica, if we can get you setup today, what do you want to do? Attend classes or wait until Monday and start fresh.” Mom asked
“I guess if I had a choice, I would start today its boring sitting around the house all day and I have a lot of catching up to do.”
“Alright honey, we’ll see what happens once we have you enrolled.” Mom said
“A lot of catching up to do?” Megan giggled. “You just want to see Scotty.”
I smiled. “That’s true, but there is no reason I can’t do both.”
[-][+][-]
After finishing breakfast, I took a quick shower and got ready to go to the school with Megan and mom. I was a little nervous because so much had happened there in the past. It held so many painful memories, but I knew that I had to put the past behind me if I ever wanted to find happiness. In many ways, I was not the same person that I once was. That person died the day that I tried to take my own life, and since then there has been only Jessica.
The past is a hard thing to put behind you, and the things that you experienced tend to follow you into adulthood. When I thought about school, it brought back all those feelings of being alone. The worst part for me was being transgender, or at least that was what I believed at the time. I knew in my heart that I was a girl, trapped in the wrong body.
Then there was Scotty, and how painful it was watching him with other girls, wishing more than anything that I could have been one of them. I knew that there could never be anything between the two of us. I was a freak, or at least that is how I felt about myself back then.
How things have changed though, in such a short period. I still carry plenty of baggage, but for the most part, I’m happy and looking forward to the future. I hate to say it, and it might sound funny, but the best thing that I ever did was trying to kill myself. It forced me to become the person that I am today. It is hard to believe that one stupid act of desperation could have such a widespread effect over my life, but this one sure did.
It took me about a half hour but I was finally ready to leave, and made my way into the kitchen where both Mom and Megan were waiting.
“You ready to go now, Jessica?” Mom asked
“I guess so,” I said, frowning.
“Don’t worry Sis, everything will work out.” Megan told me
“I have something for you,” Mom said, reaching under the table and handing me a pink knapsack. You should find everything you will need for school. If there is anything that I forgot just let me know.” Mom smiled her reassurance.
[-][+][-]
After picking up Jennifer, we made the short ride to the school. We could have made the walk but Mom had some errands to run after the meeting with the school’s principal.
“Hey Jessica, are you starting school today?” Jennifer asked smiling.
“Maybe, it depends on what the principal says.”
“Well, either way it will be nice to have you there.” Jennifer said with a smile
“Yeah, really, Scotty can stop asking us about you! I am starting to feel like your secretary, and an unpaid one at that.” Megan said grinning.
“Mom I ask a question? The principal knows who I am, doesn’t he?”
“Yes honey, he knows who you are, and the only reason is because someone had to arrange for your school records to be changed over to your new name and sex. I really don’t see him being a problem, and I will make sure he keeps what he knows to himself. There is no reason that the other teachers need to know, but I’m afraid some of them might figure it out on their own, Jessica.” Mom said sadly, knowing that secrets can be very hard to keep.
“I guess that what scares me. I’m not worried about the teachers knowing about me, because I doubt that they would react badly. I was always a girl. It was just a medical problem that made it hard to tell, what does worry me is if one of the teachers says something and one of the students overhears it. The way gossip gets around the school everyone will know before long. A few students would make my life a living hell if they found out who I really am. They wouldn’t care if I was a boy or girl, to them I would be just another target.” I said sadly.
“You’re talking about Steve and Dennis, aren’t you?” Megan said, frowning.
“Yeah Megan, if anyone was to try anything it would be them.” I said, with a worried expression.
Both Megan and Jennifer started giggling and I just looked at them. “This isn’t funny! They would seriously hurt me if they could.” I said a little angry with the both of them for laughing.
After the two of them finish their giggle fest Megan turned to me, “Jessica if any of those jerks even look at you funny, they will have the whole football team paying them a visit. I know you are new to being a girl, but you are dating Scotty and friends with some of the most popular kids in school now. Not to mention that Britney and Natasha have asked you to join the cheering squad. You are no longer on the outside looking in. I hate to tell you, but you are part of the in crowd now!” Megan said with a smile.
I found myself starting to understand what Megan had just said. It was true, for most of my life I didn’t feel that I belonged. I used to sit and watch other people, wishing that I could change places with them and have their life because mine sucked big time, and most of those people wouldn’t have giving me the time of day. They knew who they were and had it easy for the most part.
Now I realized that I had crossed that invisible line and hadn’t even noticed. If what Megan had just said was true, I was now part of the group and no longer a nonentity. I was not sure if this was a good thing or a bad thing. I had seen from first hand experience how many of these people treated the less fortunate students, who were unlucky enough not to fit in.
After Megan and Jennifer became part of this group, I was the one that did not fit in and because of peer pressure they choose to listen to the other kids and choose to end their friendship with me. They were afraid to loose their newfound popularity. I am not willing to sell my soul just to be part of this group, not after everything I had gone through. I wasn’t going to allow myself become a nonentity again, either.
[-][+][-]
“What’s wrong Jessica?” Jennifer asked looking worried
I looked over at Jennifer. “I think that I am way too easy to read.”
“No really Jessica, what’s wrong?”
“I was just thinking about what Megan said about me being part of the popular crowd. I’m not sure if that is really a good thing or not.”
“Why would you say that, Jessica?” asked Megan.
“Experience, mostly. I know what it’s like to be on the other side. I was pretty much a nonentity before, and I saw first hand how most of the popular kids were towards the kids that didn’t fit into their little clique. Megan, Jennifer please don’t take me wrong with I am about to say because I love the both of you to pieces but look what happened between us. “
“The three of us had been friends for years. Then the two of you fell into the popular crowd. I wasn’t welcome, and I lost my best friends because of the two of you wanted to be popular.” I said in frustration
“You know that Megan and I are really sorry about that Jessica. We should have just told them to go to hell, but we didn’t.” Jennifer said, a tear running down her cheek.
“I know, Jennifer and I have forgiven the both of you, but, I am not willing to sell my soul so they will accept me into that clique. When looking back over my life I was always alone, and I watched life pass me by, it scares me to death thinking of going back to that existence.”
“There are some good people Jessica, look at Scotty, Britney and Natasha there all pretty popular but haven’t sold there soul to get where they are.” Megan said with a smile.
“We can have our own little clique, Jessica. You may have noticed Megan and I have dropped the group that we were hanging with and we did it because of you. After everything that had happened, Megan and I felt terrible.” Jennifer said. “Those people only cared about themselves, and made fun of you and said things about you even after you ended up in the hospital.”
“The only people we talk to now you already know and they’re all good people. They’re popular, but don’t think they’re better then everyone else.” Jennifer said smiling
I had to admit, she was right. Britney and Natasha were not like the others that I had met, ever. Their boyfriends were decent, nice, and I enjoyed their company.
“You know Jessica that everything comes down to a choice. If you’re not sure of something, then talk about it with someone you trust before making a decision. That is what I do and it helps to hear another person’s point of view.” Mom said with a smile.
[-][+][-]
Mom was right, it did help to talk things through rather then just act on them. I was sure, though, that I would make a lot of mistakes in the future. Sometimes its easier said then done, especially when emotions are involved. At least I knew that I had parents that cared for me and I could turn to them when I needed help, which was something that I never had before.
Its a good feeling, knowing that you have people in your life that will love and support you, even when you do something stupid. I knew that I could depend on them being there for me when the time came, and it made me feel wonderful.
Chapter 53
Wayne was busy working on his computer, when he heard the doorbell. Wayne clicked a button on his keyboard that turned on his wireless webcam. It was setup to give him a good view of who was coming and going, in his line of work one could never be to careful. As the camera came to life and the image became clear, he had no problem recognizing that it was Adrian outside. He was holding a computer tower. Wayne didn’t need to guess where it had come from and took a deep breath. “Here we go,” he said to himself as he walked over to the door and let Adrian inside.
“I take it that’s the school’s computer?” Wayne said, already knowing the answer.
“Yeah I had some guys pick it up last night.” Adrian said as he placed it on Wayne’s workbench.
Adrian looked at Wayne, “How long do you think that you will need”
“I don’t know give me a few minutes to get it setup and I should be able to give you some idea.” Wayne said
After setting the computer up, Wayne hit the power button and the computer came to life-that is, until it hit the log on screen and asked for a username and password. Wayne tried a bunch of common ones that people that weren’t very computer savvy would likely use, knowing full well none of them would work.
He then restarted the computer and did a fake attempt of going into safe mode. Which wouldn’t work because he had been pressing the wrong button, he knew that Adrian didn’t know anything about computers so it was a good way to bluff that he was actually trying to break the security.
After trying a few other things he turned to Adrian, “The computer is locked down pretty tight; whoever the technician is that is taking care of the computers knows what he is doing.” Wayne said frowning
“So how long is it going to take you?” Adrian asked in frustration.
“Call me back around 4pm Adrian and I should have what you are looking for.”
“That’s eight hours, Wayne. It shouldn’t take you that long.” Adrian said
“Normally it wouldn’t, but the computer is locked down pretty good, what I would have normally done is use safe mode and create a new account. Then it’s pretty easy but whoever is taking care of the schools computer has locked me out. I will have to install another drive to it, then an operating system so I can boot the computer. After that, I have to decrypt all the files on the drive.” Wayne said
“Alright Wayne, do what you have to, then call me as soon as you are done.”
“Sure thing, Adrian.” Wayne said, and watched as Adrian let himself out.
Wayne took a deep breath. “Well, I bought Rocco 8 hours.” he said to himself as he picked up the phone and called Rocco and let him know what happened.
[-][+][-]
Rocco was setting at St. Michaels Church wait for Daniel Gibson to arrive. Wayne had contacted him late in the night, and was able to setup a meeting. As Rocco sat there he thought about what he was doing and the implication of what he was about to do. He knew that he had the support of some of the family, but would it be enough when the shit hit the fan.
While he was sitting there thinking, he heard someone call his name, turned around, and saw Daniel Gibson walking towards him.
“You wanted to see me?” Daniel asked as he took a seat next to Rocco
“Not really, but I didn’t have a choice, something bad is going down and there are some things that I won’t stand for.”
“So, what do you have for me?”
“Vincent needs to go, and I am willing to help you take him down.” Rocco said sadly
“Why are you doing this, Rocco? Are you looking to take his place?”
“That really depends on me making it through all this alive. To answer your question, there is a low life named Jake Roberts, and he went to Vincent to get help kidnapping he son.
I was given the job of finding Andrew Roberts and I’m good at my job. Vincent does not know that I have already found the child. If he did, then chances are the child would already be dead. I may have done some rotten things in my life Daniel, but I have never harmed a child and I am not going to start now.
Because I have been holding out, Vincent has hired someone else to find Andrew and it is only a matter of time before he puts the pieces together. When he does, he’ll make his move and I’m sure that whatever happens, it won’t be good. Jake Roberts is the worst kind of scum.
“So when do you think that Vincent is going to make his move?” Daniel asked
“It will likely be in the next couple of days. The problem is Vincent has people inside the police force. If I had gone to them for help, it wouldn’t be very long before Vincent found out.” Rocco said sadly
“I see the problem.” Daniel thought for a few minutes. “There is only one solution that I can think of. If Vincent has people in the OPP, then I will have to contact the RCMP. We need an outside police force to handle this, otherwise Vincent will be tipped off and that is the last thing we need right now.
“So what happens to me after all this is done?” asked Rocco
“You don’t deserve to go to jail, that is for sure Rocco. I’ll find a way to keep your name out of it.” Daniel said with a smile
“Thanks, Daniel.” Rocco said wiping his brow.
“I’d better get going Rocco, I have a lot of work to do and I have to do it fast.”
While Daniel stood up and was about to shake Rocco’s hand, Rocco’s phone went off. When he looked at the number, he turned to Daniel. “You’d better wait, this might be important.”
“Hi Wayne, what’s up?” asked Rocco
Rocco hit the speaker button so Daniel could hear also
“I just had a visit from Adrian, he dropped the schools computer off with me and wants me to break the security, I told him that it would take about eight hours for me to get into the files. So whatever you are going to do you better do it now.” Wayne said, sounding worried.
“Alright thanks, Wayne. I’ll call you later.” Rocco said, hitting the end button on his phone. Then turning to Daniel, he asked, “Is that enough time for you to get something in place?
“I don’t know, but I’ll try, I hate to ask but is there anything else you can do to try and slow Adrian down?” Daniel asked, a little frustrated.
“Maybe, but I can’t promise anything, I’ll call you if anything changes.” Rocco said with a smile.
Rocco had an idea, it was a long shot but he was running out of time. Something needed to be done. He picked up his phone and called Adrian.
“Hey Adrian, I heard that Vincent gave you the job of finding Andrew Roberts. What the hell is going on, I do all the work and you walk in and take all the credit.”
“It’s not like that Rocco! To be honest, when Vincent asked me to take over I really didn’t want to, but he is the boss and you know what that means as well as I do. Please realize this is nothing personal.”
“I know Adrian, I am sorry it’s just a piss off. I did all that work and finally found the kid and was ready to grab him.”
“You found the kid?” Adrian said
“Yeah, it took a little work because they changed the kid’s name and everything.” Rocco said with a smile.
“Alright Rocco, we can bring him in together. I don’t mind sharing the credit.” Adrian said excited
“I can’t tell you the information over the phone Adrian. I think that there might be someone listening. Meet me at studio 5 and I’ll give you all the details, I’ll tell you everything that I know, be there at 3 pm.” Rocco said ending the call.
Chapter 54
After dropping Megan and Jennifer off Mom and I made our way to the principal’s office. As I made my way down that hallway, it was like walking backwards in time for me. I saw familiar faces that I had attended classes when I was still living as Andrew, I think the hardest part though was as I passed the gym and found myself stopping dead in my tracks. I had thought that I had prepared myself mentally for this. I guess there are always some things that there is no really way to prepare for especially emotional connections.
As I stood there, I was watching the events of that day, playing in my mind. The day I tried to end my life. This was where it had happened. I had been in so much pain and was so confused and just wanted to be at peace.”
“Jessica, are you alright?” I kept hearing mom saying.
I finally started coming to my senses. “This is where it all started.” I said softly.
Mom reached over and put her arm around me, I was still kind of in a trance like state. I opened the door and slowly walked inside looking over at the bleachers.
“This is where I took the pills, I was so confused, Mom. I just didn’t see hope, I was so lost and in so much pain.”
I found myself taking a seat. Mom sat next to me and put her arm around me.
“It’s alright, Jessica. I should have realized this would happen. I know its hard baby, but what happened is over now. It’s in the past, and you need to move forward. The only way to do that is to put what happened behind you. You are a different person now, you have friends and a family that loves you and you will never have to feel like that again. Whatever happens, you will never be alone.” Mom said as she gave me a hug and a kiss on the forehead.
I looked over at Mom. “I know, lets get this over with, and I will be alright.”
“Are you sure Jessica?” Mom asked.
“Yeah, the past just kind of crept up on me for a minute.” I decided to push those memories down, deep in my mind. I was Jessica, NOT Andrew, ever again.
“Alright, Jessica lets go see the principal.” Mom said with a smile.
[-][+][-]
John Hanson had been the principal at Burnaby High for close to 10 years. It had only been my first year at Burnaby, so to be honest I did not really know that man at all. I was pretty much an A+ student that never really got into any trouble so I really didn’t know what to make of him.
Mom and I waited in the office while the receptionist let him know that Mom and I were there. He only kept us waiting for a few minutes then invited Mom and I into his office. After we took a seat, he looked over at me then shook his head.
“Unbelievable,” he said shaking his head, and then smiled. “I am sorry, Jessica. It’s very hard to believe, seeing you now, that you were ever a boy.”
I looked at him and smiled. “Mr. Hanson, I’ve always been a girl. If it wasn’t for that medical disorder, everyone would have seen that.”
“I am sorry that you had to go though that Jessica. It couldn’t have been easy for you, spending all those years as a boy when all along you were a girl.”, Mr. Hanson said sadly. “Well, things are sorted now and you can start leaving the life that you were meant to live.”
He then turned to mom
“It’s good to see you again Janice, I have taken care of everything, and Jessica is free to start school. I took the liberty to setup a few of her classes already. I thought it would be easier for her to be in the same classes that Megan and Jennifer are in. I have left a few classes open though.” Mr. Hanson said with a smile.
“What classes are available?” I asked
“Music, Art and I believe there are a few others. Just take some time to let me know what you want and I’ll make the arrangements, Jessica.”
“Music and Art are both good, and how about Home Ed?” I asked.
“Done. Is there anything else I can do for you, my lady?” He said with a smile.
“Nope!” I said, returning his smile with one of my own.
“Mr. Hanson, I’m just wondering, what have you told her teachers?” Mom asked
“I figured that it would be best if I said nothing. There is no reason for me to say anything, other than that she is a new student.” Mr. Hanson said with a smile then turned to me. “I want you to know Jessica, if you have any problems or just need to talk, my door is always open.”
“Thanks Mr. Hanson but I think that I will be alright. If anything does happen, I will remember what you said.” I said with a smile. “Would it be possible for me to start today?”
“I don’t see a problem with that Jessica. Are you sure that you are ready?” Mr. Hanson said, concerned.
“Yeah! I’ve been bored to death at home, and could use something to keep me busy. Besides, all my friends are here.” I said
“Well if that is what you want. I’ll arrange for the secretary to print out your class list, if it’s alright with your mother, that is?”
“If she wants to start today it’s fine with me.” She has everything with her that she will need to start classes,” Mom said with a smile.
[-][+][-]
I walked back to the car with mom and grabbed my knapsack out of the back seat them Mom turned to me. “Do you want me to pick you up after school honey?”
“No Mom, I will likely get a ride back with Scotty if that’s alright”
“Have a good day baby, if anything happens I am just a phone call away.” Mom said as she leaned over and gave me a hug and kiss, she then smiled. “I am so proud of you Jessica, with everything you have been through and the way you’re dealing with things.”
I smiled, “Thanks Mom, but I think that you should take some of the credit. If it wasn’t for you, I don’t think that I would have been able to make it. My real mother gave birth to me but she didn’t love me, not the way that you do and I couldn’t talk to her like I can you.” I said as the tears ran down my face.
Mom smiled, “Baby I always wanted another daughter and now I have two beautiful daughters. I am the lucky one.” Mom said, she was crying now also.
“I think we’re both lucky Mom, but I better get going, I’m already late for class! I will see you when I get home, I love you.” I said, and then headed into the school.
[-][+][-]
I arrived late for my first class but being a new student I had a good excuse, everyone seemed friendly. In just about all my classes, I found that either Megan or Jennifer was there and it made it a lot easier.
It didn’t take long for word to get around that there was a new girl in the school and when the lunch bell went off, I found myself in the cafeteria, sitting at a table with Megan, Jennifer, Britney and Natasha, along the rest of the gang.
There was only one person that I was waiting to see, and when he came into the cafeteria, the first thing he did was look around the room until he saw me. It really didn’t take him long before he came over and I found myself in his arms. The food wasn’t the greatest but the atmosphere at our table seemed electric, well, at least it was to me. Everyone sat and enjoyed each other’s company. Dinner went by way too fast, and before I knew it, school was finished for the day.
My first day at school turned out to be enjoyable. There were still times that the odd memory came into play, especially when I would see people that I used to know when I was living as Andrew but I did my best to try not to let myself get carried away and placed my focus on what was really important. The past was the past and I needed to look towards my future, so I tried to focus on positive things, like my family and friends and that seemed to snap me out of it.
Considering everything that happened, it should be interesting attending my first cheerleader practice tomorrow after school. To be honest, I was really looking forward to it, mostly because it would give me a chance to hang out with my friends, even if I had to wear a skimpy little skirt.
[-][+][-]
Adrian made his way inside Studio 5, which was pretty much abandoned these days. It was one of the properties that were owned by his organization.
“Rocco are you in here?” he called out.
“Yeah Adrian, I’m in the office”, Rocco yelled back
Adrian walked towards that back of the building. It was hard to see, because the power had been turned off for over a year. All he had to light his way was the sunlight that made its way through the dirty windows.
Eventually he made his way into the office but there was no sign of Rocco. It was then that he felt a sharp stabbing pain in his back. He reached for his gun but it was too late, as everything went back and his body hit the floor.
[-][+][-]
End of part 22
To be continued in part 23
Andrew’s Dilemma
Part 23
By, Cain129
Special Thanks to Wren Phoenix for the editing.
Synopsis: Things are moving along quite nicely for Jessica. Her first day at school had started a bit shaky and her nerves had gotten the best of her. She managed to push herself and was able to finish the day. Adrian is hot on the trail and had hired some goons to get the schools computer to find whatever information on the drive. Little does he know the man that he took it to is working against him and Rocco has set a trap for him!, What will happened to Jessica? Will Rocco be able to save her, before Vincent’s men make the connection between Andrew and Jessica?
Chapter 55
Sitting in a chair in a dark room a man awakes to one hell of a headache. What the hell, he said trying to reach up to touch his aching head and discovers his hands are bound to each side of the chair.
“Relax Adrian, you aren’t going anywhere.” Rocco said, frowning.
“What’s this about Rocco?” Adrian asked, a little afraid.
“I’ll tell you what this is about, Adrian.” Rocco said, wishing that it hadn’t come down to this. He then took a seat across from Adrian.
“There was a child I found, he was living on the street half starving and begging for change. The reason for this was he had a father who was a drunk, that loved to beat him around. One day the child says enough is enough, tries to stand up to his father, and receives one hell of a beating at the hands of his father. The child ends up being of forced out of the house and is forced to try to survive on his own.”, Rocco let the words sink in knowing Adrian knew this story as well as he did, if not better, because it was his story.
“Adrian looked at Rocco “What does this have to do with me?”
“I’ve done some terrible things in my life Adrian, but I have to draw the line somewhere. The bastard we work for has no moral compass, and refuses to listen to reason. The child we’ve been asked to find was abused by his father. Vincent expects us to find the child and bring him to his father. I have had the pleasure of spending time with the kid’s father and I’d love to put a bullet between his eyes. He’s nothing but an abusive drunk and will most likely end up killing the child if he gets anywhere near the child. I can’t be part of something like that Adrian and because of it I’m forced to make a choice between the family and my own conscience.”
Adrian looked at Rocco, “Please tell me you are not seriously going to make a move on Vincent?”
“You need to think hard Adrian. Where do your loyalties lie, will you follow Vincent’s orders and become a monster like your father or follow me? It’s your choice, Adrian.” Rocco said, hoping he could get his friend to see reason.
“Rocco, if you try to go against the family, you’re going to end up a dead man.” Adrian said worried.
“Maybe, Adrian, but is this what you signed on for? Since Vincent took over the organization from his father look what has happened, do you really think that Dino would have allowed something like this to happen? Fuck, Adrian, we are pimping out children to the highest bidder. So if you are asking me if I’m planning a takeover, then the answer is yes, and you have a choice to make. Are you with me or against me?” Rocco said slamming his fist on the table in anger.
Adrian sat there thinking. Finally he decided what to do. “I’m likely going to end up dead if I follow you Rocco, but what the hell, you only live once. I’m with you.” Adrian said frowning. “Now, could you let me out of the handcuffs? They’re cutting off my circulation.”
[-][+][-]
After un-cuffing Adrian, Rocco took a seat. Adrian turned to Rocco, “So what is the plan?”
“I have some of the family behind me, but if we’re going to move on Vincent we’re going to need help.” Rocco said.
“It’s not going to be easy Rocco, not with Vincent locked up in that compound. The only thing that I can think of is if we make it look like were carrying out Vincent’s orders. grab the kid and have the cops waiting.” Adrian said thoughtfully.
“That might work, but the child has been terrorized enough. I would hate to make things worse.” Rocco said worried.
“It’s the only way Rocco, if this is going to work we need to flush out Vincent, otherwise the police won’t be able to connect him to the crime.”
“If we can get Jake Roberts, I know that once he is in police custody, he will crack and tell the police everything.” Rocco said
“So we grab the kid, bring him to his father and have the police waiting. That works for me. It will likely be easiest to drug the kid. We need to make this look real. I can shoot the kid from a distance, you grab him and we’ll have the cops waiting at the drop off.” Adrian said with a smile.
“I’ve been dealing with someone that is working on bringing the RCMP in, so I’ll let him in on the plan, and that he can talk to the parents. We’re not going to make a move until I get the word back.” Rocco said firmly.
[-][+][-]
After Rocco and Adrian went their own separate ways, Rocco gave Daniel a call and told him about the plan that Adrian and he had put together. Daniel felt it was their best option if they could get the parents on board and most importantly, Jessica. She’d be the one that had the most to loose if things fell apart.
Daniel agreed that he would arrange a meeting with Jessica and her parents to run the plan past them. And then arrange things with the RCMP. Before doing anything, they needed to make sure that they knew where Jessica was at all times after she was taken. To do that, they would have to place a tracer on the child.
[-][+][-]
After getting off the phone, Daniel grabbed his coat and left his office, telling the secretary that he would be out for the rest of the afternoon. He took the elevator, headed down to the parking garage, got into his car, and started driving.
[-][+][-]
Daniel knew that there were risks with this plan. There was too much that could go wrong. His main goal was to get Vincent behind bars, and from what Rocco had said, the child’s father was a drunk and a child abuser. There was a chance at getting Vincent and Jake Roberts.
Daniel knew Jake’s type well. From his own experience people like Jake tended to be self centered and would gladly turn in there own mothers, if there was something in it for them. He would use that to his advantage but the whole plan relied on the cooperation of a scared child. This is what bothered him the most, would the child be willing to help?
[-][+][-]
It was 4 pm, when Scotty dropped us off at home. Megan and Jennifer headed inside, and gave Scotty and me a few minutes to talk.
“Are you doing anything tonight Jessica?”
“Yeah, Dad’s been away for the last week on business, so we’re making him a special supper. I would imagine that Megan and I will likely end up hanging around the house tonight.
“When do you think that we can get together then?” asked Scotty.
“Maybe sometime on the weekend, there’s always lunchtime at school.” I said with a smile.
“I’ll give you a call later tonight.” Scotty said taking me into his arms and kissing me.
“See you later, honey.” I smiled as I climbed out of his car and made my way into the house, when I reached the door, I turned around and waved goodbye.
After making my way inside, I found everyone was already in the kitchen and had started working on preparing supper. I made my way over to the fridge and grabbed a coke and joined everyone at the table.
“So how was your day, honey?” Mom asked
“It was alright Mom, I had a few rough patches but otherwise it went fine.”
“That’s good, I was a little worried about leaving you after what happened in the gym.” Mom said.
“What happened in the gym?” Megan asked.
“I guess you could say my past caught up with me.” I said, a little sadly.
“Damn, I never thought about what it would be like for you.” Megan said.
“To be honest, I never really gave it much thought either. I just wanted to get on with my life again, but it will get easier. At least nobody remembered me as Andrew.” I said with a smile.
“Jessica, I really don’t think that you have to worry about that happening. It’s like you said before, Andrew wasn’t really noticed by anyone other than the bullies. The people that know the truth about you aren’t going to say anything to put you at risk.” Jennifer said, smiling.
“Yeah, as much as I hate to admit this, Jennifer is actually right. You pretty much have a clean slate and it’s up to you what you choose to do with it Jessica.” Megan said as she continued peeling potatoes.
“I think the worse of it is over Jessica. Anyone that has gone through the things that you have is bound to have triggers that bring back painful memories.” Mom said. “The only way to get over them is to confront them, the same way that you did with your birth mother. I know it’s not easy, but you’re going to have to take this a day at a time. Just try not to be too hard on yourself and don’t hold what is bothering you inside. That’s what Sarah did, and look where it got her.”
[-][+][-]
I thought about what Mom said, and she was right. As Andrew I held everything inside, and carrying all that pain is what led me to my suicide attempt. I hated to accept it, but I took after my real mother in more then just my looks.
Who knows, when she was my age she might have felt some of the same things that I have. I wasn’t abused sexually, but we both came from abusive homes.
We both had our dirty little secrets that we hid away from the world and dared not speak aloud. I could never forget the things that she had done, but knowing the truth, she’d had a mental illness.
She had spent years holding everything inside. I hated to think about it, but had my life continued going the way that it was, I could have ended up just like her. Fortunately, I’d had the Tanners.
I was the lucky one, I could see that now. I could forgive my real mother, but I’d never be able forget and I would have carry those scars for the rest of my life.
“Is everything alright, Jessica?” asked Mom.
“Yeah Mom, I’m alright. I was just thinking about how lucky that I am to be part of your family. I guess I realized how easy it would have been for me to turn out just like my birth mother. I was thinking about what it must have been like for her, growing up abused the way she was. She held it all inside and tried to pretend that it wasn’t happening. I tried to do the same thing as she did, and I could have ended up just like her.”
“That’s true Jessica, but you’re not the same person that you were. You have grown emotionally and you’re seeing things from a whole new point of view. I would say that there is very little chance of you ended up like your mother did, because you’re able to admit that there is a problem, and you’re willing to do something about it. That is the first step to healing.” Mom said with a smile.
“Life was so much easier, when all I felt was hatred for her. It’s like I don’t know what to think about her at times. She says that she loves me, but how can someone love you, then let someone hurt you? I just don’t understand! Am I crazy for wanting to believe that she can change?”
“I really think she loves you Jessica, but sometimes love isn’t enough. She has a mental illness. It was sexual abuse of a minor by a family member, and this traumatic experience has never been treated until now. It was likely affecting more then just her relationship with you. Look at your father for example: a woman that was mentally stable would have left a relationship like that, especially when their child was in danger. I am not her doctor, but if you were to ask me, had she been mentally stable she would never have been involved with your father.”
I looked at Mom. “Maybe it’s really not her fault, then?”
“It’s hard to place blame Jessica, you have to look at the whole picture. She likely knew on some level that what she was doing was wrong, and she should have taken you out of the home. For whatever reason, she didn’t. The only person that could answer that question is her.” Mom said frowning.
Something told me that someday, I would have all of the answers. Eventually, I would talk to my mother, but for now, though, I decided that I’d wait. She needed time to recover, to heal herself, provided that she continued to get help.
[-][+][-]
Chapter 56
After we finished preparing supper and putting it on the stove to cook, we had some time to kill. I had a lot of catching up to do if I was going to graduate this year, so I headed off to my room to start studying and doing up my assignments.
The only good thing was that I’d been an A+ student, and tended to always be a bit ahead of my class. Some of the assignments I’d already read up on, so that stuff didn’t really take all that much thought, I just did the assignments. Soon, though, I reached the assignments that I hadn’t seen, and those were going to take much longer for me to do. I’d work at it everyday till I was caught up. The last thing that I wanted to do was spend my summer in school.
I worked till about 5pm, when Dad came through the front door carrying his suite cases. I left my school work on my desk and went out to meet him. As I entered the living room, I found Mom and Megan were already there. I could see that I was not the only one happy to see that Dad was home. As he was hugging Megan and Mom, he looked over at me and smiled.
“Get over here, kiddo.” He said, and I soon found myself in his arms, too.
Over supper, he told us all about his trip and the things that he had done and seen. He seemed really relieved to finally be home and have sometime off. After supper, all of us headed into the living room and Dad grabbed one of his suite cases. Opening it up. he took out some packages and started handing them out to everyone, he even had one for Jennifer. I couldn’t help but smile, seeing the look on her face. I knew that she didn’t really have a father, at least one that really cared about her. Daddy had kind of adopted her as one of his own.
Inside were t-shirts that he had bought in Seattle, that were mostly for tourists, there was also a flyer for Disney Land.
Dad smiled. “That’s where we’re all going, after school is out.”
I couldn’t believe it. I’d always wanted to go there, but pretty much accepted that it would never happen.
“Please tell me this isn’t a joke.” I said smiling.
Dad shook his head. “It’s not a joke, I have a full month off and that’s where we’re going. We’ll be driving there, so there will be a few other stops on the way.”
Dad turned to Jennifer, “You’ll have to ask your mother, but something tells me she won’t have a problem with you coming along.”
He turned to me, “I was talking to your mother on the phone earlier. She said that you went back to school today. How was your first day?”
“It was alright, Dad. A little hard at first, but the rest of the day went alright.” I said smiling, “I have a lot of catching up to do!”
“Try not to worry about it honey, we’ll get you caught up.” Dad said with a smile.
[-][+][-]
It was around 6pm when the phone went off. I walked over and answered it. I was expecting a call from Scotty, but the man on the other end asked to talk to Mom or Dad, so I handed the phone to Dad.
“Hello, this is Anthony.” Dad said.
“Hi Anthony, my name is Daniel, I’m with the office of the District Attorney, I’m calling concerning Andrew Roberts, I understand that he is under your care.”
“Yes, what is this all about?” asked Anthony, sounding worried.
“I really don’t want to talk about this on the phone or even in my office. Would it be possible for me to drop over for a bit? I need to talk you in person about this.” Daniel said sounding urgent.
“When do you want to drop over?” Anthony said.
“Now, if possible. What I need to talk to you about is time sensitive.” Daniel replied.
“Alright, do you have our address?” Dad asked.
“Yes, I will be there in about a half hour,” Daniel said ending the call.
[-][+][-]
“What was that all about?” asked Janice.
“That was the District Attorney, and what it was about he wouldn’t say over the phone.” Anthony said sounding worried.
I sat there thinking to myself; whatever was going on had to be about me. If he wouldn’t talk over the phone it had to be something serious.
“Dad, if this about me, I’d like to stay and hear what he has to say.”
“Alright Jessica, but it’s likely nothing serious. It’s probably just about the court case.” Anthony said trying to make me feel better.
I had been waiting for something to happen, I knew that it would be only a matter of time before my Dad tried something. He must have really done something bad, to have someone like the district attorney visiting us at home. I tried staying calm, but I was shaking inside.
[-][+][-]
Time seems to fly when you’re worrying about something, and before I knew it the doorbell started ringing. Dad opened the door and a man came in. He looked to be in his late 40’s. After making the introductions Mom and Dad went into the kitchen and talked to him first.
After everyone was seated Anthony, turned to Daniel. “So what’s this all about?”
Daniel looked at Anthony and then over to Janice. “There’s no easy way to say this so I’ll be up front with you. We’ve learned that Jake Roberts intends to kidnap his son and is getting help from the Mob.”
“How the hell did he manage to get the Mob involved?” Anthony said in anger
“I really don’t know the answer to that question. All I know is the man that was hired to find Andrew contacted me. He has no intension of hurting Andrew, but he’s concerned that if he doesn’t do it, someone else will.” Daniel said, frustrated.
“Why can’t you just have the guy arrested?” Janice asked.
“I wish it was that simple, Janice. The man behind this is protected, and we believe he’s paid off some of the police. I am afraid that at this time, we can’t go to them for help.” Daniel said in frustration.
“So where do we go from here?” asked Anthony.
“I have a plan, but I’ll need Andrew’s help for it to work.” Daniel said
“What do you need Andrew for?” He was almost afraid to hear the answer to his question.
Daniel looked at Anthony, then at Janice, and took a deep breath. “Bait.”
“What good is that going to do, considering the police are involved?” Anthony said angry that he would ask such a thing.
“The OPP are compromised, but not the RCMP and I’ve already made arrangements for them to take charge of the case, Anthony. Andrew shouldn’t be in any danger. I’ll have a tracer on him, so we’ll know where he is at all times. Once the exchange is made, the RCMP will make the arrest. If I’m right, Jake will spill the beans on the people he’s working with.” Daniel said, and waited for it to sink in.
Janice turned to Anthony. “If we do nothing at all, they’ll eventually take Jessica.” She was no longer worried about Daniel knowing the truth.
Anthony nodded his head. “You’re right, Janice. We better bring her in.”
“Who is Jessica?” Daniel said, confused.
Anthony turned to Daniel, “Andrew and Jessica are both the same person, Jessica has a medical condition that the doctors missed. Because of that, she was raised as a boy. The doctors just found the problem and she had to be operated on in order to correct the problem, and save her life. Jessica has always known she was a girl and has had a hard life, her parents didn’t understand and were abusive towards her, so please go easy on her.” Anthony said.
[-][+][-]
I was sitting in my room, trying to stay busy. Ever since we got the call, I’d been a little on edge, Mom and Dad agreed that I wouldn’t be kept in the dark about what the call was all about, but they wanted to talk to him first. I sat in my room, trying to do my homework, but I just couldn’t concentrate on studying. Finally Mom came to my door.
“Jessica, will you join us in the kitchen?” Mom said, not looking very happy. This confirmed that whatever was going on wasn’t a good thing.”
I followed her into the kitchen and took a seat.
“So what is my father up to?” I said, already knowing it had something to do with him.
“Jessica, my name is Daniel. I am the District Attorney. I received a call from a man concerning your safety. The man works for the mob, your father is working for them now. The man that contacted me was hired to kidnap you and take you to your father. I met with the man earlier today, and he has no intention of following though with his orders. He is afraid that if he doesn’t follow through, someone else will and I agree with him.”
I sat there in shock hardly able to believe that this was happening. I knew my dad was capable of doing many things, but going to the mob? It was just so hard for me to believe it, but it had to be true if Daniel was here.
“What are my options?” I asked Daniel
“I’m afraid there aren’t many options Jessica. We can’t go to the local police because some of the police force have been compromised. I’ve contacted the RCMP, and they are willing to step in. The real problem is that there is more going on here then just you Jessica. The people we’re dealing with are dangerous, and they won’t stop coming for you until they succeed. The only sure way to put an end to things is to arrest your father and a man named Vincent. He is the main man that is behind everything.”
I thought for a few moment and realized where this was all leading, “You want to use me as bait, don’t you?” I asked.
Daniel nodded, “I am sorry, Jessica, but I can see no other way.”
I’d never really be free to live my life, not while I had this threat hanging over my head. I wasn’t naive enough to believe that they wouldn’t go after my family to get to me. This really left me one choice, I had to protect my family, and to do that there was only one course of action, I had to let them take me to my Dad and hope the police would step in before something bad happened.
I turned to Daniel. “I have no real choice here, do I?”
“This problem isn’t going to go away, Jessica. There really is only one course of action and that is to let the kidnapping take place. The man that will be taking you, his name is Rocco, is the one that contacted me because he didn’t want to follow though with the kidnapping.” Daniel told me.
“This Rocco, can we trust him?” I asked
“I believe that we can. If this plan fails, he’ll likely end up dead. If things go as planned he’ll most likely be the one taking Vincent’s place and running the organization. Most of what is going on is his plan.”
“If they take me how are you going to know where I am going to be?”
“The RCMP is going to place a tracer on you that way they will know you location at all times, and you will be wearing a bug. They will be able to hear everything. You shouldn’t be in any danger Jessica. The police will move in quickly after Rocco brings you to your father.” Daniel said.
I looked at Mom and Dad, “I have to do this it’s the only way to ever really be free of my father.”
“We know, baby.” Dad said, putting his arms around me.
I looked over at Daniel. “When do we start?”
“Tomorrow after school, we’ll need to make it look real. Rocco will shoot you with a dart and you need to pretend that it knocks you out. When he grabs you, put up a little fight and make it look real, then pretend to pass out. He will then put you in the car and drive away. The RCMP will already be at the school watching everything and they’ll follow closely behind using the tracer to follow you.”
“Alright, I’ll be ready.” I said, nervously.
“I’m sorry that you have to go through this, Jessica. If there was any other way . . .” Daniel apologized.
“It’s not your fault; I have a fruitcake for a father.” I said sadly.
[-][+][-]
Chapter 57
Daniel left shortly after explaining the plan to me. He needed to call Rocco and discuss all the details. Everything needed to be perfect for this plan to work. When the OPP arrived, there would be plenty of witnesses and word would get back to Vincent that the kidnapping had taking place.
If you were to ask me how I slept that night, I would have to say that I really didn’t get much sleep at all. I was flooded with wave after wave of nightmares and they were all about things that could go wrong.
I eventually gave up on trying to sleep at all. I walked over, picked up dad’s guitar and brought it over to my bed. I started just playing randomly. Music has always been relaxing to me, and at the moment my mind was working in overdrive.
So as I played, my mind started to relax a little. I found that there was a song starting to form inside my mind as I played. I took a note pad and start writing down the chords. It took me awhile for the song to completely form, but I eventually managed to write it down.
It was one of those songs that just had to come out. It came from the heart, it was the born from the pain that I had suffered at the hands of my father, and the hatred that I harbored towards him. I called it “Done trying.”
“I used to dream that you would love me
But all I found was despair.
I tried so hard to please you
God I tried, tried, tried
How many times, have I tried for you to love me?
I’m so tired of trying. I just want to be me. But that’s not good enough for you
You say this hurt you more than me, then why am I wearing your scars?
Why am I the one crying, why can’t you just love me.
They say love is unconditional, yeah right, live my life!
I’m done lying.
I’m done crying
But most of all, I’m done trying
I don’t need your pain.
I’ll be who I want to be
I won’t let you hurt me anymore.”
I felt better after venting my anger through the song and headed back to bed and did manage to sleep though the rest of the night. I was awakened at around 7am by Mom to get ready for school.
Breakfast was pretty quiet. Nobody really spoke much, but we were all thinking the same thing. I took a deep breath and broke the silence.
“Everything is going to be alright, I know you’re all scared, and I’m scared too. I can handle this. I have too much to live for to let them win. Whatever happens, I’m going to need you guys to be there when this is over with.” I said frowning.
Mom came over and took me in her arms. “We’re just worried honey. I know you can handle it, but you mean so much to us all.”
I couldn’t help it, and started crying as I hugged Mom, “I love you guys so much, please remember that.”
It wasn’t long before all of use where pretty much crying, even Dad. None of us wanted to be apart from one another and if there was another way, I’d have taken it, but there was no other way.
At 8am the door bell rang, and Dad went to answer it. When he came back, there were two plain clothes officers with him carrying a suitcase. They spent the next 15 minutes explaining everything. They gave me a necklace, and inside it was a mic that would allow them to hear everything, and a tracer so that they knew where I was at all times. There was also an area on it that opened that had a picture on it, the police officer said if I opened it, they would receive a panic alert. After everything was setup the both of them left and I went back to eating my breakfast, not wanting to think about what was going to happen later in the day.
After breakfast, Megan and I headed off to school, mom wanted to drive us but I couldn’t bear seeing her breakdown again and I needed to be strong if I was going to pull this off, Megan and I stopped and picked up Jennifer along the way and let her in on the plan, she was one of my closest friends and there was no way I wasn’t going to tell her. She took the news pretty hard and was definitely worried about something going wrong, and to be honest, so was I. I refused to talk about it, because it only made things worse.
I was also worried about if I should tell Scotty or not, he was pretty much my boyfriend but I was afraid that he would interfere. After talking it over with Megan and Jennifer they agreed that people sometimes do things without thinking when their emotions take control, so it was agreed that they would tell him afterwards. It was the best way too, as much as I loved him, I couldn’t risk him getting in the way.
[-][+][-]
After arriving at school I went to my home room for attendance and headed off to math class. I did my best to concentrate on my work, which wasn’t easy considering I had the awful nagging feeling that something was going to go wrong. It was likely just my mind playing tricks on me. but knowing that fact still didn’t help put my mind at ease.
The morning seemed to take forever to pass, but soon it was lunchtime and I found myself in the cafeteria waiting in line. I order a chicken salad sandwich and a diet coke. I made my way across the room and joined Megan and Jennifer at our normal table. Everyone else started pouring in and soon the table was full, Scotty arrived late as usual and met me with a hug and kiss.
“How’s my girl?” He said with a smile.
“I’m doing fine, but someone forgot to call me last night”. I said frowning.
“Yeah, sorry about that. Mom and Dad were on the phone most of the night, and by the time they finished, I figured it was a little late to call. I would have used my cell but the battery went dead on it.” Scotty said.
“Alright, I’ll forgive you this time, honey, but don’t let it happen again”, I said with a smile.
Britney and Natasha caught me up on the latest juicy bits of gossip, not that I’d really know who they were talking about. To be honest, I knew who they were talking about but being “new” to the area, I had to pretend that I didn’t. Every now and then they would point out who certain people were. I had no doubt that after today people would be talking about me as well.
After the bell rang telling students to return to class, Megan asked me how I was doing as we made our way back to home room.
“Alright I guess, I just wish it was over with, it’s the waiting that’s the worst part.”
“I know what you mean. I haven’t been able to think of anything else since mom talked to me last night.”
“Yeah I feel the same way” Jennifer said frowning.
“Another couple of hours to go.” I said. I hoped I didn’t sound as nervous as I felt.
[-][+][-]
The rest of the afternoon went by the same way as the morning had . . . slowly. When the final bell for the day rang, I looked over at Megan and Jennifer and smiled. I felt like I was walking down death row as the three of us made our way through the hallway. After reaching the gym, I smiled.
“I guess this is your stop.” I knew the girls had cheerleading. I had decided not to attend last night because the plan was pretty time sensitive and every minute pretty much counted.
The three of us said our goodbye and I received a hug from Jennifer and Megan. Megan wiped a tear from her eyes, “Come home soon Little sister. I love you, Jessica, remember that.”
“I will,” I said fighting back my tears, walking away knowing I had to be strong.
As I made my way towards the sidewalk, I looked around and didn’t see anyone. I wondered if something went wrong, but I kept walking towards home. Then out of nowhere I feel a jab in my back and two arms trying to grab hold of me. I try fighting him off, but he’s really strong. Then a car pulls up beside us and as I slowly allow my body to go limp, he forces me into the back seat of the car and climbs in beside me closing the door and the driver puts the car into drive and starts driving me to God know where.
[-][+][-]
“Are you alright, Jessica?” asked the man that grabbed me.
“Yeah, just a little shaken up.” I said. “Are you Rocco?”
“Yeah I’m Rocco, and the guy driving us is Adrian.”
“What now?” I asked.
“We have to change cars, and then we’ll take you to your father. Don’t worry, you’re safe with us.” Rocco said.
“Rocco what is going on? We’re supposed to grab Andrew Roberts, not this girl.”
“Andrew and Jessica, they’re both the same person Adrian, that’s why it appeared that Andrew dropped off the face of the earth.” Rocco told him.
“What’s this all about? Why are you dressed like a girl?” Adrian asked, confused
“I’ve always been a girl. I have a rare medical condition that the doctors missed when I was younger.” I explained.
“Damn, that’s crazy.” Adrian said, shaking his head.
“Yeah, try seeing it from my point of view.” I said frowning.
Adrian pulled into an alley and parked the car. There was a van waiting for us, and after climbing out of the car, the three of us made our way over to the parked van. Once there, Rocco pulled opened the door and as he did there were two guys inside. That was when he felt the shaft of a gun pressing into his back and the two guys both had their guns drawn and pointed.
“Sorry old friend, but I’m a dead man if I cross Vincent.” Adrian said
The two men inside the van grabbed me, I tried fighting but they were just too strong and pulled me inside the van.
Adrian then took Rocco’s gun and made him step away from the van.
”It didn’t have to be this way Rocco, believe me. I take no pleasure in doing this but it’s Vincent’s orders.” He said as he fired two shots into Rocco’s chest.
Rocco hit the ground hard and wasn’t moving, Adrian turned to the guys in the van. “She has a tracker on her and a bug, find it fast.”
One of the guys pulled out a box that had a wand on it and ran it over me until it started beeping. He ripped off my necklace and threw it on the ground, next to where Rocco was laying.
“Got it.” the man said, while the other used duct tape to secure my hands and feet, then placed a piece over my mouth making it impossible for me to call for help, I was finally blindfolded and then felt the van pull away. As I laid there I found myself crying out to God, Please help me.
[-][+][-]
End of Part 23
To be continued in part 24
Andrew’s Dilemma
Part 24
By, Cain129
Special Thanks to Wren Phoenix for the editing.
Synopsis: Things go from bad to worse for Jessica. A plan was made for her to be kidnapped by Rocco and Adrian, and the police were supposed to be there to make the arrests. Adrian double crossed Rocco, leaving him for dead and took Jessica with him. Jessica’s only hope is to escape before her father has a chance to follow through with his plans for her.
Chapter 58
I lay on the floor on the stinking van, unable to move, my hands and legs had been tied tightly together, and the blindfold made it impossible for me to see anything. I had this feeling of despair. I knew that there was nothing that I could do for now. My only hope was to play along with my captors until I had a chance to get away.
I could hear one of the guys. “What’s with the girl Adrian? I thought that we were grabbing a boy.”
“That is the boy or at least she was a boy. I don’t even know what to believe here, I see a girl, she said that something about a medical condition that made her appear to be a boy. Either way, it’s not important, all that matters is we have Andrew Roberts.” Adrian said, shaking his head.
The worst part was not having any idea where they were taking me. There wasn’t much else that I could do, at least at the moment. I tried to calm my nerves and tuned out the sound of the men that were in the van, and listened to the other sounds around me. I had no idea if this was going to work or not, but I could think of nothing else that I could do.
Eventually I could hear a train in the distance and then the sound of water flowing from a brook or a river. I felt a bump in the road, then the ground we were driving on was smooth. About a minute later, there was another bump. I thought to myself that we just crossed a bridge
Most of the drive I could hear the sound of cars passing us and the sound of big trucks, so I knew we had to be on the highway. Eventually we left the highway and we were no longer driving on pavement, I could tell just by the feeling that we were driving on a gravel road, maybe an old logging road. I estimated that we had been on the highway for atleast a half hour to forty five minutes, then there was a strong smell of manure, I reasoned that we had to be near a dairy farm. The smell lasted for about 10 minutes.
I could feel that the van was turning onto another road then it drove for another few minutes and I could hear the sound of water again. I thought it had to be another brook or maybe a stream leading into a lake. A few minutes later the van came to a stop and I heard the sound of the engine shutting off. I guess that we had finally arrived.
The next thing I knew, I felt the side door being pulled open and I was being pulled out and carried into a building, then I heard a sound that just made me cringe. It was my dad’s voice. Whoever was holding me sat me down on a chair.
”What the fuck is this? You were supposed to bring my son, not some stupid fucking bitch.” Dad said harshly
“This is your son”, Adrian said
“I felt the blind fold being removed, and when I could finally see, all I saw was my dad staring right at me.”
He looked at me and what I saw was pure evil. He then turned to Adrian. “Yes, I can see that now. You’ve done your job, I’d like sometime alone to talk to my son, daughter or whatever the fuck this is.”
[-][+][-]
After Adrian and his goons left, I was now alone with my father. He just shook his head.
“Looking at you makes me sick, my son dressed like a fucking girl. I don’t know what you are but you are no kid of mine.” Dad said, then he slapped me across the face so hard that I fell out of the chair and onto the floor.
I wanted to scream at him and tell him how much that I hated him but the gag in my mouth prevented me from saying anything. He then came over to me. “You want to be a little bitch, I will treat you like one!”
He then grabbed a hand full of my hair and started dragging me across the floor,
opened a drawer, pulled out a chain and wrapped it around my neck.
He used a padlock to secure it around my neck and took another one and wrapped the chain around one of the support beams and used another lock to secure it. All I could do was just lay on the floor unable to move. Dad left me like that as he grabbed a beer from a cooler then went outside.
I tried my best to try to get into a sitting position, and eventually I was able to sit up, leaning up against the beam I was chained to. I looked around for anything that I could use to free myself, but there was nothing within reach that I could use to cut the tape away. I would have to keep my wits and wait for the right time. I just hoped that I could hold him off until I could get away. I really wasn’t counting on the police for help, as they had no idea where I was being held.
A little while later Dad came inside, grabbed another beer, then grabbed a knife and started walking towards me. I was scared to death. Was this it, was he really going to kill me? He grabbed me by my wrists and cut the tape that was holding my hands together, then did the same with my feet I could now at least move. I reached up and pulled the gag out of my mouth.
He took a seat across from me. “Why are you dressed like this, Andrew?”
“Do you remember those cramps that I was complaining to Mom about? They
were more then just cramps, Dad. I had a medical condition that the doctors missed, I’ve always been a girl, and the cramps were the start of my period. “
“That’s bullshit, Andrew; you forget I used to change you. I know what you have down below.” Dad said and took another drink of his beer.
“Yes, Dad, I did have a penis that was useless, when they did the x-rays, they found that I was really a girl, I can even have a baby.”
“I don’t believe it Andrew. This is just another one of your stupid games and I’m tired of them. I lost everything because of you, and believe me you are going to pay for everything you have taken from me.” Jake said, taking another drink.
I thought hard for a few minutes, trying to think of something I could say. I needed to buy myself some time. He wasn’t drunk yet, and it was possible to reason with him, at least for now anyway.
“Dad, I didn’t do anything to you. I loved you and believe me, I tried to be the person you wanted me to be. I wanted more then anything for you to be proud of me, but look at me! I’m a girl, and I have always been. I never asked for any of this. I used to pray to God every night that he would make me normal like everyone else but this is the real me. I could have tried for a million years to be the person you wanted me to be, but the results still would have been the same.”
“I still remember the good times Dad, you weren’t always like this. I used to love spending time with you, but then you started drinking again and things changed. You changed, the father that I loved was gone and in his place was someone that didn’t love or accept me. I did everything that I could think of and tried my best.
God, I hated sports and I hated hunting and fishing, but I did it because I wanted to be with you, Dad. I know that I‘m a disappointment, and not the child you wanted, but I have always loved you and I would have done anything to have you feel the same way. I guess I understand why you feel the way you do. There are times that I can’t even stand looking in the mirror, because of who I am. Why do you think that I tried to take my own life, Dad? It was because of you and Mom, I couldn’t stand hurting the two of you any longer, but just like everything else I screwed that up to! ” I said, crying.
“How would your taking your life be best for your mother and I?” Dad asked, confused.
“Dad the two of us used to workout a lot, and I could never put on muscle and it wasn’t from lack of trying. I toned up and was in great shape but then other things started happening to me and I didn’t understand it at the time. My hips started filling out and I started growing breasts. I tried to talk to Mom about it, but she wouldn’t listen. I was too ashamed to come to you and then the cramps started, and I told Mom about it, but she kept brushing it off, saying that it was just gas.
I didn’t know what to do Dad, then when I went to school and had gym class everyone was making fun of me, and when I came to you for help, you told me I had to fight my own battles. I couldn’t fight back, they were so much bigger than me. When I tried standing up to them, it just made things worse. Things might have been different for me, if I had seen a doctor before I became a teenager, the medical condition could have been treated with hormones. By the time they figured it out, it was too late. My body was too far gone to ever become a man.”, I said sadly.
Dad sat there thinking. “What you are saying does explain a lot Andrew. There’s still one problem. Because of the suicide attempt, the police are looking for me and I will likely end up in jail if they catch me.”
“Dad, why would you end up in jail? Whatever might have happened between us, you’re still my father and I would never do anything that would hurt you like that. I know everything that you did was because you were trying to help me. You did nothing wrong, and I will tell them that. I just want us to be a family again, that is if you can accept me like this. I can’t go back, it’s too late for that.”
“It’s not that easy Andrew, the police wouldn’t understand.”
“Daddy, could you do something for me?” I said with a smile.
“What?”
“I know my name is Andrew but since I can’t go back to being a boy, I had to pick another name. I am Jessica now.”
“That’s your Grandmother’s name.” Dad said referring to his mother.
“I know, that’s why I chose it. I figured if I had to be a girl then I would choose something appropriate.”
“You know, you look a little like her.” Dad said as he took another drink.
“Really?” I said, a bit surprised.
“Yeah, except for the hair, she was a redhead.” Dad said.
“So, does this make you happy?” Dad said, referring to me being a girl
“I’ve been a girl most of my life so that part is easy. It’s other things that are hard.”
“I guess people are the problem more then anything. There seems to be line between the two sexes, like boys are expected to act one way while girls are expected to react differently, and I really get mixed up sometime. It’s hard to change, especially things you’ve done all your life.”
Dad looked like he was thinking about what I had told him. I decided to try something, just to see how far I could actually push things.
I looked around the room, the cabin was a complete mess. “I guess cleaning was Mom’s department.”
“Yeah, I was never that good at taking care of the cleaning or cooking.” Dad said as he took another drink.
I looked at him. “When was the last time you had something to eat?”
“Maybe yesterday?” He said.
“Damn it Dad, you shouldn’t be drinking on an empty stomach! Are you hungry? I’m
not as good a cook as Mom is, but I can cook.”
“There’s no food, I have to do some shopping.”
I shook my head and smiled. “How did you ever get by without Mom?”
He smiled. “She was always good at taking care of things, she would sure be surprised if she saw you now.” Dad said.
I could tell that Dad was missing her, and figured that I could try using that to my advantage. “She misses you, too, Dad.”
“How would you know?”
“I kind of had a run in with her at the hospital the other day.”
“How is she doing?” Dad asked.
“She blamed me at first for your leaving, but the two of us talked and I told her the same things that I just told you. At first she didn’t believe me either, but I asked my doctor to talk to her. Once she talked to the doctor and actually saw the x-rays herself, she seemed to understand. She also told me about what Granddad did to her and I wished you would have killed the bastard.”
“Believe me Jessica, I wanted to, but your mother was always the smart one and talked me out of it.” Dad said. “I guess that maybe, I should make a run into town and get some food.”
“Are you sure that you’re alright to drive?”
“Yeah, I’ve only had a few beers, and we need some food.”
He stood up and started heading to the door. “Dad, before you go, could you at least move me over to the chair, this is really uncomfortable.”
“Alright Jessica. If you’re good, I’ll let you out of those chains when I get back.” He said with a smile.
After Dad moved me over to the chair, he helped me up and I felt a little better. I waited for him to leave and heard the sound of his car leaving. I knew that I had maybe an hour or two before he returned. I looked around the room for anything that I could reach, but came up empty. I would have to wait and hope I had a chance later when he let me loose. I’d continue playing this game, even though given a choice right now, I would gladly put a bullet though his head.
[-][+][-]
Chapter 59
Rocco let out a light moan. “Shit this hurts!” He said as he touched his chest.
He looked at his watch, he’d been out for about 20 minutes. He grabbed his cell phone and dialed a number.
“Hey Wayne, everything went as expected. Is the trace still active?”
“Yes, it’s still active and we can move in anytime.”
“Meet me at O’Malley’s in 20 minute,” Rocco said, ending the call
As Rocco made his way over to O’Malley’s, he called Daniel’s cell phone.
[-][+][-]
Word had already started to circulate within the organization about Rocco’s betrayal, causing ripples between the family, between his supports and the people that were backing Vincent. Adrian arrived at Vincent’s compound to collect the money the Vincent owed him for kidnapping Andrew Roberts, he had no problem entering the compound.
Neither did his friends, who just happened to be plain clothes police officers. They followed him inside, after taking out the goon that was watching the gate.
The good thing about Vincent’s people was they could be bought off pretty easy, as was the case of Jane Taylor. Her job was to watch the surveillance cameras that were posted all over the compound. Her changing sides was an easy choice,
because she and Adrian were an item. Adrian pretty much walked into Vincent’s home with no opposition and made his way into Vincent’s study, while his men took up positions to provide cover once Vincent’s men arrived.
Adrian knocked on the door, until Vincent said he could enter, then went inside and took a seat across from Vincent.
“I assume that everything went as planned?” Vincent said with a smile.
“Yeah, Andrew is with his father, and I took care of Rocco, personally.”
“You should have seen the look on Rocco’s face. He didn’t expect me to turn on him, but you wanted me to kidnap the boy and I did as you wished. Now all that is left is the payment.”
“It couldn’t have been easy for you to take out Rocco. He was like a father to you.” Vincent said with a frown.
“Yes it was tough, and I seriously thought about backing out and joining him, but I made a promise to your father when I became part of the family and I won’t let
any man tear it down. Rocco made the same promise and chose to break it. He got what he deserved, if you ask me.” Adrian said, without feeling.
Vincent handed Adrian an envelope that was full of cash. Adrian took it and placed it into his pocket. “So what do you think is going to happen to the kid?” Adrian said, concerned.
“The kid, he’ll most likely end up dead, but that’s not our concern. Our job was to bring the child to his father, and the job is done.” Vincent said with a smile.
“That’s all I needed to hear.” Adrian pulled out his gun and pointed it at Vincent. “I have a message for you Vincent.”
“Rocco Says Hi!” Adrian opened fire on Vincent, shooting him twice in the head.
The sound of the gunfire causes Vincent’s men to come running, but they are quickly taken out by Rocco’s men. Adrian then walks over and fires off another gun and places the gun into Vincent’s hand.
After the commotion in the study is over, a couple of police officers come running in the room. “What happened?”
“Vincent tried to shoot me, but I was faster.” Adrian said with a smile.
[-][+][-]
After Jake returned he had a few bags of food and placed it on the table, then looked over at me, like if he was trying to make up his mind. “I’m going to let you loose, but if you give me any trouble, you’re going to regret it, do you understand?”
“I will be good Daddy, I promise.”
“Alright.” he said, walking over. He removed the chain that was wrapped around my neck.
“Now that I was finally free, I turned to him. “Do you want me to cook supper?”
“Go ahead.” he said, taking another beer out of the cooler.
I went over to the kitchen and looked at the wood stove. I turned to him. “Do we have any wood, Daddy?”
“Yeah.” He said, then walked over to the front door and opened it. While he was outside on the step, I looked and found a knife and grabbed the duct tape that was on the floor. It had been attached to my feet and I quickly taped it under the chair I had been sitting on.
I walked over to the door and saw Dad carrying some wood. As I looked outside I
could see I was right, the cabin was next to a lake. Once he reached the door I grabbed a bunch of the wood from him then put it in the stove, as he carried the rest over by the window and set it on the floor. He then came over and lit the fire.
With the stove heating up, I walked over to the window and looked out. The place was actually quiet beautiful. If I wasn’t here with my father, I think that I would really enjoy coming to a place like this. I looked over and saw Dad looking at me funny.
“What?” I said.
“Nothing, I was just thinking how much you look like your Grandmother, when she was your age.”
I have never met my Grandmother. She died before I was born, but I had seen pictures of her, and he was right, I did look like her a bit.
“What was Grandma like?” I asked.
“Dad thought a minute, then took another drink. “She was like your mother in many ways. Your grandfather and her married when they were 19 years old and they were together for 50 years. That’s something you don’t see anymore, most marriages fall apart theses days.” Dad said sadly.
“Mom still loves you, Dad. She’s in the hospital mostly because of what Granddad did to her, not because of you. Since you left she’s had to stand on her own and has been having a rough time with things. I think she is getting better now, when I talked to her, she told me a lot of things.”
“What did she tell you?” Dad asked.
“I think she likes the idea of having a daughter, because she would have never told me these things when I was living as Andrew. She has been holding everything that happened and how she tried pretending it never happened. It made her really sick. Before, she had you to lean on, and she knew you would protect her. After you left, she didn’t have anyone to help her, and she was forced to stand on her own two feet. I think what happened was hard for her, but she is getting help now and seems to be getting better now.”
I then took a knife and started peeling some potatoes and onions. When I was done, I took out a frying pan and pictured myself hitting him over the head with it. Instead, I placed it on the stove and placed a couple of steaks inside it along with the onions. I put the potatoes into a pot with some water and put it on the stove and let everything start cooking.
I poured myself a glass of water out of the jug, then walked over and joined Dad on the couch, not really wanting to be close to him, but I had to show him that I still loved and cared about him.
“Supper should be ready in about a half hour.” I said, taking a drink of my water.
“That should be fine. I’m actually a little hungry.”
“You should be, since you haven’t eaten since yesterday.” I said frowning “You need to start taking care of yourself, Daddy.” I then got up and started cleaning the place, not that I really wanted to, but it would give me something to do.
You don’t have to do that, Jessica.” Dad said.
“Someone has to, Daddy, Mom’s not here to do it.” I picked up one of the empty pizza boxes, after opening it I could see it was all moldy. I chucked it into a garbage bag and continued working.”
Dad started laughing, I looked over at him. “What’s so funny?”
“I was just thinking how much you sound like your mother right now.” Dad said.
I laughed. I hated to admit it, but he was actually right. I remember Mom telling him the same things as I had just said.
I smiled. “I guess you’re right, Daddy, I never noticed until you mentioned it.”
[-][+][-]
Rocco was waiting at Wayne’s place when his phone rang. It was Adrian.
“How did it go?” asked Rocco.
“Everything went as planned and the police got everything on tape.” Adrian said.
“And Vincent?” Rocco asked.
“Let’s just say he was killed when the police raided that place.” Adrian said
“Good, let’s leave it that way. I want you to contact the rest of the family. Tell them what just happened, and tell them I’m taking Vincent’s place. Setup a meeting with everyone for Monday morning please, Adrian.”
“Alright Rocco, I'll start making the calls.” Adrian said
“Adrian, next time I get you to shoot me, remind me to wear two vests. I feel like I just got in a fight with Mike Tyson and lost.”
“Don’t blame me Rocco, it was your idea.” Adrian said laughing
After Rocco got off the phone he called Daniel and gave him the location of where Jessica was. Wayne being the electronic genius that he was, he had implanted a tracker inside the dart that they had shot Jessica with. They were just waiting for Adrian to take care of his part of the plan, so that Jake couldn’t depend on Vincent for help. Now with Vincent dead, Jessica would finally be safe.
Chapter 60
After finishing up supper, I was busy doing up the dishes while my father sat on the couch, looking pretty content after having a decent meal. I was busy playing the perfect daughter and taking care of him. The plan was to wait until he was drunk, that way I could make an escape, so I kept bringing him a cold beer every time he started running low. The place now was completely cleaned up.
I turned to Dad. “Do you think we could go outside and get some fresh air?”
The two of us got up. I noticed that Dad was starting to really feel the results of drinking most of the day, and was have trouble walking. I put my arm around him to help guide him. The two of us were outside and took a seat on the small deck. I looked around. “I like it here Daddy, it looks familiar.” I said, being honest.
“It should, you were here before, but you were really young. That’s why you don’t remember, your mother and I brought you here. I had some time off work and we spent the summer here. Your mother was terrified of that lake. She was afraid you would end up drowning in it.” Dad said with a smile.
“I think I remember now, I was like 6 years old.” I said smiling. “You and Uncle James spent the day on the lake fishing, and I was still really young, but I want to go with you really bad. Mom wouldn’t let me, but you talked her into letting me go. I had that lifejacket that was too big for me, and you used duct tape to make it stay on me.” I said laughing.
Dad shook his head. “I can’t believe you remember that.”
I smiled. “I had so much fun that day with you, I never wanted the day to end.”
“Those were better days. Things seemed to make sense back then.” Dad said, taking another drink. “Where has the time gone?”
“I know what you mean, Dad, things were better back then. It seems the older you get, the more complicated life becomes.” I said seriously.
“Yeah, it seems that way.” He said.
“Do you ever wish you could go back?. I know that I sure do.” I said.
“All the time Jessica, there are so many things I wish that I could do over again, but life doesn’t give you that option. You have to live with the things you have done.” Dad said.
“You might not be able to do anything about the past, Dad, but there is always the future. I know you don’t want to hurt me. Maybe at first, but not now. I love you, Dad and as for what happened in the past, can’t we just leave it there? I am so tired of living in the past, and I just want to start over and live my life. If the police find us something might go wrong, and I don’t want to loose you.” I said, sadly
Dad looked at me. “What am I supposed to do? I can’t just let you go, can I?”
“Daddy, you don’t have to, I don’t want to go. I want to stay with you and mom. We can just pack our bags, leave and start over. I know it will be hard starting over but we can be a family again and I know Mom will want this as much as I do, Daddy.” I said, hamming it up.
Dad sat there and took another drink of his beer, “It could be arranged.” Dad said, thinking aloud. “I know someone that could take care of it for a cost.”
“Then do it Dad. It’s the only way, then we can get Mom.” I said with a smile.
Dad nodded, and then took another drink of his beer, “I’m still not sure I can trust you.” He said, looking right at me.
“Have I ever lied to you?” I said, pouting.
He thought about it for a minute. “No I guess you haven’t.”
“Then why would I start now, if I wanted to leave Daddy, I could have before. All I would have had to do is run into the woods.” I said trying to prove my point
“I can’t do anything until morning anyway” dad said flatly, “I’ll make the call in the morning.”
I looked at his beer and was going to go inside and get some water anyway, I stood up and turned towards the door. “I’m getting something to drink, do you want another beer while I’m up, Daddy?”
“Sure grab me one.” He said.
“I went inside, feeling a little relieved. I knew for the moment that I was safe. I didn’t think he would try anything now. I grabbed a beer and poured myself a glass of water then joined him on the step.
Just as I reached my father, all hell broke out and I could hear yelling coming from the woods. It was the police. Dad grabbed hold of me and held me in front of him.
“Jake let her go! You’re surrounded!” Someone said, but I couldn’t make anyone out.
“I am not going back to jail!” Jake screamed back. I could feel Dad’s grip on me was shaky at best.
“Dad, please let me go, they’re going to shoot you if you don’t. I don’t want to loose you, please don’t make me watch you die!” I said crying.
“I knew that I could break free, but if I did they were going to shoot him, I didn’t want to see him die, even after everything he had done to me. He was my father and I still cared about him.
It was sick, I know, but it was also true.
“Daddy, Please!” I said crying.
“I’m sorry, Jessica.” He said, pushing me off the steps then drew his gun at the police and before he could get a shot off he was plumbed by a barrages of bullets. I screamed and ran over to where my dad was laying, he was still alive. I took his hand. “WHY!” I said crying loudly
“Jessica, I was a monster. I didn’t understand, please forgive me?” He said, crying.
“I wrapped my arms around him and held him. “I forgive you Daddy!” I said crying, as he died in my arms.
[-][+][-]
I was taken to the police station where Mom and Dad were waiting for me. I was an emotional basket case and found myself in their arms within seconds. After the police took my statement, I was finally free to go home with Mom and Dad. Once I arrived home, I felt completely numb inside. Both Megan and Jennifer met me with a hug but I just couldn’t be around people. I headed off to my bedroom, shut the door behind me and pretty much cried myself to sleep.
[-][+][-]
The End
To be continued in season two !!!
Jessica’s Journey
Sequel to Andrews Dilemma
By, Cain129
Part One
Special Thanks to Wren Phoenix for the editing.
Synopsis: After being kidnapped by her father, Jessica watched him die in her arms. Now she must learn to deal with his death and find a way to move on with her own life. With the past behind her and the imminent threat gone, she is finally free to start living the life that she had always dreamed of, but the price she’s had to pay weighs heavily on her.
Chapter 1
After giving the police my statement, I was finally allowed to go home. I made it home, but I was an emotional wreck. Watching my father die in my arms had done something to me. Having hated the man for most of my life, I should have been glad to see him gone. Still, there was this part of me that loved him and his dying words had affected me. Why did it take him dying before he could admit he was wrong?
In the end, I believe that he finally accepted me as his daughter. I’m sure the police had already told my mother that he was dead, and I wondered how she had taken the news. I hand’t lied to my father; I knew that my mother still loved him. How else could they have stayed together for all those years?
I was reluctant to see her, but I knew that it was something that I had to do. Even though I was being adopted by Janice and Anthony, she had been the one that gave birth to me and she shouldn't’t have to go through something like this all alone.
Last night had been the hardest night that I’d ever had. I cried myself to sleep, but kept waking up, reliving the events over and over again. I knew that I was not going to get through this alone. I needed help to deal with all that had happened. I felt as if I was hanging by a thread that would eventually snap.
I looked over at the clock. It was only 5am, but I slowly dragged myself out of bed, turned on the lights and made my way over to the bathroom. As I passed the mirror, I took a look, and what I saw looking back was frightening. I looked terrible. My hair looked like it had been styled by an army of angry squirrels, my eyes were blood shot, and I badly needed a bath.
After filling up the bathtub, I removed my clothes, chucked them in the laundry basket, climbed into the tub and just relaxed. The water was a little to hot but not enough for me to bother getting out. I laid there soaking for about an hour, then pulled the plug and climbed out.
I spent the next 30 minutes getting dressed and doing my makeup, I was’t planning on sitting around the house feeling sorry for myself. I looked at the clock, and noticed
It was still early. I would probably be the only one up for at least an hour. I went into the kitchen, put on a pot of coffee, then clicked the power button on the radio and took a seat at the kitchen table, waiting for the coffee to brew. I was’t normally a big fan of coffee, but I needed something to help kick start the day.
Once the coffee was finished, I poured myself a cup and put some milk and sugar in to get rid of the bitterness. I was pretty much lost in thought when Mom came into the kitchen. She gave me a small smile, then came over, wrapped her arms around me and kissed me. It felt so good to be held by her.
“How are you doing, sweetie?” She asked, walking over and pouring herself a cup of coffee
“I’ve had better days.” I admitted with a frown.
“Give it time, baby. Your father and I probably should’t have let them take you.” Mom said with regret.
“It’s not your fault, Mom, I had to do this, it was the only way to put an end to it. I just wished it would have ended differently.” I said, as a tear ran down my cheek.
“So do I, sweetheart.”
“I just don’t understand, why? Mom, there was no reason for him to kill himself.”
“Your father was a very sick man, Jessica.” Mom pointed out sadly.
“Yeah, but towards the end, things seemed to change. He was like he used to be towards me and I think he finally accepted me as his daughter. I saw a side of him that I hand’t seen in years, and then he does something stupid and kills himself. WHY?” I cried, angrily.
“I can’t answer that question, baby. It’s one of those questions you may never find the answer to. All I can tell you is that in time, it will get easier.” Mom said, wrapping her arms around me.
“Why is life so complicated?” I asked with a sigh.
“That’s a good question.” Mom said, smiling.
After finishing my coffee, I gave Mom a hand making breakfast. As I placed the bread in the toaster, I turned to her. “Can you give me a drive to the hospital, later?”
“Why, honey? I kind of thought you would be staying home today.” Mom asked
“I have to talk to my birth mother.” I told her, sadly.
“Are you sure that’s a good idea, Jessica?”
“I have no idea, Mom, but it’s something that I have to do. I’m all she has left now, and she’s going to need me, now more then ever.”
“Alright, honey, but if it gets to be too much for you to handle, you can call me and I will come get you,” she suggested.
“I think it would be a good idea for me to see Dr. Humphrey too, Mom.”
“All right baby. I’ll give her a call and see if she can squeeze you in.”
“Thanks, Mom. I don’t know what I would do without you.” I said, giving her a hug.
[-][+][-]
When Mom and I finished making breakfast, she went upstairs to get Dad and Megan out of bed. While she was doing that, I finished setting the table. It didn’t take very long before everyone started pouring into the kitchen.
I could tell that Megan and Dad were worried about me. They came over, gave me a hug and told me when I was ready to talk that they were ready to listen. I did my best to hold things together and was thankful that neither one of them pushed me about what happened. Eventually I would talk to them about it, but this wasn’t the time.
After Megan headed off to school and Dad headed off to work, it was pretty much just Mom and I at home. I gave her a hand cleaning up and doing the dishes. When we finished, she went upstairs to get dressed so she could drop me off at the hospital.
Chapter 2
The drive to the hospital was not an easy one. Part of me just wanted to go home and climb back into bed, rather then deal with everything that had happened. I knew that this was something that I needed to do, though.
“How are you doing, baby?” Mom asked.
“All right I guess, though part of me just wants to go home and hide from the world.” I admitted.
“You know you don’t have to do this right now, don’t you?”
I know Mom, and with everything that has happened, I have a good excuse not to. I think she’s going to need me right now, and even with everything that she has done to me. I just can’t walk away. It’s not who I am.” I said with a frown.
“Well, give me a call when you’re ready, and I’ll pick you up.” Mom said.
[-][+][-]
After Mom dropped me off I made my way inside, and headed over to the information desk. I told the lady who I was and asked her for directions to my mother’s room, then headed over to the elevator and clicked the button for the 7th floor. I was feeling pretty edgy as the elevator neared her floor. Soon the elevator reached its destination, but I still had a long walk still ahead of me. I eventually found the doors to psychiatric ward were locked to provide security. I had to ring a buzzer and wait for someone to be let inside.
Eventually I was met by a nurse who opened the door for me. “Hello, can I help you?” asked the nurse.
“Hi, my name is Jessica Roberts, and I am here to see my mother, I know that it’s not the right time for visitors, but I really need to see her regarding her husband and my father.” I said sadly
“Come on inside, I’ll call her doctor, he’ll want to talk to you first.” The nurse said, and I followed her inside. She eventually took me to a waiting room and told me to wait and Dr. Robbins would come in shortly.”
[-][+][-]
There was this part of me that just wanted to leave but I forced myself to stay put. I waited for about 1o minutes before a man in a white coat came through the door, it looked to be in his late forties. I figured that it had to be Dr. Robbins, as he entered the room he said. “Jessica Roberts”
I smiled. “Yes, that’s me.”
“What’s going on here, part of my job is to check patient files for relatives and Sarah has no daughter.” Dr. Robbins said plainly.
I looked at Dr. Robbins, “Your records are out of date, I used to be Andrew Roberts, but as you can see that isn’t who I am now.”
He looked at me, surprised. “Are you saying you’re a transsexual?”
“What I am is not really any of your business, but if you must know I had a medical condition that was misdiagnosed and spent the last 16 years living as a boy, but as you can see that has been corrected. My father is dead and my mother is alone. Rather than discussing my medical issues, let’s discuss what can be done to help her.” I said a little irritated.
“All right Jessica, I am sorry for the misunderstanding. The police came last night and we broke the news to your mother. She is not doing very well his death hit her pretty hard. How are you taking things?” He asked me, looking concerned
“Not too good, he died in my arms. My step mother is trying to get me in to see Dr. Humphrey, and she’s the doctor that I have been seeing.”
“I would imagine that under the circumstances she will squeeze you in.” Dr. Robbins said reassuringly.
“Normally we wouldn’t allow visitors at this time of morning but under the circumstance I think that we can make an exception and I think it will do your mother some good having a visit from you.” Dr. Robbins said
“It’s hard being around her with everything that has happened in our past. I’m really all she has left and I can’t walk away from her, at least not at this time. Now, can I ask you a question?”
“Sure Jessica, what is it?”
“How is my mother really doing and do you think she is serious about wanting to change? I have to know, because she was abusive towards me. I really don’t want to waste my time on her if this is all an act.”
“I shouldn’t be discussing this with you, but I think that it might be beneficial for both of you. I’ve been working with your mother now for close to a month. We have spoken about what happened with her father and what happened between you and her. I really do believe that she is serious about wanting to change, but you cannot expect it to happen overnight. She has been hiding for most of her life from a serious trauma. This has become a way of survival for her. If you are asking me if, in my opinion, it is worth trying to trust her, I would have to say that I believe she feels guilty for what she did to you, and would do anything if it meant having you in her life.”
After taking in what Dr. Robbins had said, I turned to him.
“I’m willing to give it a shot, but a mother/daughter relationship is, at least for now, too painful. I have new parents that love and support me and I’m not willing to give that up. I will try to be here for her, and perhaps in time we can work things out. Thank you for your honest input, I needed to hear it from someone who knows the truth.”
“It’s not a problem, Jessica. Now, if you’re ready, I will take you to your mother.” Dr. Robbins said with a smile.
[-][+][-]
Dr. Robbins and I walked down a long hallway till we reached a door with Mom’s name on it. He turned to me. “I will leave you here. If you need me, just ask for one of the nurses.”
I watched him head down the hall, and then lightly tapped on the door. I heard Mom’s voice telling me to come inside. I slowly opened the door. The first thing that I noticed was how dark the room was. I slowly reached over by the door and turned on the lights. I noticed that her eyes were as bloodshot as mine had been. She looked over at me with a surprised expression.
“Jessica, you came!” and before I knew what was happening, I found her arms around me as she broke down crying.
I helped her over to the bed and just held her. This wasn’t the woman that I remembered.
“It’s all right, Mom. I’m here; you don’t have to go through this all alone.” I said as I started crying myself.
After Mom and I calmed down, she turned to me.
“Are you alright, honey? The police officers told me what happened. I was so worried about you! I wanted to call you, but I didn’t know if you would want to hear from me.” Mom said, sadly.
“It’s alright, Mom. You could have called, but I understand why you didn’t. I’m not doing well at all,” I admitted, crying. “I’m barely holding it together. He died in my arms, Mom, but he wasn’t the monster anymore. He was like he was before he started drinking again.”
“He treated me like I was his daughter, and said he was sorry for everything. I just wish it didn’t take him dying before he could say those words to me.”
Mom wrapped her arms around me as I let my feelings out.
“It’s all right, honey,” she said softly. “It’s just going to take us time to get over this.”
“I just don’t understand! Why?” I wailed. “He didn’t have to die, Mom. None of this makes any sense to me.”
Mom looked at me. “I don’t know what to tell you, honey. You know your father was an alcoholic, and he had his own ways. He blamed everyone else for his problems, you know this better then anyone. He treated you terribly, Jessica, and I wasn’t any better. Honey, I was too messed up with my own problems to pay attention to what you were going through. I’m your mother, and it was my job to protect you. I was too afraid, I couldn’t even do that. I am so sorry Jessica, please forgive me. I was as much a monster as your father ever was.” Mom admitted as she broke down in tears.
“I forgive you, Mom. I didn’t understand before, but I do now.” I rocked her in my arms. “Let’s just leave the past behind us. I think both of us have been living in the past long enough.”
“Thank you, Jessica. You don’t know how much that means to me.” Mom said, as she tried to get control of herself.
“So what are you going to do now, Mom?”
“To be honest, I’m not sure, but I think I’m going to sell the house. There are just too many memories there.”
“I think that’s a good idea, Mom. Maybe you should look into getting a smaller two bedroom place.” I said, smiling.
Mom looked at me, “You’re not saying what I think you’re saying?”
“Mom, I can’t forget what happened between us, but I think I can forgive you in time. For now, my plans haven’t changed. I think it’s best for both of us if I’m adopted by the Tanners. I’m happy there, and I know that it’s the right decision for now, but it doesn’t mean that I have to cut you out of my life. I want a relationship with you Mom, and maybe in time the two of us can be more. I really don’t know what the future holds. I’m willing to try if you are.”
Mom looked at me. “I am willing to try and I think you’re right, as much as I dislike it. The Tanners are good people and they will care for you while I deal with my own issues.”
“Do you have any idea when you will be discharged, Mom?”
“I was supposed to go home next week, but I really don’t know if I am ready to return to an empty house. I know that I have to get everything packed. I’ll be staying with your Aunt Janet for awhile, and then I guess that I will be looking into finding my own place.” Mom said.
“Call me when you’re ready to start packing, Mom. I’ll come over and give you a hand, there’s no reason you have to deal with that alone. As far as Dad’s funeral, I’m not sure what to do about that. His family will be there and I don’t think they’re going to be happy to see me.”
“They can go straight to hell!” Mom said, angrily. “Whether they like it or not, you are his daughter. You have every right to be there. Your father created his own problems, and if they don’t like it, that’s their problem.”
I smiled, I had never seen my mother cursing like that and I had to admit that I liked what I was seeing. She had changed so much since coming into the hospital and I had to admit to myself I was proud of her.
[-][+][-]
Mom and I talked for another hour, and then I told her that I had better be going. It was nice to have talked with her, but I was concerned that I still needed to talk to someone to help me deal with the pain that I was going through. I told her she could call me anytime she wanted to talk and gave her my cell phone number. Before I left I gave her a hug and kiss.
As I left the ward, I called Janice and asked her to pick me up and told her I would be waiting outside of the main entrance.
[-][+][-]
As I waited outside I thought about my life and where I was going from here. Like anyone else I had my dreams but I think that everything that had happened over the past few months had changed me. When I looked at Megan and Jennifer, they were happy go lucky teenage girls and to be honest I didn’t feel like that. I wished that I did because like would be a lot easier but somehow, it felt like I had grown up and was starting to see life from an adults point of view.
I had everything that I ever wanted now but it still didn’t seem like enough. There was always this part of me that wanted more.
I should be happy with being a girl. It was all I had ever wished for, but it wasn’t enough and that scared me. The problem with trying to take your own life once, it proves that you can do it again and that scared me. The day I tried to take my life, I just didn’t wake up and say I was going to kill myself, something inside me snapped and I was afraid that it could happen again.
When you’re in that kind of pain, you aren’t thinking rationally and the scary part is you don’t even see it coming. One minute you’re alright and your world seems perfect, then boom, it happens and you crash. Most people who haven’t been there wouldn’t understand it, but those who have understand just how quickly something like that can hit you.
That’s what scared me right now. I knew that it wouldn’t take too much to put me over the edge. I was in so much emotional pain from everything that happened, and I just wanted to be at peace, even if it was just for short while. I knew the only way to get over something like this was to stop running and face the pain. that was easier said then done. I knew that the best thing that I could do at the moment was to keep busy and talk things out.
[-][+][-]
Chapter 3
I waited for about 30 minutes, then Mom pulled up and I climbed in beside her.
“How did it go Jessica?” She asked, seeing that I was still hurting.
“All right, I guess. She took it pretty hard, as I expected, and the two of us had a good cry together.”
“Well, it’s good that the two of you are able to talk about it. At least I know that you aren’t holding the pain inside, like before.” Mom said with a smile.
“Any news from Dr. Humphrey’s office?” I asked.
“I called the office, but she is out of town until tomorrow. She hadn’t planned to see any patients tomorrow, but the receptionist called her and told her what had happened, so she is going to squeeze you in tomorrow morning at 10 o’clock.” Mom said with a reassuring smile.
“Good, I think I need to talk to her before I completely loose it.” I said softly.
“I know that I shouldn’t, but I can give you something that might help calm your nerves for a bit.” Mom said as she put the car into drive.
While Mom drove, I looked out the window and noticed that she was not driving towards home.
“Where are we going, Mom?” I asked.
“I don’t see the use in us going back to the house, just so you can mope in your room. It’s about time you met your new grand parents.” Mom said with a smile.
“Mom, I really don’t think that I would be very good company today.” I said sadly.
“That’s nonsense, Jessica.” Mom said with a smile. “Besides there is something I wanted to show you.”
“All right, Mom, but don’t say I didn’t warn you.” I said as I moped in my sadness.
While Mom drove, I went back to watching the scenery. I could see that we were leaving the city and heading into the country and to be quite honest I was slightly pissed with being dragged out here, when all I really wanted was time to myself. I was starting to see that once mom made up her mind, there was no telling her otherwise. I had remembered Megan telling me this before, but I’d just shrugged it off. I was now seeing exactly what she meant.
Don’t get me wrong, I was grateful for having her in my life. She had given me so much, and I was grateful. There were times that she seemed a bit “over protective” when it came to me. Maybe even more so then she was when it came to Megan. I think perhaps she was this way because of everything that I had been through and she was afraid I would have a relapse. Maybe she had good reason to worry, especially considering the way I’ve been feeling lately. I couldn’t fault her because she truly cared about me, and I had never really had someone like her. Even my real mother and I had never really had a close relationship, not like Janice and I have.
So maybe the problem wasn’t Janice, maybe I was the problem. I had changed a lot since I accepted who I was, but in many other ways I was still that scared little boy that I used to be. The one that felt so alone and unloved. I knew that it was all crap, because I had people that cared about me now. In many ways, I was my own worst enemy, and that was something I really needed to work on.
It was at that minute that my cell phone started ringing. When I looked at the call display I saw that it was Amy. It was funny how almost every time my life started to spiral out of control, she always seemed to show up or call.
“Hello,” I said as I answered the phone.
“Hi sis, I thought I’d give you a call to see how you were doing, and if we were still getting together on Saturday”, Amy said cheerfully
“I really don’t think that I would be very good company, Amy.”
“What’s wrong Jessica?” Amy asked.
I spent the next ten minutes explaining what had happened. By the time I was finished, she was pretty pissed off. It bothered her that no one had called her to let her know, but she reasoned that everyone must have been a pile of nerves and just not thinking clearly.
“Jessica, I’d still like to get together if you feel up to it. We were going to spend the weekend camping, and maybe getting away from everything, would do you some good.”
I thought about it. Maybe getting away for the weekend would be a good idea. If I stayed home, all I would be doing is moping around the house like Mom said.
“Amy, I’ll have to talk it over with Mom, but I’ll give you a call back later today, all right?”
“Alright, call me later!” Amy said and ended the call.
“That was Amy, she asked me to go camping with her and Tara.”
“Do you want to go?” Mom asked.
“I think so, maybe some getting away for the weekend will help.” I said, thoughtfully.
“Well, if you want to go, I am fine with it. I’m sure that as long as Amy is with you, I have nothing to worry about.” Mom said smiling.
“Maybe Scotty might want to come.” I said, thinking aloud.
“I don’t know if that is a good idea, honey.” Mom said sounding worried
“It’s alright Mom, we can’t do anything anyway, I am still healing down below.” I said with a smile, knowing that was what was worrying her. “Besides, when I do make love to a man, I want it to mean something.”
Mom smiled.” So you were listening to me, the day we had that talk.”
“I always listen to you Mom, unfortunately you seem to be always right.” I said with a smile.
“Years of experience honey, someday you will be having that same talk with your daughter.” Mom said with a smile.
“I only hope to have a family of my own someday, but the thought of bringing a child into the world scares the hell out of me.”
“Why does it scare you?” mom asked
“I guess mostly because of how I was brought up. I don’t want to end up like my birth mother. She never planned to hurt me the way that she did, she was just messed up emotionally, just like me.” I said, sadly.
“You don’t have to end up like your mother, Jessica. There is a big difference between the two of you, and the fact that you can see how messed up you are means you can do something about it. It’s your choice, it always has been.” Mom said with a smile.
[-][+][-]
I thought about what Mom had said. She was right, ever since leaving the hospital and moving in with the Tanners, I’d been the one making most of the decisions.
The biggest one had been to embrace who I really was inside and finding the strength to continue living. Before that day I had been running or hiding, unable to make those choices because I had been consumed by fear.
The past was a painful place and many of those memories and emotions were still pretty close to the surface. I had to be careful not to dwell on them, those thoughts were like poison to me and would only tear down everything that I had accomplished. The life that I have now had its ups and downs but it was my life. I had chosen this, even though the cost had been high.
I couldn’t help but grieve for the loss of my father. The man was an abusive drunk but he wasn’t always that way. In the end, the abusive monster had left and the man that I had loved returned. That was who I was grieving for, not the monster that had made my life a living hell.
Yes, I would get over this in time. I needed to deal with my pain, and not let it consume me. I would accept the help I needed, and I would move forward. There was no other way around it.
I took out my phone, looked at the time, then called Amy.
“Hi Amy, it’s me. I just talked to Mom and it looks like I’ll be joining you and Tara this weekend. I was wondering though, would you mind if Scotty joined us?”
“It’s fine with us, but I’m surprised your Mom gave her approval!” Amy said.
“She was a little worried about him joining us, but I told her that the two of us were not going to do anything. Even if I could, medically I am not ready for something like that.”
“Well, like I said, it’s fine with us, Jessica. How are we going to do this, are you and Scotty driving up with Tara and I, or will you be following us up in Scotty’s car?.”
“I still have to call him, but once I know I’ll give you a call back. I’d imagine he would want to drive there himself. It might be a good idea to have the two cars anyway. Just in case one breaks down, we won’t be stuck out in the middle of nowhere.” I said.
“Alright, Jessica. Give me a call back once you know. I’ll talk to you later, love you sis.” Amy said ending the call.
[-][+][-]
It was too early to call Scotty. I’d have to wait until around noon time. He’d be in the cafeteria around then.
“Are you looking forward to the weekend?” Mom asked me.
“Yeah, I think it’ll be good for me to just get away from everything.” I said with a smile.
“I think you’re right, baby. With everything that has happened, it will do you some good to find a place you can relax. Just make sure you have your cell phone with you and make sure you charge it up during the ride.” Mom said.
“I will Mom, but you have nothing to worry about. I’ll have Amy, Tara and Scotty with me there.” I said, relaxing.
“A mother always worries. You could be married and have a family of your own, and I will still worry about you. It’s all part of being a mother. It’s not something that you can just turn off. When you have a family of your own, it will be the same for you, honey.” Mom told me with a confident smile.
[-][+][-]
<
Chapter 4
I had no idea that Mom’s parents lived so far out of town, but after 45 minutes of driving we pulled into a town called Buckingham. It was a small town compared to where we lived and I wondered what it was like for Mom, growing up here. I was sure that there had to be things to do here, but nothing compared to living in a big city. Eventually, we came to a turn off.
Mom turned and followed a pretty battered road that was in need of a serious facelift. We continued driving for another 15 minutes before we came to a farm. There were lots of cows in a pasture, and further up you could see a few large barns that had a large fence around them. I could see some horses walking around, and I was enchanted. I had never seen horses up close.
“Quite the place, isn’t it, baby?” Mom said with a smile that said she was home.
“It’s pretty cool, though I think I would go crazy living out here.”
“I grew up here, Jessica. It’s really not that bad, there are lots of things you can do. Give it a chance, looks can be deceiving.”
Eventually we reached the main house. Mom parked her car and the two of us climbed out. I found myself looking around. I liked the calmness of the place. Unlike living in the city there wasn’t a lot of noise other than from the animals. I would imagine that a person could get used to that pretty fast.
As Mom and I approached the front door, we were met by an older version of Mom. It was easy to tell that they were mother and daughter. She made her way outside, met us on the step and gave Janice a hug.
“My, it’s good to see you, honey.” She then turned to me. “And you must be my new granddaughter!” She surprised me with a hug. “I’m glad to finally get to meet you honey, Janice has been telling me all about you.” She said, taking my hand and leading me inside the house. As I looked down I could see her hand looked pretty deformed.
When she noticed me staring, she smiled. “I hurt it in a car accident, honey. I was lucky that was all that was damaged other then some cuts and bruises.”
“It looks painful,” I said as I lessened my grip on her hand.
“It can be, honey, but I’m used to it now.” She said
[-][+][-]
“Lets head into the kitchen and I’ll put some coffee on.” Grandma said. As we walked through the living room, I noticed in the corner there was a beautiful baby grand piano. Grandma saw me staring at it, “Do you play, Jessica?”
“Yes, do you mind if I...?” I asked
“Sure, go ahead.” Grandma said with a smile. I walked over to it. It was a real beauty. I took a seat and started playing a Miley Cyrus song called, “The Climb.” I was just playing the song when Mom asked, “Honey, do you know the words?”
I nodded, and started singing the lyrics to the song as I played.
As I played the song I thought about the journey that I’d taken to get to where I was at this moment and thought how poignant the words to this song were to my own life, and the struggles that I had gone through to get to where I am right now. It had truly been an uphill battle. I felt that it was worth it, but there had been so many obstacles along the way. As I sang the song I became lost in the music and relaxed for the first time since my father’s death.
When I finished, I could see that Grandma hadn’t expected to hear what she had just heard. I knew she was aware of what I had gone through, Mom had told both of her parents about me, and that I had lived most of my life as a boy.
“That was amazing, Jessica. You have such a beautiful voice and you play very well.” Grandma said with a smile.
“Thanks, Grandma. I have always loved playing and singing.”
“Well, you definitely have a gift for it.” Grandma said, as the three of us made our way into the kitchen.
After everyone was seated, Mom turned to Grandma.
“Where’s Dad hiding out?”
“Likely in the barn, one of the horses recently had a baby and the mother didn’t make it. It looks like the poor foal may not make it, either.” Grandma said frowning
“That’s a shame.” Mom said.
“We’ve been having a hard time getting her to eat anything and when we do it’s always a fight. It just doesn’t seem to like being held.” Grandma said, tiredly.
[-][+][-]
After sitting for awhile in the kitchen, we decided to pay Granddad a visit. I was kind of nervous as we went inside the barn, but seeing all the horses up close was exciting. The horses seemed pretty friendly as they approached me from their stalls. There was the one big black one that came close enough that I was able to pat him. When he made a grunting noise, it kind of scared me and I took a step back, causing Mom and Grandma to laugh.
“Don’t worry, Jessica, he likes you.” Grandma said with a smile.
“What’s his name?” I asked.
“His name is Donald.” Grandma said
“That’s a funny name for a horse!” I said with a smile.
“He was named after my brother, who was also a horse’s arse.” Grandma said with a big smile.
Hearing Grandma say that caused Mom to giggle. I really don’t know him, but hearing those words come from her mouth made me giggle too.
After leaving Donald, we made our way to the back of the barn until I saw someone who I guessed was Grandpa. As we joined him he smiled.
“You must be Jessica. It’s nice to finally meet you. Janice has told us all about you, although I find it hard to believe that you were ever mistaken for a boy.
I smiled. “I was kind of a late bloomer, and I had a few extra parts that kind of made it hard for the doctors to tell without doing x-rays. But I always knew that I was a girl.” I said with a smile.
“Quite a pretty one at that.” Grandpa said, making me blush.
“How’s the baby doing?” Janice asked her father
“Not good. She has barely touched the bottle and what she has taking isn’t enough.” Grandpa said with a frown.
I walked over next to grandpa to get a better look at the horse she was adorable but also a little scared as she backed away, I got down on my knees and turn to grandpa,” does she have a name?”
“Not yet honey, do you have any ideas?” asked grandpa
I smiled, “How about Beauty?”
Grandpa smiled, “that’s a good name.”
“Hi Beauty I said with a smile.”
Come here, little one, it’s all right.” I said, softly. I held my hand out to the pretty little horse.
At first it just stared at me, and then cautiously began to move closer.
“That’s it, Beauty I’m not going to hurt you.” I said as it came close enough that I was able to touch it. “Hi sweetie” I said as it start rubbing its head against my hand.
After it started to relax around me, I slowly reached for the bottle. Once I had it in
My hand, I didn’t think she would take it from me but I figured it was worth a shot. When I tried at first the horse turned its head away, then I tried again and it still didn’t work.
Grandpa smiled, “It’s not just you honey, your grandma and I have both tried but she is as stubborn as a mule.”
“You got to eat beauty I said patting her, which she seem to enjoy as she bummed into me causing me to fall over.”
As I sat up she surprised me as she lay down next to me and placed he head down over my legs and just stayed there and let me pat her.
“It looks like Jessica has a way with animals.” Grandpa said
“Here Jessica” grandpa said handing me the bottle. “She might take the bottle now.” Grandpa said with a smile.
This time she took bottle as I held it.” There you go baby”, I said as I patted her across the neck with my other hand.
“Damn, look at that.” Grandpa said smiling
“I think Jessica has made a new friend grandma”, said smiling.
It was also at the moment I heard a clicking and turn and found mom was taking a few pictures of Beauty and me.
[-][+][-]
After I finished feeding the colt, we all headed into the house. Grandma and Mom went into the kitchen to make lunch, leaving me alone with grandpa.
Grandpa looked over at me and smiled, “You’re not what I expected.” He said
“What did you expect?” I asked him
“When Janice first told us about you, she said that you were transgender, and to be honest we had no idea what that was until Janice explained it to us. When I look at you now, I see a beautiful young lady. I just can’t fathom how anyone could have mistaken you for a boy.”
“I never really was transgender, Grandpa. I was always a girl. It was just a medical condition that made it look like I was a boy. The parts inside were always female.”
I smiled and took a picture out of my purse and handed it to him. The picture was taken a year ago. At that point I was starting to develop as a girl and didn’t really know it at the time. I kept the picture to show how I used to be, and when I was feeling down, I would take it out and be thankful that I didn’t have to pretend to be him anymore.
Grandpa looked at the old picture of me. “I see a girl that just hasn’t started to develop into a woman yet, but I have to say you look much better now then you did then.”
I smiled. “Thanks, I feel much better these days, at least as far as my appearance goes. It’s the other things in my life that I have a harder time with.” I said.
“What are the other things?” Grandpa said, sounding interested.
“People, mostly. I grew up as a boy and most of my experience has been from that perspective. I always knew deep down that I was a girl, but I’ve never been allowed to explore that side of me, at least not until recently. My Dad tried to teach me what is expected to be a boy, and I couldn’t do that, but no one has really taught me what to expect as a girl. I feel like I’m dogpaddling upstream, doing my best to learn as I go.”
“Jessica, I understand what you are saying, and I wish that knew what to say to make things easier for you, but like yourself this is all new to me.”
“I’m an old man and I am sure there were people with issues like you around when I was your age but in my time things were different people were less tolerant and even though you really were a girl the whole time there still would have been people that treated you harshly. “
“The only advice I can give you Jessica, is to be yourself and stop beating yourself up. Everyone goes through a period in their life where they are trying to figure out who they really are. The big difference in your case is you’ve been brought up to go down one street, and now you have to carry that extra baggage as you get onto the street you were supposed to be on all along. Yeah, it’ll be a little harder for you to catch up, but you’ll figure it out. If people don’t like you, then that is their problem, not yours.”
I smiled, leaned over and gave Grandpa a hug.
“Thanks, I needed that.” I said wiping the tears from my eyes. “So much has happened lately, and I’ve been trying to hold everything together, but it’s hard.”
“The last couple of days couldn’t have been easy for you, Jessica, but you are still here and things will get better. If you need to talk, I am always here for you. You’re my granddaughter now and there will always be a place for you here.” Grandpa said as he hugged me and gave me a kiss on the forehead.
[-][+][-]
After dinner, Mom and I had to get going. It was a long drive home, but Grandma and Grandpa gave me a hug and kiss before Mom and I left. As we drove away I thought about what Grandpa said.
He was right, eventually I would figure things out. I had lived most of my life as a boy and I was now experiencing life from the other side of the fence.
I was bound to make mistakes, but I would learn from them and become a stronger person because of it. The pain that I was experiencing would lessen with time. I would have to deal with it a day at a time.
To be continued in part 2
Sequel to Andrews Dilemma
By, Cain129
Part 2
Synopsis: After witnessing the death of her father Jessica is emotionally scattered and trying her best to hold things together. Although the relationship that the two of then shared was unhealthy, she still loved him and watching him die had been almost more then she could handle.
Sarah Roberts had also taken the death of her husband hard. Their marriage might have been over, but she had still loved Jake Roberts. She felt bad that her daughter had to witness something so horrendous and was worried about her.
Chapter 5
I had been a little worried about visiting my grandparents for the first time, but those worries were soon put to rest after meeting and spending time with the both of them, especially my grandfather.
After Mom and Grandma left us alone and started making dinner, Grandpa and I had a chance to talk. He talked to me like I was an adult and not a child, and was straight forward and honest with me. Most importantly, he listened to me and didn’t judge me. Grandma was different but really nice, and I could see myself warming to her in time. I think that she was kind of like me, it always took me time to get to know someone and feel safe enough to open up to them. For the most part it had been a good visit for all of us and with everything that had happened, it was also a good distraction.
Mom and I stayed and had a nice dinner with my grandparents but soon it was time for us to go. After saying our goodbyes, Mom and I started the long drive home.
[-][+][-]
As before, I spent a good percentage of the time watching the scenery and thinking about the upcoming camping trip with Amy and Tara. I really hoped that Scotty would join us. I would have to have a talk with him later. I just hoped that he wasn’t mad at me for not telling him about the kidnapping. I found myself feeling really tired and before I knew it I had slipped into a deep sleep and pretty much slept all the way home.
“Hey sleepy head, we’re home.” I heard Mom say.
I yawned and wiped the sleep from my eyes. “Sorry Mom, I guess I fell asleep.”
“It’s alright honey, you’ve been through a lot and you needed the rest.” Mom said, smiling.
“Last night I hardly slept at all.” I said, frowning as Mom and I made our way inside.
“I’ll give you something tonight to help you sleep, remind me before bedtime.” Mom said as she unlocked the door, and the two of us went inside the house.
Once inside, I headed off to my room and started working on my home work. I still had almost two months of catching up to do and I really didn’t feel like wasting my summer attending classes just to catch up. I knew that I could catch up, that wasn’t the problem but staying motivated was. It’s hard to concentrate on the school work when you thinking process is all over the place, but I continued and did my best.
I got up and turned on the radio and put it on the country channel, then returned to my desk and started working on my homework again. As I worked, a song came on the radio and I found myself singing along. It was called September, by Daughtry. I had always loved the song, mostly because of the man that sang it.
When I first saw him on American Idol, I thought he was the cutest guy I had ever seen and I couldn’t believe that he was voted off. He never let it get to him; he just went on and made it on his own. That was the kind the person that I wanted to be. If you want something bad enough you just take it, and look at him now. Most people can’t even remember who the winner was that season.
[-][+][-]
I decided that it was time for a break. I grabbed my phone, headed into the kitchen and grabbed a Coke from the fridge, then took it outside with me and took a seat on the front porch. It was 2:30 and classes were pretty much finished for the day but there was a game after class so Megan and Jennifer wouldn’t be home for awhile.
The game wasn’t going to start for another half hour, and I could still make it if I borrowed Megan’s bike. I went inside and grabbed the keys to the lock and her bike helmet and told Mom that I was going to take a trip to the school to watch the game.
“You don’t have to bike Jessica, I really don’t mind giving you a lift.” Mom protested.
“It’s alright Mom, I think it would be nice to get a little exercise.”
“Alright honey, be careful.” Mom said.
[-][+][-]
After leaving home I made the short ride to Burnaby High. It felt good as I turned on to the bike trail, it had been ages since I had been out for a ride. I used to bike all the time when I was living as Andrew but hadn’t had a chance since I had become a girl. I used to take the trail all the time, but back then I had to always watch my back. It seemed like the bullies had only one mission in life, and that mission was to make mine a living hell.
Things were different now. I had a clean slate, and only a few people knew the person that I used to be and they loved me and would do anything that they could to protect me. When I was boy things were different, I didn’t trust anyone and was socially outcast, but that felt like another lifetime now.
Looking back now, I could see the truth. Life is about taking risks, and the choices you make are the things that will mold you into the person you will one day become. I was full of fear and unable to make the choices, so I hid from them and tried to pretend that things were not that bad so I did nothing to change things. It might have been a stupid choice when I took that bottle of pills, and I was lucky that Megan had found me. I could have died, but that one stupid acted of desperation turned out to be my salvation.
[-][+][-]
Chapter 6
I arrived at the school with about ten minutes to spare. After locking up Megan’s bike I made my way to the football field. I could see that everyone was pretty much there, getting ready for the game to start. I looked around and saw Megan and Jennifer along with the rest of the cheerleading team. They were doing stretching exercises on the other side of the field. I couldn’t find Scotty, it was possible that he was still getting changed.
The stands seemed to be filling up quickly with students and parents from the home and visiting teams. I slowly made my way over to where the cheerleading section was, thinking that I would watch the game from over there.
As I made my way over, I saw Britney and Natasha and waved to them. Britney gave Natasha a nudge in her tummy then she looked over my way and a big smile appeared on their faces. They came running over and met me as I entered the cheering section and I found myself being smothered between the two of them. After they stopped hugging me. Britney turned to me.
“We’ve been worried sick about you, how are you doing?”
“It’s a long story and I’m not ready to talk about it yet.” I said frowning.
“Well, when you’re ready we’re here for you Jessica.” Natasha said with a smile.
“I need a little time to sort things out myself, but thanks”, I said smiling
Britney and Natasha pretty much dragged me over to where the rest of the cheerleaders were. When Jennifer saw me, she came over and gave me a big hug.
“How are you doing?” She asked in a concerned voice.
I smiled. “I’m better, but it’s going to take time, and I am going to need help.”
“Well, you know if you need anything Jessica, all you have to do is ask.” Jennifer said as she gave me another hug.
“I am surprised to see you here!” Megan said, as she approached me from behind.
“Yeah, I’m surprised I’m here too, considering I hate football.” I said with a smile.
“Got tired of hanging out at home, didn’t you?” Megan said with a smile.
“Actually, it’s been a busy day! I went to the hospital this morning, then Mom and I took a little road trip to see our grandparents. I even got to feed their baby colt. You should see her, she is adorable!” I gushed.
“Well, it’s good that you got out of the house. I was worried you were going to take up permanent residence in your bedroom.” Megan said and gave me a hug.
Just before the game started, Megan introduced me to Mrs. Jennings, not that I didn’t already know who she was. I had seen her many times as Andrew, but I was Jessica now and had to let on that I didn’t know her, just to keep with the story that we had created to explain Jessica’s background.
“It’s nice to finally meet you Jessica. Britney and Natasha have told me a lot about you, when are you going to be able to join us?” she asked.
“Soon I hope, though I have a lot on my plate at the moment. There was a death in the family and I still need to sort things out. I’m still not completely healed from my surgery, so for the moment I doubt that I will be able to make every game, but I will be at most of the practices.” I said smiling
Mrs. Jennings smiled. “That’s fine Jessica, just let me know when you’re ready.”
“Alright Mrs. Jennings.” I agreed.
As I looked out onto the field, I could see our team finally making their way onto the field. There was really one player that I was there to see and that was Scotty, and when I finally saw him, I kind of felt these butterflies in my tummy. I had been missing him terribly over the last few days. I just hoped that he could make the camping trip, it would be great having him there with me.
After Scotty took his position on the field, I could see him looking around. When he turned my direction and saw me standing next to Mrs. Jennings, I could almost make out the smile on his face, if it hadn’t been for the football helmet that he was wearing. I smiled and waved to him. A few minutes later the game started and both teams seemed evenly matched, with neither side willing to give the other an inch. It was the time of year where every game mattered, especially if you wanted to get into the playoffs.
I had never really cared for the game, but I found myself getting carried away with everyone else as the game continued on. I even got angry when the other team started scoring goals. It was toward the end of the game when the mood of the game changed. Brian managed to tie up the game and it went into overtime. Then the visiting team got the ball and was running for the end zone.
I started screaming with everyone else for our team to do something, then from out of nowhere there was Scotty, tackling the player who fumbled the ball. Cliff came running in just behind him and grabbed the ball. He somehow managed to run the ball back to our end zone and made the winning touchdown. The crowd went wild and everyone was excited, our team had just made the playoffs.
After the game finished, I ran out onto the field with most of the other girls that were on the cheerleading squad. Scotty came running over to me and it didn’t take long before I found myself in his arms and lifted off the ground. As his lips touched mine it was like my body was being zapped by electricity and I was loving every minute of it.
“I was so worried about you Jessica, don’t ever do that to me again!” He said as he kissed me again.
“I promise baby.” I said, kissing him back and holding him tightly against me.
“Can you stay Jessica? I’d like to have some time alone with you.” Scotty said with a smile.
“Sure honey, but I have Megan’s bike with me.”
“That’s no problem; we’ll drop it off then head over to Gallagher’s.” Scotty suggested with a smile.
“Alright, I’ll meet you out front, now go get into the shower, you really smell.” I said, giving him another kiss just before he ran off.
[-][+][-]
After Scotty left, I ran over to Megan and Jennifer. “You guys heading over to Gallagher’s?”
“Yeah, we’re getting a ride over with Glen, what about you?” asked Megan.
“Scotty is driving me home to drop off your bike, then we’re heading over to Gallagher’s, I guess I’ll see the both of you there.” I said with a smile.
”Behave yourself Jessica, there is another game tomorrow and we need Scotty at 100%!” Glen said as he came over.
“I’ll try but I’m not making any promises.” I said, giggling
“Yeah really, Jessica! The two of you should have got a hotel room.” Megan smiled, referring to the little show that Scotty and I had just shown on the field.
“Well on the plus side anyone that didn’t know that the two of you were going out sure knows now.” Jennifer said with a giggle.
That caused a giggle fest between the three of us, but soon Megan and Jessica had to get going, as did Glen who headed off to the showers. I told them that I would see them at Gallagher’s, and made my way to the front of the school.
Chapter 7
As I waited in front of the school, I couldn’t help but feel funny inside. Here I was completely at ease, waiting for my boyfriend. There was a time not very long ago that I would be leaving as fast as my legs could take me.
I was afraid to stick around because I knew that it wouldn’t be very long before I was hassled or worse, beat up. Things sure had changed though. I had attended my first football game as a girl and actually enjoyed myself.
When I was younger my father and I used to go to football games and even baseball. I enjoyed spending time with him but I didn’t actually enjoy the games. As his drinking became worse, the two of us spent less time together, and when he did make time for me it usually ended badly.
Things are different now and the things that used to bother me just don’t seem to have the same power over me as they used to. I think that the difference is that I’m no longer consumed with self hatred and I can actually say I love who I am now, whereas before I couldn’t even look in a mirror without feeling disgusted.
I guess the biggest changes were my friends, compared to the lack of friends that I had as Andrew. To be honest, I had fallen into such a rut that being alone had become a normal part of my life, as were the conflicts in my family. It was a sad outlook on life and I couldn’t live that life anymore. I couldn’t live without my friends and family.
When it comes down to it nobody can, human beings we are not designed to be alone. It’s in our nature to seek out one another and form relationships, whether it is friendship or the love of a potential mate, or like the love I have received from my new family. They were most important thing in my life, because they loved me even when I was unable to love myself.
Even with everything that has happened to me I still have plenty to be grateful for and it would be those things that I hold on to. I would take the lessons from my past and find a way to use them in a positive manner. I would enjoy the life that I was given and the fact that I was finally the girl that I had always dreamed of being, and the fact that I was in love with an amazing guy.
I was lost in thought when I saw Scotty exiting the school and making his way over to me.
“You ready to get going babe?” He said with a smile.
“Sure, but don’t call me babe!” I said as I reached out and took hand.
[-][+][-]
After dropping Megan’s bike off at home, Scotty and I headed over to Gallagher’s. Scotty took the scenic route which gave us sometime to talk.
“Do you have any plans this weekend?” I asked him.
“Not really Jessica, I was hoping that the two of us could get together and do something, though.”
“Amy and Tara invited me to spend the weekend with them camping. It would be nice if you were able to join us.” I said smiling
“Hmmm, let’s see. A weekend with three beautiful women, or playing games with the guys, tough choice.” Scotty said with a frown and was rewarded with a punch in the shoulder. This made him laugh.
“Alright, if you can’t make it that’s fine. I’m sure that Glen would be more then willing to spend the weekend with three beautiful women.” I said with a devilish smile.
“Let’s not be hasty, Jessica. I guess that I have no choice but to join you.” he said with a smile.
“Do you always have to be such a smartass Scotty?” I said with a smile
“Yeah, but you love me all the same.” he said as he slipped his arm around me and I found myself cuddling up to him.
“Your right about one thing.” I said seriously.
“That’s a first! A woman actually admitting I’m right about something, so what is it that I am right about Jessica?”
“That I love you.” I said calmly as I placed my head on his shoulder.
[-][+][-]
“I thought I knew what love was, but to be honest with you, Jessica, I was wrong. What I have felt in the past was infatuation not love, at least until you came into my life and showed me what loving someone really means!”
“I think about you all the time Jessica, and when you’re not with me it feels like part of me is missing, and I hate that feeling. When you are with me, everything is perfect. I know that we haven’t been dating that long, but I asked my mom a question when the two of us started dating. I wanted to know how you would know if you really loved someone. She said that you would know and there wouldn’t be any doubts and when I look into your eyes Jessica, I just know.”
I looked over at Scotty. “I’ve always loved you. Maybe at first it was a stupid school girl crush towards the guy who protected me, but since that day I’ve dreamed of being with you and now that its happened, I feel complete but also scared to death.”
“Why are you scared Jessica?”
“Mostly because of my past, Scotty. Until recently, I really didn’t know what it meant to love someone, let alone be loved by someone. Let’s just say that my parents were abusive.”
“My father was an alcoholic and growing up the only time he even showed me love was when I did something that made him happy, and even then it was never enough. My mother was sexually abused by my grandfather and she held that pain inside all of her life. Because she was so caught up in her own pain, she was neglectful and because of all these things happening, plus my gender issues, I was a pretty messed up kid.”
“After moving in with the Tanners and seeing how a real family was, I was jealous at first, especially with the relationship Megan had with her parents. She had the love of both parents and it was unconditional and they spent time together as a family, sharing with one another, I know now that most families are like this, but when you come from a household like the one I grew up in you don’t really know about these things, the life you have seems normal. “
Scotty looked over at me. “I think you’re amazing Jessica. With everything that you have gone through in the past, you kept fighting, and that’s one of the things that I love about you Jessica.”
“We have the rest of our lives to worry about the future. Let’s just take things a day at a time. I’m not going anywhere and I don’t care about the past. All that matters to me is the here and now and at this very moment I’m with the girl I love and that is all that matters.” Scotty said with a smile.
End of Part 2
To be continued in part 3
Jessica’s Journey
Sequel to Andrews Dilemma
By, Cain129
Part 3
Special Thanks to Wren Phoenix for the editing.
Synopsis: After returning home from visiting her grandparents Jessica decides to bike to the high school to watch the football game. Everyone is excited to see her and for the first time in years, she found that she was actually enjoying herself while attending a sporting event. After the game Scotty and Jessica finally have a chance to talk to one another and tell each another how they feel.
Chapter 8
By the time Scotty and I arrived at Gallagher’s, everyone else was already there but neither of us really cared. The two of us had needed the time to talk and work things out as far as where our relationship was going. Having talked to Scotty, I knew that the both of us were committed to make things work. I can hardly believe that I told him that I loved him, but it was true.
Once inside Scotty went to get a couple of cokes for the two of us while I found a couple of free chairs for us. I picked up one and started carrying it over to the table and placed in next to Jennifer.
“Wow, the two of you made it; Megan and I were beginning to wonder if you guys were coming.” Jennifer said with a smile.
“Scotty and I needed sometime to talk things out,” I said smiling.
“I take it that everything is alright between the two of you?” Jennifer asked.
“Yeah, everything is perfect.”
Megan turned to me. “You looked like someone that was having a good time at the game, and I thought that you hated football!” Megan said with a smile.
“Yeah, I did have a good time,” I said grinning. “I guess it was because I was with my friends and the man I loved was playing”
“The two of you make a cute couple.” Britney said as she came from behind me and gave me a hug.
“Thanks Britney.” I said as I reached up, returning her hug.
Scotty returned a few minutes’ later carrying two large cokes, and then took a seat next to me at the table.
“Did I miss anything?” He asked.
“Not really honey, everyone is just getting settled.” I said.
“So you guys going to Eric’s party on the weekend?” Brian asked.
“Nope. Jessica and I are going to be meeting up with some friends and doing some camping.” Scotty said as he slipped his arm around me.
“Cool, where are the two of you going?” asked Britney.
”Where are we going, Jessica?” Scotty asked me.
“I really have no idea. I guess that I’ll have to give Amy a call later. Wherever we go, it will be nice.” I said smiling.
“We should all plan a trip together this summer; maybe a camping trip or something.” Megan said with a smile.
“That would be cool, although I am not really that much of an outdoor kind of girl”, Natasha said
“It would be nice, but I am not sure how much time we will have. Scotty, Brian and I will be on the road most of the summer with the rest of the band.” Glen said frowning.
[-][+][-]
“Maybe we can meet up after one of your gigs. Road trips are always fun and we could spend the weekend camping.” I suggested.
“We will just have to work out a date. It will have to be sometime after we get back from Disney Land though.” Megan said excitedly.
“It’s going to be a busy summer.” Jennifer said.
“It will be one to remember that’s for sure.” Scotty said, winking at me. I blushed.
A few minutes later a waitress came over carrying a tray that had a big bowl of nachos and dip.
“I thought we could all use a treat.” Scotty said with a smile.
It really didn’t take long for the bowl to be emptied, considering it was being attacked by eight hungry kids. There was more than enough for all of us, and everyone seemed to be having a good time together.
As I looked across the table everything seemed so surreal, was this really my life now? Don’t get me wrong, I was happy, but sometimes it felt like a dream. You know, the kind of dream where you are afraid to wake up because the dream is better than reality? If you wake up, you know you’ll have to return to the real world and all of its struggles. Well this is my life, not a dream and these people were my family and friends.
Britney looked over at me, concerned. “Are you alright Jessica? You kind of look like the lights are on, but no one is home.”
“Yeah, I’m fine Britney. It’s nice to be able to hang out with all of you again. Things have been pretty crazy lately, you all know about the kidnapping. That was bad enough, but then I watched my father die. It just took a lot out of me and I still have a lot on my plate. Before it’s all over with, I’ll need everyone’s help.”
“You know Jessica, we’re all family here. Maybe not biological, but blood isn’t everything. If you need anything, all you have to do is call.” Natasha said as she gave me a hug.
“Damn, that is just plain sick on so many levels.” Glen said frowning.
“What is so sick?” Britney said trying to figure out what Glen meant.
Glen looked across the table then calmly took a bite of his nachos, “We’re all family, right?”
“Yes?” Britney said, confused.
“Wouldn’t that make Scotty and Jessica like brother and sister? Scotty is dating his sister, which is really twisted.” Glen said rather smugly
“God Glen, why do you have to take such an innocent statement and make it sick and perverted?” Natasha said as she throws a soggy nacho at him.
”It’s one of my many talents.” Glen said as he caught the nacho and ate it. “On the plus side, he has great tastes in woman, so maybe I have it all wrong. Maybe I should be going after one of my lovely sisters.” He said, putting his arm around Jennifer. “Feel like going out tonight?” Glen asked Jennifer.
“Sorry Glen, I’m busy tonight.” She said with a smile.
“What are you doing maybe I can help?” Glen said with a wink.
“Well after that last statement, I feel really dirty. I was thinking of having a nice hot bath with my hairdryer.” she said calmly.
“In other words Glen, she would rather electrocute herself than go out on a date with you.” Megan giggled.
“Damn, you guys sure know how to make a guy feel loved.” Glen said making a sad puppy dog face, this only made everyone laugh more.
Jennifer smiled and turned to Glen.
“Where are you taking me tonight?” She said, which made everyone start laughing, and took Glen by surprise.
“I really have no idea Jennifer, I was just joking.” Glen said surprised.
“I thought you wanted to take me out?” Jennifer said smiling.
It was fun watching Jennifer making Glen squirm. I could also tell that there was more to it then her just having fun at his expense. She actually did like Glen and I could have been wrong, but I think that he liked her.
“Well how about a movie Jennifer? I owe you that much for dragging you into all this.” Glen said with a smile.
“That sounds good, but I get to choose the movie.” Jennifer said with a smile.
”Big mistake, Jennifer is most likely going to choose a two hour chick flick. Are you going to be able to handle it?” I asked with a big smile.
Glen looked over at Jennifer. “Please tell me that Jessica is wrong?”
Jennifer smiled. “I guess that we’ll just have to wait and see.”
Glen looked over to Scotty. “A little help here would be nice.”
Scotty laughed. “Sorry, Jessica and I have our own plans tonight.”
“Brian, Natasha, Britney, Megan please?” Glen said frowning.
Everyone declined and in the end it would be just Jennifer and him. We all knew that he was just joking around even Jennifer seemed to play along. “Oh yeah, most definitely a chick flick.”
The truth of the matter was that it wasn’t going to be a chick flicks. Jennifer was more into action movies, or even comedies. Glen would be relieved after she made her choice of what movie they were going to see.
When Scotty said that the two of us had plans for tonight, I really had no idea what he had in mind. He never mentioned anything to me, not that I really cared. As long as the two of us were together, I would be happy.
[-][+][-]
We all stayed at Gallagher’s ‘til about 4:00, then everyone pretty much had to get home for supper. After saying our goodbyes, Scotty and I made our way back to his car with Megan and Jennifer in tow, and started the drive home.
After arriving home, Megan and Jennifer headed inside, leaving Scotty and I alone to talk.
“Do you have any plans for tonight Jessica?” Scotty asked.
“Not really Scotty,” I said with a smile.
“Feel up to hitting the Bronx tonight? It’s open mic night, and should be a lot of laughs. Britney, Cliff, Natasha and Brian will be there and I imagine that Glen and Jennifer will eventually show up after the movie.”
“Sounds like fun Scotty, I’ll see if Megan wants to join us.” I said, not wanting her feel left out.
“The show doesn’t start ‘til after 8pm usually, so I’ll be by around 7:30pm.” Scotty said then leaned over and gave me a kiss.
[-][+][-]
Chapter 9
After saying goodbye to Scotty, I made my way inside the house. Megan and Jennifer were busy helping Mom with supper, and Dad still hadn’t arrived home from work yet. Considering that there were already three people working on supper, I decided that it would be best for me to just head to my room and continue catching up on my school work. For the next hour I worked away, mostly reading and taking down notes as I went along.
I had been making good progress, and knew that if I continued at the pace that I was working, I’d be caught up within two or three weeks and ready to take exams with my class. Things were going to be pretty stressful over the next couple of weeks. There was Dad’s funeral and I was also going to help my birth mother with getting ready to move. I was going to ask my friends to help with that. It would be done much faster than if Mom and I tried to do it alone.
It was close to 5pm when I finished reading from my social studies book and taking notes. I was putting my book away when I heard the front door opening and saw Daddy coming in carrying a big box. I ran over and grabbed the door and held it opened for him.
“Thanks Jessica. It’s not really that heavy, just awkward.” Daddy said as he carried it inside and set it down on the living room floor.
“What is it?” I asked him
“It’s something new for the two of us to play with.” He said with a big grin on his face.
“I saw it on sale, and I just had to get it. It’s a mixer board, much better than the one that is setup in your room, and it’s fully loaded. We can pretty much plug anything into it.” Dad said with a smile
“Cool!” I said with a big smile. “When are we going to hook it up and try it out?”
“After supper, Sweetheart. I don’t know about you, Jessica, but I’m starving.” Daddy said as he ran his hand over his tummy.
[-][+][-]
Over supper, Dad told us about his day, then Megan and I shared the events of our day. It was nice having all of us have a nice supper together as a family. After we finished, Megan, Jennifer and I took care of the clean up and gave Mom and Dad a chance to talk in the living room.
Jennifer said she had to head home, she still needed to get ready for her date with Glen, so Megan decided to join her and help her get ready. Before Megan left, I told her that Scotty and I were going to the Bronx later and if she wanted to join us to be home for 7:30 pm.
Once Megan and Jennifer left I headed off to my room and started going over my History book. I had always been a bit of a history buff. So as I went over the assignments I realized that catching up wasn’t going to really take very long most of the material that I was reading though I already knew. One of the benefits of being a non entity was you didn’t have friends to distract you from doing your homework or even getting a head of everyone else.
The secret to my good grades wasn’t that I was smarter than other students. I just devoted more time to my studies. It was a way to pass time. It also occupied my mind and the less time I had to think about my problems the better.
When I lived as Andrew, I needed all the distractions I could get, otherwise the depression would take over and it wouldn’t be very long before I started thinking about hurting myself. I had lived like that for so long that it became a normal part of my life.
Even now there were parts of me that wanted to return to those old behaviors because that would be easier then dealing with the pain that I was suffering from now. There is a fine line between occupying your mind and hiding from your problems. It’s like going to a doctor and being giving medicine to help you handle the pain, returning every month to refill your prescription but not actually sitting down with the doctor and talking about why you are feeling the way you are feeling.
The problem with that is all you are doing is medicating yourself, so that you are not feeling the pain. Take the pills away, and all the problems are still there and so is the pain. I would rather confront the problems and become stronger than hide from them. I guess that is where things are different today for me. I still have problems, and God knows how much it hurts inside but I am not hiding anymore. I don’t want to be that person anymore and I don’t want to end up like my mother either.
[-][+][-]
There was a knock on my door. I turned and saw Dad holding the mixer in his hand, looking like a child with a new toy.
“Can we hook it up now?” He asked, with a big smile on his face.
“Sure Daddy.” I said as I wiped the tears away from my eyes
Daddy came inside and set the mixer on the floor next to the bed and took a seat beside me. “How are you doing, kiddo?”
“I’m alright Daddy, just thinking.”
“Do you want to talk about it, honey?” He said as he held me.
“Not really Daddy, but I know that I should.” I said placing my head on his shoulder.
“I have missed you, Daddy.” I said as the tears started flowing.
“I know baby, but I’m here now, and even when I’m away, all you have to do is pick up the phone, sweetheart.” Daddy said leaning down and kissing me. “You are my daughter, Jessica and I love you.”
“Thanks Daddy, but I love you more.” I said with a grin. “I know you can’t always be home, you need to work to take care of us.”
“Now let’s setup this mixer before you make me cry again.” I said smiling.
[-][+][-]
Between the two of us, we had the new mixer hooked up in no time and powered up for a test run. Daddy plugged in his Gipson SG into the mixer and I plugged the Yamaha keyboard then hit the power button and heard a faint hum as it came to life. It took Daddy and I a little while before we had the mixers setup and ready for us to play. Once it was, all that we needed to do was try playing a song that both of us knew. We eventually choose Angel by Sarah McLachlan. After making the needed changes to the keyboard settings the two of us were ready to start playing.
I started playing first, with just the sound on the piano alone. I slowly built it up until I was ready and started singing the words to the song. This was also the point where Dad joined me and started playing his guitar along with me. The first attempt the two of us were all over the place, and while the second attempt was somewhat better, the two of us still were not on the right page. By the fourth time the two of us had pretty much worked it out and it sounded pretty good. Mind you, it would still need a lot of work but it was pretty good for just an hour’s work, and it was also a good song for us to fine tune the mixer and workout the levels.
The two of us spent another hour just jamming and playing different songs together. Some I would sing and others Dad would take the lead and I would do the background lyrics. The two of us were having a great time, but it was already 7pm and I had to get ready for my date with Scotty. So I had to tell Daddy that I needed the room for awhile to get ready but when I was finished he was more then welcome to continue.
“Alright honey, I’ll let you get ready.” He said, placing his guitar on its stand. “Have fun tonight sweetheart.”
It took me almost an hour before I was ready for my date with Scotty. I had run a nice hot bubble bath and soaked for a bit, then spent the next half hour doing my hair and makeup. It is amazing the difference it takes getting ready for a girl to go on a date verses a guy, not that I really had any experience in that area I had never even been on a date as Andrew, let alone kissed a girl.
But just to get ready for any kind of event as a guy, all you have to do is grab a pair of jeans and a tee-shirt, socks and you’re pretty much ready. Now as a girl, I had to have a nice soak while I shaved my legs and armpits, then style my hair, do my makeup and find something nice to wear. All this can take a good hour or more depending where as a guy only takes maybe 15 minutes tops.
Not that I really mind because I loved my life and being a girl is a dream come true for me. The only area that I wished that I could change is my monthly visitor. God, she can be a bitch, but it’s a small price to pay, considering that for the first time in my life I feel complete inside and outside.
[-][+][-]
As I looked in the mirror I smiled liking the result. I had to admit that I had come along way since I made my first steps as Jessica all those months ago. I was now on the same level as Megan and Jennifer when it came to makeup and styling my own hair, I thought to myself as I sprayed little perfume on.
I made my way into the living room and found mom and dad snuggling up on the couch together. I smiled and said, “How do I look?”
Dad looked me up and down, “Maybe you should consider another skirt honey that one is nice but it’s a little to revealing.”
I smiled, “Daddy that’s the style, all the girls are wearing them that way.”
“Maybe honey, but think about the effect you’re going to have on poor Scotty.” Dad said with a smile.
“You think Scotty isn’t going to like how I am dressed?” I said with a smile.
“I don’t think that you need to worry about him liking it, I think he might like it a little too much.” Dad said, frowning.
“Jessica, you’re wasting your time, nothing you wear will be good enough. You could be wearing a gown that covers your entire body and only shows your eyes and he would think you’re showing to much.” Mom said with a giggle.
“I’m not that bad, Janice!” Dad said, and then he grabbed Mom and started tickling her. Mom started giggling like crazy, telling him to stop, but Dad just kept going.
“God, get a hotel room!” I said, laughing at the two of them.
I decided to let the two kids play, so I grabbed my purse and told them that I would be back later. I made my way outside, and as I took a seat on the porch I saw Megan making her way over. As she approached, I smiled.
“You really don’t want to go inside, sis. Mom and Dad are acting like teenagers in love.”
“Are you sure that you want me to tag along? I kind of feel like a third wheel here.” Megan said sounding a little down.
“You’re my sister and you’re not a third wheel.” I said putting my arm around her. “What’s wrong?”
“I guess that I’m feeling a little down. It seems like everyone has someone but me, even Jennifer.” Megan said with a frown.
I knew how she felt, I had been there myself and it wasn’t a fun place to be. I looked over at Megan. “You’ll find someone Megan. Most guys would be lucky to have a girl like you. I know it sucks watching all your friends hooking up when you’re alone. I’ve been there, but look at me now. I have a great guy and the two of us love one another. I know there is someone out there for you too, sis. Who knows, you might meet him tonight, stranger things have happened.” I said to reassure her.
“Thanks Jessica, I feel better now, it’s nice having a sister to talk about stuff like this.”
“Whatever happens, Megan, you can always come to me. You’re my sister and I love you, no matter what. I will always be there for you.”
The next thing I knew, Megan and I were hugging one another. “That goes both ways, Jessica.” Megan said as she hugged me.
[-][+][-]
End of part 3
To be continued in part 4
Jessica’s Journey
Sequel to Andrews Dilemma
By, Cain129
Part 4
Special Thanks to Wren Phoenix for the editing.
Synopsis: Things are starting to get back to normal for Jessica, though she is still dealing with witnessing the death of her father. Her family and friends have rallied around her, giving her their love and support.
Chapter 10
Megan and I sat on the front porch and waited for Scotty to arrive. The three of us were planning on meeting up with everyone else at the Bronx at 8pm. As we waited I turned to Megan.
“So, how is Jennifer doing?” I asked.
“She’s excited about tonight; I just hope Glen doesn’t fuck it up. He’s a nice guy, but you know what he’s like.”
“I wouldn’t worry about it. Jennifer is a big girl and not one of those bimbos that he normally dates.” I said with a smile.
Megan frowned. “Yeah, to be honest though, it surprises me that Jennifer wanted to go out with him. They’re such total opposites.”
“You could say the same thing about Scotty and I, Megan.”
“That’s true, but the two of you seem to have this chemistry, and it’s like the two of you have been together forever.” Megan said smiling.
“Sometimes it feels that way but we’ve only been dating a few months and who knows what the future holds? We might make it, or we may choose to go our own separate ways. Things are great now, we’re both in high school, but what will happen when we go to college?” I said, frowning.
“I think that if anyone can make it work, Jessica, the two of you can.”
“Maybe, I hope we can make it work, the both of us will try.” I said.
Megan laughed, “I can picture the two of you twenty years from now, having kids of your own and embarrassing them, just like Mom and Dad do now.” Megan said, with a giggle.
“Man, three month ago I would have thought you were crazy to be saying something like that.” I said giggling
“Yeah something tells me that Andrew and I wouldn’t have had much to say on this subject! So tell me, is it everything you dreamed it would be?” Megan asked
“Well, mostly it is, but nothing ever turns out quite the way you wish it would. Back then I thought that I was a transsexual, and my dreams were slightly different. I wanted the operation to become female.”
“I didn’t know that it was even a possibility that deep down, I really was a girl physically. I just wanted to become one, and to have my real mother and father accept me for who I really was. You know as well as I do how that all turned out, but for the most part I am happy with everything.”
“I have the best parents that a girl could ask for, and they love and accept me. I have a sister that I love to death, a great guy that loves me and then there are my friends.”
“So, am I happy with how things turned out? Yes, I’m happy”
Megan put her arm around me. “When you first moved in with us, I just thought it was temporary. Mom would help you get better, and then eventually you would end up going home or into fostercare. I didn’t want you to go home or to end up in fostercare, but I also didn’t want to have a sister. I liked being the only child and having Mom and Dad to myself.”
“Then along came Jessica. Mom and Dad took a liking to you, and before I knew it they were spending more time with you than me, and I really didn’t like it. I was their daughter, not you Jessica. I couldn’t say anything because of the way I had found you, lying there under those bleachers, half dead.” She shivered, remembering it.
“I was so afraid if I said anything you might have tried something stupid and I couldn’t live with that. So I kept my month shut, and kept how I felt to myself. Then something happened. I watched you accept who you really were inside, and you began to change, or maybe it was me that changed. To be honest, I don’t really know, Jessica.”
“But anyway, I watched you become the person you are now. As the days went on I started liking the idea of having a sister. The day that you were taken from us, I realized how much you really meant to me. The thought of losing you was more then I could handle. When you finely came home to us, it was the happiest day of my life.” Megan said, as she leaned over and hugged me.
I smiled and wrapped my arms around Megan. “I know it’s been hard for you Megan, and I’m sorry if I hurt you. Being part of this family has been a dream come true for me, and I couldn’t ask for a better sister then you. I never felt that I belonged anywhere until I moved in with you.”
“My own parents didn’t really want me, they wanted the perfect son. They couldn’t accept the fact that they ended up with a daughter. All my life I felt ashamed of who I was, and I hated myself, because I couldn’t live up to their expectations. I hated God for sticking me in that body and making me feel the way I did.”
“When your Mom and Dad took me in they accepted me, and said it was all right to be myself. They helped me become the person I am today. I didn’t have to hide who I was anymore, they gave me the choice. I could be Andrew or Jessica.” A tear shone in her eye.
“I was afraid at first, but as I watched how loving your mother and father were towards you, I felt jealous of you. You had everything that I didn’t have, and you just took it all for granted. You had parents that loved and accepted you, and would do anything they could to make you happy. I had never experienced that until I moved in with you.
It was a dream come true when they started treating me the same way, and to be honest, I didn’t know how I was supposed to react. I’d be lying if I said that I didn’t love the attention, because I did.
The only attention I received from my own parents was mental and physical abuse. Then here were your parents. They invited me into their home, knowing full well how screwed up I was. They loved and accepted me and didn’t treat me like I was some kind of freak, they actually wanted to spend time with me.
My own parents wouldn’t even give me the time of day. The only time they wanted me around was when it suited their needs. When it came to what I wanted, they really didn’t care. What I wanted was never a priority to them.”
[-][+][-]
Megan sat there, thinking about what I had said, and then she smiled. “I’m so happy that things worked out, Jessica. I love having a sister that I can spend time with, and I’m not jealous anymore, I’m just happy.”
I looked at my watch. It was already 7:45, and I was wondering what was taking Scotty. I reached into my purse and noticed that there was a text message. After checking the phone, I realized that it was set to vibrate. I must have set it like that by accident. I read the message, and it basically said that he was running late, but was coming and should be here before 8pm.
[-][+][-]
Megan and I waited until 8pm, when Scotty came around the corner, but he wasn’t driving his own car. After Megan and I climbed into his car, I turned to him. “Nice ride, but you know it’s not a good idea to keep a girl waiting.”
“Sorry ladies, I was having car problems and had to talk Dad into letting me borrow his. Then I ended up playing 100 questions with Mom and Dad, about this mystery girl that I am dating.” Scotty said, frowning in frustration.
That made me worry a little, but I kept smiling. “I’ll forgive you this time, so what did you tell them about me?”
“Nothing much, really, I didn’t think it was my place. All that they know is that the two of us have been dating for awhile. They really want to meet you. I hope you don’t have plans for next Friday, because we’re going out to supper, and I said that I would ask you to join us.” Scotty said, with a quick look my way to gauge my reaction.
I looked at him and teased him by taking my time thinking about it. “Well, I guess that would be all right. What time is supper?”
“Around 5 pm, so you might just want to drive home with me after school. That way we can hangout for awhile before supper.” Scotty said as he put the car into drive and headed towards town.
The drive to the Bronx was not a long one, but we were taking a different route than what I was used to, but it was Megan that ended up speaking first.”
“Where are we going Scotty?” She asked.
“Relax Megan; I’m just picking up my cousin Jeff. He wasn’t doing anything tonight and wanted to join us.” Scotty said with a smile
“Isn’t he the one that used to pick at me all the time?” Megan asked nervously.
“Yeah, but that was years ago Megan, and he only did it cause he liked you.” Scotty said, chuckling at her anxiety.
“Boys picking on girls, is that really a sign of affection Jessica?” Megan asked.
I smiled. “To be honest I really have no idea. There is only one guy that I’ve ever liked, and he’s sitting next to me. I don’t think I would have tried using that ploy as Andrew. It wouldn’t have worked well, and chances are I would have been beat up, considering I was never into girls.”
“I guess you’re right Jessica, you were never really a boy anyway.” Megan said.
“Nope, I’ve always been a girl, even with those nasty parts.” I said frowning.
“Let’s not talk about those nasty parts, let’s just leave it in the past where it belongs. All that matters is that you are normal now.” Scotty said, sounding a little aggravated.
[-][+][-]
Chapter 11
We arrived at Jeff’s home and pulled into his parent’s driveway. Scotty said he would be right back, then he left Megan and I and ran into the house to get his cousin.
Megan looked at me. “This better not be Scotty and you setting me up.”
“It’s not, sis. I had no idea that Jeff would be joining us, but he is older now, maybe the two of you will hit it off.” She glared at me.
“Well, if he gets fresh, my knee will be hitting it off with his groin.” Megan said not sounding very happy.
“God, Megan, if you had any idea how much that hurt, it wouldn’t even be a consideration.” I said remembering from personal experience how it felt.
Soon Megan I saw Scotty leaving the house, followed by his cousin Jeff. I had to admit, he was pretty cute. If I wasn’t with Scotty I might have been interested. Scotty and Jeff climbed into the car.
Jeff smiled. “Hi Jessica, it’s nice to meet you, Scotty has been talking about you so much, I feel like I already know you.” He turned to Megan and smiled. “It’s good to see you again Megan. It’s hard to believe you’re the same girl that I used to pick on. You sure grew up to be a beauty.”
“Thanks Jeff,” Megan said blushing. “You look pretty cute yourself.”
“Just so you know Megan, I am sorry how I treated you. It’s no excuse, but there was a lot of stuff going on in my life and I took it out on you. Since my parent sent me off to the private school I have learned to deal with most of it. It doesn’t make what I did right but if it means anything, it was never anything you did.” Jeff smiled, hopefully.
“Well, I’m happy that things are better for you now, but I still find it hard to understand why you acted like such an annoying jerk.” Megan said the fire still obvious in her eyes.
“I would like to explain to you better. Maybe the two of us could talk about it when it’s just the two of us.” Jeff said, sounding frustrated.
Megan looked at him. “You can say anything you want here, Jessica is my sister. She’s not the type to tell anyone, and you know Scotty isn’t going to tell a soul.” Megan said reassuringly.
Jeff looked like he was trying to figure out what to say. “I have a minor learning disability, Megan. They put me into the ‘special’ classes at school with some kids that had more severe impairments. Unfortunately, it sent a message to all the other kids at school that I wasn’t normal, and a few of the kids at school started making my life a living hell.
Everything changed once I started fighting back, and things started getting out of control. I was no longer being bullied, which was great, but somehow along the way I went from being bullied to being the one doing the bullying.”
I was so frustrated with being in those classes with those kids, and I hated myself because I wasn’t like everyone else. I took out my frustration on anyone that came my way, even you, Megan. With you it was different, I liked you. Believe it or not, I went easy on you because of how I felt for you.
You were my first crush, but I didn’t think that you would be interested in a guy like me, not when you could have any guy that you wanted.” Jeff said in frustration.
As I sat there next to Scotty, I could feel for Jeff as he told his story to us. He was not the monster that Megan had made him out to be, he was just a scared kid that wanted nothing more then to be loved and accepted, like the rest of us. I knew how that felt. I had been in the same place that he was. I may not have had a learning disability to make me feel like shit, but I had plenty of other things that made me feel the same exact way as he did and had I been capable of doing the same things that he had done, I likely would have done the same thing.
Megan looked over at Jeff and smiled. “I like this Jeff better then the old one. Let’s just put the past behind us and have some fun tonight.”
“Yeah let’s put the past behind us, I would rather look toward the future anyway.” Jeff said with a big smile.
[-][+][-]
The rest of the ride was a more relaxed one. Although we had a late start, everyone was looking forward to the rest of the evening. After arriving, Megan and Jeff headed in first. I wanted a few minutes alone with Scotty to talk, and once the two of us were alone, I turned to him.
“Isn’t it the girl that usually plays match maker?” I said with a smile.
“Yeah, but I couldn’t resist. Both of them are single, and would have been sitting around the house alone. I figured what the hell. The worst that could happen is that they end up killing one another.” Scotty smiled.
“Well it looks like they’re getting along, so maybe it will work out for the two of them.” I could only hope for the best.
[-][+][-]
Scotty and I made our way inside and looked around. It didn’t take long before we found the rest of the gang. Britney and Natasha were already here, along with Cliff and Brian, who were carrying another table over and joining the tables together. We thought we would all sit together, so Megan and Jeff were bringing a couple of chairs to the table. Scotty and I found a couple of chairs and we carried them over to join the rest of the gang. Once everyone was seated, Jeff and Scotty headed off to get our drinks. I looked over at Megan.
“So what do you think about Jeff now?” I asked.
She smiled “You guys set us up, didn’t you?”
I smiled. “It was Scotty! He thought that if the two of you talked you might hit it off.”
Megan shook her head, “He is not the same guy that he used to be. I like this Jeff.”
I smiled and nodded. “I like him too, Megan.”
It wasn’t long before everyone was back at the table and chatting away, there were a lot of questions about what happened with my kidnapping, but Scotty and Megan stepped in. God bless them, I still wasn’t ready to talk about what had happened. Maybe I could do it one on one, but not as a group. No one pushed me after that, which I was thankful for. Tonight was about having fun.
There were plenty of other things to talk about. I could see that Jeff looked like he was having a hard time, and I decided to try to bring him out of his shell a bit. I knew that once the others got to know him, they’d like him, but it looked like he needed help to break the ice. I turned to Scotty and whispered in his ear. He knew what Jeff liked better then anyone and he turned to him. “Jeff, did you see the game the other night”, Scotty was referring to a football a game.
“Yeah, I lost $20 on that game, they really need to stop hiring their referees from the institute for the blind.” Jeff said which made Cliff and Brian laugh.
“You’re right Jeff, I have no idea what game the referee was watching but it wasn’t the same game that I was watching.” Brian said sounding slightly pissed.
“I bet there were a lot of guys waiting for the referee to leave after that game! They’re lucky that they have their own exit, otherwise he likely would have ended up in the hospital.” Cliff said, and all the guys were pretty much in agreement with that.
With the ice broken, it didn’t take long for Jeff to relax. Everyone seemed to be in good spirits. I looked over at Scotty, and I smiled as he put his arm around me.
[-][+][-]
Everyone was having a great time and by 9pm the place was full and people were already getting up on stage, either with their guitars or doing karaoke. A few were not too bad, while others were dreadful.
“Are you going to do a song, Jessica?” asked Megan, hopefully.
“I wasn’t planning on it, Megan.” I was kind of hoping to just relax and listen tonight.
“Come on Jessica, none of us have heard you sing!” Natasha said with a smile.
“She’s really good, and can play a guitar like you wouldn’t believe.” Megan boasted, proudly.
“Yeah Jessica, lets hear what you’ve got.” Britney said.
Brian smiled. “You know Jessica, they’re not going to leave you alone until you get on stage and sing for them.”
“All right, but I’m only doing one song.” I said firmly.
I got up and made my way over to check out the song list. I found one that I liked, then filled out the request form and returned to our table. There were a lot of names ahead of me by now, so if I was lucky, we would be long gone before my name was finally called. It was about 10:45 when Jennifer and Glen arrived, both of them looked like they were having a great time as they joined us at the table.
“Did we miss anything?” Jennifer asked as she took a seat next to Glen.
“Not yet, we’re just waiting for them to call Jessica’s name. Everyone is dying to hear her sing.” Britney said with a smile.
“You’re all in for a treat I’ve heard her playing with Megan’s father.” Jennifer said, looking at me. “Are you going to play the guitar too?”
“I wasn’t even planning on singing tonight, otherwise I’d have brought a guitar.”
“Well you’re in luck Jessica, Scotty’s guitars is still in my van, along with everything else. I just never got around to putting everything back in the garage.” Glen said with a smile, and handed Scotty the keys to his van.
I smiled and looked over at Scotty. “Guess who’s joining me on stage tonight?”
“Hey, it’s you they want to hear, not me!” Scotty said.
“Don’t worry, you don’t have to sing, just play along with me.” I said with a smile.
“I guess that’s alright, but none of that country crap.”
I smiled and grabbed his hand, then the two of us headed out to Glen’s van. Along the way I told him what the song was that I wanted to do, and he wasn’t very happy. At least it was a recent song that hit both the rock and country charts.
Scotty and I climbed into the back of Glen’s van to get the guitars, and I asked him if he knew how to play the song.
“Not really, but I can keep up with you”, Scotty said as he picked up his guitar, and I grabbed the acoustic.
“Okay, then let’s run through it and give it a try.” I started playing, and we went through the song once. After I finished I asked Scotty if he was ready, and handed him the acoustic. He took it and started playing the song, not quite the same way that I had played it, but I had to admit that I liked the changes he’d made to it. After he finished, Scotty handed the guitar back to me.
“How was that?” He asked, with a smug look on his face.
“Not bad, let me give it a try.” I started playing the song, this time copying what Scotty had done to the song.
“You’re a pretty fast learner.” Scotty said with a smile.
“Thanks, I’m pretty lucky, I was born with an ear for music, I only need to hear something once or twice and I can pretty much copy it.” I said, smiling smugly.
“That is one hell of a gift.” Scotty said, then started playing the song again, this time a little faster, with more of a rock feel for it.
I listened, and about half way through I started playing along with him. I was really surprised just how much the two of us seemed to be in sync with one another and I found myself really starting to enjoy playing with him. It was at that moment that we were brought back to reality, as we heard knocking on the door. When I looked over, it was Jeff. “Hey guys, you’re up!” he called, and then headed back inside.
[-][+][-]
Chapter 12
I was really nervous as Scotty and I took the stage, but I made my way up to the microphone while Scotty plugged our guitars into the amp.
“Hi everyone!” I said nervously. “I am Jessica and the handsome guy next to me is Scotty. The song we’re going to play for you is called ‘The Climb’, by Miley Cyrus.
I looked over at Scotty, and he nodded. I started playing the intro to the song, and shortly after Scotty joined me. I found myself taking a deep breath and started singing. At first I was a little shaky, but I soon found myself getting into the song and relaxing. It wasn’t very long before I was lost in the song and giving it everything that I had. Every now and then I found myself looking over at Scotty. He seemed at home on stage and was really getting into the song, too.
By the time the two of us reached the end of the song, I found myself looking out onto the dance floor. I couldn’t believe how many people were up dancing, including Megan and Jeff, and even Jennifer somehow managed to drag Glen unto the dance floor. Once the song came to and end the applause was unbelievable and people were yelling and screaming for more, I looked over at Scotty and he nodded.
I walked over to Scotty. “Do you know ‘You’re So Vain’?” He nodded. There was a keyboard on the stage that belonged to the club, so I walked over and switched it on and heard it come to life. I set it to piano, took a seat and adjusted the microphone. Scotty started playing the intro and counting me in, when the time came I started playing with him and singing the lyrics to the song.
As I sang the song, I started enjoy myself and every time I got to the part in the song where it said “you’re so vain,” I stared right at Scotty and emphasized those words. Everyone was laughing, as was Scotty, but he just kept on playing. Eventually we reached the end of the song, and I picked up the mic. “That’s it everyone, thanks for making my first time on stage so memorable, and have a goodnight.”
It was an awesome feeling as Scotty and I left the stage, people were so nice and kept telling us how good the two of us were together. It was nice to finally make it back to our table and sit down to relax.
“God, Jessica, you were awesome! I couldn’t believe that was you up there!” Natasha said as she gave me a hug.
“Yeah, you were great Jessica, you really should try going professional.” Britney said with a smile.
It seemed everyone at the table enjoyed hearing Scotty and I perform together, and Brian and Cliff even suggested that I play a few songs with the band. I thought about it and thought that it was a great idea, and it could be a lot of fun.
[-][+][-]
The rest of the night went by pretty fast, and it wasn’t long before Scotty was dropping Megan and I off at home. As usual, Megan left me and Scotty alone so that we could say goodnight to one another, only this time Jeff was walking her to the door.
“I had a great time tonight, Scotty, thanks for everything. I really needed to get out and have some fun.”
“I had a great time tonight too, it was a lot of fun playing with you tonight, and we are definitely going to have to do this more often.” Scotty said with a smile.
Scotty then leaned over and took me in his arms. Before long the two of us were kissing like two people that weren’t going to see each other for a very long time. When I finally came up for air, Scotty looked at me. “I love you, Jessica,” he said and just held me in his arms.
“I love you more.” I whispered to him, and then gave him a kiss goodnight.
The guys waited till Megan and I were inside before leaving. Once we were inside I flopped into a chair and turned to her.” What a night!” I said with a smile.
Megan smiled.” Yeah, really! I had a great time and you were awesome, sis.”
“I was scared to death.” I admitted with a smile.
“You looked pretty nervous at first Jessica, but once you got into it you looked like you belonged on stage.” Megan said, giving me a hug.
“Thanks, I can’t wait to do it again!” I said excitedly, and hugged Megan back.
That night before bed, Mom and Dad hit the both of us with a million questions. I just told them about my night and how much fun it had been, then headed off to bed, leaving Megan sometime with Mom and Dad to share the events of her night. I was exhausted, and pretty much passed out as soon as I hit the mattress.
[-][+][-]
The following morning I was awakened rather early by my arch nemesis, that pesky wood pecker again, it seemed to becoming a regular event. He was once again outside my window pecking on the wood work. I knew better then to blame it on Megan again but the thought of that woodpecker brought back a thousand ways to get even, all I needed was an Acme catalog. On second thought that never ended well for the coyote and I really didn’t need to be stepping out the front door to have a anvil drop on my head.
I slowly pulled myself out of bed and made my way over to the window. I pulled it open and felt the fresh air hit me, then looked out the window and saw Woody. “Good morning, you little pain in the ass.” I said to the little bird that just looked over at me then returned to looking for his breakfast.
He was a cute little guy, I’ll give him that. I slowly made my way over to my bathroom and ran a nice hot bath and poured in some scented bubble bath, while the tub was filling up I grabbed my tooth brush and some paste and brushed my teeth. My mouth felt really dry and after brushing my teeth and gargling with some water, I felt much better and climbed into the bath.
I just laid back and soaked for a half hour. Part of me didn’t really want to face the world today, but I knew that I needed to see Dr. Humphrey this morning. It would bring everything that had happened to a head again and I just didn’t want to face that pain but knew that it was something that I needed to do. Then there was my birth mother.
I knew that she was going to be released any day now and the two of us were going to have to deal with Dad’s funeral and help with the move. The funeral was being held on Friday and that was something I was dreading. Part of me wanted to be there to say goodbye to him, but there was also another part that just didn’t want to face the rest of the family. I knew that most of his family wouldn’t understand or even try to see things for what they were.
The truth to them was that he kidnapped me and the police killed him, it was plain and simple. They didn’t know what really happened in the end. They were not there, but I was. He had taken his own life because he refused to see reason. I reached down and pulled the plug and climbed out of the tub, and started drying myself off. Thinking all I had to do was make it till Friday and I would have the weekend to relax camping with Amy, Tara and Scotty.
[-][+][-]
After getting dressed, I spent the next 20 minutes doing my makeup and fussing with my hair until I was satisfied that I looked alright, then made my way downstairs and found Mom and Megan already in the kitchen. I grabbed a bowl from the cabinet and a box of coco puffs. I filled the bowl and joined Mom and Megan at the table.
“How are you doing this morning honey?” asked Mom.
“I’m a little nervous about seeing Dr. Humphrey, but other than that, I’m fine.” I said as I poured some milk into my bowl.
“It’s to be expected honey, it’s not easy to talk about things that you know are going to make you upset. All I can suggest is to take your time and if you need a few minutes here and there to pull yourself together, then take it. Dr. Humphrey will understand and she knows this it not going to be easy for you to talk about.
“If you want I can stick around and go to the appointment with you?”
“That’s alright mom, I can talk to her on my own, but if you wouldn’t mind sticking around afterwards, I doubt I’ll feel like taking a cab home.”
“Sure baby, just remember if you need me I’ll be in the waiting room. I just wish you weren’t so independent, though.” Mom said with a frown.
“I know Mom, but this is who I am, most of my life the only person that I could rely on was myself and it’s really hard for me to change, but I’m really trying and I do know if things get out of control, I can always come to you.”
“It’s just that we worry about you, that’s all. So much has happened and I have no idea how you are able to hold everything together. If it was me in your place, I think that I would be an emotional basket case.” Mom said frowning.
I smiled. “Mom, the reason that I am able to hold everything together is that I know whatever happens, I have a family that loves and supports me, and if something goes wrong I can always turn to my Mom, Dad and even Megan. I would be lying if I said that none of this is bothering me but I can handle it.”
“Alright Honey, just remember we’re here if you need us.” Mom said, looking worried.
[-][+][-]
After Megan left for school, I gave Mom a hand cleaning up, and then the two of us made the trip to the hospital for my appointment with Dr. Humphrey. I was still pretty anxious and hoped that I could make it through the appointment without having a complete mental breakdown. I tried to concentrate on things that made me happy, like Scotty and the fun that we had last night singing together. It helped somewhat, at least until we pulled into the hospital parking lot.
While Mom found a place to park, I made my way inside. Mom said she would join me as soon as she found a parking space. As I walked, the closer that I got to Dr. Humphrey’s office the worse I felt. It was like my tummy was all tied up in knots and I felt like any minute I was going to vomit, but thank God that never happened. Still, that nauseous feeling just didn’t want to go away.
As I made my way into Dr. Humphrey’s office, I was met by the secretary. Since I was Dr. Humphrey’s only patient today the secretary already knew who I was. “Good morning, Jessica,” she said with a smile. “Please have a seat, and I will let Dr. Humphrey know that you are here.”
[-][+][-]
I only had to wait a few minutes before Dr. Humphrey came out and called me into her office. As I took a seat, she smiled at me and asked me how I was doing.
I looked at her. “To be honest, I have been better, and there are times I just feel like I am hanging on by a thread.
Dr. Humphrey looked at me, “I know things seem pretty tough right now Jessica, but they will get better. The main thing is that you talk about what happened. I know it’s hard, but do you think that you can tell me about the kidnapping, Jessica?”
I nodded. “I was supposed to be bait for the police to catch my father, but things didn’t quite go as planned, there was a double cross. They tied me up and put me in the back of a van. I was scared to death, and then they took me to my father and left me with him. He was really angry at first because of how I was dressed, and he beat me around then he left me tied up for awhile. I tried to get loose but it was impossible. He had me chained up like I was a dog, and my hands and feet were still tied.
I knew that the only way that I was going to have a chance to escape was to play along with him and when the chance came, I would make a run for it, but first I had to get him to untie me. I knew my dad well enough that I could tell he wasn’t completely drunk yet, and I could still reason with him.
“So what did you do?” Asked Dr. Humphrey
“This whole mess started with my attempting suicide. I told him the reason that I did it was because I couldn’t live with myself anymore. I was tried of disappointing everyone and I told him it was better for everyone concerned that I died.”
“What happened next, Jessica?”
“I told him about my medical condition and explained to him that if they had sent me to a doctor when I was younger, I would have turned out normal. At first he didn’t believe me, but I told him about my run in with Mom here at the hospital and that she didn’t believe me either. I lied to him and told him that the doctor showed Mom the x-rays and explained everything.”
“Did he believe you Jessica?”
“Not at first, but it kept the two of us talking. I was eventually able to make him understand. The whole time though, he kept calling me Andrew. I eventually asked him if he would mind not calling me Andrew.”
“I told him about the operation, and said that I didn’t have a choice, they had to do it or I would have died. I had to choose a name and I told him that I chose Jessica because it was his mother’s name, and I felt that had I been born a girl they would have given me that name.”
“He seemed pleased that I had taken his mother’s name, and even said that I looked like her. After that Dad seemed to calm down and was more willing to listen and eventually he untied me.”
“I started playing the role of the perfect daughter, and I took care of him like Mom would have. The cabin was a complete mess, so I spent my time cleaning the place and took care of the cooking and making sure that he always had a cold beer, because once he passed out I would make a run for it.”
“But then the strangest thing started to happen. Dad actually started treating me different, and seemed to be warming to the idea of having a daughter. I am not saying that he would make father of the year or anything like that, but the monster that had been making my life a living hell all those years was gone.”
“How did this make you feel Jessica?” asked Dr. Humphrey
“Mostly confused, when I was a kid I used to love spending time with my father. We would go to ball games, fishing and other stuff.”
“When he started drinking, things changed. He became mean and was angry all the time and the father that I knew and loved was gone. In his place was this monster that hated everyone and everything, even me.”
“The man that was with me now wasn’t the monster that I was afraid of. The man that was with me was my father, the one that loved me and was remorseful for what he had done and wanted my forgiveness.”
“Then the police showed up. They told him to put down the gun and let me go. I wanted to run but was afraid the cops were going to shot him, so I stayed and tried to talk him into giving himself up.”
“I told him that I loved him and that I didn’t want him to die. He pushed me away from him,. Then he pointed the gun at the police and they shot him. I ran to him and I just couldn’t understand why he would do something like this. I took him into my arms and held him.”
“He could barely speak but told me that he loved me and was sorry and if I could forgive him. I just held him and told him that I loved him and I forgave him and then he was gone.”
“You’ve been through a lot Jessica, and I think it would be a good idea if you start coming in once a week. It’s going to take time to get over all of this, but you will. I think it’s also a good idea for you to continue attending the group meeting. I’m going to increase your medication for the next little while, which should help with the anxiety. How are you doing with sleeping, Jessica?”
“I’m able to sleep, but I find myself waking up throughout the night, and I still have the nightmares.”
Dr. Humphrey wrote out a prescription. “This should help you sleep, take 1 or 2 pills about an hour before you are ready for bed.”
“When is your father’s funeral?” She asked.
“It’s on Friday at 1pm”
“I am leaving an appointment open for 3pm, if you need to talk just come in, and if I don’t see you on Friday then I will see you next Wednesday, Jessica.”
“Alright, Dr. Humphrey, thanks for squeezing me in.”
“You’re welcome Jessica, and if you need to talk you can call me anytime and I’ll try to squeeze you in.”
[-][+][-]
After leaving Dr. Humphrey’s office I found Mom waiting for me. She was reading one of the magazines. I smiled, then walked over to the receptionist and asked for an appointment for next Wednesday.
Once I had the appointment Mom and I said goodbye. We headed out to her car. I felt emotionally exhausted, and along the way I had to stop and use the ladies room to freshen up my makeup. I really looked as bad as I felt and decided that in the future I would refrain from wearing makeup when I visited Dr. Humphrey’s office.
The drive home was a quiet one, with neither one of us really saying much and I was thankful that Mom never asked me too many questions. I really wasn’t in the mood to talk about how I was feeling, and talking to Dr. Humphrey had left me feeling completely worn out. Once Mom and I arrived home, I headed off to my room and quickly fell asleep from exhaustion.
[-][+][-]
End of part 4
To be continued in part 5
Jessica’s Journey
Sequel to Andrews Dilemma
By, Cain129
Part 5
Special Thanks to Wren Phoenix for the editing.
Synopsis: Over the last three months life hasn’t been very easy for Jessica. First was the suicide attempt, then she finally accepted that she could no longer live a lie as Andrew, and she truly became Jessica for good. The transition was a tough one, with many trials and tribulations, like meeting her mother as a girl for the first time and eventually getting (and giving) forgiveness.
The worst was the kidnapping and facing her father for the first time as a girl, only to have him die in her arms. Dealing with the aftermath of his death has been difficult, but Jessica has something that Andrew never did. She has the love and support of her adopted family and her friends, and for the first time in her life, she didn’t have to handle everything by herself.
Chapter 13
After seeing Dr. Humphrey, I was pretty much a basket case. For the next few days, I concentrated on trying to get back into my normal life, with my school work and cheer practice. I noticed that I couldn’t find time to just be alone. It seemed that there was always someone with me. Britney and Natasha would pop up, or maybe Jennifer and Megan wanted to hang out, and when none of them were around there were always Scotty. I knew what they were doing, of course. They were trying to keep me busy so I didn’t have time to think about everything that had happened, and to be honest, I was grateful that they were there.
Most evening I spent studying, and sometimes Dad and I would practice different songs together. It was fun, but I think that he was enjoying it more then I was. Scotty and the guys started inviting me to their practice sessions, and we would just play around with different songs, trying to make them our own. I loved doing this because it allowed me to be creative with the music, which was something that I really enjoyed.
Thursday rolled around before I knew it, and I was busy going through my closet. I was looking for something to wear for Dad’s funeral, but couldn’t really seem to find anything appropriate. It looked like I needed to go shopping to find something that I could wear, so I made my way into the living room where Mom was busy working on something on the computer. I really didn’t want to bother her, but I needed her help.
“Mom,” I said, getting her attention. “I don’t have anything that would be appropriate for the funeral tomorrow. Do you think we can go to the mall after you’re done? I could really use your help with picking out a dress.”
“Sure baby, let me just finish up here and we can get going.”
“Thanks Mom, I appreciate it.”
[-][+][-]
After Mom finished up on the computer, the two of us headed for the mall. Under normal circumstances I would have really enjoyed going on a shopping trip with my mother, but these weren’t normal circumstances. I really just wanted to get the dress and leave, but that just wasn’t the case. It’s impossible for a girl to go shopping and leave with just one outfit, especially when you’re shopping with your mother and she thinks everything she sees would look perfect on you.
I would be lying, though, if I said that I didn’t enjoy spending time with Mom. I would have given anything to have moments like this with my birth mother, but that wasn’t meant to be. She never took the time to really get know me, if she had then things might have been different between us.
There was still this part of me that wanted a relationship with her, even after everything that had happened between us. I know that Megan and the others think that I am crazy, but life is not that simple.
She would always be my mother and I would always love her, just like I loved my father. He made my life a living hell at times, but there was always a part of me that craved his love and support. I think that before his death I might have finally reached him, but the years of drinking had taken their toll on him and his sanity. He took his own life, even if it wasn’t by his own hands. He chose to raise his gun at the police, knowing full well that they would be forced to defend themselves.
“Jessica, are you alright?” Mom asked, looking worried
“Sorry Mom, I’m alright, my mind is just not really into shopping. I keep thinking about what happened and about the funeral tomorrow.”
“Let’s find you a dress and we’ll grab a coffee afterwards.” Mom said sadly.
“I’m sorry Mom, under normal conditions, I love to spend the day shopping with you, but at the moment things are a little messed up.”
“There’s no reason to be sorry Jessica, we can go shopping anytime.” Mom said as she put her arm around my shoulder.
Eventually we found a dress that we felt was appropriate. It was a nice black dress that came down just past my knees, with thin shoulder straps and a thin white sweater to go with it. The two of us made it over to footwear, and we started looking for a pair of black pumps that would match my dress.
After trying on several different ones, we eventually picked out a pair that I could walk in without too much trouble. I was really not that accustomed to walking in heels, as up ‘til now I had been wearing mostly sneakers or sandals. After Mom paid for our purchases we headed over to Starbucks and grabbed a couple of coffees, then found a quiet place to sit.
[-][+][-]
“It looks like you’re ready for tomorrow now, are you sure that you don’t want me to go with you, honey?” Mom asked, then took a drink of her coffee.
“Everything should be alright, Mom. There are going to be a lot of family members there, and I’m not too worried about Mom’s side of the family.”
“I imagine that my birth mother has already told my Aunt Janet about me and it’s not like anyone is going to be there other than Dad’s side of the family. I was going to have to face them eventually anyway.” I took a drink of my coffee. “I’ll be glad when it’s all over with, then all I will have to deal with is the camping trip.”
“Well honey, I just want you to know that if you need me, you can just call and I’ll come and get you. If you have any problems, I want you to let me know, alright Jessica?” Mom asked.
“I promise Mom, but I really doubt that anything is going to happen, at least not at the funeral. Afterwards though, who knows when it comes to Dad’s side of the family? I really don’t trust any of them.” I said, frowning.
“That’s what worries me, Jessica. I’m not really worried about Sarah anymore. I think if she was going to cause any trouble, she would have by now.”
“Yeah, I can’t see her causing any trouble either. She wants to have a relationship with me, even if it isn’t as mother and daughter.”
“We haven’t really talked about it Jessica, but how do you feel about Sarah?” Mom asked, sounding slightly frustrated.
I looked over at her. “She may have giving birth to me, but in every way that matters, you’re my mother. If it came down to making a choice between the two of you, then it’s an easy choice. I would choose you.”
Mom smiled. “You’re not going to have to make that choice, honey. I just wanted to know how you felt, now that the two of you are talking.”
“I want to have a relationship with her, now that she is actually trying, but she needs to get on with her own life. Just like I had to do, but it’s not easy to change.”
“You’re right Jessica, change is never easy, especially when it comes to the person that you are and the person that you want to be. I know that it hasn’t been easy for you either, but you are living proof that a person can change.”
“Just look at yourself now, compared to the person that you were three months ago. You’ve grown up so much, in such a short time. When you first moved in with us you were filled with hatred towards your mother and father, and even towards yourself. Somehow along the way you were able to forgive them, even after everything that they had done to you. To be honest with you I don’t know if I would be able to do the same if I was in your place, sweetheart.” Mom admitted.
“I just got tired of holding on to all that crap, it was making me sick and I didn’t want to end up like my mother. She carried everything that had happened to her all of her life, and look at the choices she made because of it. She couldn’t put the past behind her, and she couldn’t deal with life, let alone being a mother to her child. In the end, she had a complete nervous breakdown and lost everything. That isn’t going to happen to me,” I said firmly. “I’m not going to make the same mistakes that she did.”
“I don’t think that you have to worry about that happening Jessica. If you ask me you are more mature then most kids your age.”
“Yeah, maybe, but in many ways I had no choice but to grow up fast, especially when you come from the kind of household I was raised in.”
“Well honey, that’s all in the past now, and what happens in the future is really up to you.” Mom said with a smile.
“I prefer to live a day at a time, life is less complicated that way.” I said with a determined smile.
“Whatever works for you, baby.” Mom said as she drank her coffee.
[-][+][-]
We finished our coffees, and then we had to pick up the sleeping pills that Dr. Humphrey had prescribed. The pharmacy wasn’t very busy, and the lady told us that it would be ready in 10 minutes, so we just spent the time looking around the store checking out what was on sale.
Had we thought of it earlier we could have called it in, but I guess neither one of us gave it much thought. It wasn’t that bad and the time eventually passed. Mom and I retrieved the sleeping pills and were on our way home. I was already pretty tired out, and to be honest I really didn’t see any use in taking the sleeping pills tonight other then being able to sleep through the night.
After arriving home Mom went back to her computer, and I headed off to my room to hang up my new dress, then I spent the next hour working on my homework. Over the last week I had managed to close the gap and was almost caught up in all of my subjects. I devoted most of my time to catching up rather then worrying about the new assignments. I had been attending classes when most of that was being taught, so I had most of it memorized and was able to do that homework during study period.
Just before I was ready to head off for bed for the night, there was a knock on my door.
“Jessica, can I come in?” Megan said
“It’s open, sis.” I said, and then she came inside.
“I just was wondering how you made out tonight?” Megan said, wanting to see the dress that mom and I bought.
“We did alright, but I really wasn’t in a shopping mood. I was just glad to get the dress and leave, want to see it?” I said with a smile.
Megan smiled. “Sure, that would be nice.”
I walked over and opened my closet, then took it out along with the white sweater and my new black pumps. I brought it over and placed them on my bed.
“Wow Jessica, this is really nice, but where is your slip? This material is a little thin to wear without one.” Megan said picking up my black dress.
“I didn’t even notice that I would need one, and I guess Mom didn’t either. Do you have one that I could borrow for tomorrow, Megan?”
“Yeah, I have a few black ones that should do the job.” Megan said with a smile.
“I love the dress though; you should hang on to it. You never know, Scotty might take you to a fancy restaurant.” Megan teased as she hung my dress back up in the closet then joined me on the bed.
Megan and I talked for a bit mostly about Jeff, he had called her while Mom and I were at the mall and asked her out on another date. I was happy for her, she really seemed to be hitting it off with Jeff, and to be honest I really liked him and thought the two of them were good for each other, and I told Megan so.
Megan could tell that I was getting pretty tired after taking my meds and she left me to get some sleep. The pills seemed to do the job, because I was pretty much out cold as soon as I changed into my nightgown and climbed into bed for the night.
Chapter 14
The next morning, I was once again awakened by that damn woodpecker, and I thought to myself of all the places the little bugger could find breakfast, why did it have to be outside my damn window. I slowly made my way over and opened the window, and the noisy little pain turned and looked over at me. “Don’t you have somewhere else you can go for breakfast?” The little bugger started bopping his head and then went back to looking for his breakfast.
I thought to myself, who needs an alarm clock with this little pain in the ass showing up every morning? I spent most of next hour having a nice bath, fixing my hair, getting dressed and doing my makeup. After I was finished, I looked in the mirror and said to myself it was time to face the world. I made my way into the kitchen, and found Mom already busily making breakfast as I walked inside.
“Good morning, Mom.” I said taking a coffee mug and filling it.
“Good morning honey, how did you sleep?”
“Alright I guess, the pills seemed to help.” I said as I poured some milk and sugar into my coffee.
“That’s good honey, things will be better after today.” Mom said with a smile.
“I know Mom, I just want to get it over with, the less time I spend around my family the better, especially Dad’s side of the family.”
“Well after this Jessica, you won’t have to bother with any of them again.”
“Thank God, that’s one chapter of my life I want to put behind me.” I said smiling.
“I can’t say that I blame you Jessica.” Mom said as she placed a plate of eggs and bacon in front of me.
“I’d better get your sister up, otherwise she’ll never get out of bed. I wish that she was more like you. Most mornings you’re up early and ready to go.” Mom said.
“Megan doesn’t have a woodpecker as an alarm clock like I do.” I giggled.
[-][+][-]
As I sat there I wondered, was it truly over or was this just a grace period before the something else happened? I have been having this nagging feeling for the last couple of days that some bad was going to happen, but considering all that I had been through, was it just my mind playing tricks on me? I guess time would tell in any event, but for the moment I had a funeral to deal with.
A few minutes later Megan made her way into the kitchen. I could tell that she was still half asleep. “Good morning, sis.” I said with a smile.
“Good morning Jessica.” Megan yawned, as she took a seat at the table. “That dress really suits you.”
“Thanks Megan, Mom and I went through a lot of different ones before finding this one. This was the only one that I really liked, most of the other ones I saw wouldn’t have been appropriate for a funeral.”
“I like it though, it’s a shame that you have to wear it to a funeral, because it would also be good for a dressy date out with Scotty.” Megan said with a smile.
“I doubt that Jessica would be able to wear it very long anyway, she is starting to fill out.” Mom said with a smile. “I would imagine that before long, we’re going to need to do some real shopping.”
“Yeah, Mom’s right, I’ve noticed that my clothes are starting to feel a little tight.”
“I need a few things too, maybe next week we can see what Britney, Natasha and Jennifer are up to. Maybe we could spend the day at the mall shopping, hmmm?” Megan said with a hopeful smile and puppy dog eyes.
“Sounds like fun, and I could always use some help.” I said, giggling at her.
“That’s one of the bonuses of shopping as a group. I know that sometimes I see something that I think looks good on me at the store, but once I bring it home and see it under another light, I realize that it really wasn’t what I wanted. Then it pretty much ends up hanging up in my closet and never gets used.” Megan said frowning.
“I think that’s normal, whether you are a boy or girl. I’ve found the same thing when I went shopping for jeans, they seemed like a good fit until I was wearing them and had a chance to really see how they looked on me. It was then that I really noticed that the style didn’t suit me. Then again, they were boy’s jeans and because of my condition I was already developing as a woman. So there was really no way that they would have fit correctly anyway.” I said smiling.
[-][+][-]
After breakfast Megan headed off to school while Mom and I did up the dishes. I spent most of the morning doing up my homework and listening to music in my room. There were a few phone calls that came in as I worked. One was from my birth mother, wanting to know if I was going to be at the funeral.
I really didn’t want to be rude but it was really hard to talk to her about Dad. I would talk to her eventually but today was his funeral and I was having a hard enough time holding things together as it was. I told her I would see her at the funeral and we could talk afterwards if she wanted, then I ended the call and went back to my studies.
[-][+][-]
The rest of the morning went by pretty calmly, and before long it was time for Mom and me to get going. The ride was a quiet one and as we pulled into the parking lot, I saw a familiar car parked and inside it was Scotty. I looked over at Mom.
“Did you know that Scotty was going to be here?” I asked.
“Yes honey, he called this morning and wanted to know where the service was and what time it was being held.” Mom said smiling. “You better go, honey,” she said, giving me a hug and kiss. I smiled and told her that I would see her later, and then got out of the car. I ran over to Scotty’s car and climbed in the passenger side
“You didn’t have to come, Scotty I would have been alright, but I am glad to see you.” I said, leaning over and giving him a hug and kiss.
“I love you Jessica, do you really think that I would let you go through something like the alone?” Scotty asked with a smile.
“Believe me, Scotty, I’m happy to see you and I wanted to ask you, but there are going to be people here that are not going to be happy to see me, and I didn’t want to put you in middle of it.” I said sadly
“Jessica, what can they say that I don’t already know? Secondly, do I really look like I give a flying fuck what anyone has to say about you? I love you and that is really all that matters. Whatever they thought you were in the past doesn’t make any difference to me, because as far as I am concerned you have always been a girl.” Scotty said smugly.
Hearing those words coming from Scotty pretty much brought me to tears. Over the last three months the two of us had become really close. I had never been in love with anyone, but I knew at that moment that I truly loved Scotty, and I knew whatever happened that I could depend on him. All of my life the only person that I could really depend on was myself. Life was easier that way. I had been hurt too many times by the people that were supposed to love and protect me, but as I looked into Scotty’s eyes I knew that I could finally let go and trust someone.
[-][+][-]
Scotty and I just stayed in the car for awhile, until it was time to go inside.
“Are you ready?” Scotty asked
“Yeah honey, lets get this over with.” I said sadly, but with determination.
Once the two of us climbed out of Scotty’s car, Scotty took my hand and gave it a squeeze and the two of us made our way inside the funeral home. I looked around and saw that most of Dad’s family was already there, and then I saw my Aunt Janet and my mother who was beside her. I turned to Scotty. “There is my mom and Aunt Janet. We’ll sit with them, alright?” I said and the two of us made our way over to where my mother was sitting.
“Hi Mom, Aunt Janet.” I said as Scotty and I approached.
When Mom turned, she smiled and gave me a hug. “Jessica, I’m so glad you made it!”
I looked over at Aunt Janet and smiled, by the look on her face I knew that she was surprised. I definitely wasn’t what she was expecting, but she shook her head then came over and took me in her arms.
“Sarah said you were beautiful, but I thought that it was just a mother’s opinion, Jessica. She‘s right, though, you really are.” Aunt Janet said with a smile. She turned to Scotty, then back to me.
“And who is this handsome young man with you?”
“Mom, Aunt Janet, this is my boyfriend Scotty.” I said happily.
“It’s nice to meet the both of you,” Scotty said with a smile.
“How long have the two of you the two of you been dating?” Mom asked.
“We started dating three months ago, but have known each other for a couple of years.” Scotty said with a smile.
“The two of you make a nice couple.” Aunt Janet said with a smile.
“Yeah, the only thing that the two of us don’t have in common is football. He loves it and I hate it, but nobody’s perfect.” I said smiling.
“You seemed to enjoy yourself at the last game?” Scotty said.
“Yeah, I did, but that was because you were playing, otherwise I would have never gone to the game.” I admitted to him.
I guess Aunt Janet found our verbal banner funny and she started giggling. “Are you sure that the two of you have only been seeing each other for just three months? You act like an old married couple.”
I couldn’t help but laugh, ‘cause in many ways the relationship that I shared with Scotty was deeper then just two teenagers in love, maybe because most kids our age never had to deal with the same issues that I’ve had to deal with. We didn’t have time to continue our conversation as Pastor Myers started the service.
Mom was an emotional basket case for most of the service. I had taken a seat next to her, and pretty much ended up holding her as she cried for most of the service. I found myself crying too, as I thought about those last moments that I had spent with my father as I held him in my arms.
I thanked God for Scotty being there with me, because he just held me and I felt safe in his arms. Every now and then he would kiss me. I had never felt this kind of love before, and as I sat there I thanked God for the life that he had given me. It might not have started out the way that I wished it would have, but then again when does life ever work out the way you planned?
[-][+][-]
It was a nice service and most of Dad’s family and friends were here. For the most part I felt comfortable, until I got that feeling you get when someone is staring at you. I looked over and ended up locking eyes with my Uncle James, my father’s younger brother and he didn’t look all that happy to see me there.
After the service ended I turned to Scotty. “We’d better get going. I don’t like the looks that I’m getting from Dad’s side of the family.” I watched my uncle talking to the rest of the family and I saw the nasty way they looked at me as Uncle James pointed me out to them. I turned to Mom and Aunt Janet.
“It was nice talking to you both, and I hope that we can do it again sometime under better circumstances.”
“Jessica, you’re welcome to visit anytime.” Aunt Janet said as she reached over and gave me a hug. “I’m sorry that I couldn’t have been there for you in the past. Let’s just say your father and I never really got along. He was too much like my own father, and being around him brought back all those bad memories. I would really welcome the chance to get to know my niece.”
I smiled, happy for her acceptance. “Aunt Janet, I don’t blame you for not wanting to visit. When Dad drank, he was a monster that didn’t care about anyone but himself. I had to live with his mental and physical abuse for years.
Towards the end though, the monster was gone and I had a chance to spend time with the father that I knew and loved all those years ago, before the drinking drove him insane. Before he died he asked me to forgive him. I came here today for him, not the monster that helped raise me.
Let’s just leave the past where it belongs, Aunt Janet. I would love to get to know you better and once everything is settled down, I’ll call you.”
I turned to Mom. “I love you, Mom. I’ll give you a call you once I get back from my camping trip, and we can get the house sorted together.”
Mom reached over and took me in her arms. “I love you too, Jessica and thanks for coming. I don’t think I would have been able to make it though this without you.”
[-][+][-]
After Scotty and I said our goodbyes, the two of us made our way outside and started walking towards where Scotty had parked his car, only to be cut off by my Uncle James and my Aunt Karen.
“How dare you show your face here, you’re the reason that he died. If there wasn’t anyone else here believe me, I would beat you to an inch of your life, you fucking sissy.” Uncle James said in anger.
I looked at my uncle and could feel my own anger coming to a head. “You fucking bastard, the reason he’s dead was because he kidnapped me and refused to let the cops take him. He killed himself, and if you had half a brain you would realize that.”
Had I been thinking at the time, I might not have said what I did, but I wasn’t thinking, I was reacting. Before I knew what happened, I was on the ground with blood coming from my nose and my head hurt really badly from hitting the ground. That’s when everything went black.
[-][+][-]
Jessica’s Journey
Sequel to Andrews Dilemma
By, Cain129
Part 6
Special Thanks to Wren Phoenix for the editing.
Synopsis: Jessica had a feeling that something bad was going to happen, and on the day of her father’s funeral that fear turned out to be justified. A run in with her Uncle James resulted in Jessica being assaulted and unconscious.
Chapter 15
All I can tell you is what my birth mother and Aunt Janet have told me, because I wasn’t awake to see what followed. After I hit the ground and everything went black, Scotty lost it and jumped my uncle James. They both ended up on the ground with Scotty on top, delivering punch after punch to my uncle. By the time that the police arrived, Uncle James was lying on the ground, beaten so bad that they had to take him to the hospital. Chances were that he wouldn’t be eating solid foods for quite some time.
The police had originally tried to arrest Scotty, but Mom and Aunt Janet stepped in and told the police what happened. They still took Scotty to the police station, but Aunt Janet went with him. She gave them her statement, as did a few others that witnessed Uncle James assaulting me and the fight that ensued between Scotty and Uncle James.
I called Janice, my adopted mom, and she came to the hospital to get me. I was checked out by a doctor at the hospital, and he cleared me to go home. He set my broken nose, and told me I had a mild concussion. There was really nothing much that they could do for me, other than observe me over the next few hours and prescribe painkillers. Considering my adopted mother was a doctor, and quite capable of watching me herself, he decided that there really wasn’t much use in keeping me. If something went wrong, Mom would pretty much know what had to be done.
After being released I said goodbye to my birth mother and told her I would give her a call later. Before she left she gave me a hug and kiss. “I’m sorry this happened, honey.”
“It’s not your fault Mom, you didn’t do anything wrong. Uncle James was to blame, and Scotty took care of him. Thanks for staying with me though, Mom. I imagine you’ve had enough of hospitals for awhile.” I told her, jokingly.
“The last thing I was thinking about was the hospital, Jessica. I was more worried about you than anything.” She said sadly.
“Still, you were here for me, and that means a lot to me.” I leaned over and gave her a kiss. “Tell Aunt Janet that I’m alright, and I’ll give her a call soon.
[-][+][-]
After saying my goodbyes to my birth mother, Mom and I made the drive home. It was nice to get out of the hospital. I had spent enough time there over the last three months that I really wasn’t looking to spend anymore time there then needed.
“Do you feel like talking about what happened, Jessica?” Mom asked, concerned.
“Not really Mom, I’m just glad it’s all over with. I knew eventually something like this was going to happen. I’m just glad that it happened where I had lots of witnesses. Something tells me that I won’t be hearing from Uncle James anytime soon. There’s no way that he can talk his way out of this, there were too many witnesses.
I feel bad for Scotty, though. He shouldn’t have to put up with all of the baggage that I carry. If it was me in his shoes I‘d have likely just walked away. But he doesn’t feel that way, and I love him.”
Mom smiled. “Honey, he stays because he loves you. I was wrong about the two of you. I thought he would hinder your recovery because of everything that happened, but he’s had the opposite effect. Instead of making your life more complicated, he has helped you become the person you are today.
Don’t get me wrong Jessica. Most boys his age only care about one thing, Sex. It’s rare to find someone his age that is mature enough to realize there is more to a relationship than just sex. When you find someone like that, you should hold on to them with all of your heart. Scotty is a lot like your Anthony, he’s a keeper.
“Some boys his age would have been scared half to death to stand up to a grown man like your uncle. From what Sarah said, Scotty didn’t think twice. He jumped your uncle and beat him to a pulp. That alone tells me more then anything how much he cares for you, Jessica.” Mom said with a smile.
I smiled, “Yeah, Scotty is not like most of the boys I know. He’s special, and never once made me feel any less of a girl because of how I was born. Most guys would have run if when they found out that I was raised to be a boy. Scotty’s different, he knows the truth about who I was before, but he only sees me as a girl and not some messed up freak.” I said as the tears began to run down my face. “I really don’t deserve him Mom, but God help me, I love him and can’t picture living my life without him there.”
“I don’t think you have to worry about that honey, what you two have can only get stronger with time. Besides, something tells me if I told you to stop seeing him you would tell me to go straight to hell.” Mom said, giggling.
I shook my head. “I don’t think that I would use those exact words Mom, but yeah, I would definitely tell you where to go and how to get there.” I said and the two of us started giggling. “They say laughter is the best medicine, but evidently whoever said that didn’t have a broken nose and concussion, because laughter hurts like hell.”
Chapter 16
After arriving home I was met by Megan and Jennifer, who came running as Mom and I walked though the front door. It wasn’t long before both of them were hugging me half to death.
“Jessica, are you all right?” Megan said looking worried. “I was so worried when I saw the note Mom left for me.
“Yeah, we were just about to take a cab to the hospital,” Jennifer said as she continued hugging me.
“I’m fine, it’s just a broken nose, and it will heal. My uncle James got the worst of it though. Scotty beat him up really bad.”
“What about Scotty, is he alright?” Megan asked, looking a little worried.
“Yeah, he and my Aunt Janet went to the police station to file a report. I need to call him and tell him that I’m home.”
After talking with Megan and Jennifer for a few minutes I called Scotty’s cell phone and within a few rings he answered.
“Hi baby, are you alright?”
“Yeah Jessica, I‘m fine, just a black eye and a few bruises. I’m on my way over to your place now. Your aunt and I were just at the hospital, and they told us that you were already released.
I should be about 30 minutes. I’ll be dropping your Aunt off first. She says that she wants to talk to you, so I’m handing the phone over to her now, honey. I’ll see you in a bit, love you baby.”
“I love you too more.” I said into the phone before my Aunt spoke up.
“Hi Jessica, how are you doing? Sorry I couldn’t stay at the hospital, but someone had to go to the police station with Scotty. That retarded uncle of yours was trying to say that Scotty started the fight and he wanted to press charges. He was saying that Scotty assaulted him, but your mother and I saw the whole thing, as did everyone else that was in the parking lot.”
“I just wanted to make sure that the police arrested the right person and none of James family was able to lie to the police about him. Thank God it happened where there were witnesses otherwise he might have got away with it.” Aunt Janet said, sounding tired out.
“Thanks for taking care of Scotty Aunt Janet. You’re right, Dad’s side of the family would have lied and tried to make it look like Uncle James was the victim. I hope they throw the book at him.” I said, angrily. “Don’t worry about me Aunt Janet. I’m alright, nothing that a little rest won’t fix, anyway.”
“Well, you give me a call when you’re feeling better, Jessica. Take care of yourself, and for God’s sake don’t let that man of yours get away.”
“Believe me, Aunt Janet I’m not letting him get away.” I said, smiling. “I’ll give you a call later in the week, Aunt Janet, and thanks for taking care of everything for me.”
“Anytime love, talk to you later Jessica.” Janet said as she ended the call.
After getting off the phone, I headed off to the washroom to have a better look at the damage. It looked bad, but it would heal up in time. I was emotionally exhausted and knew that I was still somewhat numb to what happened, maybe even in shock. I knew that I should have been angrier than I was, but deep down I had known that something like this could happen, and I had emotionally prepared myself. I found myself more worried about Scotty’s safety then my own.
[-][+][-]
I spent the next 10 minutes in the bath room redoing my makeup and trying to cover up the bruises with only mild success. Women have been doing that trick for years, but I was not all that successful. I guess like anything, practice makes perfect and this was a skill that I would sooner not have to learn. I have no intension of becoming any man’s punching bag.
With everything that had happened, I needed a little bit of time to myself and just hung out in my room, I was laying on my bed with I heard a knock on my door. “It’s open!” I called out.
“I thought it was Scotty, but it turned out to be Dad that walked through the door. “Hi baby, I just wanted to check on you, are you alright?”
“Yes, Daddy. I’m fine, well a little shook up, but I’ll be alright”
“I should have been there with you today!”
“It’s alright Daddy, it’s not your fault. It would have happened if you were there or not. Uncle James is going to jail, where he belongs. Believe me, I’ll have no problem going to court and telling them what happened, and as far as I’m concerned, he can rot in jail.
“Well, I’m just glad you are alright honey. If you need to talk you know where to find Me.” Daddy said as he gave me a hug and a kiss on my forehead.
“I love you, Daddy.” I told him, returning his hug
“I know sweetie, I love you too,” he said, and I felt so secure and protected.
Dad and I were still talking, when I heard someone knocking on my door. I turned and saw that it was Scotty! The poor guy looked like he had been in a fight with Rocky and lost. I ran over to him and pretty much jumped into his arms. The two of us just held and kissed one another, carefully avoiding my poor nose.
Once I came up for air, I looked Scotty in the eyes. “I was so worried about you”
“I’m alright Jessica, believe me, I’ve been through worse. I’m just happy that you are alright, honey.”
Dad got up and came over and shook Scotty’s hand. “I want to thank you for taking care my daughter. When the two of you started dating, Janice and I thought it was a bad idea. I know now that we were wrong.”
“It’s alright Mr. Tanner, considering everything that Jessica’s been through. I can understand why you would feel that way, but to be honest with you, even if you had forbid me from seeing Jessica, I wouldn’t have been able to stay away. I love her and have from the moment she came into my life.”
Dad smiled, “I can see that now Scotty, and you have my blessing. You will most likely end up being my son in law anyway.”
Chapter 17
Scotty stayed with me most of the night, and the two of us just laid in bed together. It felt so good to be held by him. The two of us talked most of the night until I eventually ended up passing out in his arms. I awoke from my sleep when Scotty was trying to pry himself free from my clutches. “Honey, I wish that you didn’t have to go.” I said sleepily.
“Sorry baby, you know that I’d love to stay but something tells me your parents wouldn’t approve, and I’m already an hour past my curfew.”
“It’s alright, Scotty I understand, but you owe me a kiss before you go.”
Scotty smiled, then leaned over and kissed me. As the two of us kissed I wrapped my arms around his neck and found myself returning his kiss with a passion inside me that I didn’t even know existed.
“See you tomorrow, honey.” I told him once I finally let him go.
“You can count on it honey. Love you baby.” Scotty said with a smile.
“I love you more Scotty.” I said grinning.
Scotty laughed. “That’s not possible, but anyway honey, I’ll see you tomorrow.”
[-][+][-]
That night I’d like to say that I had a well rested sleep, but that wasn’t the case. Even with the medicine that Dr. Humphrey prescribed, I was still unable to really get much sleep. What little sleep that I did have was haunted with nightmares of what had happened at Dad’s funeral. I’d tried to be strong and hold my feeling together while I was around family and friends, but now that I was alone they were free, and I couldn’t help but cry.
It was all so stupid, his death was not my fault. I tried to save him, but he wouldn’t listen to me. They blame me for his death, like he was the victim not me.
“I am so tired of all this bullshit! God, please. just make it all stop. Let me be happy for once in my freaking life!” I cried out.
I cried myself to sleep and by the time I woke up it was after 9am. It felt like I hadn’t slept at all. I slowly pulled myself out of bed, rather surprised that for the first time this week, my evil nemesis wasn’t outside my window ramming his beak into the side of the house. Maybe the little bugger decided to piss off someone else for a change, I thought to myself.
I slowly made my way into the bathroom and started running a hot bath. I’d been pretty lazy last night, and never bothered changing. My new dress was pretty much ruined, it was covered in blood. I undressed and tossed it into the garbage then took off my slip, panties and bra, tossed them in the laundry hamper, climbed into that bath and leaned back , trying to relax.
I pretty much just laid there for close to an hour, not wanting to face the world and trying to figure out what I wanted to do for today. I had made plans to spend the weekend camping with Amy and Tara, but to be honest it was really the last thing that I wanted to do at the moment.
Even though it would have done me good to get away from everything, I guess there was this little part of me that just wanted to hide from the world and feel sorry for myself. I just didn’t have that luxury. I made a promise to Amy and Tara to join them, and besides Scotty would be there with me. I climbed out of the bathtub and pulled out the stopper, then grabbed a towel and started drying myself off. I then made my way back into my bedroom and grabbed a clean pair of panties and bra from the dresser and started getting dressed.
Today was going to be a tee shirt and jeans kind of day. Something told me tracking though the woods in a sundress and sandals really wouldn’t be very wise. After getting dressed I started filling up my backpack with everything that I would need for the weekend, Jeans, my blue sundress in case we end up going into town, my makeup, a few blouses and a couple on tank tops and lastly my new bikini, which I knew Scotty would enjoy more then me.
Once everything was packed up and was ready to go. I rolled up the sleeping bag that I had borrowed from Megan, then tied it off and attached it to the bottom of my backpack. As far as the tent went, Scotty was going to take care of that. He was also going to bring both of his acoustic guitars so that the two of us could practice together, which was something that I was really looking forward to. It seemed like whenever the two of us played together, there was like a perfect union of sound and thought. What made it special was that it was something we both loved, although the two of us had our own styles when it came to music that we liked to play.
Me, I was a county girl at heart while Scotty was into rock music. It really showed in the way he played his guitar, but he was a true musician and gifted enough that he could pretty much play any kind of music. Like me, he could pick up a song by listening to it, playing it through a couple of times, and then he could play it without much trouble. This ability was a rare gift that the two of us shared.
“Maybe this weekend won’t to be too bad.” I smiled to myself.
After carrying my backpack into the living room and leaving it near the front door, I could hear the sound of Mom, Dad and Megan in the kitchen having breakfast together, and I made my way inside.
“Good morning honey, how are you doing this morning?”
“Good morning Mom, I’m doing alright, although I didn’t really sleep very well.” I said pouring myself a coffee and joining everyone at the table.
“That’s understandable, especially after everything that happened yesterday.” Dad said with a frown.
“Are you still going camping Jessica?” asked Megan.
“Yeah, part of me isn’t really into it, but I think it will do me some good just to get away from everything, even if it’s just for the weekend.”
“You might be right, it’s not going to help much moping around the house, and you haven’t spent much time with Amy lately.” Megan said with a smile.
“Yeah, I’ve been meaning to, it just seems every time we make plans to get together something happens. I think it’ll do us both some good to have some time together alone. I really have missed her. “I said sadly.
“What time are you planning on leaving honey?” asked Dad.
“Scotty and I will be heading over to Amy’s and Tara’s apartment, then we’ll make the trip there together.”
“Just make sure you have your phone charged honey, and keep in touch with us.” Mom said. Her voice sounding worried.
“Don’t worry Mommy, I’m alright. I know I look terrible, but I’ve been through worse. These are just bruises, but what Scotty did to my uncle will take much longer to heal” I said, proudly smiling.
What did Scotty do to him?” asked Megan
“Nothing much, just two black eyes, broken nose, broken Jaw and a few broken ribs. Nothing less then what that creep deserved.” I said with a smile.
“Maybe your uncle will get it through his head that it’s not a good idea to beat on a girl when her boyfriend is with her.” Megan said sarcastically.
“Nope, my uncle’s not that bright, but maybe eating from a straw for the next month will at least be a reminder of his stupidity.”
“The only thing that is bothering me is why I haven’t heard from the police, don’t they have to take a statement for me to press charges against my uncle?”
“There is a good reason for that Jessica. The assault happened in the open and there were plenty of witnesses. The police were able to press charges without your consent. They already have your Aunt’s statement on file as well as Scotty’s, so there really was no reason for them to bother you. They may still want to question you sometime in the future, but they have more then enough to put your uncle in jail for quite some time.” Dad said with a smile.
“I hope that they lock him up for a very long time” Megan said in anger.
“I doubt that will happen, he’ll likely be released in six months with good behavior. It’s not like he can really get into much trouble behind bars.” I said sadly.
“Jessica’s right, it’s not fair but that’s how our justice system works. Most of the time the criminals seem to have more rights then the victim. It really shouldn’t be that way but that is just how things seem to work.” Mom said frowning.
“That’s not fair!” Megan said in frustration.
“Life’s not always fair, it’s just the way things are Megan. Thanks to Scotty, though. I guess that he’s received a fitting punishment. It will be awhile before he can even eat a normal meal, and he must be in a lot of pain. When they release him from the hospital, all he has is jail to look forward to. I would imagine that he’s in no hurry to be discharged from the hospital, knowing what is waiting him in jail.” I said with a smile
“It serves him right. He should be thankful that Scotty got to him, and that it wasn’t me, I would have beaten him half to death.” Daddy said, sounding really angry.
“I’m glad you weren’t there, Daddy. I’ve already lost one father and the last thing I want is to have you thrown in jail. I couldn’t bear losing you too.” I said as my eyes began to tear up.
“That will never happen Jessica. Even when I’m an old man and you’re married and have a family of your own, I will always be your father and you will always be my little girl. That goes for you too, Megan and I’m very proud of both of you. I know that I’m not always around. But I love the both of you more than you will ever know.” Dad said with a big smile.
“We love you too Daddy,” Megan said as she wiped her eyes, I guess that I wasn’t the only one who was crying.
“Yeah, just like Megan said Daddy, but I love you more.” I said giggling.
“Yeah right sis,” Megan said as she chucked a soggy cheerio at me it landed on my forehead, which forced me to return the favor. Mom finally made us stop, but only after Dad started feeling left out and nailed mom between the eyes with one of his own. With behavior like this, it might make you wonder who was the parent and who was the child, but really, who cares? We were all having fun.
[-][+][-]
I have to admit that I love times like this, and being part of a real family that enjoyed spending time together. Even just doing stupid little things like this meant something. These would be the memories that I would look back on later in life. I was so lucky to have them in my life, to have parents that cared about me and to have a sister that I could share silly moments like this with. It was moments like this that made all the hardship that had plagued me throughout the years seem manageable. I no longer felt like I was looking from the outside in and being jealous of what other people had, because as far as my life goes, I have everything that I ever wanted and more.
[-][+][-]
Meanwhile a few hours later across town, James Roberts lies in a hospital bed, handcuffed to the bed. Outside his room, a police officer waits for the doctors to clear James Roberts to be taken to jail. A little ways down the hall, the officer notices some commotion. He quickly decides that he should try to help, and he leaves to check out what is going on.
Once the officer leaves, a nurse enters the room and quietly makes her way over to James bed and takes a needle out and injects the contents into James’ IV.
He soon starts moaning in pain, as the contents of the needle work their way into his body. The nurse then takes the pillow and uses it to muffle the sound of James’ desperate calls for help. As his body slowly becomes still, the nurse says four words, just before James dies.
“Nobody hurts my Daughter.”
End of part 6
To be continued in part 7
Jessica’s Journey
Sequel to Andrews Dilemma
By, Cain129
Part 7
Special Thanks to Wren Phoenix for the editing.
Synopsis: After her father’s funeral, Jessica was approached by her uncle James Roberts. Words were said which resulted in Jessica being assaulted. After seeing Jessica lying on the ground, Scotty completely lost it and beat James so bad that he ended up being hospitalized.
Later that night at the hospital, the police officer assigned to watch James left his post to help the hospital staff deal with an unruly patient, which allowed a mysterious visitor dressed as a nurse to enter James’ room and inject an unknown drug into his IV.
As the contents of the vial begin working their way into his bloodstream, he became completely paralyzed and unable to do anything to resist as the nurse took his pillow and used it to muffle the sound of James’ desperate calls for help. As his body slowly became still, the nurse said the last four words James heard.
“Nobody hurts my Daughter.”
Chapter 18
It was 2:30 in the morning as Janice lay in bed, unable to sleep after the events that had occurred. That fact Jessica had been hurt left her feeling angry and wanting justice. James Roberts was a bully and a monster. Janice feared that he would likely end up getting nothing more than a slap on his wrist for what he had done to Jessica. In the process of his prosecution, James would do anything he could to make Jessica’s life miserable. Janice had never wanted to hurt anyone, but this was different her family was being threatened by this man and she doubted that it would end with any jail time.
Janice knew that he would eventually be released and come looking for her daughter, just like his brother Jake had. This was what bothered her the most. She couldn’t handle that again, she wanted him dead and buried. In her mind, she could picture so many different ways that she could cause it to happen. The question was, could she do such a thing? If you had asked her six months ago, the answer would’ve been no, but how far could a mother be pushed, and how far would she go to protect her child?
Janice slowly climbed out of bed, careful not to wake up Anthony. She dressed quietly, and then headed downstairs. She knew that she wasn’t going to get to sleep anytime soon, not with all the thoughts that were running though her mind. She needed to get out for a bit and clear her mind. It was late, but she really didn’t care what time it was. She had to get away for a bit, she said to herself as she put the car into drive. She started driving, not even sure where she was headed.
[-][+][-]
Meanwhile, across town Amy was stuck working another nightshift. She had been called in to replace another nurse who was off sick, and since she was on call she got stuck working the extra hours. Soon she would return home and meet up with Tara, Jessica and Scotty, and then they would head for the campground.
Amy knew that she would be spending most of her time in the back seat, trying to sleep until they arrived at the camp grounds. It was going to be a long 4 hour drive.
Her night had been going fine until she came across a familiar name on a patient’s chart.
The name was James Roberts. She wasn’t assigned as his nurse, but recognized him as Jessica’s uncle, the one that had assaulted her. She wanted so badly to make him pay for what he had done to her friend, but the room was off limits to everyone other than his doctor and the nurse that was assigned to take care of him.
Amy was assigned to work in emergency. It was a quiet night for the most part until about 3AM, when one of the patients had to be escorted out of the building. It was nothing new, there were always a few troublesome patients coming in. This one was most likely a drug addict who hadn’t got what he wanted.
It took a couple of security guards and the help of the police officer that was watching James’ room to resolve the situation. The man left soon after he learned that the police were going to be involved. Amy was on her break at the time, and only heard about what happened after she returned from her break.
[-][+][-]
It was 3:30 am when the nurse assigned to James checked on him and was unable to wake him up. His chart showed him as stable, so there was really no reason why she would be having such a hard time bringing him around.
After checking for a pulse and unable to find one, she hit the emergency button and called for help. Within a few minute the doctor declared James dead, but he wouldn’t know more until the autopsy came back.
The only thing he did know was there was no previously known medical reason why he would have died, which left only one other likely answer. James Roberts had probably been murdered.
The police had arrived around 4AM and started their investigation. The detective assigned to the case was Kelly Steeves. She was one of the officers that had been called in to help with the police corruption scandal and had been with the RCMP for the past four years. It had been a hard choice for her when she was offered a position with the OPP but it was a chance for her to finally make detective.
The only problem was that she didn’t really know who she could really trust within the department. Every day it seemed that internal affairs was arresting someone new within the OPP that had been part of Vincent’s criminal organization. There were also a lot of people angry that she had been fast tracked to detective while they had been with the force for years.
Kelly couldn’t even understand how her name ended up amongst the applicants either,
as she hadn’t even applied for the position, but the money was better. More importantly, it was a chance to become detective, which was something she had been working towards for the last 4 years. If she had chosen to remain with the RCMP, it was unlikely that she would have been promoted for another five years.
Still there was this nagging voice, deep down, that wondered why she has been asked.
Why, when there were so many other people that were more qualified than her? But that was a question for later. She had a job to do now, and the first thing she needed to do was talk to James Roberts’ doctor, and find out exactly who had access to James’ room.
It would still be a few hours before the results from the autopsy came back, so the cause of death was still officially unknown. All the signs lead her to believe that it was homicide. Everyone she had spoken to so far had said that James’ injuries were not life threatening, so her first question was how did he die?
There was also the commotion at 3:30 that had drawn the officer away from his post. Was it just a coincidence or part of a plan? Unfortunately, security had escorted him out of the building before anyone could question him. All they had to go by was the security footage which left little chance that they would identify him.
[-][+][-]
Meanwhile, downtown at the police station, Mason Johnston was settling into his new position as Chief of Police. He hadn’t really wanted the job, but he knew that he would finally have the power to clean up the police force. It was time to put this nasty police corruption scandal to rest, and get back to the business of protecting the city.
One of his first steps was to start bringing in personal from other police forces that would take up key positions. Most of the people he hired had a very good reputation and there were a few people that he knew personally. Kelly was one of them.
After the death of her father, Mason and his wife Arlene had pretty much raised her as their own. Kelly’s father had been Mason’s partner for over 10 years. Kelly had become like a daughter to him, and because of this he had wanted her by his side. Mason had
desperately needed people he could trust.
It had been a hard job weeding out all the people that had been loyal to Vincent, but thanks to a mysterious journal that arrived on his desk, which contained the names of officers and public officials who had been on Vincent’s payroll, the job became much easier. The one name that took everyone by surprise was that of the former police chief.
Mason had always known that the Chief was on Vincent’s payroll, but he could never prove it. He had proof now, in the form of bank records showing deposits that were made to the different offshore accounts. Mason knew where the information was coming from, of course. There was only one man that would have access to that information; it had to have come from Rocco.
There was something going on though. Ever since Vincent’s death, the organization has gone completely quiet. Members that had been loyal to Vincent had been disappearing without any trace.
Whatever was going on probably wasn’t good. In the past, Vincent’s people had been well known on the street, and you had a good idea what they were up to. Rocco had become a wildcard, and ever since the coup, no one had seen him,
What was Rocco planning?
What caught Mason’s attention this morning was a name that had come across his desk. James Roberts’ had been found dead. James wasn’t known to be one of Vincent’s people, but Mason suspected that he played a part in the kidnapping of Andrew Roberts, though he couldn’t prove it.
Mason looked at his watch. I guess the results should be in soon, and I think its time that I have a talk with Kelly, Mason said to himself as he headed down to the parking garage. She needs to know why she was hired, and what I expect from her.
[-][+][-]
Chapter 19
After arriving at the hospital Mason made his way over to James’ room. There was still an officer there that was looking for prints, while another was busy taking pictures. Others were busy taking statements from the hospital staff, but Kelly was nowhere in sight. Mason walked over to the officer that was busy collecting prints and asked him if he knew where he could find Detective Steeves?
“I think she said something about grabbing a coffee in the cafeteria”, the officer said as he returned to his work.
Mason looked at his watch it was 4:30 in the morning. Since the promotion he hadn’t had a decent nights sleep, and frequently wondered if he really should have accepted the job. Eventually things would get back to a normal routine but at the moment things were pretty chaotic, and now this.
He eventually found his way to the cafeteria and found Kelly sitting at a table drinking her coffee.
“Hey kiddo, Mind if I join you?” Masson said, sneaking up on Kelly
Kelly turned around there was only one person that ever called her kiddo. “Daddy!” She said, turning around and giving him a big hug.
“What are you doing here?” Kelly asked with a smile.
Mason took a seat across from Kelly. “The name James Roberts came across my desk, so I decided to see the results of the investigation for myself, and I wanted to check on our newest detective.”
Kelly put 2+2 together and came up with the reason for her promotion. She knew there were people who would accuse Mason of nepotism.
“So why all the secrecy? If the offer had come directly from you, I would have just transferred at my normal rank.”
“I know that you would have, kiddo. I needed people I could trust, and lately name after name of bad cops keeps coming across my desk. There was another reason. Since Vincent’s organization went down, his people have been disappearing without a trace, as well as a few of our people that were on Vincent’s payroll.”
“Last week we got lucky and found one of the missing men. His name was Brian Wilson, and he was Jakes and James Roberts’ cousin. “
“We always suspected that James was involved with the kidnapping of his nephew Andrew but could never tie him to the case but we knew Brian worked for Vincent and likely made the introductions between Frank and Vincent”, Mason said frowning.
Kelly sat there for a few minutes taking in everything that Mason had said then looked over at him, “you think the cases are connected don’t you?”
“Maybe kiddo, I don’t know for sure, but since Rocco took over the organization it has gone strangely quiet and nobody know what he is up to. I have wanted to slip someone into the organization to investigate but there was nobody on the force that I trusted.
Kelly looked over at Mason, “I will take the case.” She said with a smile.
“I think that we need to talk about it more before you accept. Why don’t you come join your mother and I for supper and I’ll tell you everything you need to know about the case. After that you can make up your mind if you want the job or not. “
“The results from the autopsy should be done by now, let’s get going.” Mason said, and then the two of them made their way down to the morgue.
[-][+][-]
It had been a hard night, filled with tossing and turning, so much had happened and everything weighed heavily on my mind. There was this part of me that just wanted to give up and lock myself away in my room and hide from the world. I knew that was not an option, hiding from my problems had never led to a solution. If anything it only made things worse and I was just plain tired of playing the victim.
I knew deep down that it was time for a change, but what direction that would take I was still unsure. I looked over at the clock. it was 5AM, and there was a part of me that just wanted to wrap myself up underneath my blankets and go back to sleep. I knew that wasn’t going to happen, though.
I had always been a light sleeper and once I was awake there was little chance of getting back to sleep. I slowly pulled myself together and climbed out of bed, then made my way to the bath room and started running a hot bath.
As I walked over to the sink and saw my reflection in the mirror, I was able to get a good look at the damage that Uncle James had caused. I felt disgust, seeing how messed up I looked. Even though the bruises were starting to fade, I still looked like a raccoon, and they were still pretty painful to the touch.
“Why do I have to have such a fucked up family?” I said to myself as I took off my nightgown and threw it into the clothing hamper. I climbed into the bath tub and slowly lowered myself. I hurt all over. Uncle James had done a real number on me.
I could only hope that Uncle James was feeling as bad as I was. Scotty had given him one hell of a beating. He had beaten him to within an inch of his life. Well, maybe not that bad, but it was going to be awhile till he was capable of causing me or anyone else trouble.
I poured in the scented bubble bath into the tub. The heat of the water felt good as it caressed my sore muscles and I was just laying back and relaxing. I found myself thinking about the camping trip. Nobody would hold it against me if I cancelled, considering everything that had happened. To be honest, though, I missed spending time with Amy. I needed to get away from everyone and everything, even if it was just for a little while.
Over the last couple of months the two of us had made numerous plans to get together but there was always something that ended up getting in the way. It wasn’t my fault, but the result was always the same. I was capable of going on the camping trip, even though I looked like I picked a fight with Mike Tyson and lost.
I soaked for close to an hour and the only reason that I decided it was time to get out was that the water was beginning to get cold and my skin started looking like it would eventually start falling off if I had stayed any longer. I reached under the water and pulled the plug, watching as the tub started to empty, and wishing that all of my problems would just go down the drain, too. I guess that was a little to much to hope for in any event.
I spent the next 45 minutes getting dressed and doing my hair. Makeup was not really an option, there was no way I would be able to hide the bruising. I would need the kind of makeup used in theaters to make any kind of real difference. Although looking the way I did at the moment, I could easily be hired as the star of a zombie movie.
Now if only I could find a director looking for a sexy little zombie. Alright, maybe sexy is taking it a little too far, but I’m sure there are some real freaks out there that would love a sweet little thing like me.
Note to self, I think its time to visit the mental tune-up masters and maybe get one of those beautiful white jackets that come with those fashionable straps and awesome buckles. I couldn’t help but laugh, maybe mom and I could share a room together.
I stood up and slipped into my sneakers and made my way into the kitchen expecting to find Mom there making breakfast, but she was nowhere to be seen. I thought to myself that she must have decided to sleep in. so it looked like I was on breakfast duty this morning and started getting everything ready.
I greased up the frying pan and started cooking up some bacon, then took a large bowl and started cracking eggs into it and using a fork to mix them. After they were mixed up and poured it into another frying pan I started on making a pot of coffee.
I knew mom and dad would be looking for a cup as soon as they came down so all that was left to do was make some toast, but that could wait until the eggs and bacon was almost done.
As I was setting the table, I heard someone coming through the front down and the sound of it being closed again. It was too early to be one of the family. I started to get scared and grabbed one of the butcher knifes out of its holder and slowly made my way over to the door and peeked out.
I couldn’t see anything, so I slowly opened the door being careful not to alert the intruder and slowly opened the door and made my way inside I saw Mom over by the chair adjusting the heat.
“Mom?” I said scaring her half to death, causing her to jump and turn around. “I’m sorry Mom, I didn’t mean to scare you, are you alright?”
“Yes, honey I’m fine,” she said frowning.
I looked at her, “Why are you coming home at this time of morning?”
“I’m fine, Jessica. I just couldn’t sleep last night, and I decided to go for a drive to clear my mind. I eventually ended up at Starbucks.” Mom said frowning
“Well as long as you’re alright Mom, breakfast is almost ready, why don’t you run upstairs and get everyone up while I finish setting the table. I’ll put this knife away before I end up stabbing someone.” I said with a smile and went back to the kitchen.
I checked the food one last time. It was pretty much done, so I started making toast, it wasn’t long before everyone started pouring into the kitchen, Mom and Dad headed straight for the coffee. Megan and I poured ourselves a glass of orange juice.
Chapter 20
After breakfast was finished, Megan and I did up the dishes while mom and dad headed upstairs. Megan turned to me. “How are you doing Jessica?”
“I’ve been better, Megan.” I admitted, frowning.
“Are you still going camping?” She asked.
“Yes, I think a weekend away will do me alright, although I wish that I didn’t have to spend it looking like a freaking raccoon.”
“It’s not that bad Jessica, its already fading, give it a few days and it will be back to normal.” Megan said with a smile.
“I know, it’s just that things were starting to finally pull together in my life, and now this. I don’t know why they blame me. It’s not my fault that he’s dead.” I said with a frown. “Why can’t they just leave me alone.”
“I don’t know Jessica, but if they don’t want a relationship with you then it’s their loss.” Megan said as she leaned over and gave me a hug.
“Thanks, Megan,” I said returning her hug.
“I just thought everything was finally over with now. I’ll likely end up in court, and my Uncle will make sure that everyone knows the truth about me.”
“If that happens Jessica, we’ll deal with it. I think the people that already know you could handle the truth. People might ask questions, but I think they would be more curious then angry,” Megan said with a smile.
I looked over at Megan, “It’s not me that I am worried about, it’s everyone else, none of you deserve to have your lives turned upside down just because of me.”
“Jessica, you’re my sister and I will be there standing beside you. I know that you would do the same. Now try to forget all this nasty business, you have a camping trip to get ready for and a boyfriend that can’t wait to spend the weekend with you,” Megan said cheerfully.
[-][+][-]
I was inside my room getting ready for the camping trip, making sure that I had everything that I needed. It was funny. I remembered my last camping trip, it was a school event and I was still living as Andrew. Those days seemed so much simpler. Grab some shorts for swimming and grab a few pairs of jeans and t-shirt and maybe a light jacket for at night, the rest of the space was used to carry junk food.
Looking inside my backpack now, it was full of every conceivable item and no junk food in sight. I had a couple of sundresses, jeans tank tops, sneakers for hiking, sandals and of course my bikini, but that was more for Scotty than myself. I had bought it just for the camping trip, and I had others that I could have worn. I knew, though, that Scotty wouldn’t be able to keep his hands off me in this little number, I thought to myself and giggled.
The rest of the space was pretty much filled with my makeup, just in case we decided to go out for dinner, and I also made room for my portable stereo. I had to pick up some extra batteries for it because it killed them fast. By the time I finished packing, I realized that there was no way I’d be able to carry it very far, so it looked like I would be putting Scotty to work once he arrived.
[-][+][-]
I walked over and picked up my guitar case and opened it taking out my guitar. I walked over to my bed, took a seat and started playing a Sarah McLachlan song called “Adai”. I’ve always loved the song and it was the first song real song that I had ever played on the guitar. After numerous tries I was eventually able to play it straight through without mistakes, and after learning that song, everything else started coming naturally. Eventually I was able to play a song just by hearing it a few times.
As I sat there playing my guitar, I could feel myself starting to relax. it felt like it had been months since I had felt this content. Music had always been my one outlet. It had been the glue that had kept me going off the edge so many times but with all the chaos that had been in my life recently, I’d somehow forgotten that.
It’s funny how you can lose yourself within such a short period of time. Somehow I had, though, and the sad part of it was I really didn’t see it coming. My life had been spiraling out of control for so long, and I really had nothing to keep me grounded.
I was thinking to myself as I started playing the song “Everything”, by Alanis Morissette. About halfway through the song my phone started ringing, so I laid my guitar down on the bed and answered it.
[-][+][-]
“Hello?” I said after hitting the answer button.
“Hey baby, how is my girl?” Scotty said, sounding in good spirits.
“Good morning Scotty, I’m doing alright. I was just relaxing and playing a few songs.
“Playing anything new?” asked Scotty
“Not really, I was just a little bored and had some time to kill before you arrived.”
“I am going to be bringing my guitar with me, you should bring yours Jessica. We haven’t really had much time to play together, and we have the whole weekend to find time to practice.” Scotty said, excitedly.
“So when are you planning to pick me up, Scotty?”
”That’s what I was calling you about Jessica; I’m pretty much ready any time you are.”
“Everything’s packed and ready to go Scotty, I’m just going to need a hand carrying it out to the car. I never realized how heavy it was until I finished packing.”
“Alright, I should be over in a few minutes; it’ll take us about an hour to drive to Amy and Tara’s apartment, especially during the morning rush hour.” Scotty said
“Alright honey, I’ll be downstairs waiting, I‘ll see you soon, love you honey!” I said
“I love you more,” Scotty said.
“Not possible,” I insisted, smiling.
“Just wait till I get you alone Jessica, I’ll show you how much I love you.” Scotty said laughing.
“Oh really, so what are your plans for me?” I asked, smiling and putting him on the spot.
“That’s for me to know and you to find out honey.” Scotty said smugly.
“Alright, I’ll see you in a few minutes, Scotty.” I said, ending the call.
I sat the cell phone back into my purse. I thought to myself, maybe this weekend isn’t going to suck after all! I started carrying my bags over to the front door and found Mom sitting on the couch.
“Are you sure you’ve got everything you’ll need, honey?” Mom asked as she placed her book down on her lap.
“I think I’ve got everything Mom, although camping seems like a lot more work as a girl then it was when I was living as a boy.”
“Most things are honey, not that I have personal experience.” Mom said with a smile.
I guess that I can see things both sides of the fence. When I was living as a boy I pretty much did what was expected of me, but now that I’m living as a girl full time, the pieces just seem to fit-whereas before, everything just felt wrong.
I think the hardest part is that for most of my life I was in hiding. I held everything inside because I was afraid to let anyone get close. I was so scared that if they knew the real me, they wouldn’t accept me or worse hurt me.
“How would you feel now if the truth about who you really are came out?” Mom asked, sounding completely serious.
I had to think about it for a minute. “I guess it would be scary, but I think that I could handle it now. I’m sure it would be hard at first, but everyone that really matters to me already knows. As for the few friends that don’t know, I hope that they would judge me for the person that I am now and not the person that I used to be, does that make sense to you Mom?” I asked her.
She smiled. “Yes honey, it makes perfect sense. You’ve finally come to embrace who you really are, and put the past behind you.”
“I don’t know about all of that, Mom. There’s still plenty of stuff I need to deal with from my past, but you’re right about one thing. I’ve finally stopped running.”
“Either way honey, I’m proud of you and the person that you’re becoming.” Mom said, as a tear ran down her cheek.
“Thanks Mom, but I have a very good teacher.” I said, leaning down to hug her.
As Mom and I were hugging, the doorbell buzzed. “That must be Scotty.” Mom said.
“Yeah, I better go let him in, I kind of over packed and I am going to need his help carrying it all.”
“Alright honey, have a good weekend and I’m just a call away if you need me.” Mom said with a smile.
Chapter 21
Scotty wasn’t very impressed with the amount of stuff that I packed, but to his credit he didn’t say much about it other than that I likely wouldn’t have any use for half of the stuff that I packed. He was probably right, but one thing that I had learned is a girl needed to be prepared for any event.
“So, are you ready for the weekend honey?” Scotty asked me.
“I was considering staying home but changed my mind. I really didn’t want to spend the whole weekend dealing with Mom and everyone else asking me if I was alright. I love them all to death but sometimes a girl just needs her space.”
“I guess that I can understand that especially with everything that has happened lately. I’m just happy you included me.” Scotty said as he slipped his arm around me.
“You’re different Scotty”, I said with a smile
“How am I different Jessica?” Scotty said looking serious
“I really don’t know how to explain, but when I’m with you, I just feel safe. It’s hard for me to trust anyone, I’ve been hurt too many times by people that said they loved me, but I know I can trust you and that you aren’t going to hurt me.
All of my life I’ve felt alone and unloved. There was this part of me that felt that I didn’t deserve to be happy. It took me a long time before I was able to let go of the past, and the way I felt about myself. I had no idea what love really was, I mean, how can you love someone when you really have no clear idea what love is?”
“I hated everyone, even myself. The saddest part is that it wasn’t just my imagination. If people had known the truth, I’d have been in danger, you’ve seen firsthand how my family reacted to me.”
Scotty looked over at me, “That might’ve been the case before, Jessica, but things are different now. You have people that love and accept you.”
“I know Scotty, and I’m happier than I’ve ever been, even with all the extra baggage that I’ve had to carry.”
Scotty laughed. “Since when’ve you had to carry extra baggage? It wasn’t you that had to lug everything out to the car. God, my back will never be the same!”
“Very funny, Scotty, ” I said, then gave him a light jab in the stumpage.
[-][+][-]
It had been a long night as Amy parked her car and made the short walk to her apartment. She was so tired after working the double shift. It had been a pretty crazy night. The Emergency room was full of patients and there was a 3 and a half hour wait to see a doctor. Between dealing with the patients, and then the police that were questioning everyone about James Roberts death, Amy was completely exhausted. .
This left Amy in a spot, should she tell Jessica, or wait ‘til after the weekend to break the news about her Uncle? The last thing she wanted was to ruin the weekend, with everything that had happened Jessica needed time away. She didn’t want to take that away from her.
Amy made her way into her apartment calling out, “Honey, I’m home!”
“In the kitchen honey!” Tara responded from the other room.
Amy placed her knapsack down next to the front door and made her way into the kitchen and was met with a hug and kiss from Tara.
“How was your night honey?” asked Tara
“It was a crazy night, a lot happened. I’m just happy to be home, but we need to talk.”
Amy said grabbing a coffee mug and filling it with coffee, then took a seat at the table, while Tara continued making breakfast for the both of them.
“So what’s up?” Tara asked as she cracked another egg into the frying pan
“Jessica’s uncle died last night, and it looks like he was murdered.” Amy said after taking a drink of her coffee.
“Shit, are they sure that it’s murder?” Tara asked as she turned around and looked at Amy.
“From what I’ve heard, the injuries were not life threating, so there’s really no reason that he should be dead.” Amy said with a frown
“Does Jessica know?” Tara asked, sounding concerned.
“Not yet, that’s the problem, should we tell her or wait?” Amy asked, sounding worried.
Tara handed Amy her breakfast and took a seat across from her. “I think it would be best if we told her, she may hate her Uncle, but doesn’t deserve to be the last to know.”
“Jessica needs to get away, I just don’t want to ruin the weekend for her.” Amy said
“Something tells me it’s not going to change the reasons why she needs to get away Amy. The girl has been through hell lately and the death of her Uncle isn’t really going to change the fact that she needs a break from all this.” Tara said with a smile.
“I guess you’re right, I’m just worried,” Amy said sadly.
“You don’t need to worry about Jessica anymore. She isn’t the same scared child you met at the hospital.” Tara said, trying to reassure Amy.
“I guess you are right Tara, it’s just that I care for her and to be honest I am happy her uncle is dead. Does that make me a bad person?”
“No it doesn’t, Amy. If it does, then I am right there standing beside you. The man was a monster, and likely helped Jessica’s father with the kidnapping.” Tara said sounding slightly pissed off.
“Don’t worry Amy, we will tell her together.”
[-][+][-]
Rocco sat behind his desk going through a ton of paperwork there was a part of him that wished that he wasn’t the one that had to deal with the aftermath of the coup that he had staged. On his desk was a list of names. It was kind of like Santa’s naughty and nice list. The difference was, if you made this naughty list you would most likely end up dead.
There were plenty of names on the list that had already been crossed out but there were still lots of choices available. The next name though was going to most likely going to cause a lot of trouble. Anytime you target a politician you better make sure everyone knows the reason why. The last thing you wanted was to have a full police investigation. It had been hard enough taking down the Police Chief, but at least he’d had information to take him down without too much trouble.
Rocco picked up the phone and dialed Adrian’s number, it rang a couple times and Adrian answered. “Good morning Boss, what do you have for me today?”
“Does the name Robert Zemeckis mean anything to you?” Rocco asked Adrian.
“Yeah, he’s a sleazy child molester, trying to get elected. I take it you want me to pay him a visit?”
“Yes, but this one needs to be taking care of differently. I need you to get the tapes from Greg and send them to the press first, then take the bastard out, and while you are at it take care of Greg at the same time. We don’t need any loose ends, and there is no place for someone like Greg in the organization.”
“Alright Rocco, I’ll take care of it and let you know when it’s finished.” Adrian said, then ended the call.
Rocco then returned to his list, looked over the names and smiled. “Now the part of the job that I enjoy. He picked up the phone and called his lawyer, I need you to write up a check for the usual amount, the child’s name is Karen Evans, run a check on her parents first. I want to make sure the child gets the money not the parents.
If the parents check out, write the check, if not, put it in trust. One other thing Garrett, how are things going with Jessica Roberts?
“Everything is set Rocco, but are you sure that you want to do this?” Bob said sounding concerned.
“Not really, but there is no other choice, when the time comes Adrian will pay her a visit. Just make sure that everything is in place. “ Rocco said sadly
“Alright I will make sure it’s taking care of”, Garnett said as he ended the call.
Rocco walked over to the bar and poured himself glass of whiskey and downed the glass. Thinking to himself, can I really do this to that poor child? He poured himself another drink and said to himself, I have no other choice.
[-][+][-]
Detective Kelly Steeves was busy filing the police report at the precinct. The results had finely come back, confirming that James Roberts was murdered. At the moment they really had no idea who was responsible, there was a list of people but the one name on that list stood out more than the others and that name was Rocco. He had the resources to pull something like this off and it seemed that anyone related to the Andrew Tanner case ended up dead.
There was also one other name on the list and Kelly didn’t really want to go there,
but it was also a possibility. Sometimes the child that was abused could take revenge against the people that abused them, and James Roberts was not in a position where he could have defended himself. Then there was his birth mother. She was in and out of the hospital because of mental illness. Finally, there was the woman that adopted him. Just how far would a mother go to protect their child? Kelly wasn’t sure, she thought to herself.
Kelly knew that this case wasn’t going to be an easy one. She hoped, though, that it was Rocco that was responsible because with everything he had done, he deserved to be placed behind bars and the others, well if they did it, it was understandable.
Chapter 22
The drive to Amy’s place only took Scotty and me about an hour with only one stop along the way at Starbucks where we picked up four coffees to go. The building that Amy and Tara lived in looked pretty rundown,at least from the outside, but once Scotty and I made our way inside it was quiet the different story.
The inside was really clean and the walls looked freshly painted. This was the first time that I had been to Amy’s place, but Scotty had been here once before to drop off Tara when I was in the hospital. The area of town was nice; it seemed to have everything close and was right on the main bus route.
Tara met Scotty and I at the door and gave us both a hug. “Come on inside and make yourself at home. Amy just got out of the shower and is getting dressed she will join us in a few minutes.” Tara said with a smile.
“So are you guys ready for the weekend?” Tara asked.
“Yeah, we’ve been looking forward to getting some time away.” Scotty said with a smile.
“I know the feeling. Amy and I haven’t really had much time together lately, between work and everything else, but we’re thrilled to have the both of you join us.”
“Thanks, I’ve been meaning to spend some time with the both of you, but with everything that’s happened over the last couple of months it’s been pretty hard.” I said with a smile.
“That’s alright Jessica, Amy and I both understand.” Tara reached over and gave my hand a squeeze.
“So how long is it going to take for us to drive to the campground?”
“We’re looking at about 4 hours driving time Jessica, but Amy and I have something that we need to talk to you about first.” Tara said with a smile.
“Alright, whatever it is, I’m innocent.” I said giggling.
“And don’t look at me I’m with her,” Scotty said smugly.
A few minutes later Amy joined us. Scotty and I were both met with a hug and kiss. “It’s good to see the both of you! How about we take the coffee into the kitchen, there’s something that we need to talk about,” Amy said sadly.
After the four of us were seated at the table, I turned to Amy. “Alright, what’s up?”
Amy looked over at Tara, who nodded her head. Then Amy looked back towards me and took a deep breath.
“Jessica, your uncle died last night and the police think he might have been murdered.” Amy looked right at me.
I really wasn’t sure how I was supposed to feel. My uncle was dead, but what was he really to me? He was my father’s brother, but he’d never really showed me any kind of love. If anything, he went out of his way to make me feel worthless.
“I thought about waiting and telling you about your uncle after the camping trip, but then I talked it over with Tara and we both decided it was best to tell you now. Tara and I would understand if you didn’t want to join us.” Amy said sadly.
I looked over at Amy, then Tara, “It’s alright, I’m glad that you told me, but it changes nothing. I really didn’t know my uncle. If it was someone else I cared about, things would be different, but I really couldn’t stand him. I hate to say this, but I’m glad he’s gone. It’s the last piece of my old life, and now I can put in all to rest.”
“Are you sure Jessica?” Tara said looking concerned
“Yes I’m sure. I just want to get on with my life. I’ve spent enough time living in the past and it almost destroyed me. I would rather live in the here and now.”
“Alright Jessica, you know what is best for you. Tara and I are here if you need to talk.” Amy said with a smile.
[-][+][-]
After Amy and Tara broke the news to me, I was feeling pretty numb about what had happened. Once Scotty and I were alone in the car, he turned to me. “Are you sure that you’re up to this?”
“Yeah honey, I’m fine. It’s all a bit of a shock, but that’s all it is. I’ll be alright, Scotty.”
“That’s true,” Scotty said as he put the car into drive and we started driving.
[-][+][-]
Amy and Tara were driving ahead of us, Scotty and I were just going to follow them and we had our GPS setup just in case it was needed. Amy had said that she was going to sleep for most of the trip, she had worked a double shift at the hospital and was exhausted and definitely needed the sleep.
The drive was a quiet one, at least for the first hour. Scotty and I barely said a word. I was pretty much lost in thought, but eventually I was brought back to reality. I reached over and turned on the radio.
It took a couple minutes to find a station with something worth listening to. We had already left the local coverage area and most of the programed stations were pretty much static. I eventually did find a station that I liked.
They were playing a Taylor Swift song called “Our Song. I thought how poetic, but then I realized that Scotty and I didn’t really have a song to call our own either and couldn’t help but start giggling.
Scotty looked over at me and said, “What’s so funny?”
“I was just thinking how ironic that song is, we don’t really have a song either.”
“Sure we do, you just haven’t heard it yet.” Scotty said with a smile.
“And you have?” I asked
“Yup”, Scotty said smugly
“Alright Scotty, what’s the song?”
“I’ll tell you later honey,” Scotty said with a smile.
“There is no song, you just need time to think of one.” I said with a smile.
“You’ll just have to wait and see Jessica”
“Knowing you and your sense of humor, it’s likely something like “Forgetful Lucy.”
“Yup, that’s it Jessica. It could be worse though, it could be “Somebody Kill Me.” Scotty said, and started laughing.
“Don’t tempt me,” I said giggling and turned up the volume on the radio.
The rest of the trip was pretty much spent fighting over what station to listen to and endless babbling between the two of us and I had to admit that I was enjoying myself.
There’s nothing like a road trip to change your outlook on things, especially when you’re seeing all new places and time just seemed to fly. As we turned onto the 401 highway, I saw Toronto for the first time; I never really knew how huge it was till I saw it firsthand.
I turned to Scotty. “Do you think that we’re going to have a chance to maybe explore it some before we have to go home?”
“I think we can take a drive there later and check it out if you want. There are a few places that I would like to check out also.” Scotty said with a smile.
“Cool, I’d like that Scotty.”
“Maybe we can check out the Hard Rock Café while we’re there.” Scotty said with a smile.
“We should see if Amy and Tara want to go, Scotty.”
“Sure, whatever you want Jessica, let’s just make sure that we find sometime alone as well.”
“Whatever for?” I asked him with a big smile.
Scotty grinned and said. “So I can molest you, of course.”
“Oh really, and you had to wait until we went camping for that?” I said with a smile.
“If I tried it at home, your father would likely kill me!” Scotty grinned.
“Maybe, Scotty, but don’t you think I’m worth the risk?” I pouted.
“Definitely, honey, but how often do you think I will have the chance to spend the night with you? I’m surprised that they are even allowing us to go camping together, let alone share a tent together.” Scotty commented, thinking aloud. “They must realize that if the two of want to make love, then were going to do it anyway and it doesn’t matter if were camping or at home.”
“Mom and Dad worry about the two of us making a mistake and that I could end up pregnant, I told my mother that I’d wait and I’m not going to break that promise, but there are still plenty of other things the two of us can do.” I said suggestively.
“You know that I love you Jessica, and after everything that we’ve been though together. I really don’t see the two of us waiting being a problem.” Scotty said as he gave my hand a squeeze.
“I love you to Scotty, even though I sometimes feel that I don’t deserve to have a guy like you, but I am happy you choose to stay.”
“There was a time, Jessica, that I thought about walking away especially after finding out the truth. It was a lot to accept at first, and I didn’t know how to deal with any of it.”
“Why didn’t you break up with me?” I asked, looking Scotty in the eyes.
“There just didn’t seem to be a good time, I could see how much pain you were in and if I walked away from you. I would have been one of those people that hurt you.
Then the unthinkable happened, and you were kidnapped. Like the old saying goes, you never know what you have until you lose it. God, I was scared to death that I was going to lose you Jessica! I knew then that nothing else mattered to me, and I prayed to God that he would give you back to me.
I don’t care about your past, Jessica. All that matters to me is that the girl I love is sitting beside me, and if you ask me, I’m the lucky one.” Scotty said as he pulled the car over, and took me into his arms. It didn’t take long before he was kissing me.
After the two of us came up for air, I found myself at a complete loss for words. As I looked at Scotty, I knew at that moment that the two of us had reached an important turning point in our relationship. There was a part of me that just wanted to say to hell with my promise to my mother and just give myself to him right here and now. The rest of the drive I sat right next to Scotty with his arm around me. I felt so content just sitting there cuddling with him as we drove the rest of the way to the campgrounds.
[-][+][-]
The campgrounds were about a 45 minute drive from Downtown Toronto and 15 minutes from Canada’s Wonderland. Tara and Amy arrived a few minutes ahead of Scotty and I, and were waiting outside the main gates to the campground so that the four of us could pick out a spot together.
Scotty and I followed them inside and eventually we found a spot right next to the lake, but still far enough from anyone to give the four of us some privacy. It wasn’t long before the four of us were setting up our tents and getting the rest of the campsite sorted.
We setup the tents across from one another with a fire pit between us. Just left of the tents was a picnic table and stationary barbeque, which looked like it would take a month to clean. Thank God Tara remembered to bring the aluminum foil, which we used to cover the grill, then poured in some charcoal so that it was ready to use later.
Once everything was finished and the campsite was ready for use, Tara and Amy said that they were going to make a trip into the nearby town to pickup supplies, leaving Scotty and I a chance to spend some time together alone.
After Tara and Amy left, Scotty made the suggestion that the two of us try out our tent but I wasn’t quite ready to throw caution to the wind and suggested that we check out some of the trails instead. He kind of gave me those puppy dog eyes, but in the end the two of us were holding hands and exploring the trails that ran alongside the large lake.
The trail that we were walking on eventually connected us up with another part of the park the only difference between the two areas this one was mostly used for motorized campers and there seemed to be plates from just about every Provience and even some from the United States.
Scotty and I looked around at some of the campers and wondered what it would be like to travel across the country in one Scotty seemed to love the idea and I had to admit that I thought it would be fun but giving a choice I would rather fly and arrive at my destination ready to go but still there was something romantic about it, especially when your travel companion is as cute as Scotty.
Though there were something’s that didn’t make a lot of sense like why would they need a heated pool when there was a huge lake that is not even 15 minutes away?
It just amazed me how lazy people could be. They did have an awesome playground though that was full of kids. Scotty and I made our way over and took a seat on one of the picnic tables and just sat back and watched the kids playing.
“This park is pretty cool isn’t it Scotty?”
“Yeah I like it here Jessica, it’s nice to get away from everything. It’s a shame, though, that we only have the weekend. It would be nice to stay longer.”
“I know what you mean Scotty, it’s so calm here. Look at the kids over there they don’t have a worry in the world, wouldn’t it be nice if life would just stay that way.”
“Maybe Jessica, but I have everything I need to be happy sitting next to me.”
“Oh Scotty, I’m happy you are here too, it’s just that I never really had a childhood. Seeing those kids, I sometimes wonder how it would have been if things had turned out differently.”
“I don’t think that I’d want another time line where things were different, if you had been born normal, would we even be together? Like it or not, it’s your past that has made you the person that you are today. If you take that away then you wouldn’t be the same person.”
“That’s very astute of you, Scotty. Are you sure you’re not a phychologist?”
“I do have a brain Jessica, even though I rarely choose to show it. I have a reputation as an athlete to protect, the last thing I need is the college thinking that I’m smart. They might actually expect me to work!”
“Very funny, Scotty, but I really think that you would do well in a course like that, how long do you think that you are going to get by playing football and who knows what the future holds when it comes being a musician, how many bands actually make it big?”
“The same can be said for you Jessica, except for playing football.”
“Are you saying I can’t play football Scotty?” I said with a smile.
“You’re welcome to try anytime.” Scotty said with a grin.
“Scotty, you’re just looking for a reason to jump on top of me, you pervert.” I said and started giggling
“Jessica, you’re in a strange mood today.”
“Yes I guess that I am, but I’m enjoying myself.”
“Me too, honey.” Scotty said as he slipped his arm around my waist and I soon found myself snuggling my head on his shoulder.
[-][+][-]
Scotty and I decided that it was time to head back to our campsite. It was about a half hour walk, but we took our time. Neither of us was in a hurry, we were both enjoying just being alone together. We eventually arrived at our campsite and found Tara and Amy there waiting for us. The two of them were sitting at the picnic table drinking a couple of beers.
Scotty and I joined them at the table. Amy smiled. “Are you guys enjoying yourselves?”
I smiled. “Yes, we’re having a great time.”
“Yeah, Jessica and I were just doing a little exploring. I wanted to take her into the tent and have my way with her, but she wouldn’t have anything to do with it.”
“Scotty!” I said and swatted him across the back of the head, which cause everyone to start laughing with the exception of Scotty, who had this dumbfound look on his face.
I wasn’t really mad at him, it’s not like they didn’t know he would want to do something like that, he was a guy after all. I turned to him. “Why don’t you make yourself useful and find us something to drink?”
Chapter 23
Scotty and I spent most of the afternoon talking with Amy and Tara. At around 4PM, Tara started the barbeque and started cooking supper for the four of us. While we were setting the table, Amy noticed that they had forgotten the hamburger buns and asked me if I felt like taking a little drive over to the store. She’d had a few drinks and didn’t want to drive, so she handed me the keys. The two of us climbed into Tara’s car, leaving Scotty and Tara to take care of the cooking while we made the drive to the convenience store.
“So how are you doing Jessica? Remember it’s me you’re talking to, and I’ll know if you’re lying.” Amy said with a smile.
I smiled. “I’m doing surprisingly well, considering everything that’s happened.”
“You know Jessica, you’re going to have to deal with the assault eventually. What happened won’t go away, just because you wish it would.”
“Maybe not, but I will not spend my whole weekend worrying about something that I can’t do anything about.
It happened, and I look like a raccoon, but on the bright side I’m spending the weekend with the people I love most in this world. Let’s worry about the assault on Monday, because until then, as far as I am concerned it never happened.” I said with a forced smile.
“Alright Jessica, if that’s the way you want to handle it, but if you need to talk I’m here.” Amy said as she reached over and gave my leg a squeeze.
“If I need to talk about it Amy, you’ll be the first person I see.”
“It’s just that you’re like a sister to me, and it hurts when I see you in pain.” Amy said frowning.
“I feel the same way Amy, you’ve been here for me through everything. I know that if I’m in trouble, I can always call you, and I hope that you would do the same,” I told her. “What the two of us share is special, and I never want to lose that.”
“Me either, Jessica. I just feel that you are building yourself up for a fall later, and I don’t want to see that happen to you.”
“I really don’t know what to say about that Amy. I’ve been seeing my doctor, and we’ve talked about my past and how my life is going now. I think that I’ve been doing well, considering everything that’s happened.”
“Alright then, let’s look at the here and now Jessica. Things happen in life that we have no control over. You know that as well as anyone, but what would you do if you woke up tomorrow and everyone you cared about was gone?”
“What kind of question is that, Amy? I have no idea what I would do, nobody would know how to answer that.”
“Think about it Jessica what would you do?”
“I don’t know, maybe I would take my own life.”
“So you’re saying you couldn’t live without them?”
“I don’t know Amy, I’d like to say that I would find a way to continue, but I just don’t know if I could.”
“So tell me Jessica, are you afraid to die? Remember, you’ve already tried to kill yourself before.”
I thought about what Amy was saying, and she was right. I had no fear of taking my own life. I’d already tried it once, what I feared was being alone. I understood what Amy was trying to tell me.
I was putting my faith in other people to make me happy, but if they were gone I’d have to find a way to continue my life without them, and at the moment I knew that I couldn’t survive alone.
I looked over at Amy. “You’re right Amy, and I promise, I’ll get help.”
She looked at me. “I’m sorry Jessica, but I wouldn’t be a good friend if I kept my mouth shut when I know you’re in trouble.”
“It’s alright Amy, I understand and appreciate that you’re honest with me, even when it does hurt. I know you’re doing it for my own good, and not out of cruelty. You’re right, what my uncle did to me does bother me.
I don’t know what I am supposed to do about it. He’s dead now and I’m glad he’s gone. He might have spent a little time in jail, but when he got out it would have started up all over again.”
Amy nodded in sad agreement. “I think anyone in your position would feel that way, and eventually you’ll have to deal with that anger, otherwise it will eat you alive.”
“I know Amy, but not today.” I said as we pulled into the parking lot.
“Are you coming in Jessica?”
“No, I think I’ll just wait here, Amy.”
“Alright Jessica, I won’t be long.”
[-][+][-]
The drive back I was much more subdued emotionally. Everything that Amy had said weighed heavily on my mind. I wished that it hadn’t, but it did. I felt better though, once we pulled into our parking spot and I saw Scotty.
He was busy working the grill, and didn’t even notice that Amy and I had arrived. I was about to join Tara at the table, when Scotty called over asking Tara to bring him a plate. Tara was about to get up but I put my hand on her shoulder, and with the other hand picked up a plate and made my way over behind him.
I handed him the plate, but he still didn’t know that it was me behind him. When I slipped my arms around his waist and started kissing the back of his neck, he was just a little surprised.
“Tara, what are you doing?” he asked, as I ran my hand over his chest. “I really don’t think this is a good idea Tara, I’m with Jessica and you’re with Amy”
“Good answer!” I said,. Giggling, as did Amy and Tara, who had been watching from the picnic table.”
“I knew it was you, Jessica.” Scotty said, as he started filling the plate
“Yeah, right you knew.” I teased as I ran my hand against his groin and felt him starting to get excited. I kissed the back of his neck, then took the plate of burgers and joined Tara and Amy at the table.
Soon the four of us were all seated at the table, enjoying a meal together. I teased Scotty the whole time, and we all had a great time.
[-][+][-]
It was around 5PM when Kelly arrived at Mason and Arlene’s. She was looking forward to spending time with Arlene, who had been like a second mother to her. After losing both of her parents, Kelly had been lost and if it hadn’t been for Arlene, she had no idea what would have happened.
Arlene and Masson had been trying for years to start their own family, but had accepted that it wasn’t to be, after suffering numerous miscarriages. The last one had almost cost Arlene her life.
It didn’t look like kids were in the cards, but then Kelly came along. It was like their dreams had come true. The circumstances were terrible, both of her parents had been murdered. Mason and Arlene had shared many sleepless nights because of it.
Over time, they became a family in every way that counted. Arlene had the daughter she’d always wanted and the two of them became very close. The day Kelly joined the RCMP had been one of Mason’s proudest days. Arlene, on the other hand, was not happy at all. She worried for her daughter’s safety.
Kelly’s reasons for joining were mostly because of what happened to her parents. She wanted to help other kids, so that they didn’t have to experience what she had. It had caused a rift between Arlene and her when she chose to join the force, but like all families they were able to work it out.
She made her away inside and she found Mason busy working in his study and knew that it wasn’t a good time to bother him. By the smell emanating from the kitchen, Kelly knew that her mother was busy cooking supper.
Kelly made her way into the kitchen and found her mother sitting at the table, peeling potatoes. When Arlene saw her daughter, she dropped everything and ran over and took Kelly into her arms.
The two of them hadn’t seen each other in over a year. Other than the occasional phone call, this was the first contact they’d had with one another in a very long time.
“I’m so glad you’re home, Kelly.” Arlene said, hugging her daughter.
“Me too, Mom, I’ve missed you so much. I’m sorry that it took me so long to see you, but with work and all I’ve been kept pretty busy. I’m home now, and I’m not going anywhere if I can help it.” Kelly said with a smile.
Arlene and Kelly took a seat at the table. Kelly grabbed a knife and started peeling and cutting the carrots, while her mother continued peeling the potatoes.
Arlene looked over at her daughter. “So how have you been, sweetheart?”
“I’ve been doing great, Mom, though I have to admit, I’ve been feeling a little home sick lately. I was with the first team of RCMP, and coming back here brought back a lot of memories, some good and some not so good.” Kelly said sadly.
“Work’s kept me busy, but to be honest, I don’t know where this is all going. I thought being a cop and helping people would somehow fix things in my own life.
I just don’t feel like I’m even making a difference, Mom. With every person I put away there’s always someone new to take their place. It’s either that, or they’re back out on the street within months, and some of these people are monsters.”
“You’re not thinking of quitting, are you Kelly?”
“I don’t know, Mom. To be honest, the thought had crossed my mind, and then I got offered this job. It was a chance to help clean up the police force and maybe do some good, but now I find out the only reason that I am here is because of Dad.”
“Don’t blame your father, honey. He needed people he could trust, ever since he became Police Chief, he hasn’t had the most trustworthy people working under him. He called in a lot of favors just to bring in people that he could trust, and he trusts you more than any of them, Kelly.”
“I know Mom, but I still didn’t get this job on my own merits. It was handed to me, and everyone I work with knows this.
“Honey, you may have been handed the job, but it’s what you do with it that matters.
“Believe me, if you couldn’t do the job, your father would never have given it to you.”
Arlene said. “Don’t listen to what they’re saying, just do the job and show them you belong there. When they see that you are good at it, they’ll leave you alone.”
Kelly looked thoughtfully at her mom. “Maybe you’re right, I’m just making a mountain out of a molehill. It’s so good to be home, and to be able to just talk things out with you again.”
“Anytime, baby, you know where I am.” Arlene said with a smile.
[-][+][-]
After supper was over, Kelly and Mason adjourned to his study. This was a place that Kelly was rarely allowed as a child. It was the place where Mason did most of his thinking, and also a quiet place where he would spend hours working. Lately, it had become much more.
It had become a safe place for him to talk with people outside the police force. Until he knew for sure that the last remnants of the corrupt police force were gone, he didn’t want anyone knowing his plans until it was time to make a move.
Mason walked over to the mini bar and grabbed a couple beers from the cooler, handed one to Kelly and took a seat on the couch next to her. “I guess it’s time for me to come clean to you, honey.”
“So what’s the big secret?” Kelly asked.
“There are two reasons that I asked for you to join the force. The first one was I needed people that I could trust, and the second reason is your age. I need someone that can pass for 16 years old, and you can do both.”
“Alright, I understand the first reason, but why do you want me to pretend to be 16 years old?” Kelly asked and took a drink of her beer.
“I need someone that Rocco’s people don’t know, and unfortunately there are not many in the force that I trust, and can pass for 16 years old.”
“Alright Dad, I understand, so what is the plan I know that you wouldn’t have me do something like this unless you knew there was a chance of success.”
“Rocco maybe a mobster, but he has a soft spot for kids. That’s his Achilles heel. On a few occasions he has gone out of his way to help a child that was in trouble. The first being his enforcer Adrian and then there is Andrew Roberts, who goes by the name Jessica Tanner now.”
“I want to put you in a position where it looks like you’re in trouble and need help, and then let nature take its course.” Mason explained
“Alright, I see where you’re going, and there’s only one problem with that plan, nobody has seen Rocco since the coup, how am I going to get to him?” Kelly said, thinking aloud.
“Adrian is the key, Kelly. If you can get to him, then you can get to Rocco.”
“Alright, Dad, what do we know about Adrian?” Kelly asked.
“Adrian was a street kid that Rocco took under his wing and over time worked his way through the ranks of Vincent’s organization, but considering Vincent’s dead and Rocco is now running the organization, we know he is loyal to Rocco.”
“I checked out Adrian’s record and it turns out he was a child abuse victim, and came from an alcoholic household. His parents kicked him out of the house when he was 14 years old. Rocco took him in shortly after that.” Mason told her.
“There’s one other thing too, Kelly. It’s on record that the reason for the coup was Rocco taking offence to the kidnapping of Jessica Tanner. I am sure that there were other reasons, but that was what initially fuelled the feud between Vincent and Rocco.”
Kelly looked over her at her father. “Alright, I see where this is going. I’m going to play the abused child, and hope Adrian comes to the rescue.”
“There’s more to it, Kelly. You’ll need to look the part.” Mason said. “You’re playing a child that is physically and mentally abused. Not only do you have to look the part, but you also have to make them believe it. Looking the part will be easy, we can stage an assault between you and your drunken father in Adrian’s presence.”
“Oh, I see, and who’s going to be my father?” Kelly asked Mason.
“I have just the guy for the job, Kelly, he’s new to the force, so nobody knows him and I’ll have people there to make the fake arrest. The only problem is he’s going to have to rough you up to make it believable.” Mason said sadly.
“I understand, it’s a part of the job. So once I am in, what am I looking for?”
“We know that Rocco is involved in a string of murders that have been happening at the moment. It’s mostly Vincent’s people being hit, and a few bad cops. I suspect much more is going on behind the scenes.”
“Your job is to collect as much information as you can, and find out what he’s up to, then report to me directly, nobody else. Remember, these people are dangerous, and capable of anything.” Mason said sounding worried.
“There is still time for you to back out of this, Kelly, and I wouldn’t hold it against you.”
“No Daddy, I’ll take the case. Just make sure my new father goes easy on me.”
“He will, I promise. It might be awhile before we can be together as a family again, so why don’t you and I forget about all this nasty business for now, and join your mother. I know she’s missed you terribly.” Mason suggested, then stood up and the two of them joined Arlene in the living room.
End of Part 7
To be continued in part 8
Jessica’s Journey
Sequel to Andrews Dilemma
By, Cain129
Part 8
Special Thanks to Wren Phoenix for the editing.
Synopsis: Who killed James Roberts that is the question many people have been asking and what has Rocco been up to and what does he have in store for Jessica?
The camping trip turned out to be exactly what the doctor ordered and also a lot of fun. It was already a little after 6PM, and there were only a couple hours of daylight left, so there wasn’t really any use in exploring the trails, at least not until morning.
This left us with a couple of choices. We could just hang out at our campsite, or we could take a trip to Toronto to checkout the big city. Given the choice of sitting around the campsite for the entire night or exploring Toronto, I’d choose Toronto.
I looked over at Amy and Tara. “Do you guys feel like taking a trip to Toronto?”
“What’s in Toronto?” Amy asked.
“Scotty and I wanted to check out the Hard Rock Café and a few other places.”
Amy looked over at Tara. “What do you think, Tara?”
“I was thinking it’d be nice to just stick around the camp, and a few drinks together. But if you want to go, it’s alright, we can go.” Tara said with a smile.
“Well I am still pretty tired it might be nice to just relax and have a few drinks but the both of you can still go. Just make it back before it’s too late.” Amy said with a smile.
“I guess it’s just the two of us Scotty, and I’m driving.” I said with a smile.
“Jessica, nobody drives my baby but me.” Scotty said frowning
I leaned over and whispered into Scotty’s ear. “What’s more important to you, driving your car or maybe getting some?” I said, then gave him a wink.
Scotty looked like he was thinking, then reached into his pocket and handed me his keys. He didn’t really seem all that happy about me drive his car though.
[-][+][-]
With everything decided, Scotty and I made our way over to his car. I soon found myself in the driver’s seat, with Scotty sitting in the seat next to me. After adjusting the seat and mirrors I was pretty much ready to go. I started the car, put it into reverse and backed it out a few feet, then put it into drive and we were on our way.
I purposely drove very poorly, just to make Scotty nervous. It was so much fun watching him twitch as I just missed going into the ditch. I did that a couple of times. Poor Scotty looked like he was going to open the door and make a run for it before his crazy girlfriend wrapped his car around a tree. I laughed, then just hit the gas and started driving normally.
“Jessica, you can be a real bitch at times, you know that right?” Scotty said, shaking his head.
“I know, but every girl needs a hobby. You love me anyway, otherwise I wouldn’t be driving right now, would I honey?”
“Yes, but I’m starting to wonder if I am not the crazy one, just putting up with you, Jessica.”
“Maybe we’re both crazy Scotty, but I love you all the same.” I said, smiling. “Don’t worry so much, Scotty. I only want to drive to the next town, then you can take over from there. I don’t really want to drive in the city.”
“Do you even have a valid driver’s licence, Jessica?”
“I have my beginners permit, but if we were pulled over, it wouldn’t be good, Scotty.”
“Let me guess, it’s under the name ‘Andrew Roberts’?” Scotty said, frowning.
“Yes, and I really don’t feel like explaining the whole sordid mess to the police.”
“I can’t say that I blame you there. It might be a good idea to slow down then, the last thing we need is the police to pull us over for speeding, Jessica.”
“Maybe you’re right.” I said, slowing down to the posted limit.
The drive really didn’t take that long before we reached the town of East Gwillimbury, which really wasn’t much to see. I found a coffee shop, pulled in and found a place to park. We picked up a couple of coffees to go and Scotty took over the driving because the next town was Vaughan. It might not have been a big city, but it was the home of Canada’s Wonderland, so it was a tourist trap and traffic there was crazy.
I looked over at Scotty. “You know were not going home until I atleast go on a rollercoaster.”
“We can do that tomorrow, honey, I am sure that was part of Amy and Tara plans, there were plenty of other places we could have gone camping that were closer to home.”, Scotty said with a smile.
“I can’t wait! I’ve always wanted to go on a rollercoaster.” But I’d never really had the chance ‘til now. “Have you ever been on one Scotty?”
“I’ve been on a few. My parents took use to Disney World once. I was still pretty young, and there were only a couple that I was able to go on. I was still young and didn’t meet the height requirement for the main attraction. God, I remember how pissed off I was but it was still a fun trip.” Scotty said smiling
“This will be my first time, we should find out what it will cost to get a day pass Scotty, it will likely be cheaper than buying tickets.”
“That’s true Jessica and I believe that it covers everything in the park.”
“When we get back to the campsite I will ask Amy about it Scotty.”
[-][+][-]
It took us about 20 minute before we reached Yonge Street, which just happens to be the longest street in the world and definitly, one of the busiest. It was interesting as we made our way into the city.There were plenty of places that would be fun to check out if you really had the time to just explore the city, but Scotty and I only had a couple hours to look around. We already knew the destination that we were headed to,1 the only problem was finding it.
There was more than one Hard Rock Café in the city, one on Yonge Street and the other at the Skydome. We decided on the Skydome for a few reasons. It was where the Blue jays played and the CN Tower was right next to it, which would give us time to check out both places. I had brought my camera with me, thinking that it would be really cool to take some pictures of the city from the top of the tower.
The only problem with driving into a city like Toronto is finding a decent parking spot, especially downtown. Scotty and I decided the best bet was to park the car at the subway station in North York, which is pretty much on the outskirts of the city but still part of their transit system.
Once we found a parking spot, Scotty and I made out way into the terminal and paid for some tokens. We made our way over to the big map that was posted on the wall. We would have to take two different trains before we made it to our destination. The terminal that we were at was not all that busy, and there were plenty of seats on the train but once the train started going more and more people entered at every stop until there was barely any room to move without touching someone, it was a perverts paradise.
It took about 15 minutes before we reached our next stop which was Yonge and Bloor. From there we had to exit the train, which was easier said than done. Scotty stayed close to me the whole time, and didn’t let go of my hand till the two of us were off the train. This terminal was completely full of people, and it took the two of us a while to make it over to where we had to catch the next train. Eventually we managed, and were able to find a spot. It was pretty much standing room only. We were only on this train for 10 minutes before we arrived at our stop.
There was still a bit of a walk before we reached the Skydome. It was a nice night, and Scotty and I weren’t really in a big hurry. It was that time of year when it really didn’t get dark out ‘til close to 8pm, so we still had a little time before it started to get dark. As the two of us got closer to our destination we saw a humongous store called Honest Ed’s, it almost reminded me of the entrance to a circus.
“Look at that Scotty”, I said with a smile.
“Honest Ed’s. I’ve heard about this store. Want to check it out Jessica?”
“Sure if you want, honey.” I said smiling
So a few minutes later we found our way inside. I couldn’t believe the size of the store and the things that they sold. Though I didn’t really buy much, I did grab three t-shirts that promoted the city of Toronto for Mom, Dad and Megan.
Scotty and I spent about 20 minutes in the store just looking around. The only time that he looked uncomfortable was when I went into the lady’s department. He just didn’t seem to all that much help when I started going through the lingerie section, but in the end we just left with the ball caps. Neither one of us had all that much money on us, but it was nice all the same.
After leaving Honest Ed’s, Scotty stopped at the instant teller and took out some money, then put it in his wallet and the two of us made our way over to the CN Tower. What surprised me most was the cost of the tickets for the two of us. It came to a little over $40.00. I looked over at Scotty. “We really don’t have to do this I am happy with just going to the Skydome.”
“It’s alright Jessica, I want to see it too,” Scotty said, and paid for both of our tickets
“I have money Scotty; I can pay for my own.”
“No Jessica, keep your money. I wanted to do this.” Scotty said as he slipped his arm around my waste and pulled me closer to him
“Thanks Scotty, I said and I leaned over to give him a kiss. “Just being alone with you would have been more than enough for me.”
“We have the rest of our lives to be alone together baby, let’s just have some fun tonight.” Scotty said, returning my kiss.
I’m sure the two of us were putting on enough of a show for all the other visitors, but I’m sure most of the people only seen one thing, two people in love.
[-][+][-]
The CN Tower is really much more than what you see on the outside. There was even a revolving restaurant that overlooked the city below. It continuously rotated slowly, so that you could see the city from there. It would have been nice if we could have stayed there awhile, but it would have cost more than either of us could afford. Maybe we can remedy that in the future, but at the moment we were just two kids living at home with our parents. Who really knew what tomorrow would bring?
One of the best parts of the tower was the floor of glass. It provided awesome views of the city below and looking down you could see the Skydome. If the dome was open you could even watch the game, not that you would know what was going on, though. People looked like from where we were, but I managed to take a few pictures and I couldn’t wait to show them to Megan and Jennifer.
I even managed to take a few pictures of Scotty with the help of one of the other visitors. The two of us had our picture taken together as we stood on the observation deck. Scotty even took one of me laying down on the glass floor. Being the crazy girl that I am, I pretended to be falling, and when I had a chance to look at the picture, that was exactly what it looked like.
The two of us had a lot of fun, but eventually the tour ended and we found ourselves standing outside the Skydome. We made our way around the building until Scotty and I found the main entrance and eventually found ourselves at the Hard Rock Cafe. Once inside we found a place to sit while Scotty ordered. We had some time before we ate, so we just looked around at the different pictures and rock memorabilia. There were some really nice guitars on the walls, and from where we were sitting you could look out and watch the Blue Jays playing.
It was all pretty cool and the food was excellent. Scotty had ordered the cheeseburger platters and it was really tasty, but I couldn’t eat it all. Not without putting my figure in jeopardy, and I liked the way I looked. In the end I did manage to finish my cheeseburger, and Scotty took care of the rest of my fries. Where he put it, God only knows. If I ate like him I’d weigh close to 300 pounds, but then again, he plays a lot of sports.
“So are you enjoying yourself Jessica?” Scotty asked with a smile.
“Yeah baby, I’m having a great time!” I said, looking into those baby blues of his.
“I’m glad that Tara and Amy decided to stay behind. I want us to have a special night together,” Scotty said as he reached over and took my hand.
“Me too, Scotty. I’ve wanted to be alone with you for so long now, without all the distractions. There just never seemed to be a good time, well until now, anyway.” I said, happily.
“I know what you mean honey, but it’s all over with now and we can get back to living a normal life.” Scotty said as he held my hand in his.
“We should start back soon Scotty, we have a long drive ahead of us.”
“You’re right and it would be kind of rude not to spend some time with Tara and Amy, considering that they invited us and all,” he said with a thoughtful frown.
After paying the bill, Scotty and I made the long trip back to the terminal where we had parked. It took us about a half hour to get there, but we spent the time talking and enjoying each other’s company. Soon we were out of the city and back on the open road. Toronto had been fun, and someday we’d have to return and really explore the city.
Chapter 25
Scotty and I arrived back at the campsite around 9:30PM, and found Tara and Amy with a good size fire in the pit. They were cuddled up together on a blanket, and you could see that the two of them were enjoying their time together.
After parking the car Scotty and I grabbed a blanket of our own, unrolled it on the other side of the fire pit and joined them.
“So how was Toronto” Tara asked as she held a sleeping Amy.
“It was really nice Tara, Scotty and I went on the tour at the CN Tower and took some really cool pictures. After that we had a nice meal at the Hard Rock Cafe. So how long has Amy been sleeping?” I said after looking over at her.
“About an hour, I guess” Tara said as she looked at her with a contented smile.
“I’m not sleeping, just resting my eyes,” Amy said, sounding half asleep.
“Oh? Then explain the snoring you were doing earlier,” Tara accused, and she smiled.
“I don’t snore”, Amy said yawning and slowly pulling herself into a sitting position.
“Yeah right, you don’t snore. Remember, I’m the one that sleeps next to you!” Tara giggled.
“The two of you sound like an old married couple.” Scotty said, laughing at the two of them.
“I wish that was the case,” Amy frowned.
“Yes, sometimes life just isn’t fair.” Tara agreed, sadly.
“If you ask me it makes no sense.” Scotty said as he looked at Amy and Tara. “If two people love one another, why shouldn’t they be able to get married?”
“It really shouldn’t matter, but people are afraid of anything different. Had things worked out differently Scotty, the two of us wouldn’t be able to be married either.” I said sadly. “I believe that they view being transgendered the same as being homosexual. The silly thing is, I believe that I could marry another girl and it wouldn’t be a problem. Like, how screwed up is that?”
We all stayed up for a few more hours, but around 11 pm, Amy and Tara headed off to their tent to get some rest. Scotty and I weren’t really all that tired, and we decided to stay up for a while longer. It just felt good as I lay next to the fire, feeling Scotty’s arms holding me close to him.
Every now and then I would feel him running his hands down my arms and it didn’t take long before I started getting Goosebumps all over. When he started kissing the back of my neck, I couldn’t help but find myself getting excited.
“Do you remember during the drive up, you said we didn’t have a song of our own Jessica?”
“Yeah, I remember honey. You said I just haven’t heard it yet.”
“Want to hear it, Jessica?” Scotty asked.
“Sure, let me have a listen.” I said with a smile.
Scotty slowly stood up and went over to the tent. He came back with his guitar then took a seat next to me and started into a melody.
What he was playing sounded familiar but I couldn’t place it at first. He started singing the words, and I realized what song he was playing. It was Blake Shelton’s, ”God gave me you.”
I couldn’t help but start crying as I heard him singing the song. I’ve always loved that song and every time I heard it on the radio or watched the video, it brought tears to my eyes, and made me wish that someone cared for me like that.
Here was the man I love, sitting next to me singing it to me, and what made it even more special was that Scotty’s not a big fan of country music. There’s no way he knew this song, he took the time to learn it just so that he could play it to me.
He had been planning this for a while. The whole time that he sang the song to me, not once did his eyes leave mine. When the song finally ended, Scotty laid the guitar down on the ground next to him and took me into his arms. When his lips met mine, it was like an electrical charge ran straight though my body. I knew from that moment what it felt like to be a woman truly in love.
Scotty looked at me, and there was a look in his eyes that I hadn’t seen before. I knew exactly what it meant, and I knew that I felt the same way. I reached over, took his hand and then the two of us headed over to our tent.
Both of us were like wild animals, driven by a force beyond our control. My body was on fire with every touch of Scotty’s hand as he started slowly undressing me. I could feel how excited he was, as his body rubbed up against mine. My mind kept telling me that I had to stop. My body obviously had other plans, and I undressed him.
It took us no time at all before we were both naked and seeing one another for the first time. As he kissed me, I could feel his hand running down my body causing goose bumps all over. He gently started kissing his way down to my breast, then he started sucking on my nipples. I was in heaven, and could feel my body starting to go crazy with excitement.
I felt his hand slip down between my legs. I’m sure Scotty knew how excited I was, and the more he touched me down there, the more my body started going crazy. Eventually I lost all control, and found myself in the throes of my first orgasm. I’m sure everyone would have heard me, had I not used the pillow to muffle the sounds that I was making.
Once I was able to regain control of myself, I slowly climbed on top of Scott. I started kissing him. I could feel him between my legs and if I pushed back just little he would be inside me. There was a part of me that really wanted him inside me.
When I start to push my body against him, I could feel the tip of his penis starting to slip inside me. I liked the feeling of him inside me, and I slow started rocking back and forth, taking him inside me just a little. Somehow, I came to my senses. I wasn’t on the pill and neither of us were using protection.
So I slowly made my way down his body and away from his manhood. It was bigger than I had expected. I looked up at him, and I could see this look of anticipation and need. The only thing I wanted to do at that moment was please my man. I took him into my mouth and just watched him as I slowly started moving my head up and down.
I enjoyed watching him and soon felt his hands on my head, guiding me. At the same time, he pushed down, forcing me to take more and more of him into my mouth. Suddenly it felt different, then he let out a light moan and started to cum. It had been my first intimacy with a
guy, and I knew that from this moment on I was truly a woman in every way.
“That was awesome!” I said, smiling from ear to ear.
Scotty smiled. “So were you, honey, although I wish we could have gone further”
“Believe me, I wanted to, and likely would have if I was on the pill and we were using protection. The last thing I want is to get pregnant, at least not now.”
“I understand, believe me, right now I don’t want to be a father, but maybe someday, when the time is right.”
“We better put out the fire. I don’t trust leaving it going without someone watching it.”
“Alright honey, I’ll be right back,” he said with a big smile.
After Scotty returned, we called it a night. It felt good falling asleep in his arms, and feeling his body against mine. Considering everything that had happened with the death of my uncle, it had turned out to be a great day that I would never forget.
Chapter 26
It was almost 7AM when I finally woke up. I looked over at Scotty and saw he was still fast asleep. I thought about the previous night’s activities, and couldn’t help but smile. I realized as I looked at the man I loved that nothing between the two of us would ever be the same.
There was a special bond between us now that I had never felt before. We never actually had intercourse, but I felt it all the same. I knew one thing for sure, I badly needed a shower. I grabbed my knapsack and headed over to the showers.
It felt really good as the warm jets caressed my body. After I finished showering, I made my way over to the mirror and saw my reflection. I couldn’t help but smile. The bruising was much lighter than before and would be much easier to conceal.
I spent the next 20 minutes doing my hair and makeup and getting dressed. I was pleasantly surprised at how well I was able to conceal the bruises, now that the area had lightened up. After I finished in the washroom I made my way back to our campsite. I found Amy sitting at the picnic table, and I took a seat across from her.
“Good morning Amy, did you sleep well?” I asked her cheerfully.
“I’m alright, but I could really use some coffee. Feel like taking a drive into town?” She yawned.
“Sure, just let me put my knapsack in the tent and grab my purse,” I said as I headed for my tent.
“I’ll be in the car,” she told me, then started walking towards it.
When I went to the tent, I saw that Scotty was still sleeping. I didn’t want to disturb him, so I quietly placed my bag on the side of the tent next to his, and then grabbed my purse. I quietly slipped out and made my way over to Tara’s car. Amy was sitting in the passenger side again. As I climbed in , she handed me the keys and asked me to start driving”
I wasn’t used to this side of Amy. She was usually so chipper and full of energy, but I guessed that she wasn’t a morning person. Once I put the car into drive and got on the road, Amy kept looking over at me.
“There is something different about you today she said. The eye looks better but that's not it.” Then she smiled. “Scotty and you did it, didn’t you?”
I shook my head surprised that she figured it out so fast, “How do you know?”
“It’s just written all over your face.” Amy giggled. “Alright girl, I want details!”
I smiled.” It was awesome, but we never went all the way. We came pretty close, though.”
“Thank god you didn’t take it further. The last thing you need is to get pregnant. I think it’s time that you have a good talk with your mom about going on the pill.” Amy suggested.
“But you’re right, the first time is always awesome,” she said giggling
[-][+][-]
“I think you’re right about talking to my mother. Scotty and I came pretty close to going all the way last night, and it wasn’t something that either of us planned on doing.”
“There’s nothing wrong with experimenting Jessica, just be careful. You don’t need to become a teenage mother. If that happened, you might as well kiss your future away. It’s pretty hard, raising a child and finding time to attend school, and you might as well forget about having a social life, because all your free time will be spent taking care of a child.
Amy was right I knew a few girls at school that got pregnant and the pretty much quit because they didn’t have anyone willing to help them with the child. I didn’t know what the future held for me. I did know that when I did have a child I wanted to be able to give that child everything that I didn’t have growing up and I couldn’t do that if I wasn’t mentally and physically ready.
[-][+][-]
The ride only took us 15 minutes before we reached the nearby town. We found a Tim Horton’s and a place to park, and then Amy and I made out way in. We ordered four large coffees and four breakfast sandwiches, then hurried back. It was still pretty early and there was very little traffic on the road, so I went a little faster them maybe I should have. We made it back without any trouble, and after parking the car we found Tara sitting at the picnic table, still half asleep.
“Good morning Tara, we come bearing gifts,” I said as I set the tray of coffee on the table. She smiled, “Good morning Jessica, good morning Amy,” she said as she reached over and grabbed a coffee out of the tray
“I better wake up Scotty, before his breakfast gets cold.” I said, then headed over to our tent
[-][+][-]
Once inside I lay down next to him. “Honey, it’s time to get up.”
“In a few minutes, Mom,” he grumbled, still half asleep.
I started giggling then leaned over and started kissing him on the lips, neck and ears which seemed to have the desired effect, and he seem to be starting to come around. “Come on baby, it’s time to get up. Amy and I went into town to get some breakfast. Wake up; it’s going to get cold.”
“Alright, give me a few minutes to get dressed and I’ll be right out honey.” Scotty said, and he slowly sat up.
“Okay, I’ll see you in a few minutes, Honey,” I told him, then I backed out and walked over to join Amy and Tara at the table.
“Is he getting up?” Tara asked.
“He’s getting dressed as we speak.” I said smiling.
[-][+][-]
A few minutes later Scotty came out and joined us at the table. He still looked half asleep, but as he drank his coffee he started to come around, as did Tara. Whereas Amy and myself had already had plenty of time to wake up.
I couldn’t help but think to myself how well I’d been doing recently. I’d been having terrible dreams, but last night I slept like a baby in Scotty’s arms. Now, if only mom and dad would be willing to let him move in. Something tells me that they might have a small problem with that idea.
As for myself, I think it would be a great idea, but I seriously doubt either of us would have sleeping on our minds. Well, at least for the first few months. As I drank my coffee I noticed Scotty looking over at me, and I couldn’t help but smile back at him.
[-][+][-]
The rest of the day was pretty much full, we spent most of it just hanging around the campsite and exploring the different trails. We did take another trip into Toronto as a group and did some exploring around the city.
Tara knew the city and had been there a few times, and was pretty much our tour guild. She took us to some pretty cool places, including the underground city. I thought to myself how much it was like a giant maze, stretching right across the downtown core.
We entered the underground city at Union Station, followed the different signs and eventually ended up at Yonge and Bloor. From there we exited and walked a few blocks into an area that Tara called Boys Town.
It was one of the biggest gay and lesbian communities in North America. She took us to a coffee house, which was very nicely decorated. There were nice comfy couches and even a deck outside where you could sit and watch all the people coming and going.
We choose to take our coffee outside and sit on the deck. It was a nice day, and none of us wanted to spend it sitting inside. It was interesting, just watching the people coming and going. It was also nice seeing that being here didn’t seem to bother Scotty, although there were a few times I could tell he was uncomfortable. Scotty is very good looking, and he just wasn’t used to having other guys interested in him.
It was funny when a guy sitting a table over started a conversation with us. Well, really it was Scotty that he was interested in talking to. Scotty was completely blind to the fact that this guy was interested in him, and he seemed to be really enjoying the conversation that the two of them were having.
Maybe it was the fact the he was spending the weekend with three girls that really had no interest in sports or other manly pursuits. It wasn’t until we were ready to go that Scotty realized what was really happening, when the guy asked him if he would like to go out sometime.
It was a complete shock to him but Scotty was politely declined his offer. After we were far enough away, he turned to the three of us and asked us, “Did you guys know?”
It didn’t take long before the three of us started giggling, which indicated that all three of us knew but had said nothing. Scotty just shook his head, then reached over and took my hand
“He seemed so normal, nothing like I expected:” Scotty said, thinking aloud.
“Did you expect him to act differently?” Amy said frowning.
“I’ve never met a gay person, with the exception of you two, not that I think there is anything wrong with it, I’m just not used to having another guy interested in me, and to be honest the only real reference that I have to someone being gay is what I see on television. We all know how most gay people are portrayed there.” he said.
“You’ll find there are three types, in the closet, loud and proud and moderate like Amy and myself. We’re no different the any other couple, other than the fact that we are lesbians. We do all the same things a normal couple would, but the difference is that we’re not afraid to admit that we’re together, although we don’t flaunt it either.” Tara said smiling
“Places like this are special though. We can pretty much be ourselves, without people making judgements.” Amy said, and put her arm around Tara’s waist as the two of them walked.
[-][+][-]
We spent most of the day just exploring the city, and then made the long trip back to the campground near supper time. After supper Scotty and I decided to head down to the lake and have a swim. I wore my new bikini, which seemed to make Scotty a happy camper. For some reason, he couldn’t seem to keep his hands off me, not that I really minded. There was a part of me that really enjoy all the attention.
Later that night, Scotty and I took out our guitars and spent most of the evening playing different songs. It was a lot of fun and it didn’t take long before Amy and Tara were singing along with us. Like the old saying goes, though, all good things eventually have to come to an end. Scotty and I decided to call it a night. Neither of us was really tired, we just wanted some time alone together. It was our last night to be together like this, and both of us wanted to make the most of it.
After the two of us were alone it didn’t take long before one thing led to another and the two of us were making love. Like the previous night, we didn’t go all the way. We still enjoyed ourselves and unlike the previous night, we took our time and started learning about each other. By the time we passed out, the two of us were thoroughly exhausted.
End of Part 8
To be cont
Jessica’s Journey
Sequel to Andrews Dilemma
By, Cain129
Part 9
Special Thanks to Wren Phoenix for the editing.
Synopsis: After being assaulted by her Uncle James, Jessica was left battered and bruised. The worst part though was the emotional damage that occurred from the assault which left her plagued by nightmares. Jessica planned on spending the weekend camping with her friends, but there was a part of her that just wanted to stay home and hide from the world.
In the end she decided to join her friends, and the weekend turned out to be one she would never forget. There are still forces that are working in the background and their purpose hasn’t become clear. What does Rocco have in store for Jessica, and who killed James Roberts?
Janice thought that she was going to have a nice relaxing weekend until there was a loud knock at the door. She made her way over to the window and looked out. There were two police officers standing just outside.
Janice immediately started getting worried that something happened to one of the girls. She slowly unlocked the door and opened it hoping that it wasn’t bad news
“Janice Tanner, I am Detective Walker and this is my partner, Detective Hernandez, could we have a few minutes of your time?”
“Sure, come inside,” Janice said, stepping aside to allow them to enter. As the officers came inside, Janice asked them, “So what is this all about?”
Detective Walker was the first to speak. “We’re here concerning your adopted daughter’s uncle, James Roberts. He was found dead at the Hospital, and we are currently treating it as a suspicious death.”
“So what does this have to do with me?” Janice asked, nervously.
“Most likely nothing, but whenever we investigate a murder, we have to follow all the leads. Since your daughter was assaulted by him, it does put you on the list of suspects.” Detective Hernandez explained.
“You really don’t think that I could just waltz into the hospital, bypass security and the officer watching his room by magically turning invisible so that no one could see me kill him, do you? Give me a break, but I’ll admit that I feel whoever did kill the bastard should be given a medal.” Janice said.
“Neither of us believes that you did it, Mrs. Tanner. We’re just here to cover our bases and rule you out. Could you please tell us where you were between 2:00am and 3:00am last night?” Detective Walker explained.
“I was tossing and turning most of the night, worrying about my daughter and couldn’t sleep well. I decided to go for a drive and eventually ended up at Tim Horton’s. I’m sure the staff can verify that I was there around that time.” Janice told them.
“Alright, that pretty much takes care of our questions for you. Would your daughter be home?” Detective Hernandez asked. “As I’m sure you know, we need to ask her a few questions as well.”
“You can’t be serious,” Janice said angrily. “That man assaulted her! Who the hell do you think the real victim is? Jessica was home and in bed at the time. She was finally dragged out of the house to go on a camping trip near Toronto with some friends, as a way to recover from her assault. If you want to talk to her then you’ll have to wait until she gets home on Monday. So, are we done with the questions? Unless you plan on arresting me, I’d like you both to leave.” Janice said self righteously.
[-][+][-]
After leaving the Tanner residence Detective Hernandez turned to his partner. “So, what do you think, is she a suspect?”
“I don’t know, we’ll check out her story. I do know one thing; I’d rather take on the entire Hells Angels organization than get between that woman and her children.” Detective Walker said, frowning.
“Alright, who is the next name on the list?” Detective Walker asked his partner.
“We have two choices. First, there’s Sarah Roberts, Jessica’s biological mother.” Detective Hernandez said, looking into the case file. “This time, I’mplaying the good cop.”
“I don’t know, you seem to play the part of the bad cop pretty well. I thought she was going to jump off the couch and tear you apart.” Detective Walker said smiling.
“I think she came pretty close to it, but I believe she’s innocent though. She’s just very protective when it comes to her kids.” Detective Hernandez agreed with a chuckle.
[-][+][-]
Janice was fuming after the officers left. How could they even think that Jessica could do such a thing? She walked over, picked up the phone and called Anthony’s cell phone. He had taken Megan and Jennifer to the mall. She needed to talk to him and didn’t want to wait until he returned home.
Kelly yawned as she waited outside her apartment building. Her father had called her the previous night and said that there was someone that he wanted her to meet.
“You better have a good reason for getting me out of bed on my day off.” Kelly said as she slid into the passenger side.
Mason smiled, “Its important kiddo, we’re going to meet your new partner. He’ll also be playing your father.” Masson said, passing Kelly her coffee.
“I couldn’t have met him in at the station?” Kelly asked, frowning.
“Under normal conditions, we could have met at the station but I don’t want to risk it. I’m sure that there are still a few bad cops on the force.”
“I don’t want to risk blowing the operation because your cover is blown. There is also that fact that no one knows that John Burke even here. I haven’t added him to payroll yet, and I don’t plan on adding him until I know that both of your covers are secure.” Mason said with a grin.
“Can you actually do that, Daddy? I mean, the guy needs to get paid.” Kelly asked with a frown.
“We have a fund for paying informants. I’ll be paying him out of that fund, and then deducting the money from his payroll, that way everyone gets paid.” Mason said grinning.
“It seems that you’ve figured out everything.” Kelly said, then took a drink of her coffee.
“Everything’s setup, all that’s left is getting you up to speed. Just promise me that you’ll be careful. Once you’re inside, there won’t be much that I can do to help you.” Mason frowned.
“I’ll be alright, this is what I’ve been training for, Daddy.”
“I know honey, but training and being in the field are two different things. Things happen in the field when you’re gathering information. You may be asked to do something illegal, just to prove that you’re really loyal to them. ” Mason said to his daughter.
Kelly looked at her father. “If that happens, how far should I be willing to go?”
“That depends on what they are asking you to do, Kelly. If your life’s in danger, than do whatever it takes to stay alive. Everything else, just report it to me or your partner and we can deal with it later.”
“So Daddy, how am I going to contact you, I doubt you want me to call the station.”
“I have a cell phone setup with voicemail, you call and login, then we can pass messages back and forth. That way the only ones that will be able to access the voicemail will be just the two of us and your partner. You’ll be able to text also, so if at any time you feel that your cover is blown just text 911. You’ll be wearing a tracker, so we’ll know your location at all times, if you’re in trouble we’ll extract you as quickly as possible.” Mason said calmly, though he was a little apprehensive.
“It sounds like you have everything planned, Daddy.”
“Everything that I could think of has been taken care of, the rest depends on you Kelly.”
“Alright Daddy, than I should start preparing for my role, If I’m going to be playing an abused kid, then maybe I should checkout some of the support groups in the area. It’ll give me a better idea of how I should be portraying myself, and maybe I’ll model myself off of one of the girls in the group.”
“That’s a good idea Kelly. It might also be a good idea to make a few friends there. I know that this is not going to be an easy job and it will likely cause you a lot of pain. Just remember that it was people like these that killed your mother and father. Use that as your ammunition. It’ll also help you connect with the women in the support group.” Mason said sadly.
[-][+][-]
Mason and Kelly drove for close to an hour before arriving at John Burke’s home. This turned out to be a small farm that had a barn with 2 horses, a few cows and even a chicken coop which was next to the barn. There was also a really nice Harley Softail classic parked out front, Kelly thought to herself that John Burke was not your typical police officer, and she was right. John had been working as a detective with the Drug Enforcement Division for over 20 years and spent most of that time stationed in Halifax, Nova Scotia.
Mason had met John shortly after joining the police academy and the two became good friends. Even though they both ended up working in different provinces, they still kept in touch by phone and over the internet.
Mason and Kelly made their way over to the front door. Mason knocked a few times and was soon met at the door by a lady that looked to be in her early 40’s. The thing that surprised Kelly were the tattoos that covered the woman. As she looked around at the rest of the farm, seeing the chickens, horses and cows, she just didn’t seem to fit the picture of a country girl. Maybe a biker babe, but not someone that looked like they belonged on a farm.
“You must be Mason, John has told me all about you. I’m Beth, it’s nice to finally meet you. I guess you must be our new daughter, Kelly. It’s nice to meet you too.” Beth said with a big smile.
“It’s nice to finely meet you also Beth.” Mason said
“It’s nice to finally meet you too, Beth.” Kelly said with a smile.
“Where are my manners? Please come inside and make yourselves at home, John is in the study, just down the hall, first door on the right. I’ll let you guys get reacquainted while I grab some drinks and meet you in the study.” Beth said and headed off to the kitchen while Daddy and Kelly made their way to John’s study.
[-][+][-]
True to Beth’s word, John was busy working in his study. There were boxes everywhere all in various states of being unpacked. Mason gave a light knock just outside the door. John turned around and smiled when he saw him.
“Mason, it’s about time you got off your fat ass and came over to help us unpack.” John said grinning, then came over and gave his friend a hug,
“It’s good to see you too, you old bastard. Looks like you have been keeping well. You remember the little lady standing next to me?” Mason said to his friend.
“Of course I remember!” John said, with a big smile. “You have sure grown into a beautiful young lady. I think you were maybe 8 years old the last time that I saw you. It’s nice to see you again, I’m sure that we’ll have plenty of time to get to know one another. Why don’t we take this little family reunion into the living room?”
[-][+][-]
After everyone was seated, Beth joined them in the living room carrying a tray of with four beers on it and a big bowl of chips.
“I never really had a chance to thank you for taking the job, John. Since I became Police Chief, I’ve been walking around with a target on my head. Vincent’s people were everywhere and it seems that even after a month we’re still finding them.”
“I’ve called in every favour I had, just to get people here I could trust. It’s a complete mess, John. At first I thought about walking away, but I couldn’t. I finally had to power to make a difference, and to just walk away would’ve been wrong.” Mason said, and took a drink of his beer.
“How many people have agreed to join us?” John asked.
“At the moment there is you, Kelly and four others, but there are a few others I’ve asked to join us. I want to have people in key positions and when this job is finished, I want you to take over our Drug Enforcement Unit.” Mason said.
“It would be a pleasure Mason, if you’re interested though, there are a few friends of mine that we should contact. They’re good officers with clean records. I’ve trained them myself and would trust them with my life. The only problem is that they’re young and inexperienced, but the way I see it, what they lack in experience they will make up for in loyalty.” John said with a smile.
“All right, if you say that we can trust them, your word is all I need. Why don’t you give them a call and see if they’re interested in joining us. If they are have them come as soon as possible. We can get together and figure out where best to assign them later. Now let’s talk about the present assignment.” Mason said with a smile.
It was around 11 am when I finally awoke. Scotty and I had made the most of the time we had left and I think that it was after 3 am before we finally fell asleep. The weekend turned out better than I had hoped, and I was sad to see it coming to an end. I knew that it was time to be heading back, though.
I felt better, both mentally and physically, than I had in a long time. I looked over at Scotty, leaned over and kissed him, then whispered, “I love you, baby.” Then I found my robe and slipped into it. I made my way over, grabbed my knapsack and made the short walk over to the showers. I spent the next 20 minutes having a shower and doing my makeup.
The bruises were pretty much gone now and I was looking almost normal, I had decided to wear my little blue sundress, so after I finished I got dressed.
I headed back to our tent and woke Scotty up.
He tried to roll on top of me, but I knew that wasn’t really a good idea. When i told him to get his ass to the showers, he pouted a little and tried to use those puppy dog eyes on me, but to no avail, and eventually did as he was told. I headed over to the picnic table and as I was sitting there noticed that Tara’s car was gone and figured they must have gone on a coffee run.
Feeling a little bored I walked over to my tent and grabbed my guitar case, then returned to the picnic table and took it out of its case. I started thinking about what I wanted to play and started playing around on a song that was forming in my mind. It had been awhile since I had done any real writing, and I could tell that this one wasn’t going to come out easily.
I just kept playing it, making changes here and there until I found the sound I wanted, and then
continued working on the rest the song. As I played, words started forming and I started singing them, making changes so the music and words blended together.
It can be a long process writing a song, matching it up so music and words blend together, but slowly it all started coming together. I stopped long enough to grab my song book and wrote down the sheet music and then filled in the words, that way I knew that I wouldn’t forget what I had done so far. I picked up the guitar and continue working on the next part of the song. I managed to add another few verses to it before I saw Tara and Amy arriving.
Once the two of them exited, I could see that I was right, they had done a coffee run. I placed my guitar back in its case and closed the case, then set it on the ground next to me. It didn’t take long before they joined me at the table and Amy handed me a coffee.
“Is Scotty still in bed?” Amy asked me, as she took her coffee and Tara’s out of the tray.
“You wore the poor guy out last night, didn’t you?” Tara said giggling
“You heard us?” I said, shocked. I had tried so hard to keep quiet, but I guess not hard enough.
“Yes, we I heard you. I just hope the two of you didn’t take it too far.” Tara said smiling
“We didn’t go all the way, if that’s what you mean Tara.” I said smiling.
“Good, the two of you have plenty of time. There’s no reason to hurry things along.” Tara said, taking a drink of her coffee.
“You look much better this morning Jessica, the bruising is pretty much gone. It looks like you’re a fast healer.” Amy said reaching over and touching under my eye. “Does it still hurt?”
“Just a little Amy, but it likely will for a while.”
“So, you ready to face the real world again?” asked Tara.
“I think so, I feel much better now mentally and physically. I have to admit that I’m going to miss this place, there are so many good memories here,” I said, smiling at the thought.
“Thanks for inviting me, I think that I really needed something like this, and not just because of the assault. It’s helped me deal with some issues that I haven’t been able to let go of ‘til now.” I said as I frowned at those memories.
“Do you mind me asking Jessica, What issues?” Amy asked, looking me in the eyes.
“I don’t mind, it’s easier to talk about now. I’ve lived most of my life as a boy, and even though I knew that I was different, what could I do about it? I was programmed to believe that I was a boy and had to act according to those beliefs.
When I couldn’t live up to those expectatiations, I took the coward’s way out and tried to take my own life. I eventually came to terms with the fact that I was really a girl. It helped that I had the medical documentation to reaffirm that, but it didn’t change the fact that there was always a part of me that refused to accept it.
I still felt like a fake, not a real girl. This weekend has changed that, though. Scotty helped me accept that I was fully a woman and not some boy dressed as one. When the two of us made love, it changed everything for me.
I’m no longer that scared little boy that tried to take his life. I’m a woman in love with a sweet guy that loves me. I never really knew what love was really. How could I? Those things you learn from watching your parents. I came from a dysfunctional family, my parents didn’t know how to show love, not in a healthy way.
When I moved in with the Tanners I started to see that everything that I knew and believed was wrong. I saw how much they loved one another. I was so jealous at first, and there was a part of me that even thought it was an act! I thought that once they got comfortable around me they’d stop acting, and I’d see them for what they really were, but that never happened.
Than the unthinkable happened. They started treating me the same way that they did with Megan! They even accepted me as a girl, even before the real truth came out about my gender. All my life I had been told that I was worthless and would never amount to anything. Inside I was dying, and to be honest had they not accepted me for who I really was then I likely would have tried to take my life again. I wouldn’t go back to that life, I couldn’t. I would rather die.
“It’s over now honey, and whatever happens now is your choice. Whatever may happen in the future, just remember that you have people that love you.” Amy said reaching over and taking my hand in hers.
“I will always be here too, Jessica”, Tara said with a smile.
I couldn’t help but smile, “I know that if something is wrong I can always turn to either one of you, we’re like sisters. I just hope you know that if you ever need me, I’ll always be there for both of you.”
A few minutes later, Scotty joined us at the table.
“Cool, just what the doctor ordered!” He said, grabbing his coffee.
“So how was your night?” asked Tara
[-][+][-]
Rocco had been waiting for Adrian to call and give him an update on his present assignment. He was getting ready to take out a corrupt Politian. It was nasty business but it needed to be done. By the time he was finished, everyone that had been a part of Vincent’s organization would be dead, and then Rocco could concentrate on his own plans without worrying about interference.
He made his way over to the bar and with shaking hands started pouring himself a stiff drink. He had been sober for quite a few years but none of that mattered now. Whatever happened, he was committed to the plan and would see it through. He just needed to make sure that he had all the right people in place. Once that happened, there were going to be a lot of people paying a heavy price for their indiscretions.
Rocco took a seat on his couch and thought about his life and how it had lead him up to this point. This hadn’t really been the life that he dreamed of having. His dreams were much simpler. When he was a kid, he wanted to be a doctor and help people, but he was born into this life, as was his father and grandfather. There was a time when he thought of running from what was expected of him, but the truth of the matter was, there was nowhere that he could have run to that the family couldn’t find him. Now he was leading the family.
The question was, where was this all leading too? Would it fall apart if he wasn’t there to hold everything together? He knew that Adrian would do everything in his power to see that his vision was realized, but he was just one man and the course that he had chosen led to uncharted waters. It had never been done, at least successfully.
Rocco poured himself another drink, then thought about and old quote that he had once read, ‘an intelligent fool can make things bigger, more complex, and more violent. It takes a touch of genius——and a lot of courage——to move in the opposite direction.’ Rocco thought to himself as he downed another drink, “Let’s just hope that I am more the genius and not the fool.”
A few minutes later, Rocco’s phone started ringing he looked at the number as said it’s about time then picked up the phone, “I hope you have good news for me, Adrian”
“Yes and no, Rocco. The good news is, I got all the information we needed on the Politician and have sent it to all the news outlets and arranged for the hit to happen for tomorrow. The bad news is I found a list of names on Greg’s computer. I sent the list to Brian to find out who they are. There was also a message on his machine from Josh Richards he was trying to setup a meeting at a warehouse on the west side.
[-][+][-]
Rocco thought for a minute then the name came to him, Josh Richards worked for the Borelli’s and was involved in child trafficking. Once the kids came into contact with him they usually disappeared and were never seen again. “What time is the meeting, Adrian?”
“It’s for two o’clock tomorrow Rocco, do you want me to take care of Josh?”
“Dammit, were not ready yet to take on the Borelli family but we just can’t sit still and do nothing. If we tip off the police, by the time they can do anything those kids will be already out of the country.” Rocco said frustrated.
“I can make it look like one of our rivals did the hit. If they end up killing one another, then so much the better for our plans.” Adrian suggested.
“All right Adrian, just make sure there is nothing to lead them back to us.”
“What do I do with the kids if they’re in the warehouse?”
“I’ll set up a safe house until we can contact the parents and send the kids home.”
“All right Rocco, I’ll make the arrangements. Watch the news tomorrow night, it should be interesting.” Adrian said, then ended the call.
[-][+][-]
Rocco picked up the phone and dialled a number. “Sheila, I have a job for you. I know you’re probably not ready, but I have a group of kids that will be coming your way. I am not sure what kind of shape they’re in, but if we don’t move now, they will likely be taken out of the country before the end of the week. Anything that you need, just pay for it and give me the receipts. I’ll write you a check to cover all the expenses.”
“We’re not ready Rocco, but we’ll make it work.” Sheila promised. She sounded concerned.
“Thanks Sheila, I owe you one.” Rocco said, and then started coughing loudly.
“Are you alright Rocco?” Sheila asked, worriedly.
“Yeah, I’m just getting over the flu. I got to go, call me if you need anything.” Rocco said, then hung up the phone.
Well, it looks like we’re committed now, Rocco said to himself. He went over to his desk and started going over his naughty and nice list.
Scotty and I had spent most of the morning packing everything up and getting ready for the trip home. We decided against going to Canada’s Wonderland, we would eventually check it out, but the next time we’d go as a group. I knew that Megan and Jennifer would love to be with us for that.
We decided to meet up for supper at one of the truck stops close to home, and then we’d go our separate ways. Soon the four of us piled into our cars and started the long drive home. Scotty and I talked most of the way and in between I passed my time just watching the scenery, listening to the radio and texting everyone back home. I let them know about our weekend and that we were on the way home.
Scotty looked over at me. “So what are your plans for the week?”
“Not really sure, but I think it’s time that I start getting into the swing of things again. I have a ton of things that I need to get done for school, and I think enough time has passed that I should start attending cheerleading practice again.”
“That’s cool, it’ll be good to see you at the games again. I know it hasn’t felt the same when I would look over and not see you there.” Scotty said sadly.
“Well I’m here now, baby.” I said smiling.
“I know honey, and this weekend was amazing!” Scotty said, giving my knee a squeeze.
“Scotty, do you think that you can do me a favor on Tuesday? I have a meeting that I really should start attending, and I’ll be there for an hour. If you can’t pick me up, I’m sure that Mom or Dad will come get me. I just need a drive there, and I’d rather you take me.”
“Sure Jessica, anytime you need a drive, just ask. If I’m free, I don’t mind taking you.”
“Thanks honey, so are you up to anything this week?”
Scotty thought about it for a few seconds. “Besides school, football and work, not really much.”
“I hope you’ve made time for me.” I pouted.
“I always have time for you, baby.” Scotty said smiling.
“That’s good Scotty because I’m going to need a lot of loving.” I giggled.
“You’re not the only one Jessica.” Scotty said, and slipped his arm around me.
Scotty and I continued driving for another hour before I received a text from Amy saying that they were going to pull over at the next truck stop for a bite to eat. I sent a quick reply, letting them know that we’d meet them there. Eventually we pulled into the truck stop, found a place to park and caught up to Tara and Amy, who were waiting for us in front of the restaurant.
Once inside we found a booth and waited for a waitress, “It seems to be taking a lot longer to go home then it did driving up,” Amy said, frowning at her watch.
“There’s a good reason for that, Amy. You slept the whole trip drive up.” Tara said, rather smugly.
“I don’t know, I’m rather enjoying the drive,” I said with a smile
“That’s because the two of you can’t keep your hands off each other! You know when you get home you’re not going to be able to get away with it as easy.” Amy said giggling
“Maybe but our parents can’t watch us 24/7, right, Scotty?”
“Nope, but we still should be careful the last thing we need is for them to think we are too serious, otherwise they might start interfering.”
“You might be right Scotty, my parents are overprotective sometimes.”
[-][+][-]
A few minutes later the waitress came and took our orders, After looking at the menu, Scotty ordered the fish and chips and a couple of cokes for the two of us. Tara and Amy ordered cheese burger platters. I loved cheeseburger but was happy with what Scotty ordered it had been awhile since I had fish and chips.
It was still going to be awhile before our orders came, so the four of us just talked and enjoyed each other’s company. Scotty had put his arm around me and I could feel his hand lightly caressing me. I really didn’t mind it wasn’t like anyone could tell what he was doing.
It was around 15 minutes before the waitress started bringing over our orders and I was quite surprised at how tasty the fish and chips were, but all I had to do was take one look to know that there was no way that I would be able to eat everything on my plate. I guessed that I’d have to give the rest to the human garbage disposal that was busy caressing my behind.
Scotty didn’t really seem to have a problem with that, considering he ate everything on his plate and everything that was left on mine. Tara and Amy just stared in disbelief. “How can he eat that much and not look like the Goodyear blimp?” Tara asked, shaking her head.
“I’m on the football team, so I work out every day. The only time I need to watch what I eat is over the holidays, because that’s the only time there’s no practice.” Scotty said with a smile.
After we finished dinner, Scotty and I said our goodbye, it was easier for us to take another route to get home. The rest of the ride only took us about 30 minutes before Scotty reached my home.
Scotty carried my bags to the door and said, “I better get home, Mom and Dad will likely have a million questions, and it’s going to take me all night to answer them.”
“I had fun too, honey. Now shut up and kiss me already.” I said smiling. Scotty happily obliged.
Neither of us seemed very eager to see the other go, as the kiss seemed to last forever but eventually the two of us had to come up for air.
“I better get going”, Scotty said frowning
“I know and me too, I love you Scotty”, I said with a smile
“I love you too Jessica”, Scotty said as he turned around and climbed inside his car, “I will call you tomorrow honey, have a good night sweetheart.”
“Bye Scotty”, I said and watched him drive off.
[-][+][-]
I slowly opened the door and ran straight into Megan and Jennifer. I had no doubts that they were watching the show that Scotty and I had put on outside the door.
“If the two of you are done watching the show, you could help me carry some of this stuff inside.” I said with a grin.
A few minutes later the three of us had everything back in my room. “God, I am tired out!” I said as I dropped down onto my bed.
“You’re not going to bed yet, we want details!” Jennifer said giggling.
“Where are Mom and Dad anyway?” I asked Megan.
“They had to go out, all they would say is that it was important and they would be home later. Now stop beating around the bush, how was your weekend?” Megan said, smiling.
“It was alright, I had a lot of fun.”
“Is that all you’ve got to say? You and Scotty shared a tent, and nothing happened?” Jennifer said frowning.
“We did some things, but we didn’t go all the way, are you happy now?” I said, blushing.
“What did you guys do?” Jennifer tittered.
I shook my head. “It doesn’t matter what we did, all that matters is that we love each other.”
“You’re right Jessica, but tell me, was it everything you thought it would be?” Megan asked, looking really serious.
“It was better than I thought it would be, and the feelings that I experienced. . . I didn’t think it was possible to ever feel that way just from being touched. It does make you wonder one thing. If it felt that good, what would it feel like to go all the way with him?”
End of part 9
To be continued in part 10
Jessica’s Journey
Sequel to Andrews Dilemma
By, Cain129
Part 10
Special Thanks to Wren Phoenix for the editing.
Synopsis: After spending the weekend with Scotty and her friends, Jessica returns home and gets ready to return to school and start living a normal life. A lot has happened but she feels ready to finally face the world and whatever life decides to throw at her.
After I got home Jennifer and Megan asked a million questions about spending the weekend with Scotty. I took a seat on my bed and told them the entire story. Megan and Jennifer were happy for me and I had to admit that I enjoyed having good friends to share stuff like this with.
“So what did the two of you do this weekend?” I asked, looking over at them.
“Nothing much, we did some shopping and saw a movie with the boyfriends.” Megan said with a grin.
“Nowhere as exciting as your weekend Jessica,” Jennifer said, and her smug smile almost made me blush.
“I had a great weekend and enjoyed myself. There’s a part of me that’s going to miss that place. Scotty and I made several good memories there.”
“I almost forgot, I didn’t come home empty-handed!” It only took about a minute before I found the bag that I was looking and handed a ball cap and t-shirt to Megan and Jennifer.
“Thanks, Jessica!” the two of them said together
“I’m sorry I couldn’t buy more, but Scotty and I were walking to the CN Tower and the Skydome”
“There fine Jessica,” Megan said, putting her ball cap on.
“Yeah Jessica,” Jennifer said happily, then reached down, pulled her shirt off and slipped into the new one. “Look, it's a perfect fit!”
I smiled. “Scotty and I were talking, and we’re planning another camping trip, this time for all of us.”
“When were you thinking Jessica?” Megan asked excitedly.
“I‘m not sure Megan, sometime after school is out, that’s all I know.”
“Sounds like fun, I can’t wait!” Jennifer exclaimed.
“The campgrounds are nice, there are many hiking trails and even a beautiful lake that’s perfect for swimming. If we want to take a ride, Canada’s Wonderland is close by.”
“So I’m taking it that it's time to start saving up for the trip.” Jennifer said thoughtfully.
“Yeah, that’s a good idea Jennifer. It's not that expensive if everyone chips in with renting the campsite, but your still going to need spending money.” I explained.
Megan and Jennifer helped me unpack, and between the three of us everything was quickly put away. I had to admit, it was good to be home. The three of us stormed the kitchen and laid waste to a container of rocky road ice cream. It had been a while since the three of us had spent time together, and it was nice to just sit back and talk with my sister and friend.”
After finishing up in the kitchen, the three of us moved into the living room. Megan clicked the on button for the television and switched the channel to MTV. They were playing some kind of...garbage! I had to be the only teenager I knew that wasn’t into all the recent rock music. I didn’t mind the older rock, because there seemed to be at least some kind of meaning behind the songs. But how can you find meaning to a song when you can’t even understand a word they’re saying?
Megan and Jennifer didn’t seem to mind though, as they were up dancing and trying to get me to join them. Eventually I did, through when it came to dancing I wasn’t what you would call graceful! They were patient with me, and they tried to show me the different moves. I eventually caught on, but I had a long ways to go if I was ever going to be as good as the two of them were.
[-][+][-]
Janice and Anthony were sitting on Bill’s couch, while he was on the phone. After talking to the police, Janice had called her husband, and hearing how distressed Janice was he gave Bill’s office a call. Anthony and Bill met in college, and they became good friends. When Jessica first moved in, Bill was the one that had helped take care of all the legal matters, including Jessica’s adoption.
Their families had always been close. Bill was Megan’s god-father, which in his mind now extended to Jessica. When he was asked to check up on what was going on, he started making some calls. Eventually he was able to put all the pieces together.
After getting off the phone he took a seat across from Janice and Anthony, “All right. I’ve talked to a friend of mine at the DA’s Office. What he told me is completely off the record, but James Roberts was murdered and they suspect that it was a mob hit.
This is what I was told. Jake Roberts went to a man named Vincent Campanelli for help in finding Jessica. Campanelli at the time was the leader of the 3rd largest mob organization in North America. His cousin was assigned to find Jessica, but he double crossed Vincent, killing him and taking control of the organization.
Since then, anyone loyal to his cousin has disappeared, and they are presumed dead. James Roberts and his cousin Brian Wilson, who is believed to be the one that made the introductions between Jake Roberts and Vincent, seem to be the latest victims.
“So you don’t think Jessica is in any danger?” Janice asked, concerned.
“I really don’t think so Janice. The only people that have been targeted are bad cops that were part of Vincent’s organization and people that were loyal to him.
“The police officers that visited you were just trying to throw you off so they could watch your reactions to their questions. It’s a common tactic. One officer plays good cop while the other plays bad cop, and all they saw was a protective mother.” Bill said.
“Are they still going to want to talk to Jessica?” Anthony asked his friend
“It’s possible that they will, Anthony.” Bill told him. “But it will be quick considering the child was in bed at the time of his death and they’re more concerned with arresting Rocco Campanelli.”
“If you want I could be there for the questioning, but I really don’t think you’ll need me. It might make them think that you have something to hide.”
“Thanks Bill, I guess we just needed some reassurances for our own peace of mind.” Anthony said, feeling a little better now.
“It’s not a problem Anthony, that’s what I’m here for.” Bill said, smiling.
Across town Sarah and Janet had just finished supper and were busy doing the dishes when they heard a knock at the door. Janet turned to her sister. “Are you expecting anyone?”
“Not until later, around 7pm,” Sarah said as she dried a dish
“I’ll be right back,” Janet said, leaving Sarah to continue doing the dishes.
A few minutes later Janet returned, followed by two officers. “Sarah, they want to talk to you.” Janet said, worried that her sister had done something stupid.
“Mrs. Roberts, could we have a few minutes of your time?” asked one of the officers.
Sarah finished drying the plate she was holding, then took a seat at the table. “So what is this all about?” asked Sarah, feeling uneasy.
“I’m Detective Walker and this is my partner, Detective Hernandez. We are here concerning your brother in-law, James Roberts.”
“What about him?” Sarah said, not really sounding that concerned.
“He was murdered.” Detective Walker said frowning.
“Good for him, it couldn’t have happened to a nicer guy.” Sarah said sarcastically.
“I take it that the two of you weren’t very close.” Detective Hernandez said with a smile.
“The bastard assaulted my daughter! Do you have any idea who killed him, I’d like to thank them.” Sarah said with a smile.
“We are still working on that but could you tell us where you were on Saturday night between 2 and 3 am?” Detective Walker asked.
“Let’s see, oh yes, I was sleeping.” Sarah said looking over at Janet.
“I can verify, she was here me, the two of us had watched a movie that ended around 2 am.” Janet said with a smile.
“Alright that is about it, by the way what movie did you watch?” asked Detective Walker.
“They had a Mel Gibson marathon on, I think they were playing Braveheart.” Janet said.
“I love that movie.” Detective Hernandez said. “Thanks for your time I believe we have all the information we need, have a good night.”
[-][+][-]
After the police had left, Janet angrily turned to her sister. “I can’t believe you made me lie for you! You killed him, didn’t you Sarah?”
“Yes I did, the bastard hurt my daughter and your niece, and he deserved it! She’s finally happy and he would have done everything in his power to make her suffer. I couldn’t have that.”
“Sarah, if the police find out, you’ll spend the rest of your life in jail.” Janet said, tearfully.
“It’s a small price to pay for my daughter. I was a terrible mother to Andrew and I’m not going to make the same mistakes with Jessica. If that means I spend the rest of my life behind bars to protect her, I will!” Sarah said, slamming her fist into the table.
“Let’s just hope that doesn’t happen, because I’ll be right behind you, Sarah. You just made me your accomplice.” Janet said sadly.
“I’m sorry Janet, the last thing I wanted to do was involve you.”
“Well it’s too late now, what’s done is done.” Janet said, frowning.
[-][+][-]
Shortly after Jennifer left for home, Megan and I went upstairs to her room. After living here for the last 3 months, I still couldn’t get over how many stuffed animals she had. When I looked at her room, it looked like any other teenage girls room, with the exception of mine.
The big difference between our rooms was, mine didn’t really show much of my personality, whereas Megan’s had pictures all over the place.
It was painted pink with white trim, and it looked like a girl’s room. Mine, on the other hand, looked like something that was just thrown together, which in a sense it was exactly that. As I looked at Megan’s room, I started coming up with ideas for my own. I was part of this family now and I was here to stay, so why not make the room my own?
Megan looked over at me. “What’s on your mind, Sis?”
“I was thinking how different your room is compared to mine. Do you think Mom and Dad would let me remodel it, Megan?”
“What do you have in mind, Jessica?” asked Megan.
“Maybe changing the color to something like yours and clear out all the music equipment, then get some matching furniture.”
“I doubt that they would mind, Dad can always setup the studio in the basement anyway. We can always have everyone over and have a painting party.” Megan said smiling
“That would be fun Megan! We could order pizza and pick up some munchies...”
“Mom and Dad should be home soon, we’ll bring it up to them and make plans.” Megan said happily.
[-][+][-]
I still had a lot of homework to catch up on, as did Megan. So I returned to my room and started digging through my assignments. I had an assignment that was still due. I had been putting it off because of the nature of the report. I was supposed to write a story based on my own life, but because most of my life was fiction, at least to everyone at school, I couldn’t seem to figure out what to say without telling everyone the truth about who I really was.
The first time that I saw it I said there was no way in hell was I going to write it, even if I used the edited version it would still bring up to many bad memories. The problem was did I really want to share that kind of pain with my classmates?
I would have to leave Andrew out of the equation, but abuse is abuse. It doesn’t really matter whether you’re male or female. There was a part of me that was afraid to share my story, but as I started writing everything down, something happened and I found that it started to write itself.
As I wrote, I talked about some of my earliest memories of what it was like, growing up with the emotional turmoil that ensued as a result of my father’s drinking, and then the physical abuse that eventually followed and what it was like once I moved in with the Tanners.
I gave an edited version of what really happened. I wanted to be as honest as possible and told the story about how lost that I had been, when I first moved in with the Tanner’s and how my life had changed since moving I moved in. It was already public knowledge when it came to the kidnapping, so I chose to be honest and told most of the details.
When I finely finished, I felt like a weight had been taken off my shoulders, but I was still unsure if I really wanted to pass it in. Most of the kids had normal live and didn’t really have the kind of childhood that I had experienced.
Most of the stuff that I had written, I was still dealing with, and it hurt to think about, but it was honest for the most part. The only thing missing was Andrew and his story would have to remain a secret. Some things are better left unsaid.
After I finished, I closed my binder. I had done enough homework for now, and I needed a drink. I made my way to the kitchen and opened the fridge. I reached inside to grab a can of root beer and almost knocked over Mom’s bottle of wine cooler.
I thought for a minute that it would be nice, I remembered my birth mother used to drink the same kind and every now and then I used to sneak a drink. I loved the taste of it. I didn’t really think much about it and opened the bottle and took a drink.
It still tasted good I thought to myself as I swallowed down a little more then put the cover back on and placed it back into the fridge and made my way into the living room and plopped down on the couch then switched on the Television, turning it to CMT and started watching the top 10 videos.
There were only a few new songs that had been released and only one of them I really liked I would eventually pull the song up on the internet and print out the tabs for it.
As I sat on the couch, I opened my can of root beer and took a drink and thought about what I really wanted to do. Should I turn in the report or not, in the end I decided to talk to mom about it before I decided on doing anything.
[-][+][-]
As I laid down on the couch watching the music videos, I found myself starting to drift off and had falling asleep and didn’t even hear mom and dad coming inside until the sound of the door closing woke me up.
I slowly opened my eyes and looked over, “Baby, your home.” Mom said smiling
“How was your weekend honey?” Dad asked as he hung up his jacket.
“Hi Mommy, Daddy, I had a great weekend, It was a lot of fun.” I said sitting up, making room on the couch for them to sit.
“Honey, your father and I have something that we need to talk to you about.” Mom said, joining me on the couch.
“If you are going to tell me about Uncle James, I already know.” I said frowning.
“How Jessica, we only just found out ourselves.” Daddy said surprised to find out I already knew
“Amy ended up having to work, the night Uncle James died. She told me before the camping trip.”
“I didn’t know. Are you all right?” Mom asked me.
“It was a shock but to be honest, Uncle James and I were never close. I guess if the two of us were, it would have bothered me. I just tried to put it behind me and had a good time camping, I never really gave him much thought at all.” I admitted sadly.
“Amy and I did spend some time talking about that and some other stuff though, and it did help.”
“It’s good that you have someone like her, everyone needs a friend like that.” Dad said with a smile.
“There was something that I wanted to talk to the both of you about though.” I said.
“What is it honey?” Mom asked.
“It’s about a school assignment I have to do for my life skills class. We’re supposed to write about ourselves and how we became the people that we are now.” I already wrote the report but I am not sure if I should pass it in or not.”
Dad looked over at me, “I can see your problem honey.”
“That’s just it; I don’t have a past like the other kids and I can’t really tell the truth.” I said with a frown.
“Maybe your father and I should read what you have written so far,” Mom suggested.
“All right,” I said and went to my room, returned and gave it to my mom to read.
[-][+][-]
Mom read it aloud so that Dad wouldn’t have to read it also and when she was finished she turned to me. “I think that it’s fine but are you sure that you want to pass it in?” Mom asked.
“No, I don’t really want to pass it in, but what other choice do I have? It’s the honest truth, I don’t have a normal childhood to write about.”
“Do you have to read it aloud Jessica?” Dad asked.
“Yes, we have to read it aloud to the class, otherwise it wouldn’t be a problem.” I said, frustrated.
“Maybe we can talk to your teacher and she can let you do another assignment to make up the grade.” Dad suggested. “They know about the kidnapping, we will just tell them it’s not healthy to have you relive that trauma, again. I am sure they will understand.”
“Do you really think so, Daddy?”
“I’ll call the school in the morning and talk to the principle. I can’t guarantee anything, Jessica and you should bring the report to school in case your teacher wants to read it.” He said.
“Thanks Daddy, I said and gave him a hug.
[-][+][-]
Later that night Megan and I talked to Mom and Dad about doing the remodel on my room. Both of them thought it was a good idea, and we started making arrangements. The rest of the night was spent watching movies together. It was nice to be home and able to spend time with my family. As much as I loved the weekend I had spent with Scotty and my friends, it was good to be home.
The end of part 10
To be continued in part 11
Jessica’s Journey
Sequel to Andrews Dilemma
By, Cain129
Part 11
Special Thanks to Wren Phoenix for the editing.
Synopsis: Jessica finally returns to school, and has to decide whether she should reveal her emotional issues. Kelly and John begin their undercover operation against Rocco.
Chapter 33
It was around 7:30 in the morning when my alarm went off. I slowly pulled myself into a sitting position, reached over and turned off the alarm. “God, I am so tired,” I said to myself, and tried to pull myself together. The dreams had returned. I had hoped that they were finally over, but I’d spent most of the night tossing and turning. I didn’t feel like I’d slept at all.
It was funny; I slept like a baby all weekend. I knew the missing component was Scotty. Being in his arms made me feel safe, but he wasn’t here right now.
There had to be something I could do about it, besides seeing a counsellor and attending meetings, I thought to myself as I climbed out of bed. I went to the bathroom and started running a bath.
I looked into the mirror, at least the swelling was gone and I looked normal again. I touched the area where all the swelling had been and it was still tender. I started thinking about that horrible day and felt the anger that I had been buried inside me. I wanted to make him pay for what he had done, but that was impossible now. He was gone and I was still here. I was the one who would have to deal with the aftermath.
[-][+][-]
After the bathtub was full, I climbed inside. The water was a little on the hot side, but not enough to stop me. I leaned back, submerged my head under the water and just lay there like that for a while. The water felt good against my skin. I thought about heading back to school. I knew there would be questions, high school was the kind of place where rumors started and were spread around quick.
The only good thing was that it doesn’t take long before someone else does something stupid and a new rumor gets started and what happened to me is forgotten. Thinking about school also started making me think about my assignment for my life skills class. As If I don’t have enough to worry about already.
Daddy said he would talk to my teacher, I just hoped that he work everything out. If not then I have 2 choices read it aloud or get an incomplete. Neither choice seemed very good I thought to myself and I slowly emerged from under the water.
[-][+][-]
After my bath, I finished getting ready for school. I was running a little late by the time I finally finished my makeup and hair. By the time I made it downstairs it was almost time to go, so I made my way into the kitchen. Mom and Megan had already finished their breakfast and Megan was just about ready to leave. I grabbed a couple of croissants off of the plate, that would have to do for now.
“Are you all right Jessica?” Mom asked looking concerned
“Yeah I’m just stressed, I barely slept last night. I really need an appointment with my shrink, Mommy. Can you call and arrange an appointment?”
“Why don’t you have something to eat Jessica? I’ll drop you girls off at school afterward’s.” She said, looking concerned.
“It’s alright Mom, to be honest I’m not really that hungry. I’ll just grab a bite at school later.”
“Are you sure Jessica? I really don’t mind.” Mom said, frowning.
“Yeah I’m sure, to be honest I don’t think I can eat that much anyway. I’m kind of nervous about school today but a drive would be nice.”
“What are you nervous about Jessica? One day’s no different than the rest.” Megan said frowning
“It’s not so much School that is bothering me, its Life Skills, our essays are due today.” I said hoping that Megan would understand.
“Damn Jessica, I never really thought, what are you going to do?” She asked.
“Honestly I don’t know Megan; it all depends on Mr. Dempsey, Daddy said he would call and talk to him but I guess that I will find out how it went soon enough.”
“You know Jessica it might be a good idea if you read it,” Megan suggested. “It might help someone.”
“I don’t know Megan, it is hard enough already, just trying to deal with everything that happened.”
“It’s up to you Sis, whatever you decide.” Megan said frowning
“Well girls, we better get going or you’re going to be late.” Mom said and smiled
[-][+][-]
We arrived at school 10 minutes late. Megan and I hurried to homeroom. It felt like ages since I was last in school, but it really hadn’t been that long though. I looked around, nothing had really changed, other than the signs up for homecoming king and queen.
In the past I wouldn’t have even noticed, I really wasn’t that high on the social order a year ago back then I was a social outcast and pretty much invisible to everyone with the exception of a few bullies who took offense to my continued existence.
To be honest though there were times that I missed the seclusion. At least I knew where I stood with people, being popular it’s hard to tell who your real friends are.
Chapter 34
It was around 9am when Kelly arrived at the safe house that her father had setup for her and John to work out of. Inside was everything that the two of them would need, though the house was really run down and located in one of the worst areas of town. Mason had chosen it for just this reason. John was to play an abusive, out of work alcoholic father, so it made sense that their living conditions were extremely poor.
At the moment Kelly had the place to herself, the first place she checked was the bedroom of the one bedroom apartment. Inside were a single bed and a dresser. Kelly opened one of the dresser drawers and found that a supply of clothing was ready for use; then she checked the closet, there were more clothing inside.
Most of the stuff looked like it had been bought at the Salvation Army, or some other place that dealt in used clothing, Kelly thought to herself. Her father had really been busy.
Kelly decided that she should get into character and closed the door. She changed into something more appropriate and a few minutes later came out dressed in her new clothing. She now looked more like a teenage girl then a grown woman.
[-][+][-]
She then went over to the computer that Mason had left for their use and logged in. Once she was online, she pulled up the OPP website and started pulling up information about Rocco and his organization. There was a long list of people that had worked for the organization, but beside a good percentage was the words deceased.
The biggest problem was determining which names were actually members of Rocco new regime, and which ones were being targeted. There were too many names on the list, and the only ones that definitely weren’t part of Rocco’s regime were dead.
Then there was another problem. Since Rocco had taken over, not one of the names on the list had been arrested for anything. Which leaves one question, how does a crime family like Rocco’s not have any of its members being arrested? Before Rocco took over, there were plenty of arrests, mostly for relatively minor crimes like selling drugs or prostitution.
Kelly thought to herself, “What’s Rocco up to?”
A half hour passed as Kelly settled into what would be her new home, at least for the time being. She was about to put on a pot of coffee, when she heard the door to the apartment opening. She reached into her purse to retrieve her weapon. The area she was living in was known to be a high crime zone, so she was a little on guard. As the door opened, she saw that it was John, but he wasn’t the man that she’d met the other day with her father.
This man looked like he hadn’t shaved in days, which really made her wonder if it was real or fake. His clothes were dirty, and had what looked like cigarettes burns all over. The smell that came off of him made her think that they had been washed in a case of beer. Something told Kelly that he took his job way to seriously.
“Good morning,” he said with a smile and closed the door behind him.
“It wouldn’t have been if I hadn’t recognized you, John.” Kelly said putting her gun away. “Dammit John, you really stink! Aren’t you taking things a little too far?” Kelly asked as she went over and opened a window.
“Not really Kelly the key to uncover work is believability. If I go out looking and smelling like this, people will believe what they see. It will also make them less suspicious of you.” John said grinning.
“So when do we make our move?” Kelly asked John.
“First we need to establish your cover, Kelly.”
“And how are we supposed to do that?”
“First we need to be seen together, and I need to put on a show for Adrian.”
John looked at his watch. “If your father’s information is correct Adrian should be at The Coffee house. If we leave now, there’s a good chance that we can catch him,” John said, and handed Kelly the car keys.
“You want me to drive, John?” Kelly asked, frowning.
“Yeah, if we get pulled over, they’re going to hit me with a sobriety test, though it might be fun, seeing the look on their faces when the breathalyzer shows as normal.” John said laughing.
”I would love to see that, but you’re right, the last thing we need is to be delayed, no matter how funny it would be.” Kelly said, giggling.
[-][+][-]
The morning seemed to be going by at a snail’s pace, I was hoping that I could’ve seen Scotty before class, but I was running late. My first class was American history, which really didn’t make much sense at all considering I’m Canadian and can’t really see myself needing to know that James Madison was the 4th President of the United States, but that’s what you get when your school buys their books wholesale from a company in the United States.
Math class turned out to be a little more exciting. Scotty was there, and it brought back wonderful memories of our weekend away. Unfortunately, I didn’t hear a word that the teacher said for most of the class. I guess things could have been worse, the teacher could have called me up to do a math equation.
I did have a chance to catch up with a few of my friends in-between classes. Most had heard what had happened at my dad’s funeral. They were concerned with how I was doing, but didn’t really push very hard for answers. I was grateful; I really didn’t want to go there, at least not at the moment anyway.
My next class at least was something that I enjoyed. Even as a boy it was one of my favorite subjects. Our Science teacher, Mr. Adams, always seemed to find a way to make it fun, and he seemed to take an interest in every one of his students. This was the first time that I had seen him since my return. It had been a couple of weeks since my last class with him, and as I entered the class room he came over.
“Hey kiddo, how are you doing?” He asked with a smile.
“I’m doing better, it’s just nice to be back.”
“It nice to have you back Jessica. See me after class, and I’ll give you a few assignments so you can make up the time you missed.”
“Alright Mr. Adams,” I said, then took my seat.
[-][+][-]
A few minutes later Britney and Natasha came into the class room and before I knew what was happening, the two of them came running over to me. “Jessica you’re back!” Both of them squealed and started hugging me.
I had to admit that I had missed both of them equally, as I found myself returning their hugs. “God, it’s nice to see both of you,” I said with a big smile.
“How are you doing, you look great.” Natasha said, excitedly.
“Yeah, you do, I thought you would still be all beat up,” Britney said with a smile.
“I’m doing well and I guess I’m a fast healer. So how have you guys been?”
“We’re doing good! Have you noticed that both of us have been nominated for homecoming queen?” Natasha said with a smile
“Sorry, I haven’t really had a chance to catch up on all the news yet. This does present a problem, which one of my friends do I vote for?” I said, frowning. “Mmm…I guess I won’t be voting for either of you.”
“It’s alright, we’re both big girls, we can handle it.” Natasha said then winked.
I started giggling, “Nice try Natasha.”
Our conversation was cut short, as Mr. Adam started handing out assignments.
Chapter 35
After Kelly and John arrived at The Coffee House, they made their way inside, well at least Kelly did, John on the other hand was busy staggering around and tripping over his own feet. We barely made it inside the door before he fell over and hit the floor.
“Daddy, are you alright?” I said, starting to feel embarrassed from the looks that people were giving us.
“Yes, now stop standing there looking stupid, and help me up.” He said sounding really bitter.
Kelly reached down and tried to help him up, but he barely moved. It was like dead weight.
“Dammit girl, can’t you do anything right?” He said, angrily.
“Sorry Daddy, I’m trying.” Kelly sadly said.
“You’re fucking useless Tessa, I shouldn’t have to put up with your shit! Now get me a fucking coffee.” He said, loud enough for everyone to hear.
“Yes daddy,” I said and started to walking towards the counter, just as the manager arrived.
“I am afraid I have to ask you to leave.” The manager said to my father.
“I’ll leave once I’ve got my coffee.” John said, sounding angry.
“No, you’ll leave now, before I call the police.” The manager said firmly.
“By the time the police get here, you’ll need an ambulance.” John said in anger.
“Daddy please, it’s not worth spending another day in jail. I’ll get your coffee, just wait outside.”
‘God damn, freaking-” John mumbled as he turn around and staggered out the door.
The manager turned to me. “Is your father always like that?”
“No, this is one of his good days. Most of the time I have to bail him out.” I admitted sadly.
“I feel for you,” the manager said. He turned to the lady behind the counter. “It’s on the house,” he told her, than went back to his office.
After the lady handed me the coffee, I made my way out of the coffee shop. I noticed that in the corner of the shop, Adrian was sitting with a woman that looked to be in her 40’s. As I left, our eyes locked on one another for just a few seconds and I am sure that he could see the sadness that I was portraying within my teary eyes.
As the two of us walked off John was cursing and swearing, until the two of us drove off and I thought to myself, what have I gotten myself into?
[-][+][-]
Meanwhile downtown at city hall, Robert Zemeckis is holding a press conference announcing that he will be running for the Mayor.
“Hello everyone, my name is Robert Zemeckis, and I am announcing my intent to run for Mayor. My record speaks for itself I have been working for the last 15 years on behalf of the people who elected me and feel that I can better serve them as the new mayor.”
“My name is Steve Palmer with the Ottawa Sun,” a reporter called out. “We recieved a package from an unknown source that states that you were receiving bribes from Vincent Campanelli. Within the package was a video tape that will be released later today. On the tape is evidence that show shows you having sex with minors. Do you have any comment Mr. Zemeckis?”
Robert Zemeckis turned white. He started sweating so badly that it was running down his face and starting to soak his collar. He realized that his life was over, and he would serve multiple sentences. It was at that moment that there were loud gunshots that seemed to come from multiple locations, and a bullet hit Robert Zemeckis in the head, killing him instantly.
The gunshots caused everyone to run for cover but there was only one target, and the shooter was already making a run for it.
A few minutes later, as Rocco is sitting in his office, his phone went off. He looked at the number, then answered it. “Tell me you have good news.” Rocco said.
“It’s taken care of, nothing will lead them back to us.” Adrian said.
“Are we ready to go after Josh Richards?” Rocco asked.
“Everything is in place, all I have to do is give the signal.”
“Good, don’t make a move until you have Richards in your sights. I want that bastard dead and buried.” Rocco said loudly, and then ended the call.
[-][+][-]
It was finally lunch time at school, so Natasha, Britney and I made our way to the cafeteria. It had been awhile since I had been there, but found my seat right next to Scotty, who met me with a kiss.
Megan and Jennifer were the next to show, followed by Brian and Glen who were happy to see that I’d finally returned. I was met with lots of hugs. Steve showed up a little later and joined us, as did a few others.
I was happy, now that I had a chance to see all my friends. It’s funny, Andrew had no real friends to speak of, and almost 4 months later here I am as a girl surrounded by friends. Deep down I couldn’t have changed that much.
Why was Andrew such a loner and Jessica a social butterfly? All I know is I am happy that things had changed but sometimes I wonder why I had such a hard time connecting to other people when I was living as a boy.
“How was your morning, honey?” Scotty asked as he slipped his arm around me.
“It’s going alright; it’s nice to be back, though I have a lot of homework to catch up on.”
“You’re welcome to borrow my notes, if that will help.” Natasha said.
“You can use mine too, we’re in a few of the same classes. I will get them for you after cheerleading practice.” Britney said with a smile.
“Same here, Jessica.” Natasha said then took a bite of her sandwich
”Thanks guys, that will help a lot.” I said smiling. I turned to Scotty, “Scotty, can you give me a drive home after cheerleading practice?”
“Sure honey, I have football practice anyway. Just meet me out front. I have to work later, so I am going to hit the showers and get changed first.” Scotty said as he patted my behind.
[-][+][-]
After lunch everyone headed off to whatever classes they were assigned. Jennifer, Britney and I had the next class together. Unfortunately it was our Life Skills class, and the closer that I got to the classroom, the more anxious I became.
“What’s wrong, Jessica?” Jennifer asked. She was able to read me like a book.
“I am just nervous, I don’t really want to do this report.” I said, frowning.
“It’s not going to be that bad,” Britney said, trying to be supportive.
“Jessica has been through a lot lately Britney, and most of it is painful. She shouldn’t have to do this essay, it would be like reliving a nightmare all over again.” Jennifer said sadly.
“Sorry Jessica, I wasn’t thinking. Sometimes you don’t really think other people have had it harder then you have.” Britney said, then reached over and gave me a hug.
[-][+][-]
After arriving in our classroom, my teacher came over and pulled me aside. “I had a call from your father this morning concerning the essay that was assigned. Did you bring it with you?”
“Yeah, I have it here Mr. Dempsey.” I said, and then handed it to him.
“Jessica, your father told me about everything that had happened and I am sorry that you went through all that. From everything your father told me, I think that it would be good for the other students to hear your story. I’m not going to force you to read it Jessica, but is holding everything inside really doing you any good?” Mr. Dempsey asked.
I thought about what he had to say. Yes, I was scared, what would the others think of me? Would they treat me differently then they do now? I looked at Mr. Dempsey, unsure if I was doing the right thing or not. Finally I made my decision. “I’ll do it, Mr. Dempsey.”
“I’m proud of you, Jessica. I know this is not going to be easy for you, but people need to hear what you have to say. I will be choosing you to read first, take as long as you need. Anyone we don’t get to today, we’ll get to tomorrow.”
[-][+][-]
After class started and everyone was seated, Mr. Dempsey stood up and stood in front of his desk facing the class. “First of all, I would thank everyone for taking the time to do your assignment. For most of you it was pretty easy to write, but not for one of our students. Because of her past and recent events that have been taking place in her life, I gave her the choice and she chose to share her story with all of us. Jessica, would you mind coming up?” Mr. Dempsey asked.
“Thanks, Mr. Dempsey.” I said, then stood up and made my way to the front of the class room.
“This is not going to be easy for me, so please be patient with me.” I said, nervously.
“What makes this essay hard was that I never really had a normal childhood. I came from an abusive home, and experienced mental and physical abuse from both of my parents.”
[-][+][-]
“I can’t really explain all the reasons behind the abuse, but let’s just say I wasn’t the child that my father wanted. He wanted a boy that could be everything that he wasn’t, and instead he ended up with a daughter that he didn’t understand, nor want.
At first things were not bad, the three of us were a family. My father at least tried to make an effort, and there were some good times. Like every little girl, I loved my Daddy, but over time he stared to change. At the time I was too young to understand exactly what was happening.
My father was in the early stages of alcoholism, and at first the abuse was only mental. When he would drink, you never knew back then what kind of mood he was going to be in. One minute he was happy and really loving towards me, and then few minutes later his mood would change, and he became very hateful and verbally abusive toward me or my mother.
As his drinking became worse, his mood changed more, and he became more abusive towards me. He used to call me useless and good for nothing, and on more than one occasion said that that he wished that I was never born.
During this time felt completely alone and had nobody to turn to. I tried talking to my mother, but she had her own problems and wouldn’t stand up to my father. I used to hate both of them for the way that they treated me, and as the days went on I felt more and more alone.
Before long my father took the abuse to the next level, and the beatings started. He used to say that it was for my own good, and I deserved it. Part of me started to believe that he was right. I tried my best to make him happy, all I wanted was for him to love me again, but the more I tried the worse things became. At that time I had no friends, and to be honest even if I did, it wouldn’t have been safe to take them home, Dad’s moods could turn violent within a matter of minutes.
I remember thinking about ending my life more than once. I was just so tired and wanted to be at peace. Those thoughts followed me for years, until one day I tried to take my own life. I just couldn’t handle the pain anymore. Needless to say I was found, and I ended up in the hospital. Because of all the bruises the doctor found, the police were brought in and charges were laid against both of my parents.
After being released from the hospital, I went to live with Megan and her parents, who later adopted me. During this time my father disappeared. He eventually reappeared and that was when I was kidnapped. He thought that he could scare me into telling the police that the abuse never happened. In the end he chose to fight it out with the police and he was shot. He died in my arms.
My family still blames me for his death, except for my birth mother. As a result of everything that happened, she is in treatment and seems to be doing better. I eventually came to forgive her but I will never be able to forget what happened, and I don’t see a mother and daughter relationship anytime in the future between the two of us.
Anyway, that’s my story. I have no idea if telling my story helped anyone, but I was scared to death to open up and share it. I think it did me some good to finally get it out in the open.”
[-][+][-]
After I finished, everyone start clapping. Many of my classmates came over and hugged me and also thanked me. The rest of the class went by quickly and a few asked me questions but nothing that I couldn’t answer, even though reading the essay had left me emotionally drained. The rest of the day kind of went by in a haze of activity.
The End of Part 11
To be continued in part 12
Jessica’s Journey
Sequel to Andrews Dilemma
By, Cain129
Part 12
Special Thanks to Wren Phoenix for the editing.
Synopsis: Jessica had been stressed out for the last couple of days, mostly over a project that she needed to do for school called, “Who am I?” In the end, Megan and her teacher talked her into reading her essay aloud. It had been a hard thing for her to do and left her feeling emotionally drained. Surprisingly, it made her feel better, even though she’d kept her previous life as Andrew out of the report and wrote it from Jessica’s point of view.
After my life skills class I found myself emotionally exhausted, and the rest of the period went by in a haze. I was approached by many of the kids in my class that I’d never really had a chance to know. Britney and Megan could see that I was getting pretty close to breaking down, and they started running interference for me. Mr. Dempsey wrote a note for the three of us, so that we wouldn’t get into any trouble for being late for next class.
“You did really well Jessica, I know that it was hard, but I think you should be proud of yourself. It’s not easy talking to others about yourself, and it’s even harder for someone like yourself, when you’ve spent most of your life holding everything inside.” Mr. Dempsey said with a smile.
“Thanks Mr. Dempsey, I think that I will be alright now.” I said then stood up and the three of us made our way out of the classroom.
As we started walking to our Social Studies class, Britney turned to me. “I never knew that things were that bad Jessica. I just assumed you had always been this way,” she said, frowning.
“I had lots of help once I moved in with the Tanners. The only people that knew the whole truth were my new family, Jennifer and Scotty.
Most of the friends that I have now are because of Megan and Jennifer. They introduced me, but I still had to do the work.” I said, smiling.
Megan looked over at Britney. “I guess we just assume that people are all the same. I never gave it a second thought about what it would be like for Jessica, and I knew what she had been though more than anyone,” she admitted with sadness.
“It’s alright, Megan. That was then, and this is now. I prefer the life I have now,” I said as the three of us reached our next class. Once inside, I passed Mrs. Jones the note that Mr. Dempsey had written, and the three of us took our seats.
[-][+][-]
Time seemed to fly by and classes were done for the day. Britney, Jennifer and I had cheerleading practice together and we made the walk together. Along the way, the three of us kept running into some of our classmates that were in our life skills class. Some of them were kids I’d never really talked to, not because I was stuck up or anything like that.
School was setup into little cliques of people that were considered cool, norms, nerds and finally the outcasts, which was the category that Andrew had best fit. These groups barely bothered with one another unless there was really no choice in the matter. Because of the group I hung out with I would imagine that some people were scared to get close. The people that I hung out with were good people, but there were others that fell into this category that weren’t. The last thing anyone wants is to become a target, but here I was and these people started crossing the invisible lines to thank me.
[-][+][-]
Adrian had arrived at the warehouse, and made his way to his Second lieutenant.
“Are we ready?” Adrian asked as he ducked down out of sight.
“Just about, we’re still waiting for Josh Richards to arrive, but everyone is in place.”
“Have you sent anyone over to see if the kids are in the warehouse?” Adrian asked, frowning.
“The kids are there, and I have a team waiting to extract them once they get the signal.”
“Good, I want to make our move as soon as Richards arrives. Just make sure when we take him out that none of the kids are present.” Adrian ordered.
“Don’t worry, I have a sniper waiting. Once Richards is in his sights , he’s a dead man.”
“Make sure the cleaning crew is ready. It has to look like it was done by rivals.” Adrian said firmly.
“Don’t worry Adrian; there will be nothing to lead them back to us.”
“Good. I’ll leave things in your capable hands. Call me once it’s done.” Adrian said, and made his way back to his car.
[-][+][-]
Half an hour later, a car pulled up in front of the warehouse. A man exits and makes his way to the front of the building, He walks towards the front door and reaches to unlock it. Just as he unlocks the door, a bullet hits him in the back of the head, causing blood to splatter everywhere.
At that moment the signal is giving and the power to the building is cut, making it almost impossible for those inside to see.
Rocco’s men begin making their way into the building wearing night vision goggles and start taking out everyone that they find inside the building.
At the same time a team is sent inside to free the kids and then moves them to three vans that were waiting outside. Once the kids were safely inside they drove off to the safe house that Rocco had arranged.
[-][+][-]
A few minutes later Adrian receives a call and hits the answer button, “Hello, how did it go?”
“Everything went as planned. We only had one person injured, and the cleanup crew is already inside doing a sweep for cameras, but so far we’ve found nothing.”
“Alright, I’ll inform Rocco, and good work.” Adrian said, ending the call.
[-][+][-]
A few minutes later, Rocco was sitting in the office watching the news channel. They had been playing the footage of the dirty Politian most of the day. Nobody had any leads to who had killed Robert Zemeckis.
The police were busy because all the witnesses heard shots coming from different directions. Rocco smiled to himself. Maybe this is going to work, he thought to himself, as his phone started ringing. He reached over and saw that it was Adrian calling, so he hit the answer button.
“Hello Adrian, how did it go?” Rocco asked.
“Just like we planned. We did have a minor injury, but he’s being patched up as we speak, and the cleanup crew is already at work.” Adrian said.
“What about the kids?” Rocco asked with concern.
“The kids are on their way to the safe house. As to their condition, God knows. They could have been with those perverts for weeks, maybe longer.” Adrian said sadly.
“I need you to do me a favor, Adrian.” Rocco said to his friend.
“Anything for you boss.” Adrian said
“I need you to recruit some doctors to help these kids.” Rocco said.
“Alright Rocco, I’ll see what I can do and get back to you.”
“Adrian, I don’t know how much time we have to get everything done. We’re going to have to start working faster. I need everyone on that list taken care of, and I want it done within the next couple of months.” Rocco said. He sounded worried.
“I’ll see to it personally, Rocco. You should get some rest, when was the last time you had a decent night’s sleep?” Adrian said, sounding concerned for his friend.
“It’s been awhile, but once this is done, I’ll have plenty of time to sleep,” Rocco said. He ended the call, then walked over to the bar and poured himself a drink.
[-][+][-]
Kelly and John had just arrived at their apartment. Kelly figured that there was no reason for John to still be in character, but he was still staggering around and mumbling obscenities, at least until the two of them were safely inside their apartment and the door was locked behind them. Once safely inside, John started acting normal.
“God, I could use a drink right now,” he said and smiled.
Kelly on the other hand broke down into a fit of giggles,
“I think that you’ve had way too much to drink already John! I still can’t believe the look on the manager’s face when you said he would need an ambulance. I was sure you were going to take a swing at him.”
“I thought about it, though I would have missed, but I didn’t want to risk getting arrested, at least not yet. Once your father has everything in place and we know that our people are there to make the arrest, then it will be time for something like that.” John opened the fridge and grabbed a beer, “Relax Kelly, we’re done for the day.”
“You might be done, but I have a meeting tonight.” Kelly grabbed a coke out of the fridge and plopped down on the couch next to John.
“Alright Kiddo, what’s your plan?” John asked.
“I was just thinking of showing up and maybe talking to a few people,” she said.
“That’ll work, but I think we make it a little more believable.” John said, then took a drink of his beer.
“What do you have in mind?” Kelly asked, almost afraid of the answer
“The women at that meeting are abuse survivors, Kelly. If you’re going to win their trust, you need to look the part. Unfortunately, most of them know all the little tricks to use when hiding abuse. If you really want to get into their heads, then you need to not only look the part, but mentally become the person you are portraying.
This isn’t going to be easy, Kelly. I can make you look the part, but what you need to do is find whatever is most painful in your life, then find a way to use that pain to your advantage. If you can do that, then you won’t have any problems making people see whatever you want them to believe.” John said sadly.
“You know that both of my parents were murdered John?” Kelly said, as her tears started forming.
“Yes Hon, I know. Your father told me. I know this is going to be hard, but if you can tap into those memories you shouldn’t have a problem. Find someone to model yourself after, just remember the person that you choose should be about the same age.” John said frowning.
“What about School, is everything ready?” Kelly asked, then took a drink of her coke.
“Yeah, all you have to do is show up at the office, and they should have your class load ready.” John said as he put his feet up on the coffee table.
Kelly just shook her head, “I feel sorry for Beth, did you ever warn the poor woman what she was getting into when you married her?”
“Beth is one in a million. How I ended up with a woman like her, I really have no idea.” John said, smiling.
“Maybe the poor woman is just a glutton for punishment.” Kelly said giggling
It was my first day back, it didn’t take me long to realized that I was completely lost, all the other girls were practicing their different routines and the only thing I was able to do with the others girls was Aerobics and discovered I could actually do it provided I on every move but unlike the others I was a complete amateur. Which made me think why was I even here. It wasn’t like I was going to be of any use to the team at least this year anyway.
When I agreed to join cheerleading there was at least a chance of me to join my friends on the field but too much time had passed now.
“Mrs. Jennings, can I talk to you for a minute?” Jessica said taking a seat next to her.
“Sure Jessica, what’s on your mind?”
“When I joined the team there was a chance I was going to be able to cheer with my friends, but I think we both know it’s already too late in the year for me to be of any use.” I said sadly.
“I’m not going to lie to you Jessica, you’re right. I really can’t see you spending much time on the field at least not this year.”
“At the moment I think that there are other things that I need to be doing a lot has happened and to be honest, I feel that I should be spending more time working on myself then cheerlead but I would like to try out again next year if would have me though.”
“I understand Jessica and we would love to have you back next year.” Mrs. Jennings said sadly
[-][+][-]
I could have stayed till the end of practice but didn’t really feel like staying and made my way back to the dressing room and had a quick shower and got dressed, part of me felt like I was letting everyone down but I knew deep down I need more than cheerleading could give me.
As I was walking towards the exit I noticed that the boys and girls club had posted a flyer on the schools bulletin board. They were going to be offering an introductory course in self-defence techniques. I thought to myself, what good is an introduction, when what I needed was the whole freaking course.
I had never been there before but decided that I wasn’t that far a walk and sent Scotty a text message letting him know that he could pick me up there after his practice was over.
It wasn’t a long walk to the boys and girls club, so I just took my time. I finally found the building and made my way inside. I looked around, and there were kids of all ages playing and hanging out. I walked over to the reception desk. There was no one there, but a sign indicated a small bell, and it said to ring for assistance. I thought it was doubtful that anyone could hear it over the all the noise.
After looking around, I found the gym. I looked inside the window, and there was no one there except an older man who looked to be around 50 years old. When I walked through the doors and looked around, he turned and saw me.
“Sorry classes are cancelled for today, you are the only one who showed up.” He seemed frustrated.
I looked over at him. “That’s all right, I doubt it would have helped anyway.” I sadly said as I started to turn around and leave.
“Are you alright?” the man asked me, looking concerned.
“Not really, I have every reason in the world that I should be happy, but I’m not. I feel like everything is going to fall apart, and nothing makes any sense.” I said sadly
The man came closer and looked me in the eyes. The older Japanese man looked to be in pretty good shape. He looked closely at my face.
“Who did that to you?” He asked, referring to the light bruising I still had on my face, which I had thought wasn’t all the visible anymore.
I looked at him. “It’s not important anymore, he’s dead now.”
He took a seat on the bleacher. “My name is Lu Chong. What are you hoping to get out of this course?”
“It’s nice to meet you Mr. Shu, I’m Jessica. To be honest, sir, I’m not sure. I guess that I just wanted to feel better.” I said.
“I don’t think this will help you, child. You’re full of anger, and have the look of a caged animal. All the training in the world isn’t going to help you feel better about yourself, until you find a way to deal with the anger that you carry inside of you.”
“You’re right. I’m angry, but I’m trying to work through all the abuse. I don’t know, I guess I’m tired of being afraid all the time, and needing other people to protect me.” I was very frustrated. I barely understood it myself, but I did my best to explain it to him.
He looked at me, “If I took you on as a student, Jessica, will you do as you’re told without questioning my methods?”
“Yes Mr. Lu Chong, I promise.”
“I will warn you now, it won’t be easy, and there will be times you’ll feel like walking away.”
“How much will this cost me?” I asked him.
“This is not about money, child. You can pay me by helping out at the dojo. I will expect you there every day after school; if you can’t make it, you will call and let me know.” He said firmly.
“There will be some days that I will be unable to make it, I am still under a doctor’s care and can’t miss those sessions, but I will let you know when I am unable to make it.”
[-][+][-]
Mr. Lu Chong and I talked for another 10 minutes, and after getting his address and phone number, the two of us went our separate ways. I was going to be having my first class with him on Wednesday. I really wasn’t sure what the training would involve, but I had a good feeling about it, and I knew that I would know soon enough.
I spent the next half hour exploring all the services the club offered, and noticed that they even had a weekly jam session for anyone that was interest in just getting together and playing music, it was held on Thursday nights at 7 pm. I thought it might be fun to check out, maybe it would be something Scotty would be interested in too.
I headed outside to wait for Scotty. As I waited, I started getting a bunch of text message from Britney, Natasha, Jennifer and Megan. All of them wanted to know why I left and where I was. I just sent a group reply explaining what Mrs. Jennings and I discussed and that I decided that there were other things that were more important to me at the moment.
I felt bad for leaving but sometimes you have to follow your heart and mine was telling me that I needed more than cheerleading could provide. I would miss the trips together and all, but something told me I now had other things to occupy my time.
I waited for about 15 minutes before Scotty arrived. “Why did you leave?” He asked. “Is everything alright?”
“Yeah, I’m alright now. I had to read my essay in life skills today, and it kind of opened a few doors that I wasn’t ready to deal with.” I explained to him.
“Is that why you quit cheerleading?” Scotty asked, concerned.
“That’s part of the reason, but the truth is, there really isn’t a place for me on the team right now. There will be next year, but there’s really no reason for me to be there at the moment, and I don’t feel like sitting on the sidelines for the rest of the year. I can see you play just as well from the bleachers.”
“You should have stayed Jessica, you didn’t even give it a chance.” Scotty said sadly.
“Scotty it’s not what I want. I know that you’re disappointed, but I have to follow my heart.”
“It’s just, all the things we could have done together, Jessica. The team is getting ready to go to the finals, and I was counting on you being there.” Scotty said sadly
“I’m sorry Scotty. I love you, but I have to think about myself right now. If you can’t respect that, then maybe the two of us should take a break.”
“Jessica I don’t understand, why are you acting like this? Did I do something to hurt you?”
“Scotty, this has nothing to do with you. It’s me, and the person that I want to become. I need to stand on my own two feet, and until now I’ve had everyone protecting me.”
“I have stood by you through everything, and you say we should take a break? We’re not taking a break. I have to get to work, but the two of us are not done talking about this, Jessica.” Scotty said angrily.
“I love you, Scotty. I know you’ve been there for me, but right now we’re both moving in different directions, and I can’t be that person anymore. All of my life I’ve done what everyone expected of me, my birth parents, the Tanner’s and my friends. “
“In all that time, I put everyone else’s needs ahead of my own, because that was the only way I knew to make people love me. The only real thing that I ever did for my own needs was trying to take my own life and that was because I couldn’t keep living like that anymore. “
“Believe me, I don’t want to lose you, but if that’s what it takes for me to move forward, then so be it.” I said, and I climbed out of his car and started walking away.
“Jessica come back, don’t leave like this.” Scotty said as I ran off, crying.
End of part 12
To be continued in part 13
Jessica’s Journey
Sequel to Andrews Dilemma
By, Cain129
Part 13
Synopsis: After reading her essay, Jessica felt emotionally exhausted, reading it had been helpful to a small extent but had also opened old wounds. It forced her to re-evaluate her life and the direction that it was headed. All of her life, she had put everyone’s happiness before her own and it had almost cost her her life. She no longer had that luxury. She needed to find a way to stand on her own two feet. She just didn’t want to be afraid anymore, but in doing so, she might have lost the man that she loved.
Those words coming from Scotty hurt worse than anything I had ever experienced before. I thought that he loved me, was I just being stupid? I was unable to stop crying, so with shaking hands I reached into my purse and found my cellphone. I called home, but there was no answer. As I started walking, I thought nothing could make this day worse. Not even a few minutes later, it started pouring down. Within minutes I was completely soaked.
God Dammit, I said to myself as I continued walking. Luckily I wasn’t very far from home, but the distance really didn’t matter anymore, considering I was already soaked to the bone. As I walked home, my emotions were running wild. If it hadn’t been for the rain, I’m sure that everyone could have seen that I‘d been crying most of the walk home.
I didn’t want to end things with Scotty. I knew that I had to stand firm, it was the only way for me to really find myself. My life wasn’t all that bad. I had everything a girl would want, except the one thing that matter most: self-respect. I’d been beaten so badly over the years, and the emotional scars were sitting just under the surface, waiting for a chance to push me over that invisible line. If that happened I knew that there might be no more second chances.
I used to think that being a girl would solve all of my problems, and I would finally be happy, but that wasn’t the case. Sure, my mind and body finally matched, and I felt like a real human being. Still, no matter how hard I tried to bury the pain, it found ways to make it back up to the surface.
I couldn’t even get a decent night’s sleep without Scotty at my side and the nightmare just kept coming back. In them I was helpless and always the victim and could do nothing to fight back.
When I would finely wake up I was soaking wet from sweat, I just wanted to have a decent night’s sleep without depending on others to make me feel protect. I should never have done that report, that was just another thing I did to please others and once again it was at my own expense.
I felt like the preverbal bug lying on the ground just waiting for someone to come along and stomped on me. Once again I listened to Jennifer and my teacher and caved in knowing full well that reading it would end up rehashing old wounds.
Why couldn’t I have just said no, instead of caving it once again! I put others needs ahead of my own, now look at me I am an emotional basketcase.
I really wasn’t in a good place emotionally and didn’t really know what I wanted to do, was I even strong enough to deal with all the pain I had inside me, I knew that either way I would soon find out. I knew one thing though if I was going to heal it meant that I would have to do things I didn’t really want to do.
[-][+][-]
By the time I arrived home, I was a complete mess and to made matters worse, I couldn’t stop shaking. As I tried to get my keys out of my purse and open the door, I kept dropping them and I could feel the anger building up inside me once again.
Eventually I managed to get the key inside of the lock and opened the door. At the moment I was the only one home, and I headed straight to my room. I started undressing quickly, my clothes were soaked right down to my bra and panties.
After I dried off and changed into some warm clothes, I headed to the kitchen to grab a can of coke. I opened the door and saw Mom’s wine cooler in the fridge. I said fuck it, and poured myself a glass and also grabbed a can of coke, then headed back to my room closing and locking the door behind me.
I just wanted to stop feeling anything, at least for a while I thought, as I opened my bottle of nerve pills and downed 2 of them with the wine cooler. I went over and lay down on my bed, so angry at myself and everyone else. I wondered if this was how my birth mother felt, as I downed the wine cooler.
It didn’t take long before the results of mixing my pills with the wine took effect, and I started to calm down. Before long I was in a deep sleep.
[-][+][-]
After he arrived at work, Scotty felt terrible. He had never really been in love before. Everything was perfect between the two of them just a few days ago. He just couldn’t understand what was going on, and why she would want to walk away from what the two of them shared.
None of it made any sense at all. Sure, a lot had happened in the past few months to her, but she was dealing with it, wasn’t she? Scotty didn’t know what to think anymore. What scared him the most was if he gave her the space she needed, would she still want him?
Maybe he was being a jerk, but he didn’t want to risk losing her to someone else, he just wondered why things had to change.
“Scotty, get your head out of your ass and get back to work!” His manager, Mike, told him. He noticed that something wasn’t right with Scotty.
“Sorry Mike,” Scotty said, and he grabbed a broom and started sweeping.
“Let me guess, woman troubles?” Mike said with a smile.
“Lots of trouble, but yeah, women are on the top of the list,” Scotty said sadly.
“Mike, has a woman ever said she wants to take a break with you?” Scotty said, frowning.
“Nope, but usually if they do it’s a bad sign,” Mike said looking over at Scotty.
“That’s what I’ve been thinking. My girlfriend has been though a lot lately, and today she says that she needs space to work through things. When I disagreed, she said we should take a break. Women, I can’t figure them out.” Scotty said in frustration.
“Welcome to the real world Scotty. Let me tell you something, as far as women go, you’ll never understand, they’re devious creatures.” Mike said with a smile.
“Give her some space, let her think things out, then call her Scotty. Just don’t wait too long, otherwise someone else is likely to make a move first.” Mike said with a smile, “Now get back to work, ya lazy good for nothin’,” he said, laughing.
[-][+][-]
Meanwhile back at the Tanner’s, Jessica is awakened by banging on her door. “Dammit, what?” she screamed at the door.
“Jessica it’s me, can I come in?” Megan asked, sounding worried.
“No, I want to be alone,” I said sadly.
“Please Jessica, let me inside. I’m worried about you.” Megan said, with worry in her voice.
“Alright,” I said, and went over and unlocked the door. “There, it’s open.” I said and returned to my bed.
Megan came inside and took a seat on the bed next to me. “What’s going on Jessica?” Megan asked.
“What are you referring to? Quitting Cheerleading, breaking up with Scotty, or just being sick and tired of everything?” I said sarcastically.
“Jessica, it’s not that bad. You just need to calm down.” Megan said frowning.
I looked at her. “Why don’t you try walking in my shoes for a few days, before telling me I need to calm down. You don’t understand things that I am going though-none of you do.”
“Try getting 2 hours sleep a night, and see how it affects you. I’d gladly give you my nightmares if I could but I’m afraid you’ll have to find your own, because mine never leave! My life freaking sucks, Megan.” i said, full of rage
“Jessica, I know you have been through a lot, but destroying everything that you worked so hard to get makes no sense. Yes, I can understand cheerleading, but why would you break up with Scotty? It just doesn’t seem to make sense, Jessica.” Megan said frustrated
“Megan, I’m capable of make choices for myself, and just because they don’t seem right to others doesn’t mean that I’m making a mistake. “
“Scotty blew up at me because I quit cheerleading. He’s mad because I chose to do something for myself, rather than remain a cheerleader so I could be there for him at the games. I understand that he wants me there to support him, but the truth is I need to start working on myself. That means seeing my therapist and attending meetings and doing things that will make me feel better about myself.“
“People think that all of my problems were solved, just because I got my wish and became a woman. My problems aren’t gone, Megan. There are times when I look in the mirror that I hate the person looking back at me, and then all those years of abuse and being kidnapped? None of this stuff is going to just go away because I wish that it would.
“The only way things like this go away is if you stop running and fight. That’s what I am trying to do. If people can’t understand that than that’s their problem.” I said looking over at Megan.
“Jessica, I’m only trying to help, you’re my sister and I love you.”
“I know Megan, and if there were a way you could help I would let you, but this is something I need to do for myself. I hope you can understand that.”
“Really, I don’t understand, but you’re my sister and if you need someone to talk I am here.” Megan said reaching over and giving me a hug. “So is it really over between you and Scotty?”
“I don’t know Megan, it’s up to him.” I said, frowning.
“Give him some time Jessica. I’m sure that once he calms down, he’ll come to his senses. If he doesn’t, then it’s his loss. There are plenty of other guys out there.”
“I know Megan, but there’s only one guy I want, and right now he’s mad at me.”
“God, love can really suck.” I said, looking over at Megan.
“Yeah, it sure can.” Megan said with a sigh. “Feel like drowning your sorrows in a bowl of rocky road?” Megan asked with a smile.
“Sure, ice-cream is the answer to all life’s little problems.” I said as the two of us headed for the kitchen
As the two of us made our way into the kitchen I thought to myself that it felt good to finally vent my feelings, even if it was at the expense of my sister.
[-][+][-]
Megan and I were busy laying waste to the what was left of the container of ice-cream when Mom arrived. As she made her way inside, she was carrying 4 bags in her hands. “Girls, I could use some help,” Mom said from the living room.
“Coming, Mom,” the two of us chimed together.
Between Megan and me the two of us were able to carry the remaining bags inside and into the kitchen, where we found Mom already busy sorting and putting things away.
“Thanks girls,” Mom said, then looked over at the table and saw the empty ice-cream container. ”Alright which one of you is having a bad day this much ice cream can only mean one thing.”
“Jessica had a meltdown”, Megan said frowning.
“Want to talk about it honey?” Mom said, concerned.
“I think that I’m beyond talking about it Mom. Let’s just say I’m no longer a cheerleader, and as of today I’m officially single.”
“Megan can you give your sister and I some privacy? The two of us need to have a talk.”
”Sure Mom, but I don’t think it’s going to make a difference, she’s made up her mind.”
[-][+][-]
After Megan left, Mom took a seat across from me. “Alright Jessica, what happened?”
“It’s been coming for a while now, Mom. I think it was that damn essay that put me over the edge. I didn’t really want to read it aloud. I knew what it was going to do to me, but everyone kept pushing, saying that reading it was for my own good.”
“Whenever I hear those words, it’s for you own good, why does everything that’s for my own good always have to hurt?” I said, frustrated tears building.
“I was worried this would happen, how are you doing really, Jessica?” Mom asked, a concerned, worried look on her face.
“Mom, I just don’t know, but I’m not going to sit around and pretend that everything’s alright anymore. I might get 2-3 hours’ sleep a night, and not a night goes by that I’m not awakened by those stupid nightmares! They just don’t want to go away, Mommy, and I am tired of being scared all the time. “
“Honey, we need to get you back in to see your doctor, and you’re right, things aren’t going to get better on their own. You have to do the work, honey. Now, Jessica, what happened between you and Scotty?” Mom asked, sympathetically.
“I happened, Mom. He wasn’t happy that I quit cheerleading. Scotty wanted me to be there with him for the championships, and if I would have remained with the cheerleading squad, I would be going away with him on road trips and other events.
I tried to explain to him why I couldn’t be there, Mom. I told him I just needed time to start working on myself, but he was so mad at me. He wouldn’t listen to what I had to say, and in the end I said maybe the two of us taking a break would be best.
He completely lost it, Mom and said that he was going to find another girlfriend. I was just so upset and he just drove off, leaving me at the boys and girls club.”
“Jessica, I think that taking a break right now is likely the best thing for the both of you. I know it’s hard, but you need time to heal and maybe being apart will make that easier.”
“I think so too, Mom. I have to start seeing my therapist more, and I need to start going to my meetings. It’s the only way that I am going to be able to move forward. “
“I think that you’re on the right path, Jessica. Now if you will just stick with it. So what were you doing at the boys and girls club.”
“There was a bulletin at school that they were offering self-defence classes. I thought maybe it would help me deal with things. The teacher didn’t think it would help, but is willing to take me on as a full time student.” I said looking at Mom.
“What will this cost us, Jessica?”
“It’s not going to cost us anything Mom, in exchange for him teaching me, I’ll be working at the dojo, when I don’t have doctors’ appointments, anyway.
“You talked to him about what was going on, and why you wanted the training?” Mom asked, surprised.
“I didn’t have to, he figured it out on his own. I guess the bruises were a dead giveaway. “
“Jessica, it’s a good idea, just try not to put too much on your plate, at least not for a while.”
“I won’t, something tells me between school and everything else I will have plenty to do as it is.” I said. “Can you give me a ride into town tonight Mom? I want to do a meeting.”
“Sure honey, and I think it would be a good idea to take you to get your licence, so that you can get to and from your appointments without having to depend on us.”
“I’d like that Mom, but I still can’t drive alone, even with my young driver’s certificate.”
“Sure you can, just drive carefully and no speeding. That’s a stupid rule anyway, your father and I were both driving when we were your age.”
[-][+][-]
Kelly decided that it was time for her to make another appearance, While they were in the coffee shop earlier, a bug had been placed under Adrian’s car. it wasn’t any good for hearing what was being said inside of his car, because of the noise that came from the motor, but it had a small GPS Chip inside of it which allowed John and Kelly to keep track of his location.
“How do I look John?” Kelly asked.
“John looked at her, then gave her a slap across the face, taking her by surprise. It wasn’t really hard enough to do any damage, he didn’t want to really hurt her after all.
Sorry Kelly, but he’s seen us this morning and you didn’t have any marks. We need to make it look like someone is beating you. Use a little light makeup, it will look like you’re trying to hide it.”
“Next time you hit me like that, you may find my knee gently kicking as hard as I can between your legs,” Kelly said, just a little pissed off. “Who the hell trained you John, Inspector Clouseau?
“Hmm…. So you are a little lamb who has come to Clouseau for to learn.” John said, using an extremely bad French accent.
“God help me, if Rocco doesn’t kill you, I just might.” Kelly said looking at her slightly insane partner and shaking her head.
“Without warning, I will attack you. In this way, I will keep you vigilant and alert.“ John said, continuing to use that god-awful French accent.
“I better leave, before I accidentally discharge my firearm.” Kelly said with a smile, then headed out the door as quickly as she could.
[-][+][-]
After Kelly checked on Adrian’s location, she found he was a few blocks away from the coffee shop, in a restaurant called Dino’s. It was a little run down business that was most likely a front of some kind, Kelly thought as she walked the short distance.
It was around 5:30 pm, when she arrived and made her way inside. She took a look at the menu, they had 2 pieces of Pizza and a soft drink for $4.50. Before leaving the apartment, she had grabbed a pile of change to make it look she had very little money.
As she ordered she noticed an older man, who must have been the manager, staring at her. He didn’t come over or anything. He was must likely noticing the bruises that were on her face thanks to her partner, Inspector Clouseau, she thought to herself.
After paying for her order she took a seat at one of the empty tables. At first there was no sign of Adrian, and she wondered if she had missed him. Kelly was surprised, thinking that for such a dive they sure did make good pizza. She took a bite and felt a light pain from where John had hit her.
She thought that she would have to find a way to thank her father for partnering her with this oddball. To be honest, she liked John. He was nothing like she expected, and always fun to be around. Kelly just kept her eyes open and listened, hoping that she heard something, but there was way too much noise in the restaurant, especially from the staff.
As she was finishing off her last slice of pizza, she saw Adrian walking out of the kitchen carrying a stack of pizzas; he was followed by another man carrying a plastic bag with what looked like 2 litre bottles of pop out to his car. When he passed me, he turned and the two of us locked eyes and he looked at me a little closer.
“I know you, you were at the coffee shop this morning, did your father do this to you?” Adrian asked, staring at the bruising.
“No, I just took a fall,” I said, turning away from his gaze.
“That’s funny, it looks more like a slap then the kind of bruising you would get from a fall. Take it from someone that knows, protecting your father is a mistake. You should go to the cops before he takes things too far.” Adrian said with a look of concern.
“I’ll be alright; I’m not going home for a while,” I said sadly.
“Waiting for him to pass out, are you?” Adrian said frowning.
“Yeah, something like that.” I said, finishing off the last of my pizza.
“I don’t normally do this, but is there somewhere I can drop you off at, like a family member?” Adrian asked out of concern.
“Not really, it’s just my father and I, my mom ran off years ago.” Kelly said as she tried to remember the loss of her own mother.
“I could use a lift to Main and Dufferin, if that wouldn’t be a problem.” Kelly said trying to keep the conversation going.
“Sure, I’m going past there, let’s get going, Kid.” Adrian said
“My name is Tessa, and thanks for the ride.” Kelly said with a smile.
“I’m Adrian, nice to meet you Tessa” he said with a smile.
[-][+][-]
Once the two of them were in his car, Adrian and “Tessa” drove off. Adrian turned to her. “You’re new to the area, where are you from?” Adrian asked, looking over in her direction.
“My father and I travel around a lot, we were living in Halifax NS, for the last year, well, until he got laid off, then we moved here, he said there would be better work opportunities.” she said, looking over at Adrian
“There are lots of jobs around, provided your father sobers up. If he is anything like he was this morning, I don’t see him finding and holding a job. My father was the same way, he was an angry, abusive drunk, and I couldn’t wait to get out from under his thumb.” Adrian said looking just a little angry.
“That’s a shame, do you ever see him?” She asked, looking over at Adrian.
“He died a few years after I left home from cirrhosis of the liver. He basically drank himself to death and died alone, living in a rundown rooming house.” Adrian said sadly.
“That couldn’t have been easy for you.” Kelly said, actually feeling bad for Adrian.
“The truth of the matter was, I hated my father and because of the abuse I suffered at his hands, I was happy to see him gone. To be honest, I’d like to line up every one of those asshole that are just like him and shot every single one of them, including your father.” Adrian said with a frown.
“But that’s not the person I am anymore, Remember one thing Tessa, it’s never too late to change your life for the better and sometimes that means putting yourself first, and leaving a bad situation.” Adrian said with a smile.
“Why all the pizza Adrian, are you going to a party?”
“You could say that Tessa, it’s for a group of kids that have been going through a rough time, kind of like yourself.” Adrian said with a smile.
A few minutes later they arrived at her stop. “Well, this is it, Tessa. if you ever need to talk, I’m at the coffee shop every morning, but just bring yourself. I can’t guarantee your fathers safety, he’s too much like my own father.” Adrian said, then waved goodbye as he drove off.
As Adrian drove off Kelly couldn’t help but wonder, was this man really the monster that he was made out to be? He seemed to actually care about her, but she had a mission and had to follow the facts, this man was a stone cold killer when he had to be and giving the right conditions would kill again. She thought to herself.
After about a half an hour’s drive Mom and I arrived at the church where my meeting was being held. I would catch the bus back when I was done. “See you later, Jessica.” Mom said before driving off.
I waved goodbye and started walking toward the entrance. There was a group of woman and even some girls around my age, standing around out front talking with each other and smoking, which seemed to be a normal routine at these meetings.
I felt a little out of place, considering that I didn’t really know anyone there, but as I made my way into the building everyone was friendly and welcomed me with open arms.
After making my way inside and looking around I did see one friendly face. It was my birth mother and when she saw me she came running over and met me with a big hug.” Jessica, I am so glad to see you, how have you been doing?” Mom asked as the two of us took a seat next to one another.
“I’ve been better, Mom, things have just gone straight to hell on Me.” I said frustrated.
“Well you are in the right place honey; would you like to talk about it?” Mom asked, looking concerned.
[-][+][-]
This side of my mother was something I didn’t expect all of my life she was never there for me and here she was making an effort and trying to build a bridge between the two of us.
I thought about all those months back, when I told her that if she wanted to have a relationship with me, she would have to get help and rebuild her own life.
I could see she had kept her word this wasn’t the mother I knew this was someone different.
I looked over at her, “After the meeting, do you want to grab a coffee? I think the two of us need to talk things out, you made a promise to me in the hospital and have kept your word to me. It’s time the two of us start working out our problems. “
“I would like that Jessica,” Mom said and put her arm around me.
“It seemed that Mom knew most of the woman in the group and spent about 15 minute introducing me as her daughter. It was a weird experience, but there was a part of me that was happy. I knew that the two of us would never be as close as Janice and I were, but there was hope for the two of us.”
“Just before the meeting started a girl took a seat beside me, she looked a little nervous and I could really relate. I looked over at her and smiled. “Hi, I am Jessica, I’m new here too.” I said with a smile.
“I’m Tessa, how did you know this was my first meeting?” Tessa said with a frown.
“You had the deer in the headlights look, the same one I had when I arrived.” I said with a smile.
“I was lucky, if my Mom hadn’t been here, I would’ve felt completely lost. Tessa, this is my mom, Janet.” I said, referring to the woman sitting next to me.
“Hi Tessa, it’s nice to meet you. Just try to make yourself comfortable and remember you don’t have to speak unless you are ready to, and that goes for you too, Jessica.” Mom said with a smile.
Mom and I talked with Tessa, for a few minutes, before the meeting started. The design of the meeting was for everyone to sit around a circle and take turns talking and there was a reading from a book before we started and that was to be the topic of the meeting, but everyone was free to talk about what was actually on their mind.
I was surprised that Mom passed, but I think she was doing it so I would have a chance to talk. I really didn’t know what to say, the topic was on acceptance and to be honest there was a part of me that didn’t want to accept any of this.
“Hi my name is Jessica, and I am a child of abuse”.
“Hi Jessica, everyone replied”
“To be honest there is a part of me that just wants to get up and leave but I have been trying to deal with everything on my own and it just isn’t working. I used to think if I had the perfect family, good friends and someone that cared for me, it would be enough to make me happy, but I had all that and I wasn’t happy because it never killed the pain.
For the longest while I thought that I was dealing with my problem, because I was seeing my doctor and did a couple of meetings, but I was in denial. I was still running and started depending on other people to take care of me. I think the hardest thing is the freaking nightmares. They haunt me every night to the point where I only get a few hours of sleep, and because of it I feel miserable all day.
I just got back from a weekend camping trip with friends and slept like a baby the whole time, the only reason that I slept and didn’t have the nightmares was because boyfriend was holding me and I felt safe in his arms. I am tired of being scared all the time and needing other people to protect me.
I just want to be like every other teenage girl but that’s impossible, I will never be normal, and I can blame my parents for that but I am done playing that game. Yes I was abused, yes I am a victim, but I have a choice to continue feeling sorry for myself or I can find a way to live with it.
Today I quit cheerleading and I think my boyfriend and me are finished, but that’s up to him. I had to make a choice and put my recovery first, which meant I needed to learn to stand on my own two feet and stop depending on other people to make me happy. The only way I can do that is by seeing my therapist and attending meetings.
In some ways I am lucky. My mother and I are both attending meetings and some of them are together like tonight, and I think the two of us will benefit from being here together. I’ve already seen a big change in her between now and when she was in the hospital and I am proud of you, Mom. That’s really all I have to say, thanks for listening.” I said with a smile.
Tessa was the next in line to speak, but she chose to pass. As I looked over at her, she looked a little upset. I reached over and took her hand. “It’s alright Tessa, when you’re ready, it will be easier.” I said handing her a tissue from my purse.
“Thanks, Jessica”, She said as she wiped the tears away from her eyes. “You’re not the only one with the nightmares, I have the nightmares too Jessica.” Tessa said sadly.
[-][+][-]
After the meeting Tessa and I talked for a few minutes and I found out she had just moved to town. She was living with her father, and the two of them had moved here from Halifax, NS. I also found out that she was going to be attending the same school that I was, so the two of us exchanged numbers and agreed to meet up at lunchtime and I would introduce her to the gang.
After saying goodbye, Mom and I headed over to where she had parked. She clicked the button on her keychain and I heard a loud beeping noise, and the sound of a clicking. Mom smiled. “This is my baby,” referring to the grey Saturn that was next to us.
After climbing inside the car, Mom put it into drive and before long the two of us had arrived at a Starbucks that was nearby. After ordering, we found a quiet table towards the back of the restaurant.
“Thanks for what you said at the meeting, it means a lot to me. It hasn’t been an easy road for either one of us, but I think that you know that already better than anyone.” Mom said wiping a tear from her eyes.
“Yes I do, Mom, and I am proud of you for not giving up. Sometimes though, giving up seems easier.”
“It may be easier Jessica, but take it from someone that knows, hiding from your problems doesn’t help. People rarely change unless they have no other choice.
I just don’t want to see you make the same mistakes that I made, Jessica. You’re a beautiful young woman with your whole life ahead of you, and what you do now will determine how your life turns out.”
“Just so you know, I wouldn’t worry too much about Scotty, honey. He loves you, I maybe a terrible judge of men, but even a blind man could see that he’s crazy over you.
“I really don’t know what happened between the two of you, but while people say woman are moody, men can be just as bad when they don’t get their own way, Jessica.”
“Whatever happens, follow your heart, put your recovery first and always remember that I love you, Jessica.” Mom said, reaching over and taking my hand.
“I love you too, Mommy,” I said, feeling my eyes starting to tear up. All of my life I had wanted to hear those words from her, and within seconds the both of us were hugging one another.
“Jessica, are you happy living with the Tanners?” Mom asked, frowning.
“Yes, I’m part of the family now, and I wouldn’t trade that for the world,” I said sadly. I knew that she wanted more than I was willing to give her.
“I sometimes think about fighting for you Jessica, but I know you are happy there and I don’t want to put you in the middle of another battle.” Mom said sadly.
“If you fought for me Mom, you’d lose because it would come down to what I want, and I would have to choose the Tanners.” I said. A part of me was glad that she even considered fighting for me.
“No matter what happens, you will always be my mother, and I want you in my life. I want us to spend more time together, but let’s just take things a day at a time and really get to know each other as a mother and daughter should. Believe me, I am not going anywhere Mommy.”
“Alright honey, I just want to be part of your life, nothing else matters to me, you’re all I have left and the only thing in my life that is worth fighting for.” Mom said with a smile.
[-][+][-]
After finishing our coffee, I told Mom that I had a bus to catch, but she would have none of that, and before long she was dropping me off at home.
“Thanks Mommy, I had good time tonight and it was nice to spend some time together outside of the meetings.” I said, leaning over and giving her a hug and kiss
“Me too, baby, let’s not wait so long next time.” Mom said hugging me and giving me a kiss in return.
“I love you, Mommy!” I said climbing out of her car and closing the door behind me.
“I love you too, sweetheart,” Mom said just before driving off.
End of part 13
To be continued in part 14
Edited by, Stanman63
By Cain129
Book One
Synopsis:When a teen girl and her father are in an accident, it leaves her in a coma that gives a man a new lease on life.
[-][+][-]
I cannot believe that I am sitting here. Never in million years would I have thought that anything like this could have happened, but here I am getting ready for a date with my boyfriend Adam. Most people would think it was normal for a girl to be sitting and doing her makeup and getting ready for a date, but I am no normal girl.
You see, up until recently, I was a man. but that's not the person I see now when I look in the mirror. I see is a 16 years old girl. Guess you are wondering, how a man wakes up in the body of a teenage girl? Even I am not sure how it happened but I am just happy that it did happen.
The best place to start I guess is the beginning, I had always felt that there was something wrong with me, but for years I could not place it. I had never really felt comfortable within my own skin. As a kid I used to watch the other boys my age who seemed so comfortable with whom they were.
I never really seemed to fit in with them and it was not for lack of trying. I just did not feel comfortable. I did have a few friends growing up most of them were girls. When we would get together and play, it was as if I was one of them. When I was with them, I did not have to pretend to be one of the boys. I could just be myself and have fun.
It was not until I reached my teens that lines started becoming blurred, most of the boys that I knew starting to go girl crazy and the girls that I had been friends with started dating boys. It was different for me, I did not notice the girls and found myself attracted to my own sex. It was a scary time for me, and for the longest time I thought that, I was gay and being the 1980s there was not as much tolerance like there is now.
There was a boy at school that I thought was cute and he asked me out a few times, eventually I accepted. Things seemed all right at first, but when he tried getting intimate with me, it just did not feel right. I started wondering if I really was gay, granted I did like him but there was no sexual attraction toward him whatsoever.
I had a friend her name was Jenny and the two of us were talking, she and I had known each other for years and she was cool with me being gay and the two of us shared everything.
She told me that most of my problem was not the fact that I was gay, the problem was that I was more of a girl then a boy. I thought about what she said, it made sense all of my life I had never really been comfortable in my own skin and always avoided activities that were considered strictly male.
I really did not understand anything about being transgendered; I did not even think the term existed. I did know one thing, I could not ask my parents for help. They were very religious; to them being gay would send me straight to hell.
I think that if I had someone that I could have talked with things would have been different, but being unable to get help my depression started taking over, as did the self hatred. By the time I turned sixteen, things had become, so bad that the only release I could think of was taking my own life.
I went into my parents medical cabinet and took a bottle of sleeping pills that my mom had been taking, downed them and returned to my bedroom. As I laid on the bed I thought about my life, how different things could have been if I had been just born a girl. The darkness took me and I soon passed out.
I guess it was a couple of hours later, when I woke at the hospital, having my stomach pumped. Mom had found me and called an ambulance that was the first attempt, but not the last.
They hospitalized me for 3 months after that. I remember the guilt that I felt for what I had put my family through and the embarrassment that I felt when people would look at me. I was not sure if they knew what happened, but it never stopped the embarrassment.
Over the next 3 years, I saw a doctor and was taking anti-depressants for the depression. I would see the doctor once a month, he would ask me how I was doing then fill out the prescription and send me on the way. That went on for 3 years, and not once did we talk about the real reason behind my suicide attempt.
I had good days and bad days, overtime I learned to hide my feelings and accepted the fact that I would never be the person that I really wanted to be. There were times though in my dreams that she did come out and for a short time, I was able to experience life, even if it was a dream it was all that I had.
Theses days people are transitioning all the time, but I missed my window where I would have been passable and I did not want to look like a man pretending to be a woman. I buried myself in my schoolwork and then the different jobs that I worked at for most of my adult life. I tried to keep as busy as I could so I would have less time to spend thinking.
That pretty much leads me to where I am today, I have been at a dead end job for the last 3 years and was giving my layoff notice. I have been living in this small town for most of my life and felt that it is time for a change.
I packed up my bags, emptied out my savings account, and paid for a flight. I thought about the family that I was leaving behind, but knew that it was the right choice; it was as if something was leading me there.
Living in a big city like Vancouver took me awhile to get used to, but I found a nice place on the outskirts of the city.
It only took me a couple weeks and I was working again. It was nothing special, I was just operating a phone at a call center doing technical support, but it was paying the bills. I had been working there for a few weeks when the migraines started; It had them as a child, so I just took a few Advil and carried on with my work. But over the next few weeks, the migraines became more frequent.
Shortly after that came the earaches, I made and appointment and went to a walk-in clinic, the doctor said that it was an infection and gave me a prescription for antibiotics that I was supposed to take for a week.
After taking the medicine for a week, I was still having pain, so I returned to the clinic and talked to the doctor. He asked me, if there were any other symptoms. I thought about it, my balance and coordination had been off. He was going too send me to a neurologist; but the earliest appointment was a month away.
Over the next couple of weeks things started getting worse. I was unable to work because of how I was feeling and I lost my job. I found myself in a state almost like motion sickness, was unable to hold food down, and started loosing weight.
The only thing that seemed to help was taking Gravol. I spent most of my time in bed, by the middle of the month, I went into the hospital and told them that how I was feeling, but they just sent me home without really doing anything.
They told me to wait for my appointment with my neurologist later that week. My speech was affected making it hard for me too express myself, let alone explain what was going on. I knew that something major was wrong and a few days later ended up at hospital, this time they sent me down for a cat scan and a MRI, it only took about a half hour for the results.
The doctor that seen me Dr. Gettings was his name, he was a mountain of a man, it made me wonder how anyone with hands that big could operate on anyone.
The doctor looked over at me and said, "John I just looked at the scans and you have a tumor and a cyst that are side by side, this is creating a large mass in your brain. We need to remove it in the next couple of days are you are not going to make it."
I was shocked, but not surprised. I knew something major was wrong, but having someone confirm it is another story. When the shock subsided, I turned to Dr. Getting, and asked, "What are my chances with the operation?"
He looked over at me,"I am going to be honest with you John, there is a good chance that you will not make it even with the operation."
I sat there taking in what he said, and then looked over at him, "I understand. Whatever you need to do, do it."
"Is there anyone that you can call?"
"Most of my family lives in New Brunswick."
"I will get one of the nurses too bring you a phone when your ready," Dr Getting said as he stood up and left the room leaving me with my thoughts.
I got up and left the ward and headed outside, I was a nervous wreck and needed a smoke. I thought about my life and how I had tried to end it in the past. Here I am now closer to death then I have ever been and part of me just wants to give up but then there is another part that wanted to hold on.
I thought of all the things that I had done in the past, and the person that I had become. I had been so lost in my own misery that I had driving so many people away from me, mostly out of fear. I wished that I had made different choices in my life.
There is one thing worse, than dieing, and that was dieing alone. At that moment I was experiencing so many emotions: Fear; hatred towards God for letting this happen to me, and eventually accepting whatever happened was beyond my control.
I put out my smoke then tossed the pack into the garbage. I would have no use for them after today. I made my way back to the room where I had seen Dr. Gettings. While I sat there waiting, a nurse came in and she helped me get ready for the surgery.
After she finished she left me with a phone, and said that Dr. Getting was talking to my father and that I would be getting a call. I thanked the nurse as she left. A few minutes later the phone started ringing.
"Hello?"
"Hi John. How are you doing?"
"I have seen better, Dad."
'I wish that I could be there with you son,"dad said sounding horse.
"I know, Dad and I understand."
"Thanks, Son."
"Dad, I know that I put you and Mom though a lot over the years and I am sorry."
"Don't worry about that now, John. That is all in the past and right now you need to be thinking about getting better," dad said crying on the phone.
"Dad you need to prepare yourself, I may not come out of this alive."
"Please John! Don't talk like that!" Dad said crying. "You will be all right just keep fighting. I know that you have been through a lo, Son. But you cannot give up. If your mother were still alive, she would tell you the same thing, Son."
"I know, Dad and I will fight. But I just do not know what is going too happen here."
"John, I know that you have had your issues with God, but maybe it is time you put your Faith in God," dad said sounding really horse.
It was then that a nurse came pushing a cart, "Dad, I have to let you go for now I will give you a call when I can."
"All right, Son, get better."
"One more thing, Dad"
"What son?"
"I love you,"
"I know, Son and I love you too."
"Goodbye."
During the next 15 minute, I had blood drawn, a captures was setup and what the nurse called a C-Line which was a wire that was inserted into a vein between my legs and carried up too my heart, during the operation it would be attached to a heart monitor.
It was impossible to sleep, there was too much on my mind. I spend most of the night praying to an unseen God that most of my life I refused to accept.
I hated God for making me the way I was and had wanted nothing to do with Him. But when faced with something like this you're almost willing to do anything if your life is in jeopardy. I think the praying was helping because I felt calm as I prayed.
Its hard thing to explain, but for the first time in my life I felt like there was a god, and he was finely listening too me. The next morning, I was taking into surgery. Everything was all right until they had me in the operating room, then fear took over, and I could not stop shaking. There was a woman in the room, just a tiny little thing, she came over and held me, she told me everything was going to be all right.
In another area of the hospital, there is something else going on. An ambulance had pulled into emergency, carrying a father and daughter. The father is suffering mostly from cuts and bruises while the daughter on the other hand is close to death. An hour earlier Andrew and his daughter Sarah were at a football game, Sarah was a cheerleader.
Andrew her father usually would attend the games mostly to support his daughter, but he was also a big fan, having played in college. The accident happened on the way home, they had been side struck by another car while crossing a busy intersection, the driver of the other car had been drinking.
Sarah and her Father were taking into emergency and met by Dr. Leo Picard, as he looked over at Sarah and told the nurse to send her down to x-ray for a Cat Scan and a MRI. Andrew called his wife Janice and told her what happened. 15 minutes later, she walked into the waiting area and took a seat next to her husband.
"Have you heard anything yet"
"They took her down about a half hour ago, she still has not woke up."
A nurse came through the doors, "Mr. and Mrs. Tanner. The doctor would like to see you; if you would come this way."
Andrew took Janice's hand and the two of them followed the nurse into a private room.
"Please take a seat and Dr. Picard will join you in a few minutes," said the nurse as she exited the room.
Dr. Picard joined them a few minutes later and took a seat across from them. Dr. Picard took a deep breath then started talking, "I just got though looking at your daughters test results, and the prognosis is not good. We have placed her on life support to keep her body alive, but the test show there is no higher brain functions. I hate to say this, but your daughter is clinically brain dead. There is really nothing, we can do for her," sighed Dr. Picard sadly.
Janice broke down crying, Andrew took her into his arms as he started crying himself, "There has to be something that you can do for her!" Andrew said as he held Janice.
"I am sorry, but there is only so much we can do Mr. Tanner, believe me if there was anything that I could do to save your daughter; then I would do it. But there is nothing medically that can be done."
"I want a second opinion."
"I understand and I will ask for another doctor to look at your daughter."
Dr. Picard stood up, made his way to the nursing station, picked up the phone and paged Dr. Jennings. It only took a few minutes for Dr. Jennings to call back.
"Hi Leo, what can I do for you?" asked Dr. Bill Jennings
"I need you in emergency; there is a family here that needs a second opinion. Their daughter is on life support and the test show that she is brain dead."
"I will be there in 10 minutes," Dr. Jennings said then hung up the phone.
Dr. Picard met with Dr. Jennings and the two of them went over the test results together, "I wish that you were wrong, but the child is clinically brain dead, where are the parents? Let's get this over with," said Dr. Jennings.
The two doctors made there way into the room where Andrew and Janice were waiting. Dr. Jennings took a seat across from them and said. "I wish that I could tell you that everything is going to be all right, but I looked at the test results and there is nothing that can be done. I hate to say this, but you will need too make a choice. We can keep her on life support, but that is not going to bring her back or we can let her go. Take your time and let us know what you want to do," Dr. Jennings said as the two doctors left the room.
"God, Leo! I hate this part of the job, having to tell parents that their going too loose there child!"
"I know, Bill, I feel the same way, but keeping that child on life support would be a sin," said Leo sadly.
"Well, I better get going. I have a comma patient that needs the test results read," said Bill.
"Thanks for the help, Bill," said Leo as the two doctors went there separate ways.
Back in the waiting room the two dis-distraught parents were trying to make a choice that no parent should ever have to make.
"Honey, I do not want to let her go," cried Janice.
I know, Honey. I do not either, but she is already gone. If it was not for those machines," cried Andrew.
"I know, but we cannot leave her like that, can we?" cried Janice.
"Even if she was awake and could choose herself, would she want to live having to depend on those machines to keep her alive?" Andrew asked.
"So we let her go?"
"It is the best thing we can do for her," Andrew said with tears running down his cheeks.
Andrew took Janice's hand and they made way to the nursing station.
"We would like to talk with Dr. Picard," said Andrew.
[-][+][-]
A few minutes later Andrew and Janice said there goodbyes to their daughter and Dr. Picard switched off the life support.
To Be Continued...
Rebirth By Cain129 Edited by, Standman63
Part Two Synopsis:When a teen girl and her father are in an accident, it leaves her in a coma that gives a man a new lease on life. |
John Steven recently moved to Vancouver Canada, a few weeks after arriving became sick, a few weeks later, is admitted into the hospital. Where he discoverers that he has a brain tumor and the odds were not in his favor; Sarah Tanner was in a car accident and has been placed on life support, leaving her parents to make a choice that no parent should ever have to make.
While in another room, Andrew and Janice are standing over their daughter. Dr. Picard was there along with a two nurses one was just a tiny thing compared to everyone else. Janice leans down and gives her daughter a kiss on the forehead, while Andrew takes Sarah’s hand. Janice is the first one to speak, "Honey we love you, but cannot leave you here suffering like this."
"I love you, Baby, it’s alright let yourself go. We will be together again," Andrew said as the tears run down his cheek.
"It's time, my love," sighed Janice.
Andrew turned too Dr. Picard, "Let her go."
Dr. Picard clicked the switch off the machine that was keeping her alive and soon there was a flat line on the monitor and a loud silence indicating that Sarah heart had stopped. The short nurse went over to Janice and gave her a hug then whispered in her ear, "Everything was going too be all right."
On the other side of the hospital when the lights came back on, Andrew took Janice hand to lead her out when they heard a beeping noise coming from the monitor behind them.
Dr. Picard hears the noise coming from the monitor and goes over to Sarah and checks her for a pulse and finds one. He is as shocked as everyone in the room was.
He turns to Andrew and Janice, "It looks like your daughter is full of surprises," he smiles as he takes his the pen light to check her eyes.
"Doctor?" says the tiny nurse.
"Go and set up an X-ray, Cat Scan and MRI."
She scurried out.
"What is going on?" asked Janice.
"It seems that your daughter is being stubborn and refused to go."
"You mean she is alive?" asked Andrew.
"It appears so, but we will know more once we get the x-rays back and compare them to the set taking earlier."
Janice turned to look for the woman that had giving her the hug and told her that everything was going to be all right, but she was gone. She then turned to Dr. Picard and asked"Where is the tiny nurse?"
"What nurse? Mrs. Tanner, the only nurse that has been here is Becky," Dr. Picard said with a frown.
Janice knew something amazing had happened, but now all that mattered to her was Sarah.
A few hours later, Dr. Picard was looking at the new x-rays, and could not believe what he saw, all the major damage that was in the original reports was gone, it was like somehow they had repaired themselves, and all that was left was minor swelling that could easily be fixed. It was a true miracle.
He picked up the two reports and called Andrew and Janice into the room. When they came in he was all smiles, "I have great news, if you do not believe in miracles then you really should start," said Dr. Picard with a huge smile.
Janice smiled, remembering the nurse.
"I have something that, I want to show you," he took the two x-rays and placed them on the panel. The one on the left was the first set of x-rays that showed Sarah has brain dead. The one on the right was just taken and shows only minor damage, that we can treat," Dr. Picard said with a smile.
"How is this even possible?" asked Andrew.
"Does it really matter how it happened? Just be glad that it did," she said with a smile.
"Really, I have the no answer, to be honest with you the only thing I can think of is that a miracle happened here today. There is no other way to explain it because your daughter should be dead but here she is alive and doing well," Dr. Picard said with a smile.
"So what now?" asked Janice.
"I would like to open her up to let the swelling go down and put her into a medical comma for a few days, that way she will heal faster."
Andrew smiled,"You can do whatever you need to do."
"How long before she can come home?' asked Janice.
"I'd give it about a week, then she should be able to go home."
"Thank you for taking care of our daughter," said Janice, giving Dr. Picard a huge hug while Andrew shook his hand to thank him.
They stayed with Sarah for a while but eventually headed home. Both Andrew and Janice were exhausted and needed to get some rest.
When they made it home, the answering machine was full of messages, mostly from Megan and Adam. Megan and Sarah had been best friend since`1st grade, and Adam was her boyfriend. They had been seeing each other for a year and were very much in love.
Megan and Adam had seen the accident from the school. The crash was at the intersection not even a block away from the school. Both were very irate on the phone. Janice picked up the phone can called them both and told them she was going to be all right, and would let them know when she could have visitors.
Looking at my body: the first thing I noticed was the size of my hands, as I reached up to touch the bandage. There were other things to that I started to notice. As I ran my hands down his chest, I was shocked to discover that I now had breasts, they were not all that big, but still, they were there, I started to wonder if this was some kind of drug induced dream that I was having.
I looked over at her, "My head hurts, but otherwise I feel all right. But how long have I been here?"
"You were admitted about a week ago, Honey," said the nurse.
I looked over at the nurse, "I cannot remember anything not even my name."
The nurse came over and took a seat on the bed next to me, "Your name is Sarah Jessica Tanner; you were in a car crash. That is really all that I can tell you for now."
"Why?"
"Dr. Picard will be in later and he will want to talk to you. If you need, anything Honey, my name is Kelly. Just click this button and I will be here ASAP."
"Thanks Kelly," I said with a smile.
Laying in bed was driving me crazy, I wanted to have a good look at myself. I slowly climbed out of the bed, my legs were still very shaky and it was hard to walk, but I made it to the bathroom and turned on the lights. What I saw was a young girl of maybe 15 or 16 years old staring back at me. She was really pretty even with all the bruising and bandages that covered her head.
'God this is going to take awhile to get used to!' I thought to myself. I turned and started heading back over to my bed when I started to fall. It was then I felt someone grab hold of me. I looked up and saw a man in a white coat; I knew must be Dr. Picard, "Thanks for the save," I said with a smile.
"Next time, use the buzzer. The last thing we need is to have to open you up again, Sarah,"he chided me with concern.
"All right, next time I will use the buzzer," I said.
"My head still hurts, some, that I can handle, but I do not remember anything, if it was not for nurse Kelly, I would not even know my name."
"It is all right, Sarah. Some times when people have a head injury like the kind you have, they end up with short term amnesia, everything will most likely come back in time or all at once."
"What if it does not come back?"
"Then you will have to make new memories, Sarah. The main thing is you are alive."
"I guess your right, Dr. Picard."
"Call me Leo. There really is no reason that we need to be so formal."
"OK, Leo."
"Your parents should be here soon, Kelly called them and told them you were awake."
"Thanks for taking care of me, Leo."
"It has been my pleasure, Sarah."
"When do you think I will be able to go home?"
"Anytime, you just need to take it easy for the next week. You can do that here or at home, but either way, I want to see you in a week to check your progress," Leo said with a smile.
"I guess that I would like to go home then if I can to be honest, I really hate hospitals."
Leo laughed, "So do most people, including myself. I will arrange to have you discharged, tomorrow. There are a few tests, which I would like to run first before I send you home."
When the woman saw me, she ran over and started hugging me, as did the man. It had been along time since anyone had show me affection, not even my own father was the kind of man that showed his feelings, other then that phone call. I could tell that he was crying, its just a shame it took me dyeing before he was able to show any feelings towards me.
After the two of them let me go, I took a deep breath and looked over at them and tried to think of something to say, then just told them what the doctor said. I know that you are both my parents but I have amnesia and do not remember either of you, until the nurse told me this morning I did not even know my own name. He said it may come back in pieces or all at once but there is also the chance it may never come back at all.
Janice took a seat on the bed next to her daughter and took her hand, "Honey, whatever happens, you are our daughter and we will deal with it as a family."
"That is right we are a family and it does not matter if you remember us or not. We have all the time in the world to get to know each other again," Andrew said.
The rest of the day, they stayed with me and told me stories about things that Sarah had done, and stuff we had done together as a family. I did enjoy their company but found myself tiring out and was glad when they finely left and fell asleep within minutes.
He smiled, "You remember me."
I looked at him. "Yes and no, when I looked at you I felt something. It felt like I have known you for all my life. Were you and I together?"
Adam smiled, "Yeah Sarah, we have been dating for over a year now," Adam said with a smile. Do you remember anything else?"
"Not really, I am surprised that I was even able to remember you,. M parents were here earlier and I do not remember them at all, but when I saw you, it triggered something."
"That is a good sign, you must still have access to your memories, and chances are you will remember other things too."
"So, how did you get in here anyway its visiting hours but only family is aloud to see me?"
"I have been worried about you all week, and could not wait any longer and I had to see you. So, I snuck in; you are not going to tell are you?"
"It will be our little secret, I could use the company," I said with a smile.
He smiled back ad kissed me.
"So, how did the two of us meet anyway?"
"We have known each other for years, we met in the First Grade, then last year, we started dating. I've always liked you, but last year things changed."
"In what way?"
"I had just broken up with Karen Summer, and did not have a date for the summer social, and I was not going to bother going but you talked me into going. When I picked you up you looked so beautiful, I could not take my eyes off you, I had seen you plenty of times before, but this was different. I knew at that moment that I was in love with you and the two of us have been together ever since."
I could not believe what Adam had just said, but I also knew that every word he said was the truth. I could feel it inside, what was going on with me; it seemed that Sarah’s memories and feelings were starting to come forth. I could see why Sarah was in love with him.
I was glad when he said that he had to get going because things were getting complicated. It is confusing enough having to deal with my own feelings, right now, but having Sarah’s too was more then I could take at that moment.
Adam leaned over and gave me a kiss before leaving and it was as if I had no control of my own body, as he kissed me I automatically responded and returned the kiss.
I could not believe what had just happened. I had just kissed a boy and not only had I enjoyed it but it made me feel all funny inside.
That night I slept like a baby, I had dreams and Adam was in them, the question was, were they really dreams or memories, it did not really matter, I was happy in them and I could feel the love that the two of us shared. I had never really experienced that kind of love when I was a male. I had been in relationships but there was always something missing. What Sarah and Adam had something special.
I smiled, "I am doing great, thanks."
"Are you still feeling any pain?"
"It is better then it was yesterday."
"So, how do you feel about going home today, Sarah?"
"I am a little nervous, I do not really remember my parents and I find it hard knowing what to say around them. That is understandable, but the only way you are going to be comfortable is if you spend time with them. It is just as hard on them. In many ways they lost a daughter and gained one that they do not really know. It will just take time, but everything is going to workout," Leo said with a smile.
I smiled back.
"I will see you next week, remember that you need to take it easy for the next few days."
Rebirth Part 3 By cain129 Thanks To Stanman63 For Editing! Synopsis:Life is never easy when you wake up in the body of 16 year old girl, and discover that not only do you have her memories but her feelings also. |
It was around noon by the time before I was aloud to leave the hospital, Mom and Dad had both made the trip to bring me home, they seemed excited but I felt nervous. I did not really know what to expect. I knew that it would be safe going home with them. They were pretty much my parents now and I knew that in there eyes I was there daughter but I was afraid of what was going to happen. The time that I spent with Adam had affected me more then I wanted to admit and if Sarah’s memories were starting to surface then what else could I expect. If I had access to her memories and even her feelings was she really gone or would she resurface and if she did what would happen to me.
I could not help but wonder if somehow, Sarah and I switched places and my body was somewhere on life support with her consciousness inside my body as mine was inside hers. Penny for your thoughts asked Mom.
“I just have a lot on my mind, so much has happened and I feel a little overwhelmed.”
“Anytime that you need to talk honey, I am here for you baby,”
“I know mom but this is something that I need to come to grips with myself.”
“You have always been that way honey, never wanting to accept help from anyone.”
“I will have to take your word for that mom, I do not remember much from before. The things that I do, well they scare me.”
“Why is that honey?”
“I just don’t know how to react. I had a visitor last night, it was Adam. When I seen him it triggered something inside me, I remembered him. He said that the two of us were in love, I believe him, because I could feel it inside. I don’t understand why I believe him and my own parents are a mystery to me!”
“It is all right honey," Mom said giving my hand a squeeze, "You have been though so much. Your father and I understand, what happened is not your fault, you never asked for any of this. We will build new and better memories together.”
It felt good having someone that I could depend on. for the longest time, I felt cut off from the world and felt like there was nobody that really cared about me. Having someone tell that they really did care and was not going to walk away when things were tough touched my heart and I could not help not crying.
When I was a man, I hid my feelings and most of the time that worked, but something was different now, it was as if I had lost that ability and found myself more emotional.
As I walked through the door, I saw that the house was full of people, most of them were teenagers like me and it was a little overwhelming at first until I recognized one face in the crowd. It was Adam, and within seconds, he was at my side.
I smiled, "Who are all these people?"
"Sarah Jessica Tanner, this is your life," Adam said corny smile.
The first person that I met was Megan, she was about my age. As soon as I saw her, I knew that they must have been close. It only took me a few minutes and her name came to me. Adam was about to introduce her to me but I beat him to it.
“It's Megan, right?” I said with a smile.
“It must be pretty hard for you, not being able to remember.”
“Well, some things seem to be coming back so that is a good thing.”
Sarah on the other hand was very outgoing, and from what I had seen today, she was very popular. It was going to be a challenge living her life, because our personalities were pretty much at odds with one another.
After everyone left, Adam and Megan stayed and the three of us went upstairs to my room, with Megan leading the way. My new room was had everything a teenage girl would want: the walls were all pink, there was a double bed that had plenty of room, a makeup table that looked to be well stocked,a desk with a laptop sitting on it, even had it’s own bathroom. But what caught my attention was there were a keyboard and an acoustic guitar. I turned to Adam,m "A I any good?"
"You've just started taking lessons.”
“I will take that as a no.”
I thought of picking it up and playing something but it would have been too hard to explain. John played guitar most of his life and was good, but there was no way that I could explain Sarah being able to pick it up that fast, it was a shame.
I always loved playing music. I put down the guitar and walked over too the makeup table, and took a seat and looked at myself in the mirror,"God my hair looks terrible!"
“It is not that bad, Megan”
“Look where they cut me! I am bald! there is no way I can hide this!" I frowned.
Megan came over and took a look and started playing around with my hair, moving it a round and trying out different things with it,“There is something we can try, when you are feeling up to it we can go to the mall. They sell clip on hair; maybe we can use it to cover it up.”
Adam came over,"That would work, but to be honest it makes no difference to me whatsoever; I would love you even if you were bald.”
I smiled, and could not help feeling the tears forming in my eyes. I looked over at him, I could really see why Sarah fell for Adam, any girl would be lucky to have him. He walked over to me and gave me a hug and a kiss on the cheek.
“Thanks Adam, that is sweet of you to say but I still want to try Megan’s idea.”
“I better get going, I have to be at work in about an hour. I will give you a call after school. If you are up to it, we can grab something to eat.
“That would be nice, Adam. Thanks for being here for me. I know things are messed up right now, and we really need to talk.”
“I know," said Adam sadly.
Mom came running into my room, followed by Dad. I am crying and shaking, Dad says,"It's all right.""It is just a dream, Baby," Mom says as she holds me. I find myself crying into Daddy’s shoulder as he tells me that I am safe and nothing is going to hurt me.
After I finely calmed down and tell them the whole story. Daddy looks at me,"Honey, you were remembering the crash, but you are all right now."
It felt so real, Daddy, I could feel the crash, and I could feel it when I hit the windshield."
"I know baby, but it is over with now."
“Honey you should get some sleep you have to be up early. I will stay with you, tonight.”
"Thanks, Mom."
Dad stood up,"Are you going to be aright, Sarah?”
“Yes.”
“I love you, Baby.”
“I love you too, Daddy," I said and actually meant it.
The nightmare did more then just scare me, it released all of Sarah’s memories and I could finely feel her emotions as if they were my own.
“Mommy I remember, I remember everything even the past! Please! Do not leave me; I don’t want to be alone!”
“I will stay, Baby," mom said as she climbed under the blankets with me.
“I am all right, thanks for staying with me last night, mom. I know at my age, you should not have to be doing that mom, but I really needed it.”
“It is all right, Baby; your father and I were expecting something like this to happen, eventually. No one goes though something like this is really the same," mom said then wrapped her arms around me and gave me a hug.
“I had better run a bath, I feel so skuzzy.”
“Alright Honey, I am going to get dressed and then put some breakfast on. It there anything special that I can get you?" asked Mom.
“Eggs and Bacon sounds good, just do not make it like they do at the hospital. God! I hope I never have to eat there again.”
I had a nice body for the most part, if it was not for the bruises,. But most of those were faded now and soon would be gone altogether. It felt good having a nice soak, most of the time when I lived as John, I used the shower and was only in long enough, so that I was clean. I hated seeing my body even it was for a short time.
Having soaked for about a half hour, I reached down and pulled the plug the noticed the state of my legs, they really needed a good shaving as did my armpits. I placed the plug back in place and picked up the razor, and started on my left leg, going carefully not wanting to cut myself. When I finished, I moved on to the next one, it really wasn’t all that hard and by some act of God, I didn’t hit any major arteries, and lastly I used the razor under each arm removing what little hair that was there. Then I reached down, pulled the plug, and let the tub empty.
It took me three times but eventually I liked the results that I had seen looking into my mirror. There really was not much, which I could do about my hair. I just brushed it back the best that I could and used a Scrunchie to make a ponytail. That did the job and covered the bald spot completely.
I looked at my nails, then figured that I had plenty of time and took the pink nail polish and started working on my hands then moved onto feet, after I was finished I liked what I saw.
Then I look a look in my closet and found a pair of sandals a slipped them on my feet and headed downstairs into the kitchen.
I took a seat at the table, mom smiled,"You look good this morning,", as she sat a plate of eggs and bacon in from of me.
"Thanks, Mom. Is daddy already gone?"
"He left around 7:00 A.M. It takes forever to get into the city in the morning."
"OK."
“What are your plans for today?”
“I thought that I would just be staying in and watching TV, or playing on the computer. Why?”
“I was just thinking that it has been ages since the two of us spent a day together,'Mom said.
“What do you have in mind?”
“Well, I was thinking we could take a trip to the Spa and then grab a bite to eat.”
“Sounds like fun," I said and took a bite of my bacon.
So it was nice seeing some of the sights. It was a nice day, so Mom had put the top down on her convertible. It felt good feeling the breeze hit me as we drove.
“Everything is fine, Mom. I am kind of seeing everything here for the first time.”
In one sense, that was true. I knew that Sarah had made the trip to North Vancouver, but those were her memories, and now I was making some of my own.
“It is good to have you home.”
“It is just nice to be home, the hospital was a lonely place, especially not knowing anyone. What made it worse, was spending all that time in bed alone. I was confused and did not know what had happened to me. It was hard when you and dad visited me for the first time. It should not have been, but my memories were cut off from me. It was kind of like walking on eggshells, Mom. I was afraid of what to say, and I really did not want to hurt either one of you.”
“Honey your father and I understood. You need to know that when you died on the table that we just about lost it. Then by some act of God, you were giving back to us, granted you are different now. But your father and I understand you need to figure out who you are again. That is going to take time but there is no reason that you have to do it alone.”
“Thanks, Mom it helps knowing that I have you there.”
It only took another 15 minutes driving and we arrived at the Spa. It looked busy,"Mom are you sure they will take us? They look like there busy."
"I called yesterday and made an appointment for the both of us."
The first thing that I noticed when we went inside was the salon chairs, most of them were full with woman getting there hair done, some having manicures. There was even a strong smell, I remember from John’s childhood that my mother used to buy those home perm kits and I am sure that was what I smelled. Mom and I made our way over to the reception desk, where there was a woman working there.
"Good morning can I help you?"
“My daughter and I have an appointment for 11, Janice and Sarah Tanner.”
“We have a booth set aside for both of you, my name is Sally. I will be taking care of Sarah and Alice will take care of you, Janice. If you will follow me, we will get started.”
Mom and I followed Sally to a cubicle that had two salon chairs setup; there was another woman there that was sweeping up the hair that was on the floor who I assumed was Alice.
Sally turned to me,"Sarah, have a seat, and we can get started."
The other woman was indeed Alice, Mom took a seat in the chair next to me. Sally started removing my ponytail, when I told her to stop.
“What is wrong?”
“I recently had surgery and they had to shave part of my head”
“Let me take a look maybe there is something that I can do to cover it up”
“Alright but it looks bad. I am still not healed up, yet.”
Sally then removed my ponytail and let my hair fall free.
“I see what you mean honey, does it hurt much?“
“Not really, it only really bothers me when I put to much pressure on it.”
“Well, it looks painful to me.What happened if you don’t mind me asking?”
“My father and I were leaving the school and were sideswiped by another car.”
“Is your father alright?”
“He is doing fine; he just ended up with mostly cuts and bruises”
Sally ran her hands through my hair,"I think we can cover up the bald spot. Though I have never done this kind of thing before. If we put some extension over top and drape them over the bald spot, then we can try to blend the extension in with your natural hair, how does that sound to you?"
“If you think that it will work then sure lets give it a try.”
Over the next hour, Sally worked on my hair, cutting and styling it then she started placing the extension. While she worked, another woman came over and started doing my nails. I found it really relaxing and just and I was really enjoying all the attention. I looked over at Mom, and she smiled back and me.
Alice was giving her the same treatment that I was with the only exception was that she did not need the extensions. When Sally finished with my hair, she played around with it for a bit, then held up a mirror, and then asked me to have a look.
There was no sign of the bald spot and I shook my head a few times so that my hair would move around and the extension did there job. I could not help but smile, everything else was perfect but that bald spot had been driving me crazy but now it was, hidden and I could go out without feeling as if everyone was staring at me.
“Thank you so much, Sally. You don’t know how much this means to me.”
“I think that I do. I know that it would drive me crazy if I was in your place. You have really nice hair, Sarah. It will in grow in quickly.”
“We just have one last thing that needs to be done.”
“What’s that?”
“Your makeup, I can’t let you leave after having your hair and nails done”
I sat there and Sally did her magic. When I saw the results, I was surprised; I had though Sarah was beautiful just as she was, but seeing her now, I could not believe the difference.
I thanked Sally and told her that I would be back, then took a seat and waited for Alice to finish up with Mom. I only had to wait a few minutes. They had also done a great job on mom, and told her how beautiful she looked. Mom paid for our makeovers, and the two of us left the salon.
Mom and I had were having a great time together. The next stop was the mall for some new clothes for me. From what I'd seen, I had plenty of clothes but, this shopping trip was more for Mom then it really was for me. I could see how happy it made her being able to spend time with me so I just went along with it. After all, she was my mother, wasn’t she?
God knows how many dresses, shoes, jeans, and tops that I tried on and by the time we finished I was tired out from all the walking. I wondered where I was going to put all the new clothes that she had bought today. I would hate to be Dad when he seen the bill for today, when the credit card bill comes in. I can just see him now calling the bank for a second mortgage, well maybe it’s not that bad, but Mom did spend quite a bit of money on me.
“Is my hair alright?”
“Yes honey its fine. You look nervous. Is something wrong, Sarah?”
“It’s just that guy over there is staring at me, I thought the bald spot is visible”
“No honey, I think that he likes you.”
“Does it bother you when men stare like that?”
“Maybe at first, but you get used to it after awhile It’s comes with being a beautiful young woman, and you get your looks from me.”
“I guess that is a good thing, but it still makes me nervous," I said with a frown.
I wondered to myself if I really could handle all of these changes, yes I had dreamt about, what it would be like to be a woman most of my life, but for the first time in my life I was experiencing it. I wondered thought if the change was permanent or if the real Sarah would return and if she did what would become of me. I needed to find those answers.
Life is never easy when you wake up in the body of 16 year old girl, and discover that not only do you have her memories but her feelings also.
Rebirth Part 4 By Cain129 Synopsis:Life is never easy when you wake up in the body of 16 year old girl, and discover that not only do you have her memories but her feelings also. |
I emptied the bags out onto my bed and started removing the tags, and placing the new clothes in my dresser and hanging what needed to be hung up in my closet. After I finished hanging everything up, I made my way down to the kitchen and grabbed a coke from the refrigerator then went back upstairs to my room and booted up my computer.
The first thing I did was pull up the obituary’s, for the Vancouver area, and set the search for within the last two weeks. There were many names on the list but eventually I found what I was looking.
Music had always been a passion of mine, it had been my one real love but I could not carry a tune I just never had the voice to ever be a good singer, I had thought of going into playing music full time, but had such low self-esteem that I was never really able to follow that dream. I really did not know what the future would hold for me now. I was young again and had a world full of options.
I started playing the guitar just to check and see if it was in tune and found that it wasn’t. So I made the necessary adjustments and started play a song by Natalie Imbruglia called "Torn", and for the hell of it tried singing along as I played and to my surprise, Sarah had a really nice singing voice. I continued on to the next song, it was one by Alanis Morissette called "Ironic". I had always loved the song and she put so much energy into it.
When I was getting ready to play another song, I heard the doorbell ringing. I placed my guitar back on its stand then went downstairs. When I looked out the window, I saw that it was Megan so I opened the door and let her in.
“How are you doing today? asked, Megan”
“I am feeling much better, thanks”
“God look at you, I love what you done to your hair,said Megan with a smile”
“I know it’s great and the best part the extensions they put in hide my bald spot”
"Let us grab some a couple of coke, and head upstairs," I said then lead the way to the kitchen.
After we grabbed the cokes, the two of us headed upstairs to my room and took a seat on my bed.
“So how was school today?”
“It was pretty much the same; everyone wanted to know how you were doing.”
"Oh?"
“Mr. Landry slept through most of history class, was the best class I had today. Enough about me though, what did you do today beside the salon?”
“Mostly hit the stores and spent Daddy's money buying new clothes.”
“Sounds like you had a fun day, let’s see what you bought.”
For the next half hour, Megan had me model everything that, Mom and I bought. She pretty much liked everything that we bought. After I chanced back into my blue sundress I joined Megan on the bed.
“Did you see Adam today?”
“Yeah he was asking about you, he is worried”
“I don’t know what to do about him Megan, I care for him, but so much has happened. When I look in the mirror, I don’t even know who I am anymore.”
Megan reached out and took my hand, “You are my best friend, Sarah and I love you, we will figure this out together.”
“Thanks, Megan I am lucky to have you," I said and reached out and gave her a hug.
“What would you do Megan?”
“That is a hard question to answer Sarah; it is hard to see it from your point of view.”
“I would like to say, I would continue seeing Adam but only you know what is right for you”
“If you ask me though, I think that Adam would wait forever, if it meant being with you Sarah”<.i>
I thought about what Sarah said, could I have a relationship with Adam or anyone else for that matter? I had spent years alone, when it came to relationships, it was one disaster after another. I had been in the closet for years, as John Stevens and had tried being in relationships with men and woman
when I was with a woman, deep down, I was jealous of her because she had everything I wanted and on more then one occasion they told me that they felt like they were dating another woman.
If they only knew how right they were and it was true, it is impossible to go against your own nature; inside I had always been a woman. There were only a few times, that I tried dating men and even that turned out to be a disaster, mostly because of me.
If I was with a man, I wanted him to want me as a woman and not a man and that was not possible but deep down I wanted a relationship and was tired of being alone. Maybe things would be different this time, the only way to find out was to try, it scared me, but it was something I had to do.
“I think that I will see how thing go with Adam.”
“Really I think you are making the right choice Sarah, He really does love you”
“I know Megan, I can feel it every time that I look at him, what scares me is I think I love him too. I just don’t want him to get hurt if thing don’t go well," I said with a frown.
“Sarah, just be honest with him, and tell him how you are feeling.”
Megan was right Adam and I were going out tonight for supper, It was as good a time as any to have a talk with him and explain to him how I am feeling, and who knows maybe this time around things would work out, but there was only one way to know.
“Do you have any plans for the weekend?”
“Not that I know of. Why?”
“I was thinking of calling Amy and Jessica and seeing if they wanted to have a sleep over”
“Sounds like fun but I will have to ask my parents and make sure that they have nothing planned”
“Give me a call once you know Sarah, I better get home, you know how mom gets when I am late”
I walked Megan to the door with and seen her out then went back upstairs to my room, I needed to get ready for my date with Adam. I liked the baby blue sundress that I was wearing so I decided to just continue wearing it and just exchanged my sandals for a pair of heals. Then sat down at my vanity, the makeup job they had done at the salon was still good, all I needed to do was freshen up my lipstick, and I was ready to go.
Since I had a bit of time before Adam picked me up, I thought that I would have a look around my room and see what was actually here; next to my bed was a light stand that had a drawer. I opened it, inside was an address book, with a bunch of names in there, and now that I had access to Sarah’s memories most of the names were familiar to me. I placed it back where I found it and continued looking then hit the jackpot it was Sarah’s Diary. Inside it was her uttermost thoughts, I felt guilty reading it but knew that it had most of the answers about Sarah’s life and would make my life a lot easier if I knew whom Sarah really was.
I lay back on my bed at started reading about Sarah’s life. I skipped most of the pages and just went to what she wrote within the last year, I thought that would be more then enough. Most of the entries were about, Adam and Megan, and the things that they did together. Some were about Amy and Jessica, there was one that was about a weekend party where Sarah had too much to drink, and how lucky she was that she was staying over a Jessica’s, it was all pretty normal until about 6 months ago with Sarah mentions a nightmare that she said scared her half to death.
The following night she had the same nightmare, this time she goes into more depth about what it was about, I could not believe what I was reading.
“I had the same dream again last night, Dad and I are at a football game, I am on the field with Megan, Jessica and Amy, we are there as cheerleaders, Adam is on the field, He has the football and is running with it into the end zone and winning the game for us. After the game, I say goodbye to everyone and meet Dad out front. The two of use start driving home then a car crashes into us, it hits my side and I hit the windshield that is when I always wake up.
Sarah has this dream repeatedly, right up to the day of the accident. She seen, her own death months before it even happened. I could not believe what I had just read and it really shook me up.
"Hey beautiful, he said with a smile that could melt the coldest woman’s heart. He handed me the rose, I took it and brought it up to my nose and smelled it.
“Thanks Adam, come on inside while I place this in some water”
“You look really beautiful, I love the hair.”
“Thanks, Mom and I hit the salon today, and did some shopping it was a lot of fun. How was your day, Adam?”
“I was alright but I really missed you at school, it’s not the same there without you When are you coming back?”
“I will be back on Monday.”
“It will be good having you there everyone has been asking about you.”
“We better be going, we have a table at Gallagher’s for 5pm”
Adam and I headed outside to his car, where he was a perfect gentleman and opened the door for me before going around to the driver’s side and climbing inside. The started up the engine and we were off. It only took us about 10 minutes before we arrived at Gallagher’s, being a busy restaurant it was hard to find a place to park but eventually Adam found a spot, then came around and opened the door for me and reached inside and took my hand and helped me out of the car.
I looked at the restaurant, and thought that this place was going to be expensive, then turned to Adam,"You could have taken me somewhere cheaper, this place looks expensive.”
“I know but, I don’t mind spending the money, I am just happy that you are here with me”
I could not help but smile, and then noticed that the two of us were still holding hands as Adam opened the door to the restaurant for me. Adam and I made our way up to the front and met a waiter, who showed us to our table and left use with our menus.
“What do you want, Sarah?”
“The steak looks good; I think that I will go with the steak and a salad.”
“I Think that I will have the same." Adam said and waved over the waiter.
It took a few minutes before the waiter made it back to our table,“Good evening, are you ready to order?”
“Yes, I would like the steak, make it well done.”
“What can I get for the young lady?”
“I will go with the steak too, and could I also have a Caesar salad?”
“Anything to drink?”
“We will have 2 cokes please," Adam said”
The waiter then left us to continue our conversation; I turned to Adam,"We really need to talk about our relationships. Megan dropped over earlier and the two of us had a talk about things, mostly we talked about you, Just let me talk first then you can alright?"
“Alright Sarah," Adam said sadly.
“Megan said that I should just be honest with you and she was right.”
"Oh?"
“Things are different now; there is no way that we can go back to, what things were before."
"Why?"
“I am not the same person that I was before. I can’t help it, I care for you, and don’t want to loose you, but I am afraid that I will hurt you. If you love me, then you are going to have to give me some time to come to grips with things. I am not saying that I want to break up with you because I don’t, let’s just take things slow, alright?”
“I can live with that, I was just so afraid that you wanted too end things with me," Adam said”
“No honey, I really do care for you that is what makes this so hard, for me. If I didn’t care then, breaking up with you wouldn’t be so painful, but I do care for you and the thought of seeing you with someone else, would tear me apart, I said sadly.
“Then let’s just go a day at a time no pressure," Adam said with a smile.
He then reached over and took my hands and started pulling me closer and before I knew what was happening I was leaning across the table and he was kissing me, and I found myself responding in kind and returned his kiss with a passion that I had never felt before, it was at that moment I knew that I would never willingly let him go.
Dinner turned out to be really good and so was the company, Adam and I talked though most of it, and I found myself, just feeling really relaxed with him now that I had made my choice. It felt good just being with him. After we finished our supper, neither one of us wanted to put an end to the night and when Adam suggested that we go to a movie I jumped at the offer.
After paying the bill for our supper Adam reach over and took my hand and the two of us made our way out to his car. When we arrived at the car he unlocked the door then opened it for me and waited till I was inside and seated before shutting my down then made his way around to the driver’s side. The started the car up and we were on our way. The movie theater was at the Westgate Mall, which was about a 15 minute drive from the restaurant. I used the time to call home and there was no answer, so I just left a message letting mom and dad know that I would be home after the movie.
After arriving at the theater, Adam and I checked and seen what was playing and decided on a comedy but the movie didn’t start for another hour, So Adam paid for our tickets in advance and the two of us decided too take a walk over to Starbucks and grab a couple of coffee’s and found a place to sit and talk while we waited for the movie.
“This is nice.”
“What is nice?”
“Having sometime alone together.”
“I guess you are right, we really haven’t had anytime alone together since I got out of the hospital.”
“It hasn’t been easy but I understand that you are getting reconnected with your parents. How are they handling things?”
“Alright I guess, Mom and I spent sometime together today, we had a day at the salon and did some shopping together so it was pretty cool.”
“How do you feel about going back to school on Monday?”
“I am a little nervous but I will have you and Megan there so it will be alright”
“If you want Sarah, I can pick you up.”
“That'd be nice Adam; it will give us sometime together before class.”
After we finished our coffee it was time to head over too the theater. We found some seats in the middle of the theater; I always liked that spot because you have the best view of the movie there. Adam had picked up an extra large pop and a big box of pop corn for us. It didn’t take long and the movie started. While I was watching the movie, I felt Adam’s arm slip around me and I found myself cuddling up to him. The smell of his cologne was intoxicating.
I looked up at Adam, he was also staring at me and before I knew it the he leaned down and kissed me, if I had been on my feet I am sure that I would have gone weak in the knees but my arms were covered in goose bumps and butterflies in my stomach. I felt truly happy for the first time in my life and was starting thinking that this time things would be different. If you were to ask me what the movie was about, I would really have no answer for you because most of it I missed but I really didn’t mind in the least I was happy to just be with Adam.
It was around 11:00 pm by the time Adam dropped me off at home, Just like earlier he was the perfect gentleman and opened the door for me and walked me to the door.
“Sarah I had a great time tonight.”
“I did too Adam, I am glad you asked me.”
“I will give you a call in the morning honey."
Adam leaned down and gave me another kiss, then looked into my eyes and said that he loved me, I smiled and said I love you too Adam. He smiled then gave me another kiss, before I went inside. As I closed the door I leaned against it trying to catch my breath. I take it you had a good night, mom said scaring me half to death.
“Mom you scared me half to death, but yes I had a great night.”
“Tell me about it honey, mom said patting the spot next to her on the couch.
So for the next 15 minutes, I told mom everything that had happened and she just listened and seemed happy for me.
“I am glad you had a good time honey, but try not to move so fast, you have been through so much.”
“I know mom, Adam and I talked about that too were just going to take things slowly.”
“Smart Girl," Mom said with a smile.
“Mom do we have anything planned tomorrow night?”
“Not really honey, why?”
“Megan is having a sleep over and I would like to go.”
“Well if you want to go that is fine with me honey.”
After mom and I finished talking I gave her a hug and kiss then headed off to bed, I had a busy but fun day and was exhausted. I undressed and took a nightgown out of my dresser, then headed off too bed, the moment my head hit my pillow my cell phone started ringing. So I found myself getting back out of bed and taking my cell phone out of my purse then answered it saying hello.
“How did things go tonight”
“Adam and I talked and were going to take things slow.”
“I am glad, Adam and you belong together.”
“We had a great time tonight he took me to Gallagher’s and then a movie.”
“Cool, what movie did you see?”
“He took me to see Mall Cop.”
“Did you like the movie?”
“I guess it was a good movie from what little of it that I seen.”
“Don’t tell me you two made out for the whole movie," Megan said laughing.
“We kind of got carried away," I said laughing.
“Listen Megan, I better get to bed, it’s been along day, and I will be at the sleepover”
“Cool I will talk to you tomorrow sis," Megan said.
“Goodnight sis, talk to you tomorrow," I said as I ended the call.
I don’t think it took very long but I fell asleep pretty fast and ended up sleeping through the night mostly dreaming of Adam.
Rebirth Part 5
By Cain129 Thanks To Stanman63 For Editing! Synopsis:After waking in a new body, Sarah starts accepting her new life and along the way gains a boyfriend and a new best friend, but also discovers shocking info that the real Sarah seen her death before it happened. |
I woke up at around 9:30 am, after a long restful sleep, most of my dreams involved a certain young man, whom I have become quiet fond of. I never really understood. I don’t think that I ever really understood love, yes I had been in relationships but to be honest I really don’t think love played a part in any of them.
If anything it was just a lonely man looking for companionship before. I would be lying if I said that I didn’t care for those people that I was with but caring for someone and really loving them are two separate things.
Last night I felt truly alive and happy beyond believe, I wonder if this was how the real Sarah felt or was I starting to fall for Adam on my own, to be honest I really don’t think it mattered who’s feelings were coming into play because whatever happened from here on It would be my choices that dictate where this relationship was going to go.
Looking over at the clock I decided that it was time to join the living and climbed out of bed then took a few minutes to make it and headed off to the bathroom and started filling the tub with water and bubble bath and started undressing. When the tub was full I climbed inside and laid back and relaxed. I thought about my childhood and how close John’s mother was to him.
Those memories were still painful; I had lost my mother 2 years ago from Alzheimer’s. The two of us had always been close and I think that deep down she always knew that John was not the real me but was unable to accept the truth, even though the proof was right in her face. Still she loved me and was always there to support me.
Toward the end was the hardest for me, though I went as often as I could to visit her, but she didn’t know who I was most of the time, there were short periods when she would have clarity and knew who I was but those moments became very elusive the closer she was to her death. When the call finely came in from the nursing home that mom was close to death and they didn’t think she would make it through the day.
I made the drive to the nursing home to see her one last time. They had her heavily medicate but something told me that she still could understand me. I told her that I loved her and that it was alright, she could go and that I would be alright. I leaned down and kissed her then left the room to give dad sometime alone with mom, an hour later mom left us.
I think that was the hardest day in my life, Dad had somewhat of a nervous breakdown at that point, leaving me to handle all the details and make the calls to family members, I found myself unable to grieve at first but the day of her funeral the floodgates finely opened.
While I was climbing out of the bathtub I wondered if mom was watching down on me and was happy for me. I pulled the plug in the tub and let the water start to emptying then went back to my room and started getting dressed, I just chose a pair of jeans and a tank top to wear.
Then after dressing I did my makeup lightly mostly just lipstick and a little mascara. I made my way down to the kitchen and found a note on the counter from mom, gone for breakfast with Elaine, Make yourself something up, I left $20.00 in your purse for later, love you mom.
Breakfast was not really much, I decided on cereal and a glass of orange juice, I would be getting together later with the girls and would grab something then. After I finished I rinsed the dishes and placed them in the dishwasher, and walked over to the phone and called Megan.
“Hey Sis, what are you up to”
“Not much, just finished breakfast and was going to give you a call.”
“Cool, so when did you want to get together with Amy and Jessica?”
“Anytime really, I was thinking it might be fun to hit the fair at Ryerson Park and maybe hit the mall.”
“Sounds like fun, so when do you want to leave for the fair?”
“Give me about 15 minutes Sarah and I will pick you up, then we can head over to get Amy and Jessica.”
“Alright Megan I will be waiting out front, see you then Sis. “
“See you, Sarah”
I spent the next 15 minutes, just relaxing on the couch reading a magazine then looked at the clock and made my way outside locking the door behind me. I only had to wait a few minutes before Megan pulled up in her mother’s car.
I climbed into the passenger side and put on my seatbelt. Then the two of us were off. Amy and Jessica were lived next to one another, so we met them out side of Amy’s house and waited. We didn’t have to wait very long before they were climbing into the back and the four of us were on our way.
Our first stop was at Starbucks, it was Megan’s idea, she felt it would be a good way for me to get used to Amy and Jessica. I had to admit that even with Sarah’s memories of them. I was still shy around new people, that was one of the characteristics that had kept John from building lasting relationships and it appeared to have followed me into my new life.
“How are you doing?”
“Alright just kind of lost, I remember the both of you but it hard to explain, it’s sort of like reading a story and knowing it from cover to cover but not experiencing it for yourself that is how my memory is most of the time”
“That must be confusing at times asked Jessica?”
“Yes but I am starting to get used to it, things could have turn out a lot worse”
“True you are lucky to even be alive; do you remember anything from the crash?”
“I had a nightmare the other night of the crash; it scared me half to death, I felt the crash the pain of hitting the windshield, it was really scary stuff."
“Well let’s put the crash and everything else behind us, and look towards the future," Megan said with a smile.
I wished that I could be honest with someone about what was really going on but knew that sharing the truth would be more trouble then I was worth, still I wish that I had someone that could help me figure things out.
“You must be happy about being back in school on Monday.”
“Yes it will be good to get back on with my life again.”
“When will you be able to come back as a cheerleader?”asked Jessica.
“It will be at least a couple of weeks before I can join you; I still have to see Dr. Picard for my follow up appointment and my stitches need too come out first.”
“It will be good to have you back, things haven’t been the same without you there."
“Yeah everyone is asking about how you’re doing, even most of the teachers having been asking," Amy said.
After we finished our coffees at Starbucks, we made the drive to Ryerson Park. It took a few minutes but Megan eventually found a place to park and the four of us made our way to the park. There were people everywhere and lots of booths setup all over the place.
Some were selling jewelry, trading card and other stuff. I was the physic booth that caught Megan’s eye and she wanted us to go for a reading, as for myself I never really believed in that kind of thing but my friends on the other hand seemed interested in that sort of stuff.
So I went along for the ride and followed them inside. There was an old woman sitting behind a table, who welcomed us as we made our way inside her booth.
Over the never 20 minutes she did Megan’s, Amy’s and Jessica reading. Then she turned to me and said I see we have a specptic here, please take a seat and we will see what your future holds. She reached out and took my hand then said this is interesting,
“What is interesting?”
“With most people I only see one lifeline but with you I see two.”
I started too feel nervous that she was the real thing and was about too blow everything and tell everyone in the room my secret. She looked over at the other and said, what I have to tell her is personal would you mind waiting outside. When it was just the two of us she said.
“Your future is tricky, I see that you have faced death not one but twice.”
“You are not the original owner of this body are you?”
I didn’t know what to say or think with seconds. She new the truth about me, I could have denied it but what would that prove she was able to see right through me.
“I looked at her and said no I am not, and I have no idea why I am here”
“You were brought back for a reason child; I can’t really tell you what that might be unlike others your future is blurred for whatever reason you were brought back.”
“In time I believe you will find the answers that you are looking for. Just remember one thing nothing in life happens without a reason.”
“I can tell you one last thing you are being watched so be careful.”
“Who is watching me?
“I don’t know but be careful child.”
As I left the booth I was feeling completely lost what was going on how did she know these things about me, and one last quest, she said that I was being watched, but by who she had no answer for me. When I approached my friends they could tell what was wrong and Megan was the first to speak.
“What is wrong Sarah?
“She just told me a whole bunch of stuff that I only knew.”
“That is what she does," Megan said with a smile.
“I know but it still took me by surprise how much she got right”
“Enough of the supernatural unless it involves Dean and me," said Amy, referring to the TV Show Supernatural.
“Yeah lets get something to eat," Jessica said grabbing my hand and leading the way.
The girls knew that what I was told shook me up and wanted to take my mind of things; I just went along for the ride, and it didn’t take long and I was back to my normal self, The four of us went to one of the venders that was selling hamburgers, hotdogs, I ordered a hamburger and a coke, then join the others at the picnic table.
While I was talking with the girls my cell phone started ringing, so I reached into my purse and pulled it out when I seen the number, I knew that it was Adam.
"How’s my girl doing?”
“I am doing great honey, just hanging out with the girls, what are you up too?”
“Just missing you.”
“I smiled you seen me last night”
“I know Sarah, but I always miss you when we are not together.”
“Someone is a hopeless romantic.”
“Only for you baby”
“Can I see you later?”
I thought about it but wanted too spend sometime getting to know the girls better and as a guy, I was never able to experience life as a girl and this was a big part of it. So I told him what was going on.
“Sorry were doing a girls night, but if you really want to join us I am sure we can find something for you to wear, I said giggling”
“That’s alright; I just remembered the guys are playing poker.”
“You sure honey, I got the perfect outfit for you to wear.”
“No baby I think that I will pass, have a good time tonight’
“I love you Sarah”
“Love you too Adam," I said as I ended the call.
I thought about what Adam and said, did he really love me, or was it Sarah that he really loved life can be so confusing, but I loved him and that was good enough for me. I was pretty happy after talking with him and I think it showed
“God Sarah you are, so mean to him.”
I laughed,"Really? I did invite him. didn’t I?”
“You are lucky he is in love with you girl," Jessica said.
“They make a great couple, don’t they," Megan said.
“Yeah that is because there both nuts," Amy said, causing everyone to laugh.
It was around 4:P.M. when Megan dropped me off at home, she was going too pick me up for 7pm and Amy and Jessica were going too meet us at Megan’s house. I found Dad sitting on the couch and ran over and gave him a hug. Hi baby sorry I haven’t been around work has been keeping me busy; I had a lot to catching up to do.
“How’s my girl?”
“I am doing great Daddy; I am going too sleep over at Megan’s tonight.”
“Guess that you girls will be up most of the night then.”
“Yeah, not sure about myself though I still find myself tiring out pretty fast.”
“Well have fun tonight; feel like going for a drive with me.”
“Sure but I have to be back here for 7"P.M. that is when Megan is picking me up”
“Your grandparents have been asking about you.”
“I thought we drop over and visit for a bit.”
Dad and I arrived at Sarah’s grandparents at around 5 pm, I was nervous about meeting them for the first time, so much has been happening lately and I was finding it harder to hold things together, Yes I was happy for the most part but I also had all of John’s insecurities but I pushed his down as far as I could and walked through the door of my grandparents home and met by two very happy old people that were hugging me before I knew what had happened.
Daddy and I stayed for supper where I was answered all there questions, most of them were about the accident and my memories. I told them what I could and they seemed fine with that. After supper I joined grandma in the kitchen and helped her with the dishes while dad and grandpa talked in the living room.
“You seem so much different Sarah.”
“I guess in some ways I am different grandma”
“I can remember things now but, I don’t really now who I am anymore.”
“Give it some time, baby and try not to push your self so hard, you may never find the person you were but you still have your whole life in front of you.”
“I know Grandma but, I feel so guilty inside, Mom and Dad want their daughter back and I can’t bring her back, all that is left is me.”
“There is nothing wrong with you baby, you still are the same person you were before, do you love your parents?”
“Of course I love them.”
“Then that is more then enough baby, stop trying to be something your not and just accept what you have.”
“Thanks, Grandma I think that I needed that.”
Grandma and I joined Dad and Grandpa in the living room, I found myself warming to them Grandpa told some really funny stories, about how he had met Grandma, and it turned out that my great granddad didn’t like him. Which really made it hard for Grandma and him to date, but eventually Grandpa wore him down and was able to marry Grandma. It was nice visiting and when it was time for us too leave I gave them a hug and kiss, then said thank you too grandma.
“What was that about?"
“She helped me with some problems I was having.”
“Oh, is everything alright?”
“Yes daddy I am fine," I said leaning over and giving him a kiss on the cheek.
After arriving home I had and hour to kill so I went upstairs too my room and started packing up my overnight bag, and tried too think of what I would need, having never been to a sleepover before this was all new ground to me. So I decided on just the basics a change of clothes, a nightgown and I packed up my makeup, just in care it was needed. Once I had everything packed went over to my computer and booted it up and did a little searching around.
I googled brain transfer but found mostly science stuff that made little sense to me so then I typed in supernatural brain transfer and found nothing but a lot of crap on TV shows and comics, none of that would put me any closer to an answer.
If there was even on but the physic said that there was a reason for what happened I just needed to find it. I started thinking about outer body experiences what would happen to anyone that was in that state and there body died? Could that be the answer that somehow my conciseness found the first available body that was compatible? That seemed to make more sense then anything else so far but could it be proving.
Shutting down my computer, I took my knapsack downstairs along with my sleeping bag and set them next to the door and went into the kitchen and found Mom was sitting at the table doing a crossword, I walked over to the fridge and took out a can of coke and open, and took a seat across from mom.
“Where did Dad go mom?”
“He went over too your uncle Mason’s there playing cards tonight.”
“So it’s just you here tonight mom?”
“Your aunts Stella and Jean are coming over tonight, and were going to watch a movie and have a few drinks together.”
“Cool mom, I would hate seeing you home by yourself.”
“When is Megan picking you up?”
“Looking over at the clock, she should be here in about 15 minutes or so.”
“Well have a good time, tonight honey.”
“I will mom, and say hello for me to, Aunt Jean and Stella.”
“For sure baby.”
Megan arrived a few minutes later and the two of us were off her place, it was going to be an interesting night, and I was looking forward to spending time with my new friends. I guess that Grandma was right this was now my life and needed to accept it.
By Cain129 Thanks To Stanman63 For Editing! Synopsis:Sarah starts accepting her new life and along the way gains a boyfriend and a new best friend, but also discovers shocking info that the real Sarah seen her death before it happened. ![]() |
It has been a month since that fateful day, when I was graced with this new life, Things have not been a walk in the park though, but considering what my life was like before It’s a 100% improvement. The doctor has finely cleared me to return to cheerleading, though I am not really sure it is for me.
My friends all seem to want me there and I do have fun while we are together, but there is still this piece inside of me that feels empty and I am not really sure what it is. It’s like something inside me is expecting something bad to happen, maybe it is the dreams that I have been having.
At first, I thought that it was but a one time thing, but every time I relive the last moments of Sarah’s life, I am afraid that I will not wake up. This has affected me in almost all areas of my life.
I have found myself snapping at people that I care about mostly because of my lack of sleep, Mom and Dad have been trying to talk me into seeing a doctor, but to be honest, I hate those quacks.
I had spent years seeing them when I was John and what good did they really do for me, but they are my parents and I would do anything for them, so I agreed to see the doctor.
“Sarah pay attention yelled Mrs. Harris our Gym coach.”
“I am sorry Mrs. Harris; guess my mind was somewhere else”
“That’s fine Sarah but try to stay in the here and now at least until practice is over”
Mrs. Harris was right, if I wasn’t careful someone was going to get hurt, either me of one of the other girls. Cheerleading always looked so easy, but looks can be deceiving. There are plenty of ways that one can get hurt especially when doing a pyramid, one bad grip or stance could send someone falling.
“It’s alright Sarah, you will get it.”
“Thank Amy, but I am not really sure that this is for me anymore.”
“Don’t say that Sarah, it would not be the same here without you.”
“I am committed till the end of the season, so I am not going to quit, but I think that I might try something else next year.”
Where we finishing practice, Megan invited me over to her place; once the two of us were alone in her room, she turned to me and said, “What is going on Sarah, you haven’t been yourself now for weeks?”
“Nothing Megan, I am just having nightmares and it’s affecting my sleep.”
“What are they about?”
“I keep reliving the car crash.”
“Maybe you need to talk to someone about it; you have been through a lot lately."
“Mom and Dad said the same thing; I just don’t see what talking about it is going to do.”
“I just want to forget everything that happened and move on.”
“Maybe that is the problem Sarah, you are trying to act like what happened hasn’t bothered you and the truth is you died and came back."
I thought about what Megan said it was true, Sarah and John both died that day and I am sure Sarah wanted to live just as much as John. Maybe everyone is right that I needed to talk to someone about things, but how could I really be honest with a doctor?
The truth was unbelievable; it made me think about how things were after John tried taking his life as a teenager and how he had no one that he could talk to about what was really wrong.
“Megan there are things that you don’t know about me. And to be honest, if you did, I am afraid you would think that I was crazy and I would loose you as a friend. But it is so hard keeping the truth from you. I have never felt closer to anyone then I do with you and the thought of loosing you is more then I can bare.”
“Sarah there is nothing you could say or do that would ever make me not want to be your friend, we're sisters and always will be.”
I thought about what she said, could I trust her with my secret? I was so afraid of loosing everything that I had but being completely alone with no one to turn to was a thought I didn’t want to deal with. I knew she loved Sarah as a sister and deep down I felt the same way for Megan.
“Megan, do you remember the talk that we had, when you said that I seemed like two different people?”
“Yes I do Sarah, but what does that have to do with anything?”
“I am not the same person that you knew, I don’t how it happened but I woke up in Sarah’s body and over time found that I also had access to her memories and her feelings.”
“I don’t understand, if you are not Sarah then who are you.”
“My name was John Stevens, and I died from a brain tumor.“
Megan just stared at me, for a few minutes trying to make sense of what I had just told her. I could tell she was trying to figure out if this was a big joke, then she turned towards me, “If you are here, then where is Sarah?”
“I think the real Sarah died, the doctors don’t really know how I am even alive, but by some miracle her body repaired itself, and then I woke up in her place.”
Megan looked at me as if trying to figure out what to say then turned to me,“I am not sure what to believe, you do seem different, but I can still see my best friend."
“That is because I have her memories and everything that she felt I also feel inside. She loved you like a sister Megan, and when she left, I inherited those feelings along with the feelings that she had for Adam.”
Megan looked lost in thought for a few minute, taking in everything that I had told her, it was a few minutes before she spoke again. Then she turned to me, “Sarah, this is all a little hard to believe, but I also know you well enough that you wouldn’t make up something like this. You never had a sick sense of humor, I think you really believe what your saying, but I can’t believe that it's true.”
I knew that there was only one way that I could prove to her that I was not crazy and turned to her and said, “Megan, it is true and I can prove it.”
“How? asked Megan.
“If you get your dad's guitar, I will show you something.”
Megan left for a few minutes then returned and handed it to me,“The real Sarah was just starting to play right, Megan?”
“Yeah she could barely play.”
“I started playing The Climb by Miley Cyrus and as I played the song I sang the lyrics.”
I had never played the song before but had heard it so many times on the radio that I was able to play it all the way though and only struggled with a couple of the cords, but only a musician would really have noticed that I was playing using the wrong cords. When I finished I continued into another song called Beautiful by Christine Aguilera. That one I had played plenty of times and could play it right though without any trouble.
When I finished playing the songs I sat the guitar down on Megan’s bed, and looked over at her, and could see the shock in her eyes, “I have been playing for years Megan, if you name the song I can most likely play it”
“Alright, I believe you. But I still don’t understand how any of this is possible.”
“That makes two of us, Megan.”
“Why tell me though, you could have just continued and no one would have known?”
“Megan, you are like a sister to me. I needed someone that I could trust, you don’t know how hard it’s been, I felt so alone and had no one to turn too.”
“It must have been hard for you going from being a guy to a girl over night, but you carry yourself really well, almost like you have been one all your life, is that because of Sarah’s memories?”
“Not really. Her memories do help when it comes to certain things, but I lived for 40 years as a man, but inside, I had always been a woman. There was nothing I could do about it. You see, even if I had tried, I would never have passed, I wanted to look like a woman and not a man pretending to be one.”
“I don’t think that you should tell anyone else Sarah, most people wouldn’t believe you and if your parents found out they would likely send you to a doctor, and god knows they might end up hospitalizing you.”
I thought about what Megan had said, she was right, even telling her was a risk but in the end it was worth it. I now had someone that I could confide in and no longer felt so alone, she knew the truth now and seemed to accept me.
“I can see now Sarah, why you were so hesitant when it came to dating Adam?”
“Adam is a great guy Megan, and when I am with him I can’t help but love him. I don’t really know anymore if the feelings that I have are Sarah’s or mine, but deep down It doesn’t really matter. I love him and he loves me, that is all that matters.”
“You are right, Sarah, he does love you and who knows, and someday I may end up being a bridesmaid when the two of you get married.”
“Well Megan, I better get going, Mom should have supper almost done.”
“Alight, Sarah. I will see you at school tomorrow and thanks, I know it was hard for you too tell me the truth but I appreciate your honestly, and if you need me I am here.”
“Thanks, Megan I will see you tomorrow.”
I felt much better as I walked home, Megan was still my friend, and I knew that her loosing Sarah was hard, but part of Sarah would live on through me. Megan and I would always be like a sister now at least that was how I felt.
Sitting in an office on the other side of town is a woman; she is typing something into her computer when her phone rings.
“Hi, Anna," says the woman calling.
“Hi Vicky, do you have anything to report”
“I have been watching her Vicky, but at the moment. I have nothing to report.”
“Anna, shouldn’t we have seen something progress by now?" asked Vicky.
“Nothing like this has been done before, it could take time before we see results.”
“I think that we made a mistake Anna, we should never have waited.”
“Maybe Vicky, but it’s to late now, we are already committed.”
“Do you want me too bring her in, Vicky?”
“No Anna, call Carol, she can do a scan and tell us what we need to know.”
“Vicky, Sarah may not be strong enough, the last thing we need right now is to loss her.”
“We need to know, it’s been over a month Anna. If we wait god knows what will happen.”
“Alright Vicky, but I think bringing Carol in is a mistake, but that is up to you, I will keep and eye on here and call you back, bye Vicky.”
Anna types into her computer Status of “John Stevens / Sarah Tanner Unknown”
Caroline Connors is being brought in and a Scan has been authorized.
Synopsis:Sarah starts accepting her new life and along the way gains a boyfriend and a new best friend, but also discovers shocking info that the real Sarah seen her death before it happened.
I have found myself lying on a bed, there are machines all around me and wires attached to my body, I try to move but can’t, I am completely paralyzed. All I can do is watch, I can hear a commotion outside my room, and it is Mom and Dad talking to someone else.
I am not alone, there is someone here with me, I feel the jab of a needle as it pierces my arm. Inside the area where the needle went in it feels like something is moving inside me. It is at that moment that I wake up to the sound of my alarm clock.
As I wipe the sleep out of my eyes, I am disturbed with the dream that I awoke up from, it was the first time that it had happened, I knew that it had to be related to the accident because I had seen the crash first and that was what followed. What did it mean, or was it just my imagination?
I climbed out of bed and walked over to my vanity and reached inside and took out my nail file. Then thought to myself 'Sarah, your being crazy', then took it and jabbed the point into my hand.
It hurt like hell and I was bleeding, I then grabbed some tissue and wiped the blood away and watched as the cut started sealing itself, within a minute there was no sign of the wound.
I walked over to my bed and took a seat as the shock of what just happened subsided, 'Alright', I thought to myself. 'That explains Sarah’s miracle recovery, but how is that even possible?'
It didn’t take a genius to realize that there must have been sometime in that needle, but how did I know? I had not taken ownership of Sarah’s body till much later and Sarah was brain dead, so how would she even have a memory of those events, and if they injected Sarah with whatever this stuff was, did they do the came with John?
After I took my bath and got dressed, I made my way downstairs and found Mom in the kitchen making breakfast and took a seat at the table.
“Good morning, Honey," Mom said with a smile.
“Hi Mom, need any help?”
“Thanks, Honey. But I am almost done.”
"OK, Mom."
“You look like you had a hard night, Baby.”
“I am still having the nightmares, just wish they would stop.”
“They will, Baby, what happened takes time. The physical scars maybe gone, but emotional ones take longer to heal, Sarah.”
Mom was right the emotional scars would take time, it would have been so much easier if I had started without Sarah’s memories and was able to just build my own, but I didn’t really have that options and had no choice but to take her feelings into consideration. Because like it or not, they were part of me now.
Being the weekend, I really didn’t have any plans, so when the phone rang with Adam wanting to know if I wanted too get together, I was happy and said that I would meet him out front in an hour.
I ran up to my room and changed into my little blue sundress and spent the next half hour doing my makeup and hair, I wanted to look perfect for him, I couldn’t help but laugh to myself when it came to the time that I took getting ready for a date now. When I was the guy, it only took minutes, you know a quick shower, get dressed run a comb though your hair a little cologne and your ready.
Being a woman wasn’t always a walk in the park either, at least for those three days a month. The first time I had my period, it scared the hell out of me waking up covered in blood, and I would have to say for those few days, I wasn’t all that fun to be around, but it was a small price to pay for the gift of finely being complete mentally and physically.
As I make my way downstairs and grab my coat from the closet then head into the kitchen, I find Daddy has finely decided to join the rest of the human race, I walk over and give him a kiss and a hug, “Good morning, Daddy.”
“Good morning, Princess. Where are you off too?”
“Adam is picking me up, I am not really sure where were going, yet.”
“Give us a call once you know, Baby," Mom said.
“Do you have money for a cab if you need it Sarah?"
“Yes, Daddy and I have my cell with me.”
Before leaving, I gave Ma hug and kiss, she then told me to have a good time, I smiled and said I always have a good time with Adam. Then said 'goodbye' and headed outsider to wait for my boyfriend.
Anna Davidson walked into her office placing her coffee on her desk then hit the message button on the answer machine. The only one that she seemed to take notice of was one by a Carol Baker, who was going to drop by the office at 11:P.M. She then booted up her computer.
While it was booting up, she hung up her coat and took a seat at her desk, she was about too check her email when the computer started making a beeping noise which mean there was an upload in progress, causing a new window to open. The title of the new page said,
The Nanites Project,
.
When the download was complete, looked at the information. It stated that a repair cycle was activated on Sarah Tanner at 8:A.M. and repairs were completed at 8:02A.M. She then used the computer to confirm the status on Sarah, but received no response from the Nanites.
Something wasn’t right, she should have received a response, but no matter how many times she tried there was no response. She then switched to the GPS and found Sarah was at home, she then picked up the phone and made a call to Carol Baker.
“Hi Carol, we have a change of plans, forget the scan for now, we need an extraction.”
“What happened?”
“There is a malfunction with the Nanites, we need her brought in."
“Alright, do you have a location on her?”
“She is at home Carol make sure she is alone, we don’t want witnesses.”
“I will call you once I have her, Anna.”
“Alright, I will get the lab ready for her, see you later, Carol.”
Sarah waited outside of her home for about 5 minutes, when Adam pulled into the driveway and put the car into park; I ran over and climbed into the passenger side then leaned over and gave him a kiss,“Can I take that as a sign that you’re happy to see me.”
“I am always glad to see you, Honey, so Adam what is the plan?”
“No plans, I just wanted too see you.”
I couldn’t help but smile,"I am glad you called.”
“I know we see each other everyday, Sarah, but it’s nice having time alone together.”
“I know how you feel Adam, It will be nice once the summer is here and we're off.”
“That will be nice, Sarah. Maybe we can get the gang together and have a camping trip.”
“Well, you can count me in as long as you are there.”
Adam put the car in drive and the two of us were off, as we drove I reached over and switched on the radio and played around till I found something I liked, it was an old rolling stones song called Angie.
We just drove around for the next hour then I we pulled on to the highway and started heading out of town,“Where are we going, Adam?”
“It’s a surprise, Sarah.”
“How about a hint?”
“No hints, Baby you are just going to have to be patient.”
I smiled and shook my head, wondering what he was planning. We drove for about another 45 minutes and then hit the turn off to Whistler Mountain. When Adam turned onto the road, I knew now where he was taking me.
After finding a place to park Adam came around and opened the door for me and helped me out and took my hand in his. He then lead me to a path, making me wish that I had brought my sneakers instead of just my sandals, but the path was paved, so it wasn’t to bad as long as we stuck to the main trails.
“This is beautiful, Adam.”
“Not as beautiful as you are," then leaned down and kissed me.
I looked into his eyes,"You know that I love you, don’t you Adam?”
“I love you to Sarah, and I always have and always will.”
Hearing those words brought tears to my eyes and before I knew it we were kissing again.
The two of us walk for awhile then found a bench and rested, I found myself snuggling up to Adam with my head on his shoulder just enjoying myself. He had his arm around me and just held me. I had never felt as completely happy as I did at that moment.
It was at that moment he reached into his pocket and pulled out a small case. He looked at me,"Sarah, I know were too young to get married, but if I would marry you right now. But something tells me your parents would kill me. But I don’t see any reason that I can’t give you this,".
He handed me the box, when I opened it, I found tears in my eyes once again, inside was a engagement ring.
“I love you Sarah, and I don’t care how long it takes, I can wait.”
As I wiped the tears from my eyes, I smiled and said,"Yes, Adam."
He took the ring and slipped it on my finger, then leaned over and kissed me, the two of us just stayed there for awhile before, he took my hand and we started walking.
We soon found a nice restaurant and went inside, Adam ordered fish and chips for the both of us along with a couple of cokes, I just couldn’t stop looking at the ring on my finger, and at the same time could hear Mom and Dad going on about how I would take things slowly with Adam. Yeah this was taking it slowly, agreeing too marry him.
I would deal with that bridge when I came to it but for now, I was with the man that I loved and nothing else really seemed to matter. The two of us had a nice dinner and we talked almost the whole time.
I had never really been the social butterfly and because of my past, I was afraid that those tendencies would follow me into my new life, but I was starting to realize that those problems were mostly of my own making.
I spent years hating myself and wondered why I could not have a lasting relationship ship. The answer was right in front of me, I loved myself and no longer hated the person that I am. John never found love for one reason; he hated his life right up till the end. Sarah loved her life and everything that went with it. It all comes down to one thing, how can another person love you when you can’t love yourself?
Adam had to be home for 5:P.M. to help his father; the drive home would take a couple of hours, but we talked most of the way. I had this strange feeling. There was this brown van that almost seemed like it was following us. I really couldn’t make out the driver because it stayed far enough behind, but it seemed to be with us all the way home.
By the time we reached my home, I didn’t see it and thought it was just my imagination playing tricks on me. After Adam pulled into my driveway, I noticed that Dad's car was gone, which meant that they were mostly likely gone.
I looked at Adam,"Do you want to come in for awhile?”
“I would like to Sarah, but I have to get home.”
“Alright Adam, call me later" I said then leaned over and gave him a kiss.
Adam waited till I was inside before he left as I locked the door behind me, I plumped down on the couch, just in shock how my day had been, I looked at my ring and just smiled, I was engaged, how did that happen, I knew but it was still unbelievable. I walked over and picked up the phone and called Megan.
“Hey Sis, what are you up too?”
“Not much, Sarah just waiting for Jessica and Amy to get here, we were going to watch a movie you want to come?”
“Sounds like fun, when should I come over?”
“Now if you want, you can tell me how things went with Adam.”
“How do you know about Adam?”
“I called and your mom, said the two of you went out.”
“Alright Megan, I will be over in a few, see you then bye.”
After locking up the house I started walking, I was about a block from home when I felt a sharp pain in the side of my neck, when I reached up I felt something and pulled it out it was a dart, I then went weak in the knees and fell to the ground, I tried to yell out for help but went unconscious before I could get a word out.
A woman followed by two big men came out of the bushes,"Get her to the van. We need to get her back to the lab before the tranquilizer wears off." They then picked up the unconscious girl and placed her in the back of the van.
The woman took out her cell, and dialed a number,“Anna, it’s Carol we have the girl and were on our way, is the lab ready?”
“Yes the lab is ready Carol, see you when you get here, bye.”
To Be Continued In Part Eight
Synopsis:The Hidden pieces of Sarah’s Life are finely coming into view a dream leads her to a new discovery that she has the ability to heal herself but the more she learns the greater the danger, and is kidnapped by the same people that saved her life.
Sarah awakens to the sound of Machines beeping and finds herself unable to move, as she looks down she sees straps on her hands and feet that are holding her firmly in place. When she looks around she sees various items, there is a window in the room that overlooks the mountains, and there is also the sound of a train far off in the distance.
I start trying to free myself but the straps that are binding my hands are too thick.
“Please remain calm Sarah," a woman in her late 40’s said as she entered the room.
“Why am I here," I said in anger.
“We need to run some tests, then we will explain everything not that you will remember any of it when we send you home.”
She started typing something then hit a button, and then I felt extreme pain rushing through my body.
I screamed,"What are you doing to me?”
"I am sorry Sarah but you are not even supposed to be alive. We injected you with little computerized robots called Nanites; they were supposed to heal your body and once that happened. You would have been programmed like a computer to do whatever task requested of you. Do you know what a sleeper agent is Sarah?”
“I have heard the term on television”
"Well let me give you the run down, you can call me Anna for now, you are at the moment being held in a top secret location that is only know to me and a few others in the military. Escape is impossible, so don’t get any idea’s little girl."
"Yeah, right."
"Like I was saying, you were selected because of your medical condition. You were completely brain dead, the job of the nanites was to repair you brain damage. You were not the only one in the hospital that day, there was one other his name was John Steven, which I suspect that you already know. He also had brain damage, but we were unable to save him in time. When the nanites finished a job they are programmed to upload the details to the nearest computer then send the results to our lab."
"What happened?"
"Instead, they did something unexpected. The upload was sent to your nanites, then a report was sent to us. When we looked at the upload, the size of the file was larger then what it was supposed to be. We assumed it was because of John’s condition and didn’t think it would have an affect on the program. So we just left the information, knowing we could just send the code word to activate the sleeper agent and you would still follow the orders. But now the nanites are refusing too communicate with us. While you were sleeping we sent the word to activate the sleeper program and the nanites have locked us out."
"Oh."
"This leaves us with two choices; we can destroy them and inject you with new ones, that would most likely do the job, it would also take care of John’s memories, they would be gone and all that would be left if the personality that we created."
Anna then started typing some thing into the computer and I felt the pain again this time it was worse then before.
"What you are feeling, Sarah are the nanites inside you self destructing, it will be over soon enough, Honey."
I then felt something else going on inside me, the pain stopped completely then I felt light headed, It was hard to explain what was going on, I just found myself looking at the binds on my hands, wishing I could get free and to my surprise the binds started undoing themselves on their own.
Once one of my hands was free, I ripped the sheet off my body completely, then freed my hands and legs. But before I knew it, solders came through the door with guns pointed at me.
I looked deep into one of the solders eyes, 'God, please help me.' and next thing, he was struggling to keep the gun pointed at me then turned an shot the other solder standing beside him, then fell to the ground with blood coming out of his eyes and ears.
Anna just stared at me in horror,“Sarah stop this, you will never make it out of here alive!”
She was right, I couldn’t stop everyone just doing what I just did took most of my energy, then I had a wild thought,'The more memory a computer had the more powerful it became, would the same be true with nanites?'
I walked over to where there was a bunch of veils that looked ready for injecting and took the injector gun that Anna was going to use on me and started injecting the nanites into my arm and sure enough, I got stronger right away. It might have been a mistake, cause I had no idea what they had been programmed to do. I only hoped my nanites were capable of reprogramming them.
I looked over at Anna,"You are not going to hurt another person," then looked into her eyes. I didn’t want too harm her like I did the solder. I just somehow took away her memories and left her in the state of a child. It was cruel, but she would live and never harm anyone else.
I found my clothes and got dressed and went over to her computer and used my new abilities to pull up the blue prints of the base. I now had a escape plan and was able to disable most of the base security with the exception of Anna’s key card, which I kept for my own use. Then I made my way out of her lab.
Her key card worked and I was able to move through the base with very little trouble other then when I ran into a huge solder who, just didn’t want to get out of my way. I had pretty much run right into him and had no time to even think. When he throw a punch and hit me, I went falling back onto the floor.
Somehow, I managed to get back to my feet, and when he came at me for the second time, I found myself easily blocking his next punch and landed one of my own hitting him right in the throat. I guess that it made an impression, because he was on the floor trying hard to catch his breath. I quickly ran past him and made it to the door using the key card and the door locked behind me, keeping him from following.
Eventually, I made it outside to a parking lot and clicked the button on her key and heard a car horn go off, then found her car and drove off. I knew that I had to loose the car fast and drove to the nearest city transit and parked it there, then climbed onto a train and made my escape.
As I sat down on one of the seat, I thought about what had just happened and knew that my life would never be the same. I would be hunted down and knew now that they were able to follow me because when they grabbed me, they knew where I was. I closed my eyes and concentrated on destroying whatever it was that was allowing them too follow me. I had no idea if it would work, I just hoped that the nanites were capable of communication.
I knew one thing though, there was no way that I could return home. If I did, then I would put Mom and Dad in danger, the same was true for Megan and Adam. I had no choice but to deal with this alone. I just couldn’t risk putting my loved ones in danger.
I just sat there and felt tears running down from my eyes. I wondered what I would do and where I would go. I had no money, and no where that I could go. I needed to get money, that was my first problem. I knew that I could figure something out, but that would take time.
I needed to get out of town fast, the sooner that I was gone the better it would be for everyone around me.
There was one thing that I needed to do but wasn’t sure how. I was dealing with the military and they would surely be watching my parents and friends, it didn’t change the fact though unless I could get a message to them, that they would be worried sick, wondering what happened to me.
I didn’t dare call them until I was sure that no one was listening in, which meant I needed to call from a phone that was not traceable and those were not easy to come by. The best that I could do for the moment was using a payphone at a busy place that I could make a quick exit from after I was done.
I took the train another couple of stops then got off and headed down to the street where I flagged down a taxi and told the driver to take me to the Metrotown Mall, it was one of the busiest malls that I knew and it would be easy to loose myself there if needed. After the cab arrived, I paid the fare and made my way inside. There were lots of payphones near the food court, so that is where I went first.
I dialed Megan’s number and it rang a couple of times then she answered the phone,"Megan it’s me, I can’t talk long, So listen. Tell my parents that I am alright, something has happened. I can’t tell you right now, I am not sure who is listening."
“What’s wrong Sarah, please tell me!”
"I can’t talk about it over the phone, Megan. Remember when we were 12 years old, we found that place that was so well hidden?"
"Whatever," she replied, letting me know she remembered.
"I will be there, meet me. Make sure you are not followed and for God’s sake, don’t tell anyone, even my parents. You will understand why, soon enough."
"Gotcha"
"And Megan, I need whatever money you can find. I will be there at 10:A.M."
“I love you."
“I love you. too Sarah, be careful”
I hung up the phone and headed over and caught the skytrain downtown. I hated the downtown, it was a scary place but I knew that I could disappear there easy enough amongst all the other homeless people and street kids. I knew one thing for sure, I couldn’t let my emotions control me; I need to think clearly if I was going to find a way out of this.
It was around 5:P.M. and I knew that if I waited too long, I would be spending the night on the street, that was something that I refused to do. I went looking for a phone booth and eventually found one, then looked up youth shelters and found one called Convent House. I had heard about it a few times on the television, so I took down the address and eventually found myself waiting at there intake office. After sitting there for awhile I was called into a small office and met with a social worker, her name was Beth. I told her my name was Amanda Landry and that I had just got into town.
She took down my information, then I was giving a bed for the night and she told me the Hostel rules, not that I really cared, come tomorrow I would most likely be leaving town.
I just needed to explain to Megan what happened so she could talk to my parents and Adam. The thought of leaving everyone behind was almost more then I could deal with, and I wondered why they just couldn’t leave me alone. But the thought of being controlled by someone else and forced to harm others, I had to know for sure if they could take control.
I suspected that they couldn’t because the nanites inside me seemed to be working independent as if they were there own entity but there had to be away to find out fore sure.
That night was one of the hardest that I have had, I hardly slept and found myself waking up throughout the night, I had too much going though my mind. I thought about the life I had made, all my friends that I would be leaving behind. I needed to find another path, maybe if I can expose the program to the press, that was the idea.
If I could find away to expose them for what they were doing, they would have to leave me alone. They would be to busy dealing with the press to with bother me, but the question was, how could I expose them?
I knew that if I was going to expose them, I would need help. I knew that I could depend on Megan, but to do so, I would be putting her at risk. There was also Dr. Picard, did he play a part in what happened to me? If not, maybe he would be willing to help.
It was about 8:A.M. when the hostel worker came in letting us know that it was time for us to get up and go for breakfast. After a quick breakfast that consisted of eggs and bacon, everyone had to leave for the day, so I soon found myself outside of the hostel.
The first stop that I made was an ATM and withdrew $60.00 from my savings. I then headed to the nearest bus stop and after 45 minutes, I exited a few blocks from my school, and walked through the woods to an old cabin that Megan and I found years ago. Only a few of us knew about the camp, so it would be as good a place as any to hide out for awhile.
I looked at my watch, it was already 9:30 A.M., which meant that I had a half hour to kill, so I took a walk down to the lake and took a seat on the ground next to the water and just relaxed.
It was still not easy, I was paranoid that there was someone behind every tree waiting to jump out and attack, I knew that it was just my imagination, but it still bothered me all the same. It was almost 10:A.M. by the time I made it back to the cabin. As I entered the cabin, I found Megan already inside.
Seeing her there, I ran over and gave her a big hug and couldn’t help but start crying. She just held me for awhile till I calmed down.
“Sarah, what happened to you, I have been so worried and the police are looking for you.”
"When I was walking to your house, someone hit me with a dart, when I woke up I was strapped to a bed, there was this woman and she knew everything about me and explained what happened to me. Megan, it’s horrible, they injected me with microscopic robots, she called nanites, something went wrong. She called me a sleeper agent, they were trying to create a weapon, when it didn’t work, they were going to wipe my memory and reprogram me, but I escaped."
“God, Sarah, what are you going to do?”
“I don’t know, Megan; I have to find some way of exposing them.”
“Is there anything that I can do to help, Sarah?”
“Not at the moment, Megan it’s too dangerous. I will need your help later though.”
“What do you need me to do?”
“When I the information to expose them, I will need you to send the information to the press.”
“I can do that; just send it to my email.”
“It would be best to create new accounts and only communicate though school.”
“What about your parents, Sarah? What do you want me to tell them?”
“Tell them the truth, just don’t tell them about John, they wouldn’t understand.”
Megan and I then said our goodbyes and I told her that I would contact her as soon as I cuold and asked her to explain what happened to Adam. I only hoped that I would be with him again soon, it was going to be hard being away from everyone that I love, but it was the best thing that I could do for them.
Rebirth Part 9
By, Cain129
Synopsis: For the last two months, Sarah has been in hiding but the time has come to fight back. The lines have been drawn and a plan has been set in motion.
Chapter 21
I never thought that I would ever be running for my life. It has been a couple of Months now since my escape. I had to leave everything that mattered to me behind. At the moment I am in Calgary, I had arrived here a couple days after talking to Megan. I hate it here; it’s a lonely place, especially when you don’t really know anyone. I miss mom and dad, I miss Megan but most of all I miss Adam, so many times I had wanted to pick up that phone but knew if I did they would be watching him and would use him to draw me in.
It’s not easy; being a teenager, it was hard to find a decent job that would actually pay minimum wage but I was now working in a restaurant as a waitress and with the money that Megan gave me I had enough to cover rent for a couple weeks and my job at least gave me a free meal twice a day. So for the most part I was doing alright, my only real problem was, and I was homesick and knew the longer I stayed away the easier it would be later. Most of my free time was spent at the library, where I was researching Dr. Anna Vandervolt. There was quite a bit of information posted on the net about her. She was considering one of the leading scientists in Nano technology.
Unfortunately this was really getting me no where; I needed access to her files that is the only way that I can figure anything out. I was coming up with a plan but it would take sometime for me to workout all the details, I logged onto the new email account that I created, under the name Amanda Landry and left Megan a message.
“He girl, hope all is well, I am working now, keeping busy and staying out of trouble. I think that I will be coming for a visit soon, any news from Sarah?”
“Better run, need to get to work, Hope to hear from you soon, Take care and say hi to everyone for me.”
I then hit send and logged off the computer, whenever I talked to Megan now, It was pretty much in code, just incase someone was watching her internet activity. I had basically told her that I would be returning soon. I had an idea; I still had my ATM Card and knew that if I used it they would know where I was, but there was no reason that I couldn’t send them on a wild goose chase. When the time comes I would mail my ATM Card to Toronto Ontario along with pin number, all I needed to do was send it to the low rentals, someone there would most likely try using it and when they did, it would look like I was hiding in another city and while they are looking for me there I will be back in Vancouver. I just hoped that it would work the only way to know forsure was to give it a try.
Grabbing by purse, I headed out I wasn’t lying about needing to get to work. I guess that part of me liked being there, the people were always nice and most of the men that came in took a liking to the new girl and I did really well there especially in tips, for the most part I was living off the tips, in between pay checks. The only down side was there were a lot of perverts that would love to get there hands on a young girl like me but Matt, he is the manager there took good care of me and made sure that the guys didn’t get out of hand.
“Hi Matt, I said as I made my way behind the counter”
“You are early Amanda”
“Yeah I was at the library, and it’s a couple of blocks from here.”
“Well you have another 15 minutes, why don’t you grab something to eat before you start”
“Thanks Matt, I think that is a good idea.”
I made my way over too the fridge and grabbed a chicken Salad sandwich, and I diet coke from the cooler then took a seat at the counter across from Matt.
“How are you liking, Calgary Amanda.”
“I like it here Matt, but really haven’t had much time to do any exploring.”
“It’s a big city that is forsure, and with stampede coming up it will be a busy one too”
“You should check it out, Amanda there will be lots of different events going on.
“Most of the stuff, I am still to young to get into, but what I can get into I plan on going to”
“Have you heard anything from your parents?”
“Yeah mom wants me to come home, but dad is still hitting the bottle.”
”I wish things were different for you Amanda, but I can understand, I went though the same with my dad and just couldn’t wait to get out on my own.”
“Well I am doing alright thanks to you Matt; most of the jobs that t applied for didn’t want to pay me a full wage because of my age.”
“You are one of my better workers, so the job is yours as long as you need it Amanda.”
“Thanks, Matt I really appreciate it.”
I was busy for most of my shift which made the day go by pretty fast but by the time I finished my shift, I was pretty tired. I said goodbye to Matt and made my way home. It would have been faster to catch the bus home but, I really need every cent that I had, and it was a half hours walk home. It was already starting to get dark when I left the restaurant and the area that I lived and worked in was not really the safest especially for a young girl alone. The only difference was I wasn’t a normal girl anymore.
This fact made me feel secure inside, I was capable of defending my self. I was just a couple of blocks from home, when I heard a woman screaming from an alleyway. The last thing that I needed was to draw attention to myself but I just couldn’t stand there and not try to help her. I made my way into the alley, it was pretty dark making it hard to really see anything but as I got closer, I could make up the shape on a man that was on top of the poor woman, there was no doubt of what he was doing.
I ran over and grabbed him by his shoulders and yelled get off of her you filthy pig and through in across the alley into the side of a garbage bin. When he recovered he turned around and started running towards me. I duck and somehow flipped him over my shoulder sending him down hard on his back and with a hard stump I drove my foot hard into the guys throat, the guy just laid there trying to get his breath unable to move. I turned to the woman that was lying on the ground, the top of her dress was ripped open and she looked pretty badly beating, I was angry and walked over to the guy and grabbed him by the top of his shirt and with unseen strength tossed him into the metal garbage bin then pulled the top down. There was an old broom in the garbage I broke it and pushed it through the lock brackets on the bin locking it from the outside.
Going back over to the woman, I took off my coat and wrapped it around her and helped her to her feet. There was a Baptist Church about a block down the street. I walked her there then took her inside and explained what happened, he was soon on the phone calling the police, I used that moment to slip out the last thing I needed was to be talking to the police for any reason. I pretty much ran the rest of the way home. It was a lonely place; it’s funny how much things can change within a few months. There was a time that being alone wouldn’t have bothered me but things were different now. I missed my family and my friends and wasn’t about to just sit idle and loose them just because a group of people want to use me.
After taking a shower, I changed into my nightgown. It was just a cheap thing that I had bought at the Salvation Army; I had spent almost all of my money there after I had arrived once I had rented my room. The first few nights were the hardest for me, I found myself crying all the time wanting to be with mom and dad, but knew if I had gone back home, they would have been placed in danger. There were a few times that I just wanted to give up but that was John talking. He ran from his problems, but Sarah was a fighter and I choose to follow her example and tried to hold on and stay positive.
Chapter 22
Since moving to Calgary my life had pretty much been a routine, I spent my morning at the mall mostly window shopping it was more just to pass the time, then I would go to the library and use there computers researching everything that I could on Nanites Technology. There was one benefit that the Nanites provided that really helped me, I was able to memorize just about anything I read, I guess in a sense my mind was like a computer now. There were other enhancements too like greater strength and the ability to defend myself. I think that I could likely do more but those abilities would only come forth when I needed them.
The rest of my day, I pretty much worked 6 days a week and having Sunday off. I could have only worked 5 days a week and that would have been fine with Matt, the hours that I was working was pretty much my own idea. I needed to keep busy otherwise I would have went insane and working helped keep my mind off things. I had met a few people while here but knew that I wouldn’t be staying, so I decided having attachments right now was not really a good Idea, but I did go out with them a few times mostly because I was lonely.
This was my life and it was time to go home and face up to everything and everyone. I found the perfect place in was a low rental in Toronto, in pretty much the worst area of Toronto, Ontario. I mailed my ATM card there in an envelope that only had the address; I would be depending on human greed to do the rest. I then went into work and broke the news to Matt that I would be going home but would work there another week if he needed me. He understood and told me if things didn’t workout that I could always come back.
A week later, I was on a greyhound headed to Vancouver, Canada. I had a pay as you go cell phone now that was listed under the name Connie Stevens, and used it too access my bank records and found that there was money talking out of the account in Toronto. I knew then that my plan worked, they would be looking for me in the wrong place giving me the time to do some snooping around, I just needed to be careful and not draw attention to myself. Before I had left, I spent the money to get my hair done and the colored. I still looked like Sarah but I was now a strawberry blonde.
Everything was setup for my return; I had leaked the info to Megan through email that I wanted to meet her and Adam. I had told her to tell Adam, I would be waiting for the two of them in our mountain paradise, Adam would know the spot, we could all catch up there and I would let them know the rest of my plan then. The plan was for them to rent a room for the weekend, it would be expensive but Megan and Adam had enough money to cover the cost for the room. I was still worried about them being followed but it was a risk that had to be taking, if I was going to do this, then I would need help and there were only a few people that I knew that I could trust.
I arrived in Whistler the following day, I was dead tired and in need of a nice bath. I wouldn’t recommend bus travel to anyone, but at the moment I really didn’t have many options. Flying required Identification and had I used mine it would have sent up flags to the people chasing me, so that only left two methods of travel taking the bus or the train. I went with the cheapest option.
The bus finely pulled into Whistler Mountain and as it pulled up to the main entrance, I saw Adam and Megan waiting. It was good to see them, Adam looked really handsome and as soon as I stepped of the bus, I found myself in his arms again, I knew at that moment that I was truly home and when he kissed me, I was in heaven. After the two of us broke our embrace I turned to Megan, and gave her a big hug.
“You don’t know how happy I am to see the both of you, I said with a big smile”
“The feeling is mutual, Megan said.”
“That is forsure I was ready to follow you to Calgary, if you hadn’t come back on your own, Adam said, as he picked up my bags.”
“We better get going guys, I could really use a both and a bite to eat, I am never taking another bus again”
The three of us made our way back to our room, I pretty much left the two of them to talk while I jumped into the bath tub and soaked for awhile. It felt nice to finely have a nice bath and just laid back and relaxed. I was pretty content at the moment. I was home again, well not with my parents but I was finely with Adam and Megan. I heard a knock on the door, mind if I come in Megan asked?
“The door is open Megan”
She came inside and put the cover down on the toilet and sat down.
“It’s nice to see you Sarah, how have you been”
“Miserable for the most part, I have been home sick since the day I left”
“Everyone has been asking about you and what happened, that caused you to leave”
“It couldn’t have been easy for you either Megan, I pretty much left everything for you”
“It’s alright Sarah, I understand and it wasn’t your fault”
“So what is it like Sarah, Having those machines inside of you?”
To be honest for the most part, I feel normal, some things have changed though I am stronger now then I was before and a hell of a lot faster. Then there is my memory, I can remember everything I read or see.
“Sounds like a good deal to me Sarah”
“It is for the most part Megan but I am also a trained killer that can be switched on anytime and I really don’t want to hurt anyone”
“The government wants me back and will do anything to keep the truth about there super soldier program from getting out”
If they do succeed then they can take anyone, even you and turn you into a weapon. They chose me because I was brain dead, they though that they could just repair my body and program me to be the perfect weapon, but by some act of god it didn’t work. I have my own mind and I am my own person, and if anyone got a hold of what’s inside me then god knows what would happen, they can’t let me live Megan.
“So what are you going to do Sarah?”
“Give me a few minutes and I will come out and talk to the both of you together alright.”
“Alright Sarah, I will let you finish up here.”
“Thanks, Megan”
After I finished up in the bathroom I got dressed and joined Megan and Adam, I sat on the bed next to Megan and looked over at Adam and said it’s time that you knew the whole truth; you deserve to know everything. I just want you to know one thing Adam, I love you and you mean the world to me and if you are going to be part of my life then you need know.
I have already told Megan she has known the truth now for a few months, I wish that I could have told you before now but I was afraid that if you knew the truth that I would loose you, but with everything that has happened and what is to come I need to know if I can depend on you being there.
“Sarah you know there is nothing you could say that would change how I feel about you”
“You say that now, but wait till I am finished Adam”
“Alright Sarah”
First of all my I may look like the girl that you knew, but the real Sarah died the day of the accident and that was when I took ownership of her body. At the time I really didn’t understand what was going on. Before I woke up in Sarah’s body, I went by a different name. My name used to be John Stevens, I was in the hospital dieing of a brain tumor but somehow I woke up in this body. I didn’t really know anyone and couldn’t say anything because the doctors would have thought that I was crazy.
At that point the only memories that I had were my own, When I met Sarah’s parents they meant nothing to me, I didn’t know them at all then the funniest thing happened you came to see me and from the moment that I seen you, Sarah’s memories for you started coming forth, She loved you very much Adam and because, we shared the same memories and feelings I couldn’t help but love you also.
I never expected any of this to happen but as the days went on, Sarah’s memories merged with my own, and the more time that we spent together the more that I couldn’t help but love you, it didn’t matter anymore if the feeling I was having were mine or Sarah’s being with you meant everything to me and the day you asked me marry you was the happiest in my life.
“Adam looked at me and said who are you then?”
“I am the girl that loves you Adam.”
“I don’t really know what to say Sarah; I never expected anything like this”
“That makes two of us honey, but it’s up to you now. If you don’t want to see me Adam I will understand and I won’t hold it against you”
“I love you Sarah and don’t want to loose you either, lets leave the past in the past and just look towards the future.
Before I realized what was happening I had bounced onto his lap and giving him and hug and kiss. I knew that someday this man was going to be my husband. After Adam let me go I said there is more, I don’t want too gross out the both of you but you need to see this. I walked over to the kitchen area and grabbed a knife.
“Sarah what are you doing, put the knife down, Adam said in fear”
“It’s alright honey, just watch I said as I ran the knife across my hand, there was blood all over my hand, I then took a cloth and cleared the blood away and said watch”
Adam and Megan just watched in amazement as the cut slowly closed itself, I then ran my hand under the tap and clean what was left of the blood from my hand. Then I took a seat next to Adam. You remember how they said my survival was a miracle, well it was in a sense but the miracle came from the use of microscopic robots called Nanites, they repaired my body for the inside but they also were programmed to make me a weapon. They called me a sleeper agent, all they have to do is send a code to me and I am a programmed killer.
Something went wrong though, The Nanites refused to take there orders, and when that happened they were going too wipe my memory and start over. I was able to escape and have been running ever since. I am tired of running and I have come back to end this, but if I am going to do this I am going to need help.
“Whatever you need Sarah, I am here Adam said with a smile”
“Count me in Sarah, whatever you need I am your girl, Megan said with a smile.”
At the moment I have everything I need, so let’s just enjoy the weekend and we can take care of everything else later, we have plenty of time.
End of Part Nine
To be continued in Part Ten
Synopsis: For the last two months, Sarah has been in hiding but the time has come to fight back. The lines have been drawn and a plan has been set in motion.
Spending the weekend with Megan and Adam had been nice. Still, things with Adam had been stressed. I had debated for a long time whether to tell him the truth about me and likely would have kept the truth from him except that I felt that he really deserved to know. I gave him as much space as I could. He was mourning the loss of Sarah in his own way, and there was nothing that I could do that would help him through that.
Conversation between Megan and Adam
He understood that I had nothing to do with her death. I was as much a victim as anyone else. It hurt me though to see him in pain and I regretted telling him. Megan told me later that I had done the right thing, but sometimes doing the right thing really hurts. Eventually she grew tired and asked Adam to take a walk with her, I was tired from the long bus trip and hit the bed early that night.
Megan: “It’s not her fault Adam, she never asked for any of this.”
“I know Megan, but she has been lying to me from the start.”
“She had her reasons Adam, but when it came to her loving you, it wasn’t a lie.”
“I know she loves me Megan. The problem is that those are Sarah’s memories and not hers.”
“You are wrong Adam. Maybe at first, but over time she really fell for you. I know, because she told me that she wanted to break it off with you because she was afraid you would get hurt. But the more time that she spent with you the more she loved you.”
“Megan, she is not the real Sarah, is she?”
“Really Adam, are you sure? She has all of Sarah’s memories and feelings and if the real Sarah had survived she would have been different and chances are she would have had major brain damage.”
“Think about this Adam, what are the things about Sarah that you loved and apply those things to the Sarah that you know now,” Megan said with a smile.
Adam sat there and thought about what Megan had said. He knew that Megan was right. Most of the reasons that he fell in love with the real Sarah also applied to the new one. The two of them were very much alike. Maybe that was because of the merger that Sarah had told him about. If that was the case then part of the real Sarah would live on.
“You’re right Megan. When I look at her, I can’t deny that I have feelings for her. I just don’t know where to go from here.”
“Just follow your heart, Adam. That is all you can do. Believe me though, she would never have told you the truth if she didn’t really care about you.”
Megan: “There is one other thing you need to consider, Adam. You asked her to marry you and she said yes, only a woman that really loved you would accept and she accepted because she was in love with you and responded like any woman would. When I look at her, I still see the girl I grew up with and she has always been there for me. She may be different now, but she is my best friend and always will be. Yes, it was hard losing the real Sarah but over time I grew to love this one. If you don’t think that you can, then tell her. It will hurt her but it would be better than her believing that the two of you have a future together, because that is what she believes.”
“Megan I can’t help but love her. That is something I can’t just turn off.”
“Then tell her that she has been through a lot lately and needs your support.”
“Thanks, Megan. It really helps having someone to talk this out with.”
“Anytime, Adam. Let’s get back to our room. It’s going to be a busy day tomorrow”
After returning to their room Adam climbed into bed next to Sarah and the motion caused her to wake up.
“Hi Adam,” I said as I moved closer to him.
“I know you’re different now, Sarah, but I don’t want to lose you.”
“Shut up, honey, and just hold me,” I said cuddling into his shoulder.
I looked over at Megan. She was in the spare bed and I mouthed the words “thank you.” I knew that whatever she said to Adam must have made a difference. Adam just held me close to him and I could feel the touch of his hand as it ran across my arm. I felt completely safe and content, just being in his arms, and was soon fast asleep.
It was around 8 am when I finally woke up, I had pretty much slept like a baby and there were no nightmares for a change. I looked over and found Adam next to me, I smiled and leaned over and gave him a kiss, while at the same time I caressed the side of his face. It didn’t take long before I felt him responding to my touch and within seconds he was kissing me back.
“Good morning, baby,” he said with a smile, “how did you sleep?”
“Exactly like a baby,” I said with a big smile. “God I missed you!”
“I missed you too Sarah. I am glad that you came back.”
“I am too, Adam. I hated not being able to see you.”
“What do you want to do today Sarah?”
“Let’s get Megan up so we can get ready, then grab some breakfast.”
It took Megan and me a half hour to get dressed and do our makeup, unlike the 10 minutes that it took Adam to shave and fix his hair. There was a restaurant inside the hotel so the three of us headed over for a breakfast of bacon and eggs with hash browns and toast. It was one of those all you can eat things. Megan and I only had the one serving while Adam with his endless appetite went up for seconds. After we paid the bill the three of us headed back to my room and started working on a plan.
The first step was to get Dr. Picard somewhere alone where I could question him. I needed to know if he had played a part in what happened to me. If he was not involved then it was possible that he would be of use later, but first we had to get him alone. I looked over at Megan, then Adam.
Sarah: “I am going to asking a lot from the both of you, and it is possible you could get into a lot of trouble. If you don’t want to help then I will understand.”
Adam: “What do you need done?”
“I need to talk to Dr. Picard. Someone will need to bring him to me.”
“What if he refuses?”
"If he refuses, you will have to force him. He may know something. If not, he can help”
Megan: “What do you need me to do?”
“I will need your help later. Once I get hold of Dr. Anna Vandervolt’s computer and have a look at her contacts…provided that they haven’t wiped it clean by now.”
“Alright, let me know when you are ready. What about Jessica and Amy? I am sure that they would be willing to help if we asked them.”
“It’s dangerous with just the three of us involved. There may be a time that we need their help but it is too early and the more people that know, the greater the chance that we will be found out. I really don’t feel like having to pull another disappearing act.”
“You’re right, Sarah.”
Adam: “When do you want to start?”
“It would be best to watch Dr. Picard for a few days before making a move.”
Now that Megan and Adam knew the plan all we needed to do was wait to implement it. Adam’s grandparents owned a cottage near the beach. It was pretty much deserted this time of year and would be my home for the near future. It was too dangerous if we were seen coming back and forth so we would have to be careful and make sure none of us were followed. I also told them to leave their cellphones at home. Any calls made could be traced and most of the newer phones had built in GPS, which could lead the authority’s right to our door. The only real way the three of us could reach one another was to exchange phones with a friend or use a payphone. I wasn’t really worried about my own phone because it was pay as you go and set up under a false name.
Later that night Adam dropped me off at the cottage and I said my goodbyes to the two of them after they helped carry in the groceries that I had bought on the way to the cottage. I had enough to last me for a few weeks. I felt lonely as I watch the two of them drive off. Then I went inside and started putting everything away. I slipped into my nightgown and took a coke out of the fridge. I grabbed a blanket and headed outside where there was a porch swing. I stretched out on it and just covered myself up, looking up at the stars. It being way from the city lights, you could see everything much more vividly than in the city.
I just lay there for about an hour, then headed back inside and found some clean linen in the closet. I made up the bed in the master bedroom and climbed into bed for the night. That night I dreamed of being home with mom and dad. I missed them so much and wanted nothing more than to be home with them, at least for a while. Even if it had only been a dream it felt real enough and I couldn’t help but feel upset when I woke up.
The following morning Adam was up early and drove to Dr. Picard’s address, parking a few houses away from his home. He followed him to work and marked down the time he left and arrived at the hospital and the time he left for his office. Over the next few days, he was able to come up with the best time to grab him. He then picked up the cell phone that he had borrowed from his friend and dialed a number.
“Hi Sarah, how are you doing?”
“I am doing great. How are things going?”
“I have been watching him and we should grab him before he leaves for the hospital. It’s the only time he is pretty much alone.”
“How are you going to get him to come?”
“Adam, my dad has a gun locked in a lock box. I know where he keeps the key”
“Be careful, Adam! There maybe someone watching him.”
“I thought of that too, Sarah, but it needs to be done. I will be there around 9 am.”
“Alright, bring Megan with you and I will see you tomorrow. I love you Adam.”
“I love you too, Sarah.”
The following morning Adam picked up Megan and the two of them made their way to Dr. Picard’s home and waited for him to leave as he stepped outside of his house. He was met with the barrel of a gun pressed to the back of his head.
“Make a noise and you are dead.”
Adam then placed a hood over Dr. Picard’s head while Megan tied his hands behind his back, they then put him into the back seat of Adam’s car and started driving.
“Why are you doing this?” asked Dr. Picard.
Adam: “We don’t have a choice. There is someone who needs to talk to you.”
“Who wants to talk to me?”
Megan: “You will see soon enough. Just relax and everything will be alright.”
Adam: “If you cooperate, then there is no reason to that you need to be harmed.”
It was 9:20 am when Adam pulled into the driveway of the cottage and brought Dr. Picard inside, sitting him down in a chair. I walked over to Adam and Megan and told them to wait outside and that I would call them if they were needed. After they left, it was just Leo and me. I walked over, removed his hood and took a seat in front of him.
He looked over at me in shock and said, “Why, Sarah?”
End of Part 10
To be continued in Part 11
Rebirth Part 11
By, Cain129
Synopsis: For the last two months, Sarah has been in hiding but the time has come to fight back. The lines have been drawn and a plan has been set in motion.
Chapter 24
Sarah watched Dr. Picard as she removed the hood. When he was finally able to see he was face to face with one of his kidnappers.
Dr. Picard looked over at Sarah in shock, and asked, “Why?”
“Because there are only two people I trust, and right now they’re outside. I brought you here Leo, because I need to know whether or not you are involved.”
“What are you talking about Sarah?”
“I am talking about what happened in the hospital, how is it that I am alive?”
“Sarah believe me, I really don’t know. It was a miracle. That is all I know.”
“Alright Leo, would you like to see another miracle?”
I walked over to the counter, picked up a sharp knife, and advanced on the doctor. I saw the fear in his eye as I approached him.
“Sarah put the knife down please.”
“Relax Leo. I am not going to use it on you.”
I took a seat across from him and used the knife on my hand.
“Sarah, are you crazy? Put the knife down!”
“It’s alright Leo, just watch.”
I took the knife and ran it across my hand until it started bleeding, then took a cloth and used it to clean the wound so the cut was visible. I moved closer to Leo so he could see the cut healing. The look on his face said everything. He was truly surprised. If he had known about the Nanites then his response would have been different.
“Sarah, that is not possible. Nobody heals that fast!”
“That is my point Leo, and that is just one example of the power that I have.”
“How is that possible Sarah?”
“When I was in the hospital I was injected with microscopic robots, called Nanites. It’s some top secret military project. Those Nanites were the reason that I recovered, but something went wrong. Their job was to repair the damage, then program me to be a sleeper agent. I was supposed to be a weapon without my knowledge. Someone they could turn on and off as they pleased, and for the most part I would appear to be an ordinary teenaged girl. Who would ever expect someone my age to be an assassin? That is what they were trying to accomplish.”
“Then something went wrong. The Nanites refused to take their orders. They were going to kill me then, but I was able to escape thanks to the Nanites that are inside me. They changed me that day. I was stronger and faster than ever before. They gave me other gifts, as well. My brain is a little like a computer. Whatever I see or read I remember, and I can do things with my mind. I can even control people but I am still learning to handle that ability. Ever since I escaped, the government has been chasing me.”
I stood up, walked over to Leo, and cut the bindings that were holding him.
“I need your help, Leo. I need to take them down once and for all. I need to get the proof and expose them to the press. That is the only way that they will leave me alone and I can have my life back. Will you help me?”
I could tell that Leo was angry hearing what they did to me and what they were going to make me do for them.
“We need to get you to the hospital Sarah, if I can get a blood sample with the Nanites inside it and run some tests on you that will be a good start.”
“I can do that Leo, but I have to be careful. There are too many people watching for me”
“What do you know about Dr. Anna Vandervolt, Leo?”
“I heard was she was working for a Gamine Enterprises, a medical company that is researching new technologies. However, the last that I heard she was fired for misconduct. Since then, I have no idea what she has been up to.”
“She was the one who had me kidnapped, Leo.”
“I guess that we know what she was up to then,” Leo said with a frown.
“There is one other problem; there is someone at the hospital feeding them with information. How else would they have known about me?”
“You are right Sarah; we need to be careful. The last thing we need is someone to tip off the wrong people that you are in the building.”
“I have a few patients that are Islamic, I could register you as one of them, you would have to wear a head scarf, but that would at least hide your identity.”
“That could work, Leo. I will ask Megan to pick one up for me after they drop you off at the hospital. I am sorry for grabbing you the way that we did, but it’s hard to know right now who I can trust.”
“That’s alright Sarah, from everything you have told me I can understand, but I better be going otherwise there are going to be people asking questions.”
“Alright Leo, I will have Adam drop you off. This is my email. When you can arrange everything, send me the time and your patient’s information and I will come in for the tests. Thanks Leo.”
I had Adam drop Leo off at the hospital. Megan decided to stay so that the two of us could have some time alone to talk. It was really nice having some time to just hang out together. Megan and I went down to the lake and sat at the water’s edge. She filled me in on all the local gossip. It was just nice having her there with me. I wished that she could have just moved in with me but that would have caused too much trouble.
Chapter 25
Adam returned a couple of hours later. The drive only took an hour but he was being extra careful to make sure that he wasn’t being followed. He had made one stop along the way and picked up a large pizza for the three of us.
Adam: “So I take it that Dr. Picard wasn’t involved?”
“He is clean. He was just as surprised as the two of you were.”
“So what now?” asked Megan.
“Dr. Picard wants to get a sample of my blood and run some tests. He is hoping that the Nanites will show up in my blood work.”
“I am going to need a drive into town tonight. I want to hit Anna Vandervolt’s place and see if there is anything there that can help.”
Adam: “When do you want to go Sarah?”
“I think it would be best to hit it after dark. Megan, I am going to need your help tonight.”
“What are we looking for?” asked Megan.
“We are going after her computer, address books, and journals and anything that might have information on what they have done to me.”
Megan: “I guess that Adam and I should just hang out here for the rest of the day. We should head into town and pick up some supplies.”
Adam: “I need to make a run home and pick up a few things. I have a set of walkie-talkies. They don’t have the greatest range but they should be alright for our needs. I can drop the both of you off first and pick you up in a couple hours if that’s alright.”
So an hour later Megan and I climbed out of Adam’s car, I was wearing a light blue sundress and a pair of sunglasses that I had borrowed from Megan. Before he drove off, Adam said he would meet us at McDonald’s in a couple of hours.
The first stop that we made was along the boardwalk. There were many stores around but not all of them were open, being a tourist town mostly closed during the off-season. However, a few did stay open for the locals.
It was a nice small town and I liked it here, mostly because it was quiet compared to the city. The only bad thing was everything closed early and there were no buses, so you pretty much needed your own transportation. Whereas the city never closed, there were buses at all hours, not that a 16-year-old needs to be running the road after midnight but it’s nice to know that you have that option.
“This would be perfect for you,” Megan said, holding up a very revealing bikini.
“I think Adam would enjoy that more than I would Megan”
“You’re right Sarah, but I would love to see the look on his face when he sees you in it.”
“Me too,” I said with a grin.
“So how are you doing Megan?”
“Alright I guess, though it has been hard not having you around, Sarah.”
“I know Megan. I have been going through the same thing. I never really had a close friend until you came into my life. I just can’t picture my life without you there now.”
“I feel the same Sarah. When you told me the truth, it was hard. Sarah and I had always been like sisters, and then she was gone. But I can see now that part of her is living on through you and, to be honest, the two of you are very much alike. Maybe that is why you are here to live the life that she couldn’t.”
“I really don’t know what to say Megan. I wish things could have been different for the real Sarah. She didn’t deserve to die and for the longest time I felt guilty about that. I had a full life for the most part. It might not have been the life that I wanted, but Sarah really didn’t have a chance to live her life at all.”
“You shouldn’t feel guilty, Sarah. None of this was your choice, and had things gone differently the both of you would have died that day.”
“I know you’re right Megan and I have come to grips with things now. But at first it was hard because I was living her life, living with her parents, dating her boyfriend and hanging out with her friends. Nothing back then was my own, if you know what I mean. Things are different now that you and Adam know the truth.”
Megan and I spent the next couple of hours going from store to store, and in the end we only picked up a few things. I looked at my watch and then turned to Megan. “We should head over to McDonald’s. Adam will be arriving anytime now. Maybe we can grab a bite to eat before heading home.”
Chapter 26
Adam showed up shortly after Megan and I arrived at McDonald’s. Megan and I had already grabbed a table and he came over to join us. I had ordered a cheeseburger and fries while Megan and Adam went with Big Macs. The three of us relaxed and enjoyed being kids for a change. It was just nice to get way from all the drama and spend time with my friends. None of us was really in a hurry, so after we finished eating we drove over to the beach. It was still too cold to go into the water but it was nice just to walk along the water’s edge.
Megan told me about the new guy in her life. His name was Bobby and she really liked him. I couldn’t wait to meet him, as he seemed pretty cool. He was on the football team. Adam had introduced the two of them and they had hit it off almost from the start.
Megan: “Guys I am going to go find a phone and give Bobby a call. I will catch up to you later. Behave yourselves while I am gone.”
“Alright, Megan. I am sure that Adam and I can find something to do in the meantime.”
“Didn’t I just tell the two of you to behave,” Megan said with a smile, before turning to walk away.
Adam reached over and put his arm around me as we continued walking. It felt good to be in his arms again.
“This is nice, Adam.”
“Yes it is Sarah, but I think Megan was making an excuse to give us some time alone.”
“So what is this Bobby like, Adam?”
“He is pretty cool, and Megan and him they make a good couple.”
“Good! I am happy for her. She deserves to have a decent guy in her life.”
“God, I will be glad when things get back to normal for the both of us Sarah!”
“I will be too, honey. Just be patient with me and it will happen.”
“I know it will Sarah, but if you have to leave again, then I am going with you. I don’t care how dangerous it is. I would rather face it with you than be safe alone.”
When I looked over at him I could tell that he was dead serious, but I had no plans of leaving. Whatever happened I was here to stay.
The two of us took a seat on the sand and it wasn’t long before I was lost in his embrace. I soon found myself falling back into the sand with Adam leaning over me. As we kissed I felt his hand caressing one of my breasts. It was at that moment that my desire for him took over and I wanted him, as much as he wanted me. When he rolled completely on top of me I could feel him. He was just as excited as I was. I looked up at him and gently touched the side of his face.
“Adam, we need to stop, I want to be with you but not here and now, baby.”
“Alright Sarah, guess I got a little carried away.”
“We both did, baby. When I am ready, you will be the first to know. Now just shut up and hold me, Adam!”
Adam and I lay there for about an hour just talking and enjoying each other’s company, when I noticed Megan walking towards us.
“Don’t the two of you look comfortable.”
I couldn’t help but start blushing. “I guess that we kind of lost track of the time, Megan.”
“That’s alright Sarah. I thought the two of you could use some time to yourself.”
“Thanks, Megan. That was nice of you. How’s Bobby doing?”
“He is doing fine. He has some friends over and they’re playing Halo on the Xbox.”
The sun was starting to go down so the three of us made our way back to the car and made the drive home. Once inside I grabbed a few cokes and joined the two of them in the living room.
“Alright, I guess that we need to get down to business,” I said with a frown. “Adam, I am going to need you to keep watch. Were you able to get the radios?”
“They are in the trunk, Sarah, along with some other tools that I thought we would need.”
“Megan, once we are in there I will need you to grab anything that you think might be useful.”
“What if there is an alarm system? Do you have a way around that Sarah?”
“I am hoping that my Nanites can help me with that issue, I am supposedly a killing machine, so I would think they would have added sabotage to my little bag of tricks.”
“Let’s hope that you’re right Sarah, otherwise the three of us might end up in a holding cell and Daddy would be pissed off.”
That could still happen, I thought to myself. The three of us were kids playing in an adult world that was cruel and unforgiving. I would have to do whatever needed doing to protect the two of them. They were taking the greatest risks. The Nanites inside me could possibly heal me if I was hurt badly, but Adam and Megan didn’t have that option. For them, one mistake could cost either one their lives.
We arrived at Dr. Anna Vandervolt’s home around 11 pm. It had taken us longer than expected to make the trip, as we stopped at the Westgate Mall where we would steal a car. I hated having to do it, but there really wasn’t a choice. The last thing we needed was for someone to see Adam’s car at the doctor’s house and get his license plate number. It would lead right to him.
I was surprised how quickly I was able to hotwire the car, and soon Megan and I were off. Adam followed behind us until we were a few blocks away from Anna’s house. He then parked his car and climbed inside with Megan and me, carrying a small duffel bag that had the radios and tools.
As soon as I got a good look at Anna’s place, I knew that she had a decent alarm system. However, as I suspected, the information to disarm it was programmed into my Nanites and within a few minutes we were clear to make our move. Adam waited outside until I was able to open the garage door. Then he brought the car inside and gave Megan and me a hand in the search. It would have been easier if we could have turned the lights on but we really didn’t want anyone knowing that anyone was in the house.
I eventually found her laptop and there were a few memory sticks inside her desk, I had Adam put the computer and memory sticks into the car, while I went on the search for the safe. I knew that was going to be the hardest to get into. I eventually found it inside her bedroom. It was inside her closet hidden by a wall of clothes. The safe had a combination lock and was much too heavy for anyone to move. I had no choice but to open it. I started turning the dial and listened for the clicks, but had no luck. The dial was insulated, making it harder to hear the tumblers. I thought to myself, now what? Then I had an idea. The Nanites were able to make changes to my other senses, so why not my hearing?
At that moment my head felt like it was going to explode. When the pain left, I could hear everything around me. It was very overwhelming, because not only could I hear what was going on inside the house but I could also hear the neighbors talking, the sound of cars off in the distance and much more. It took me a few minutes to tune them out but I was able to get control of it eventually. Then I started working on the safe. It only took me a few minutes, with my enhanced hearing allowing me to hear the clicks. I had the door open quickly.
Inside the safe was a briefcase, and when I opened it I found that it was full of money. I had no idea how much, but it was a lot. There was also a tray of CD’s which I quickly grabbed, as well as a bunch of technical journals. I had no idea what it was all about but grabbed everything that was inside and put it inside the car. The last step was to make sure that we cleaned everything up and left no traces that we were there. That took about 20 minutes before we were ready to leave.
We drove back to where Adam had parked his car and moved everything over, then spent a few minutes wiping down the car that we had stolen. We used Adam’s car to drop off Megan first, before going back to the cottage.
“Thanks, Megan, for all your help. I couldn’t have done it without you.”
“Anytime, sis. I will drop over tomorrow sometime to give you a hand sorting.”
“That would be great, Megan. Can you do me one favor?”
“Sure Sarah what do you need?”
“Megan, I am going to need you to pick up a black head scarf, so that I can cover up when I go to the hospital. Dr. Picard had a patient that is Islamic and he will be registering me under her name so I am going to need to look the part.”
“Alright Sarah, I can do that. Have a good night and I will see you tomorrow. Love you.”
“I love you too Megan, and thanks.”
After Adam started driving I looked over at him.
“Adam, how are you doing?”
“Alright I guess, I was pretty nervous though.”
“I was too Adam, but more for you and Megan.”
“Well, we are safe now and we got what we needed, Sarah.”
“I am lucky to have the both of you, Adam.”
“Really, I think it’s the other way around, Sarah.”
It was around 12:30 am after getting back to the cottage and lugging everything inside. Adam looked over at me and said that he should get going as it was a long drive home.
I looked at him over at him. “Adam, I don’t want you to leave. Stay here with me tonight.”
“I don’t know, Sarah. Are you sure?”
“I have never been sure of anything in my life except for you honey.”
Adam took me into his arms. Once again I was lost in his embrace, and that night I found out what it was truly like to be a woman in love with a man.
End of Part 12
To be continued in part 13
Synopsis: After kidnapping Dr. Picard, Sarah learns that he didn’t play a part in her dilemma, but gains a valuable alley in the fight. Sarah later with the help of Adam and Megan are successful with the raid on Anna Vandervolt’s home.
Sarah awoke, feeling very content as she stared over at Adam, still fast asleep. She smiled to herself; she had made love for the first time in her life and felt this closeness towards Adam that she had never experienced before. It was the first time in her life that she was truly happy to be in a relationship and wasn’t expecting it to crash and burn, like so many others had in the past.
I climbed out of bed being careful not to wake up Adam and made my way to the bathroom, where I ran a hot bath and climbed inside. It felt nice as I just laid back and thought about this life I was falling into. I remember when it first happened about how scared I was; and when I met my parents, the frustration that I felt for their loss. I guess deep down that I was suffering from survivor’s guilt.
Over time, though, I grew to love them and was able to accept them as my parents. Then Adam came into my life. He was so attentive and loyal I think that even if Sarah’s memories hadn’t been triggered I still would have fallen for him. Then there was Megan. She was like a sister to me from the start and I knew immediately that I could trust her. I guess in many ways I was blessed.
After I finished my bath, I headed back to the bedroom and got dressed. It was nothing special, just a pair of jeans and a white top. I made my way to the kitchen next and started making breakfast for Adam and me–simple morning fare, just eggs and bacon, orange juice and toast. I put everything on the table and headed back to the bedroom. I walked over to the bed, leaned down and kissed Adam on the lips.
“Honey, it’s time to get up. Breakfast is ready.”
“Alright baby, I will be right down. Just give me a couple of minutes.”
I gave him another kiss, then headed downstairs and started eating my breakfast. It wasn’t long before Adam joined me at the table, took a look at his breakfast and smiled.
“You know Sarah, I could get used to this.”
I smiled back at him then said, “Next time it’s your turn.”
“I guess that is fair. How did you sleep, Sarah?”
“I slept like a baby. I am glad you stayed, Adam.”
“Are you alright with what happened last night Sarah?”
I smiled at him, “Honey, I wanted you just as much as you wanted me.”
After breakfast, the two of us went into the living room and I plugged in the laptop. I told Adam to check out the briefcase and waited to hear his response when he opened it.
“Holy Shit, Sarah, how much is in here?”
“I don’t know Adam, why don’t you count it and see.”
“God I have never seen so much money in my life Sarah.”
“I know what you mean Adam, whatever Anna was involved in it sure paid well.”
When the computer finished booting up, I found it password protected. That needed to be broken before I could see anything. I knew that this was going to take a while and started working on cracking the code.
“Sarah there is close to half a million in here,” Adam said, shaking his head in disbelief.
“Guess Megan and I are going on a shopping trip.”
“Don’t be asking me to carry everything back Sarah. That is a hell of a lot of clothes.”
“I could pick up something special for you Adam, something sexy to drive you wild.”
“Alright Sarah, maybe I can carry a few bags…but just a few.”
I needed to take care of one other matter that had been eating at me: I had to talk to my parents and let them know that I was doing all right. They only knew what Megan had told them and they deserved to know the truth. I turned to Amy, “Do you think that you can do me a favor? I need you to contact my parents for me; I want to set up a meeting with them, but if I was to call them myself I could put them in danger.”
“Sure Sarah. Just let me know when and where, and I will arrange it.”
“You need to be careful, there may be bugs in the house. I will write a letter for you to hand to them but make sure that it’s not read aloud.”
“Alright, Sarah. Write the letter and I will drop it off.”
“Thanks Amy! I miss them so much; it will be nice to be able to see them again.”
After the guys returned and everyone ate, we all got back to work. Amy was busy on her computer when she said, “Sarah, you need to see this.”
I walked over to her computer and took a look. It turned out that there was a rival organization that was also trying to make super soldiers. They called themselves “the Trust”, and it appeared that they were pretty close to completing their first soldier. I looked at the file closer and noticed the last entry; our own sleeper agent should be ready really soon. Mission objective: eliminate Dr. Jonathan Davison, and destroy all pertinent information concerning the super soldier program. Initiate self-destruct when mission is completed.
I looked at the file. I was the sleeper agent and they were sending me on a suicide mission. I just realized that whatever happened to them I was expendable. There was always someone new that they could get to take my place. All it took was the Nanites and the right programming. I knew at that moment exposing them wouldn’t be enough. The only real way to put an end to the program was to make it impossible to create another super soldier.
I knew that this was too big a mission for me to complete on my own, but there was one other person out there who could help. The problem would be to find him and convince him to help. I had to find Steve Granger. I knew from the records that he had a sister that lived in Vancouver. She might know of a way to reach him. It looked like I would be paying her a visit.
I looked over at Adam. “Feel like taking a ride, honey?”
“Where are we going, Sarah?”
“We are going to see Steve Granger’s sister.”
“Alright, Sarah. Let’s get going before it gets too late.”
It was a long drive over to the Island, then we had to wait around to catch the ferry over, but a few hours later we pulled into Kelly Granger’s driveway. Adam and I made our way to the door and I pressed the button. The doorbell rang and a few moments later a woman in her 40’s answered the door. I asked if she was Kelly Granger.
“Yes, I am Kelly. What is this about?”
“My name is Sarah Tanner. I was wondering if I could talk to you about your brother.”
“I haven’t seen Steve in a long time. Why are you here?”
“Kelly, can we come inside? I need to talk to you. Steve and I have a lot in common and I think that we could help one another.”
“Alright Sarah, come inside if it’s that important.”
“Kelly I need to get ahold of your brother. I know what they did to him and why he is in hiding. They did the same thing to me and I want to make sure that it is never done to anyone else. I can’t take them on alone but with his help we could expose the super soldier program and destroy the research.”
“Is there any way that you can reach him? If I can talk to him I can show him the proof. I have Anna Vandervolt’s laptop. That is how I found out about you, Kelly.”
“If I was to help you Sarah, how do I know you are telling me the truth?”
I shook my head and said that I hated having to prove myself. Still, I looked over at her and started concentrating on her. The next thing she knew her hand came up and slapped her in the face.
She looked over at me, “How did you do that?”
“It’s one of the abilities they gave me. Don’t ask me how it works; I just know that it does.”
Kelly looked over at me then asked,” What else can you do?”
“I have enhanced speed and strength. My memory has also been enhanced and there are other changes, but I am still learning to control them.”
“Steve is different. He can do none of those things but they are hunting him.”
“They can’t let him go, Kelly. Inside him are Nanites, granted there different from the ones that I have but they are still valuable to anyone looking to make their own soldiers. But if my plan works then they will leave Steve and me alone.”
“I can reach him, but it will take a few days Sarah. How can I reach you?”
I gave Kelly my phone number, and we said our goodbyes. I just hoped that she could talk her brother into meeting me. I guess that it was a waiting game for now.
Synopsis:Having finely broken the security on Anna’s computer, Sarah learns that there is one other out there like here that is also in hiding and no longer being alone takes it upon herself to find him, but if the files on Steve Granger are true, Sarah could have just met her match but without his help she will be forced to take the enemy down alone.
Amy made her way too, Sarah’s home and rang the doorbell. Sarah had asked her to deliver to her parents to let them know that she was in town and wanted to see them. It only took a few minutes before Janice came to the door." Hi Amy, what can I do for you asked Janice?"
Hi, Mrs. Tanner I need to talk to you for a few minutes about Sarah, can we take a walk it’s really important.
“Alright Amy, Let me get my coat and I will be right with you.”
A few minutes later, the two of them were slowly walking; Amy took a quick look around to make sure that the two of them were alone.
“Sarah is back in town, Mrs. Tanner I was with her yesterday. She is doing alright and wants you to meet her.”
"What's wrong that she is not with you?"
"She has to be really careful, there are people looking for her, right now, and she wants to explain what is going on. She gave me this note to give to you; it will tell you where to meet her. Mrs. Tanner you need to be careful, Sarah thinks that the house is bugged."
“Thanks Amy, Andrew and I have been worried sick about Sarah”
“I know, and Sarah feels terrible for having to leave, but she left to protect all of us. The people that are after her are really dangerous. You will understand once you are able to talk to Sarah.”
Once Janice was alone, she read the note all that it said was Central Park tomorrow 2:P.M. and I will be watching for both of you. Love Sarah.
The next day, Janice and Andrew arrived at the park and waited for Sarah to arrive. The two of them barely slept the night before. It was already 2:30, and they were getting ready to leave when they saw Sarah walking through one of the trails, coming toward them. Having seen their daughter, it wasn’t long before the two of them ran over to her.
After everyone finished hugging and kissing one another, “I have a place where we can talk; it’s not safe for me to be out, people looking for me.”
“What happened, Sarah? Why did you leave so suddenly?" asked her father.
“Later, Daddy, I will explain everything, just not here, Adam's car is parked close.”
After reaching Adam’s car and everyone climbed inside, I drove back to the cottage. I was glad to be back at the cottage, I felt safe there and no one really knew about it. I took Mom and Dad back too the lake and the three of us took a seat.
I turned to them and said, "Time for the truth," and started explaining that happened to me.
Dad was angry when he found out about the kidnapping and what they were going to do to me once they found out about the Nanites not working. They both understood though, once I explained that it was our own government that was hunting me and why I had to disappear. Mom and Dad didn’t like it, but understood.
I then told them about my plan to expose the program to the press and told them about the computer that I had stolen that was loaded with files that would help, then finally told them the story of Steve Granger and how he had been running for the last few years. When I finely finished explaining everything, my parents came over and took me in their arms.
I was so happy having the two of them back that I couldn’t help but start crying. Over the last couple of months, I had held everything inside and tried to be strong. But when it came to my parents, all the pain that I had suffered had finely been released and I found myself crying like a baby. Being able to let it out felt like a weight was taken of my shoulders.
Mom and Dad stayed with me most of the day and understood now why I had to stay away. Both wanted to help, but to be honest, I had enough help and having them around would only take my mind off the mission I needed to stay focused on.
Steven Granger was a hard man to find. If you were lucky enough to find him, you would discover just how dangerous he was. For the most part, he was a good man and had served his country for two tours of duty in Afghanistan before that terrible day. It all happened so fast, everything in him had told him to open fire as the child ran at him.
He knew that something wasn’t right, but his eyes saw the child and not the risk that he was taking. He wasn’t the only one, but he was the closest to the child when the bombs detonated and sent scrap metal everywhere.
When Steve woke up, he was being evacuated to a near by M*A*S*H unit. It was there that he learned just how badly that he had been hurt. The doctors did everything possible to save him and were eventually able to have him flown home. There was a standing order that had only recently been sent out and Steve as a perfect match for their needs; he was terminal with no hope of survival.
After arriving, he was taking to Anna Vandervolt and given his first set of injections. Over the next few days, his status gradually improved till the he was completely healed. But the Nanites continued working and didn’t go dormant like they were supposed too.
Anna had run tests on Steve and noticed that his skeletal structure was now enlarging as was his muscular mass. There was something else happening too. Had she seen it at the time, she would have most likely put a stop to things and terminated Steve.
He had become mentally unstable and was hit with bits of rage that made him uncontrollable. Even the programming from the nanites was unable to modify his behavior. At that point, something else began to happen. His memories returned of what had happened and what they had done to him, afterwards.
He was not a machine that they could control like they were planning; he was a human being and wasn’t going to be their puppet. His rage took over, being trained soldier, he did the only thing that he could, and he fought back.
Just about everyone Steve came into contact with that day with ended up dead or in the hospital. He had made his escape, but became a target in the process. There was no where that he could go; he was alone with no money or even a place to live.
Everyone that he knew though that he was dead; the Army had made sure of that. He knew from that day on that he had one mission and was going to carry it out even if it cost him his life.
He eventually made contact with his sister Kelly, and shared with her everything that had happened and what they had done to him. From that day onward, she was his eyes and ears. It was her idea to use the newspaper as a means of contacting him. The classified ad that she posted was a simple one; it was a wanted ad for a used carburetor for a BMW Isetta whenever Kelly needed to get a hold of him or vise versa, the ad was posted and they would meet at a park outside of town. They only used the ad sparingly because they didn’t want to risk someone figuring it out, but at the moment, it was there only means of communication.
So when Steve saw the ad posted, he knew that Kelly needed to talk to him, and would be waiting at the park the following day at 11:A.M. It pissed him off, because his intelligence told him that they had finally restarted the Super Soldier Program. It had been closed down for the last three years, ever since his escape.
They had been working on creating a new sleeper agent, and the last he had heard was that they were finished and the agent was already placed. That was all that he was able to find out and hadn’t been able to reach the informant for months.
Steve’s worst fear was that he would have to face this supper soldier, knowing how fast technology changes, he could be out matched. The only real hope was his rage. When it took over, everything became enhanced.
Including the abilities, which he gained thanks to his Nanites; over the last three years, he had learned to control them and could use them now without loosing control. There was a time though, that if they were activated, that he couldn’t control them and there were disastrous consequences that lead to the death of other people. Granted, they were hunting him, but his intention was not to kill them.
The following morning, Steve was at the park, he was well hidden as he watched his sister from a distance. He wouldn’t make contact till he was sure that she was alone. After Kelly took a seat, he made his way around the park making sure the coast of clear before he went over to her.
When Kelly saw her older brother coming, she ran over to him and the two of them hugged one another. It had been almost 6 months since they had talked to one another. Steve took a seat on the bench next to his sister.
“So, what’s going on, Kelly?”
“I had a visit a few days ago Steve, He name is Sarah Tanner and she knew all about you?”
“What did she have to say?”
“She is like you and wants to talk to you”
“It could be a trap Kelly; she could be setting me up.”
“She says that she has Anna’s computer and has enough information to take them down”
Steve sat there taking in what Kelly had just told him, this is what he wanted. If Sarah was telling the truth, this could be the chance that he needed to get his life back and finely stop running.
He was going to meet her, but it would be on his terms. It was the only way that he would know for sure if it was a trap or not.
"Kelly, setup a meeting to meet at Burnaby Mountain Park, at 11:A.M. I will be wearing a blue ball cap and sunglasses."
"Will do, bro."
“So how have you been?”
“I am doing alright, just been worried sick about you”
“Sorry Kelly, I wish that I could be around more”
“It’s not your fault; I understand you never asked for any of this.”
“I know, but every time, we see each other, I put you in danger. I couldn’t live with myself if something happened to you, Kelly.”
“Maybe this time things will be different, I have a good feeling about Sarah, I think she is telling the truth, but why they would choose someone so young is beside me.”
“Not really, would you expect a child her age to a trained killer," Steve asked with a frown.
Kelly thought for a minute, “I guess not, but what are you going to do if it’s a trap?”
“Whatever I have to do Kelly, I learned my lesson in Afghanistan on how looks can be deceiving, I don’t plan on repeating 'that' mistake.”
Steve stayed for about an hour with Kelly. The two of them talked about things, then both went there separate ways. Steve wished that he could have stayed longer, but he knew that every moment that they spent together would put Kelly in danger. So he headed home to start his own investigation. He believed that you could never know enough about your enemy and was going to find everything he could about Sarah Tanner.
Steve used his computer and did a search on Sarah Tanner, in all aspects she was your everyday teenage girl, at least up to recently, she had been hit by a drunk driver and the court case was still ongoing. There was also a missing person’s report that had been filed on her.
Steve knew that something wasn’t right and went over to his closet, inside was a box on the floor. He took it out and placed it on his bed and started going through it. He pulled out a fake police badge and other identification and then locked up and headed outside to his car and started driving.
It was around 2:30 P.M. when he arrived at his location and made his way to the door and rang the door bell. He didn’t have to wait very long before a woman came and answered.
"Mrs. Janice Tanner, I am Detective Johnson and I have been assigned to your daughter’s case I was wondering if I could have a few minutes of your time.”
Meanwhile, something quiet different is happening across town. Anna Vandervolt is sitting in a hospital room; a friend has dropped in and has brought special gift for her, "Anna, I am sorry that I couldn’t make it sooner, I wish that I could have, but there was so much work that needed to be done. But I am here, now, and I will help you. Together we will get that little bitch."
She then walked over to Anna with a needle and injected the contents into Anna’s arm; there was an immediate reaction in Anna’s eye which slowly started to change as the life returned to her eyes.
Anna looked up and tried to speak but couldn’t yet.
“Just be patient Anna, it will take time for the Nanites to do the job.”
Anna smiled as she looked up at her daughter,” Thanks, Carol.”
By Cain129
Thanks To Stanman63 For Editing!
Synopsis:Having finely broken the security on Anna’s computer, Sarah learns that there is one other out there like here that is also in hiding and no longer being alone takes it upon herself to find him, but if the files on Steve Granger are true, Sarah could have just met her match but without his help she will be forced to take the enemy down alone.
Janice answered that door and was face to face with Steve Granger, but didn't realize him at the time. He had a badge and identification and was going by the name of Detective Johnson. She let him into her home, once inside the two of the took a seat and he started asking questions about her daughter.
"Mrs. Tanner, I have been asked to take over your daughters case and I am here because I would like to find out everything I can about Sarah. I read recently that she was in a hit and run and that case is still ongoing, right?"
"Why are you asking about that, what does it have to do with my daughter being missing."
"I am sorry, Mrs. Tanner. It's just sometimes a witness goes missing. I am just trying to cover everything. Has she made contact with you or anyone else since her disappearance?"
"I know that she hasn't contacted my husband or me, as far as her friends go, if she did contact them, they would have said something."
"I was just wondering, has anything out of the ordinary happened lately to your daughter that might have caused her to runaway?"
"Not really, other then the accident, everything has been fine."
"I saw the reports on the accident, she is lucky to be alive."
"Yeah, it was a miracle. Most people would had died," Janice said with a smile.
"Is there anywhere you can think of that she might have gone or anyone that might know something?"
"Not really, we have already checked most of the places that she would have gone."
"Well, if you think of anything, this is my number," he said as he handed her a card." You can reach me anytime, thanks for your time."
Steve knew from the talk that he just had with Sarah's mother that she knew more then she was telling, something wasn't right about Sarah, maybe Kelly was right about her. He had made up his mind and was ready to meet her but it would be at a place of his choosing.
Adam sat with me at the hospital as Dr. Picard took God knows how much blood from my poor arm. By the time he finished, my arm looked like a pincushion. Even with my improved healing, getting needles still bothered me. I was going to come alone, but Adam had insisted on coming with me.
I really didn't know why because I looked like I should have been married off to some Prince from India, with me with the head scarf and all, but it did cover me up nicely and gave me the ability to move freely throughout the hospital without much chance of being seen.
Dr. Picard turned to me, "Alright Sarah, I should have your blood work back in a few days."
"Is this where I am supposed to thank you for turning me into a pincushion, Leo?"
"It was my pleasure Sarah, maybe next time I will remember that I only needed the one vial of blood."
"Very funny Leo, so what other kind of torture do you have planned for me?"
"Well, Sarah, if you would follow me, I will be glad to show you."
Adam and I followed Dr. Picard into another room that had all kinds of different exercise equipment, there were also monitors next to them that had wires attached which I guessed were used to check the patient's heart rate and other things.
"Sarah, I need you to get undressed and into a gown. I will be back in a few minutes," Leo said then left.
Adam turned to me, "do you want me to go, Sarah?"
"Why bother Adam, it's not like you haven't seen me naked before."
"I guess you are right," Adam then walked over and took a seat.
I smiled over at Adam and started doing a little strip tease for him, but couldn't help but laugh when I seen him starting to get aroused, "Behave yourself Sarah, there is a time and place for that, but its not here."
"Spoil sport", I said with a smile.
After Leo returned, he connected me up to a monitor and had me running on a treadmill. I ran for an hour, straight. When he finely said that I could stop, was I ever was glad, but had hardly built up a sweat. Then he told me to get dressed and head to the x-ray department where I was told to undress again and had a number of different x-rays taken.
Dr. Picard then left orders with the attendant to have Adam and I meet him back at his office in a few hours. We had a few hours to spare, so Adam suggested that we go grab a bite to eat. I had to admit after running for an hour I had built up quite and appetite.
Luckily, the hospital was downtown so there were plenty of restaurants around to choose from, When I left the hospital, I really wanted to remove the head scarf, but Adam said that I should leave it on and he was right. It was impossible to tell who was around and there was someone at the hospital that was feeling patient information to Anna's people and at the moment, I had no idea who it was.
Adam and I eventually decided on Kentucky Fried Chicken, I ordered the two piece meal, while Adam went with the three pieces.
"How are you feeling, Sarah?"
"Surprisingly good, considering how much running I did earlier."
"I would have to say whatever they did to you sure worked, think about what they could do if they used those nanites to actually heal people."
"You are right, Adam. But like so many other discoveries, there will always be someone looking to exploit things to their own selfish gains. Look at nuclear energy, when the idea first came up, I don't think they envisioned using it as a weapon, but eventually they used that knowledge to build the first atomic bomb."
"Yeah, you are right, Sarah. It's a shame, but true."
"So how did your visit with your mom and dad go, Sarah?"
"It went alright, they understood why I had to leave, but wished that I had contacted them sooner."
"You did what you thought was right Sarah, don't beat yourself up over it."
"God Adam, I wish this was over with and I could be a normal girl, again."
"I hate to tell you this Sarah; you will never be a normal girl. What they did can't be undone, can it?"
"I don't know Adam, maybe it's possible but to be honest, I really don't know if I would want to risk it. What if it's the nanites that are holding me here? The real Sarah is gone and somehow I am here. I believe if it wasn't because of the nanites I wouldn't be."
"Whatever happens Sarah, I love you and I hope someday when this is all over, you will be my wife."
I couldn't help but cry, "I love you too Adam. Believe me, I would marry you today, if I could."
"I am going to hold you to that Sarah," Adam said with a smile.
After the two of us finished dinner, we took a walk and just enjoyed the day. It was nice to get away from the cottage for awhile. As much as I loved it, there at the moment it was really stressful. I was lucky though, since I brought Jessica and Amy into the picture, it was easier to go through all the files on the laptop.
We had finely finished going through the journals. The raid that we had made on Anna's residence had really paid off, Because of it, I now knew that there was another person like me out there, I just had to find him and see if he is willing to help.
I was lost in thought when Adam said that it was almost time to meet Dr. Picard in his office. His office was across the street from the hospital, so it really didn't take us that long to get there, and once the two of us arrived, he took us into his office and closed the door behind him, then told us to take a seat.
Dr. Picard took a seat across from us, "Alright Sarah, The test that we did this morning had some interesting results. First, you are in excellent heath, thanks to those nanites. You were able to run for an hour straight, which tells us that the nanites were regulating your breathing and heart rate. Because of this, I imagine that you could have gone a lot longer without needing to stop. I would suggest if you are going to use these abilities that you monitor you food intake. I also have the x-rays back which came back normal, so I can only guess that the nanites have a method of shielding themselves. I should know more when I get the blood work back, but for the moment, I can tell you I see no ill effects from the nanites."
"Dr. Picard, I found out that there is another one like me. He had been on the run now for a few years, from what I understand his nanites are an older version then the ones that I have and the files say he is mentally unstable because of them. I have to find him, but because of what I have seen in his file, I am worried that things could go bad. I don't know if I can take him in a fight, is there anything that you can think of that might help?"
"That is a good question, Sarah. I could give you something to knock him out. You would need to inject him with it. Maybe use a dart gun if you can't get close enough. I have one other idea, but I really don't know if it would help, and it could be dangerous for him. But if it worked it, could possibly cure his mental condition."
"What are you thinking, Leo?" asked Sarah.
Leo looked over at Sarah, "I could be wrong but are nanites like a computer?"
Sarah thought for a moment, "I am not really sure, but from what I understand they're computerized."
"Then why not update his software?"
Sarah looked over at Leo and asked, ”How am I supposed to do that?"
"The answer is inside you Sarah, we use your nanites, they are a newer version. They should be able to rewrite the older ones, that is if there compatible with one another, which I suspect they are."
"Am I gonna like what's next?"
"I can take another sample of your blood, if you inject him with it, then that is all it should take. One of your nanites should be enough too copy the code over to the other."
So after letting Dr. Picard take another blood sample from my arm, Adam and I were on our way. I had the blood sample inside my purse along with a needle to inject it with. I wasn't going to inject him though, without his permission. It would be his choice. I wasn't looking to become another Anna.
Adam gave me the keys and let me drive the car back to the cottage, I did have my license, but Mom and Dad had felt that I was to young to drive alone. I guess after all this was over, they most likely wouldn't feel that way. It was nice though, since the change I hadn't really had the chance to drive much other then the other day when i picked up them up and brought them out to the cottage to break the news to them.
It was starting to look bad for Adam, he couldn't keep missing school, otherwise, he would end up getting into big trouble with his parents. I knew though that he was doing it because he was worried about me and wanted to make sure that I was safe. The truth though, he was in the most danger and if anything was to happen to him, I don't really know what I would do.
Adam and I arrived at the cottage about an hour later, Adam couldn't stay though,. He had to be at work, but he said he would call me on his break. So I gave him a kiss and watched as he drove away. It was around 3:P.M., so I knew that I wouldn't be alone for very long. Megan, Amy and Jessica were supposed to drop over after cheer leading practice was over to help me go over the files again. I headed inside and grabbed a coke from the fridge and headed into the living room and started working on the computer, hoping to find something interesting, but was kind of at a stand still. Most of the files had been looked at, now. What I was doing was goggling the names that were found on the computer, but not really having much success finding anything useful.
I needed to talk with Steve, he had to know more about who I was up against. I started looking up as much information about him, but there was nothing. It was like he didn't exist. I found his obituary and birth records. but really nothing else.
I decided that there really wasn't anything left for me to do with the laptop, so I shut it down, headed outside and took a seat on the porch seat when my cellphone started to ring..
"Sarah, this is Kelly, I was able to reach Steve, he is willing to meet you, he wants you to come alone."
"When and where Kelly?"
"Tomorrow at 2:P.M. at Burnaby Mountain Park."
"Tell him that I will be there, Kelly."
"Alright, I will tell him your coming, Sarah."
"Thanks Kelly, Bye."
I was kind of nervous about meeting Steve, everything that I heard about him told me that I was taking a risk. I could very well be walking into a trap. I knew one thing, I was not walking into this without being prepared. I needed to make a trip into town, if I was going to meet him, I wanted to make sure that I was at least armed. I didn't want to hurt anyone, so I would go with nonlethal which meant maybe a tazer and mace, if i needed it then at least I would be ready.
The next thing that I did was go inside and boot up the computer and looked up a place where I would be able to pick up what I would need. After Megan arrived, we would all take a road trip into town. It would also be a good excuse for us all to spend sometime together. It had been awhile since we had a night out together and after we were done, we would find somewhere to go and have some fun. Something told me after today, that my life was going to be getting a lot more complicated.
Megan arrive a little while later with Amy and Jessica. I told them about meeting with Steve. They agreed that it would be a good idea to be armed, but they were also worried that I could be walking into a trap and the fact that I had to meet him alone scared them. It scared me also, but there was nothing I could do about it. That was how he wanted it and if I wanted his help, then it had to be on his terms.
Megan arrive a little while later with Amy and Jessica, I told them about meeting with Steve and they all agreed that it would be a good idea to be armed,act that I had to meet him alone scared them. It scared me also but there was nothing I could do about it that was how he wanted it and if I wanted his help then it had to be on his terms.
After explaining everything to them the four of us climbed into Megan's car and we headed into town. I was eventually able to get everything that I wanted, and even managed to get a few other things. One of them was a bulletproof vest, it also had a plate inside that could stop a knife. I hoped that I would never need it, but having it was a good idea. I planned on wearing it when I met with Steve.
After we finished shopping the four of us went out to dinner, Anna paid for it, which was fine with me.
"So how are you feeling about meeting Steve," asked Amy.
I looked over at Amy, "Scared mostly, I am hoping the files were enough."
"I don't think it will be that bad, Sarah. Just look at the people who wrote that file, though they are not the most honest people." Jessica said.
"I think Jessica might be right, there is no proof any of what is in that file is true," Megan said with a frown.
"You all maybe right, but till I know for sure, I plan to be on my guard, he is a trained killer, after all."
Either way, tomorrow was going to be a busy day, I just hoped that everything went as planed but for tonight, we were going to have a good time together. Tomorrow would take care of itself.
To Be Continued In Part Fifteen
By Cain129
Synopsis:Sarah received a call from Steve Grangers sister Kelly. He is ready to meet Sarah but in a place of his own chosen, but Sarah must meet him alone. Sarah may have finely found an ally in her fight there is only one problem, can she trust him or is she walking into a trap, only time will tell.
I spent most of it last night hanging out with my friends. There was really nothing else that I could do at the moment everything was at a stand still. I just hoped that once I met with Steve, I would have an idea what to do next. But at the moment, I was lost and didn’t know what the next move should be. The thought had come to me to send copies of the files out to the press, but I wanted to wait until I had a chance to talk with Steve Granger, it was possible he had other information that would help.
It was getting close to the time that I was supposed to meet with Steve, so I started getting dressed and made sure that I had my bulletproof vest on under my jacket, Inside my purse, I had a can of mace and my tazer. I was about as ready as I was going to be. When I talked with Adam on the phone last night and explained what was going on, he was pretty worried and wanted to come along. But I explained to him that if anyone else was there Steve would likely run, and I couldn’t risk that. After work though, Adam dropped off his car and drove back with Megan and the girls. So at least I had transportation.
The drive to Burnaby Mountain Park was a long one, but I was able to make it there earlier then expected, which was good because the place that Steve choose to meet me was a fair walk from where I parked the car. The closer that I found myself to the spot where we were supposed to meet, the more nervous I felt inside. But I knew that I had to do this and continued on until I was at the spot that Kelly mentioned, there was a bench there.
I took a seat and waited as I sat there for what seemed like forever, but in truth it was only about 15 minutes when I saw a man walking towards me and took a seat on the bench next to me.
“You must be Sarah, you are not what I expected.”
I looked over at him, “Nice to finely meet you, Steve.”
Steve looked over at me then asked, “How did you find out about me, Sarah?”
“I took Anna’s laptop and her journals, they eventually led me to you.”
“So what happened? Why are they hunting you?”
I looked over at Steve, “There was a malfunction and the nanites took on a life of there own refusing to accept orders and when that happened I became expendable.”
“Makes sense, the last thing they would want is another rouge agent running loose.”
“You seem different then what they said about you in the files.”
Steve frowned, “The information is mostly true, I am alright for the most part,but something happens when my emotions take over and the nanites inside me take over and they overwhelm me. People have died because I couldn’t control myself.”
"That sucks."
“So, what do you plan on doing? They're not going to stop hunting you. I know this from personal experience. They will keep coming after you till they succeed.”
“I think with the files that I have I can expose them to the press, but that would only shut them down for a short time then someone else would continue there work. I would rather take the fight to them and destroy everything, but I can’t do it alone, Steve.”
“Your right, Sarah. There is no way that either of us could do this alone, but you are just a child, you may have those nanites, but can you really use them? It took me 3 years to master mine and even then there are times that I still loose control.”
I thought about what he said, it was true that whenever I was able to call on those abilities, it took most of my strength and I couldn’t maintain the use of them very long. And the fact that when they had kicked in they were motivated by fear and the use of them had cost the lives of two people..Anna was still alive, but she was lucky. My motivation wasn’t to kill her, just take the information she had away from her.
“Your right, I don’t have complete control. But I am a fast learner. You can teach me what I need to know. Then the two of us can take them down. What do you think?”
“If I agree to do this, then what I say goes. I don’t have time to waste, just like you, every moment I am out there is a chance of being discovered. God help us if they found out the two of us were working together.”
I thought about that he said. If they found out the two of us were working together, they would most like send everything that had at the two of us. If the two of us were working together as a team, they would have good reason to be worried.
“Do you have a safe place where we can train?”
“I am hiding out in a cottage outside of town; it’s quiet there and has lots of room, your welcome to hide out there so we can train.”
“Alright, Sarah what’s the address. I will meet you there, I have a lot of loose ends that need to be taking care of, first.”
After I gave him the address the two of us went our separate ways. As I walked back to the car, I thought about what he said, to him, I was just a child. Maybe physically I was, but inside was also a man with over 40 years of life experience. I knew that the world we lived in was dangerous and unforgiving I had experienced it first hand.
After arriving back at the cottage, I setup a room for Steve to use and placed clean linen on his bed. I ended liking him, he seemed really sincere and admitted the fact the file was not a complete lie. But in truth, was he really the one responsible, or was it his nanites. As for myself, I had seen first hand how powerful they could be. It wasn’t really his fault, it was just easier to say he was a monster. But in truth, they had created him. So who was the real monster? It defiantly wasn’t Steve.
It was around 4:P.M. when I heard a car pulling into the drive and parking out front. I went to the window and took a look outside. I didn’t recognize the car, and whoever it was moved pretty fast because I didn’t even see anyone exit it. I immediately started thinking the worst and before I knew what was happening, my fear had started to take over and inside me, I started feeling really funny and knew that it had to be my nanites doing something. It was at that moment someone came running at me through the back of the house.
I felt a slight pain forming in my head and all the sudden, an en energy blast flow across the room hitting the intruder. But to my surprise, his arm came up and blocked my attack while at the same time dispersing the energy from the blast. Then came at me again, this time the attack was a physical one, and before I had a chance to respond, he had my head in some kind of hold and said, "If I wanted you dead, Sarah, you would already be dead in shock,"
"Steve?"
He then releases me with a push forward and as I turned around to face him, he removed his ski mask and before me all dressed in black was Steve Granger.
“What the hell did you think you were doing?”
“It was a test, Sarah, and if it had been anyone else you would also be dead."
"Oh."
“What were the thoughts that went through your head before the attack?”
“I was feeling mostly fear and anxiety.”
Steve looked at me, ”Yhen what?”
“I felt funny inside, then as you came at me there was pain in my head.”
What you felt was your nanites becoming active, they recognized a threat and were preparing you for an attack. The problem was you needed to take control and choose an action, but you were to afraid. o instead of acting, you ended up reacting to the attack. The nanites took over and did what they thought was needed to be done. Had you took control they would have responded to your wishes."
“I am pretty new to all this, and I didn’t really come with a user manual.”
“That is why you are lucky to have found me, I had to learn all this stuff on my own.”
The first thing you need to do is to start listening to what your body is telling you, the nanites have enhanced all of your senses. Take a deep breathe and prepare yourself for what is coming, but always stay in control. Otherwise, you may end up killing someone. That energy blast of ours is one hell of a good weapon, but what if it had been Adam coming though that door, he would likely be dead."
“How do you know about Adam?”
“Like you Sarah, I did my own investigating.”
I looked over at Steve,” So, how did you block my energy blast? That was pretty cool.”
“I have an enhanced exoskeleton, it can take a lot of abuse, I also have learned from being hit with tazers that I can absorb the energy. It was a real pain, though the first few times, but the nanites are capable of adapting and learning new things. I would imagine yours can do a lot more beside just an energy blast.”
“I can do a few things, I have enhanced memory, speed and strength. I can control a person, but I don’t like doing that because it drains me and the energy blast.”
"Sarah, that energy blast of your is more then it appears, it’s not exactly energy. I think it could be a form of telekinesis and if that is the case, you should be able to use it to do other things, like move objects. I am guessing that the nanites enhanced your brain and you can now use more of it then a normal person could.
I looked over at Steve, “If you could have complete control of your abilities without the rage taking over, would you be interested”
Steve looked over at me,” Of course I would, but that’s impossible!”
"Maybe it was, but not anymore. I have a friend, he is a doctor. I asked him about you. I was looking for a way to fight you if things didn’t go right. He gave me a drug to knock you out, but anyway, he said that our nanites are most likely compatible. If we inject you with some of mine, it is possible that they would overwrite yours."
“It’s possible! How do we know that they will not also copy over your programming and if that happens, it could lead to major trouble. I think it is best to wait and see what your doctor friend can find out first before jumping into anything.”
I thought about what Steve had said. It was true, we really didn’t know what the effect would be, it was best to stay on the cautious side of things in time being. Dr. Picard would know more about how they worked and maybe come up with some way to reprogram them, but for the moment, the two of us were in control, and it was best to keep it that way. I did learn one thing though, I had along ways to go before I was as good a fighter as Steve, but it appeared that I would have a good teacher.
Later that night, Megan drove over with Adam. I introduced them to Steve. Everyone got along well enough, although I could see that Adam didn’t really like the idea of another man living with me. I had to take him aside later that night and explain to him that Steve was training me and that there was only one man that I was interested in, that man was him. After that, he seemed to warm to the idea that I had someone there to protect me while he was away, and to be honest, I was happy that Steve was here too.
After Adam and I returned we found Megan and Steve over at the computer. She was showing him the file that they had on him, he just shook his head and said most of it is true, but some of it had been fabricated, some of the locations in the file he had never even lived in. It just showed that you can’t always believe everything that you read. Megan and Adam couldn’t stay very long, she had mostly come to give Adam a lift to retrieve his car and both of them needed to be home before 11:P.N., so we all had a good visit and they were on their way.
The next morning, I was awakened early by Steve, and the two of us went for a morning run around the lake and back. It was a good hour, before we made it back to the cottage. After having breakfast, the two of us went outside.
"Sarah, most soldiers in the army use a combination of: boxing, Mauy Tai and Jujitsu. Today, we are going to start with the boxing and eventually move onto the others. The more that we practice, the faster you will learn. As far as your condition goes, the nanites should take care of that. We just need to get you to the point where you can handle yourself in a fight, because there maybe a time where you can’t depend of the nanites to protect you. When that happens, it will be up to you."
So, for the next couple of hours, Steve worked with me showing me the different blocks and punches. Like he said, because of my enhanced memory, I remembered all of it and found myself enjoying myself. As the days went on, I found myself becoming quiet proficient with the boxing, eventually we got to the point where Steve and I were sparing against one another. Usually when this happened, I would end up spending most of my time on the mat, but I was finely starting to hold my own with him. I still ended up loosing, but a week later I held my own with him. He then said that I was finished my boxing training, we were going to move onto the Mauy Tai.
I had thought that the boxing was tough, but Mauy Tai was brutal. Even with my enhancements, I still found myself sore, but I was thankful for my ability to heal. Without it, I would have spent weeks recovering, instead of days. For the most part, this was my life, running first thing in the morning, martial Arts during the day. Most nights, I would spend with my friends. Mom and Dad dropped in a few times, but were careful not to be followed, Steve and Dad became fast friends.
Mom and I talked for hours and she eventually accepted the fact that I wouldn’t likely be coming home anytime soon. I was still her daughter, but because of everything that happened, I was growing up fast.It was something that I had very little control of, but something told me that the two of us would always be close. Maybe once things got back to normal, we could have the mother daughter relationship that she wanted.
Being a fast learner, it took me a month to learn Mauy Tai and I did really well, then came the dreaded Jujitsu. I was lucky for the most part, my previous training had prepared me for most of it. It took about a month to learn, but Steve said that I was finished, now there was just one thing left that I needed to do. That was to put it all together into a form my own.
Steve and I headed into town to a gym, and the two of us started sparing against one another. It was a wild fight because it consisted of everything that he had taught me, In the end, I was able to defend myself against him and to my surprise, I won. Steve smiled and put his arm around me, "I am proud of you, Sarah. You are finely ready for whatever is thrown at you. I think it’s finely time to take the fight to them."
I smiled at Steve, “I am ready anytime you are."
To Be Continued In Part Sixteen
By Cain129
Synopsis:Sarah finely meets with Steve Granger, and has to admit he is not quiet the monster that Anna’s files said he was and over the next three months Steve trains Sarah and helps her hone her skills. The time has finely come for Sarah and Steve to take back their lives.
It had been a long road up to this point and also a lot of sweat and tears, but I felt ready to take the fight to the enemy with the training that I received from Steve. I felt more competent knowing that I could take care of myself without having to depend on the nanites. Training with Steve also help me learn to control them better, so that when I did use them, it was less draining. But even so, it was still along road ahead of me if I was ever to completely master them.
Steve had packed up his bags and said that he would be in contact with me in a few days. He said that there was someone that he needed to talk to and had information on the super soldiers program and it’s possible location.
After Steve left, I picked up the phone and gave Adam a call. I had been missing him terribly and really wanted to see him, but there was no answer. So I dialed Megan’s cell.
"Hey Sarah, what’s up she asked?"
“Not much, Sis. Just bored, you feel like getting together and doing something?”
“Amy, Jessica and I were planning on taking in a movie later, Sarah you welcome to join us.”
“Sounds like fun, but its an awful long ways for you to travel just to pick me up, Megan.”
“Not really, there are theaters near you and they’ll be happy too see you, Sarah.”
“I’ll call them and tell them that we're doing a road trip; see you around noon.”
“Alright, Megan. I will talk to you later, love you.”
“Love you too, Sarah; see you in a bit, bye.”
After getting off the phone, I had a few hours to kill, so I put on my track suite and headed outside for a run around the lake. After spending the last few months with Steve, the morning runs had become part of my normal routine. I found that it was also a great way to clear my mind, because when I ran, it took me my mind off the insanity that had been my life. And during those runs, I thought about easier times when I was truly happy.
I had spent most of my life until recently as a guy that hated life, but I felt truly complete now, and even with all the insanity that was going on around me, I wouldn’t trade what I had gained for the world. And somehow I knew that the end of all this was near and I would be able to go home, soon.
After finishing my run, I had a quick bath, then spent the next hour doing my makeup, hair and getting dressed. Not that it really took that long, but I wasn’t really in a hurry. I still had time to kill before the girls arrived, so I was just pretty much trying to keep busy. After I finished up, I went downstairs into the kitchen and made up a quick breakfast, it really wasn’t anything special, just a bowl of raisin brain, toast and a glass of orange juice.
Meanwhile, across town in her new lab, is Anna. She is sitting at her desk, working on the computer when her phone rings. She reaches over and looks at here phone seeing that the call is from her secretary, she answer it.
“Yes, Brenda?”
“Anna, your Daughter Carol is here. Should I show her in?”
“Thanks, Brenda. Send her in.”
Anna got up and met her daughter as she came into the office and met her with a hug.
"Sorry I couldn’t come sooner, Mom, but I have some good news. Steve Granger is in custody. We caught him this morning, you were right about James Marsden. He was the mole that was feeding Steve the information. I had a team watching him when Steve made contact."
“Where is Steve Granger?"
“He’s in a cell, sleeping off the effects of the drugs we shot him with.”
“I want him brought to my lab, Carol. Make sure is stays unconscious.”
“Alright, Mom, but what do you have in mind?”
“I am going to send him after Sarah Tanner.”
“Mom, we can’t control him, how do you know he won’t turn on us?”
Anna walked over and took a vile out of the cooler and walked over to her daughter and smiled, ”Inside this bottle is my latest invention, they are the same nanites that were injected into Sarah Tanner, accept I am going to use these to destroy the ones that Steve has. And once I finish with Steve, he will do anything that we tell him to do."
“We should question him, Mom, there maybe others helping him besides James Marsden.”
“You’re right, Carol. But once we inject him, he will tell us everything he knows.”
“Alright, Mom. Give me a half hour and I will have him brought up.”
After Carol left, Anna walked back over to her desk and with a smile she said too herself, 'It's payback time, bitch!' then started working on programming the nanites.
It was around 12:P.M. when Megan, Jessica and Amy arrived. It was still too early too catch the movie, so I invited them inside. It had been a couple of weeks since I had seen Jessica and Amy. So they filled me in on all the local gossip that I had missed and asked me all kinds of questions about what I had been up to.
I told them about my training with Steve and all the different things he had taught me. Amy had always wanted too take some courses in self defense and asked me to show her a few things. Most of the stuff that I showed her was pretty basic, but she seemed pretty impressed and tried copying what I had shown her, she caught on pretty fast and wanted me to teach her more once my life got back to normal.
Jessica on the other hand, was more interested in boys then martial arts, she pretty caught up on this new guy that she had just started dating. His name was Scotty. He was a musician of all things, and the two of them had met at the 'Bronx' which was a bar that was opened to teens on Wednesday nights.
Is is a pretty popular place, not that I had been there, but I planned on checking it out sometime. Megan and Bobby were still pretty much an Item, and I was really happy for her. She seemed to have found herself someone a lot like Adam, I really hoped that it worked out for the two of them.
The movie turned out to be a bomb, and a good waste of money. It was one of those comedy’s that spent way to much time trying to be funny and had really no story line. But we did have a good time and lots of laughs about how bad the movie was.
Rather then retuning to the cottage, the four of us hit the shops along the board walk and went on a shopping spree. There was a jewelry booth where I saw this beautiful necklace that was of a white dove, I loved it from the start. The price on it was $15.00. So, I bought it and Jessica helped me fasten it. Megan, Amy and Jessica ended up buying a few things also while we were there.
We eventually ended up at one of the many surf shops and soon found ourselves sorting through all the different swimsuits. Amy found this nice black Bikini and said that it was prefect for me and with the insistence from Megan and Jessica, I ended up buying it. Don’t get me wrong, I really liked it myself, but could have just gone with a one piece, but I knew which one Adam would like best.
Anna watched as Steve Granger was brought into her Lab, following close behind was Carol. Steve was still out cold from the drugs that they had giving him, but just as a precaution, he was also strapped down on the stretcher, that was Carols idea.
She knew that there was always the possibility that Steve would wake up, any normal person would be out for days but those damn nanites had enhanced his body so much that what worked for most people wouldn’t work for Steve Granger.
After they finished moving Steve, Anna walked over to Steve with a needle and injected him with it, then turned to her daughter Carol, "This will paralyze him. We need him awake for what is to come next."
She then picked up another needle and injected the contents into his arm and turned to Carol and smiled, "It will take about 15 minutes for the nanites to do the job. We might as well grab a coffee, he is going no where."
Carol and Anna headed down to the cafeteria leaving Steve with couple of guards.
After the two of them were seated, Carol turned to her mother, “I really think using Steve is a mistake, we should just terminate him.”
I know how you feel, Carol. But ever since Sarah escaped, she has been evading us. She is smart, that little goose chase in Toronto was brilliant. Our operatives were running all over the city and what did we find? A 15 year old girl with her bank card. No Carol, we need Steve, he has been on the run for years and knows all the tricks.
“Alright, Mom, maybe your right. But I really think we need too rethink what wee doing here. First Steve, and now Sarah, both turned out to be failures and this time it, almost cost you your life. I don’t know what I would do if I lost you, Mom.”
Anna reached over and took her daughters hand, “I am not going anywhere, Honey.”
Carol looked at her mother, “I hope not, Mom, but I have a bad feeling about all this.”
“I know Carol; it’s almost over with, once we take care of Sarah.”
Anna looked at her watch, “let’s get back to the lab it’s time to get started.”
After the two of them arrived in the lab, Anna walked over to her desk and grabbed another needle and injected Steve with it. Steve slowly started to come around once he was awake, he tried to move but found that he couldn’t.
“Relax, Steve. I gave you something to keep you under control. You’ve giving us quiet a run with three years of chasing you across the country,” Anna said with a smile.
“What are you going to do to me?" Steve asked in anger.
“We're going to let you go, Steve. We need you to take care of something for us.”
“What do you want me to do?”
"That’s not important, because after we are finished with you, its not like you are going to remember any of this anyway. But first, I want you too tell me everything that you have been up to and why you were trying to break into this facility."
“I am not going to tell you anything, Anna, and the last thing you’re going to see is my hands around your throat, squeezing the life out of you.”
“Is that the way you talk to all your ladies?" Anna asked with a sinister smile.
“Only to evil bitches like you, Anna.”
“Just for the record, Steve, you are not going to do anything when I am done with you. You will be nothing more then my own person puppet. You will do whatever I say. Now tell me what I want to know.”
Anna walked over too her desk and started typing commands into her computer and the next thing, Steve was screaming in pain. The pain only lasted a few minutes and after the pain was gone Anna walked over to Steve.
“Steve, why were you trying to break into this facility?”
“We were trying to take it down," Steve said in almost a comatose state.
Anna looked over at Carol then turned to Steve, "You said 'We’. Who is helping you?”
“Sarah Tanner," Steve said calmly.
“How do you know about Sarah?" asked Anna.
“She used your files to find me.”
"Very cleaver girl," Anna, then turned to her daughter, "I need you to put together a little surprise for Sarah, something tells me that she is going to be paying us a visit very soon," Anna said with a wicket smile.
Carol smiled, “It will be my pleasure, Mom” then left to make the arrangements.
Anna then turned to Steve and with a smile said, "Here are your orders Steve, You are to make contact with Sarah Tanner and tell here you found my lab. Tell her that the two of you are going to break in and take down the facility. You will bring her here where you will shoot her with this dart gun. The contents will knock her out and once she is out cold, you will bring her to this lab, do you understand your orders Steve?
"Yes Anna, I will do as you asked.”
“Good boy Anna said with a smile”
 
To Be Continued In Part 17
By, Cain129
Thanks To Stanman63 For Editing!
Synopsis:The time has come for Sarah and Steve to take down there enemies, but things are not always as they seem are they ready for the job that lays ahead of them, only time will tell.
I arrived home after spending the day with my friends, it had been a fun day for all of us. After everyone had left, I decided to boot up my computer and see if there were any messages from Steve. We had chosen to keep in touch with each other using the internet. I was surprised to find that there was a message waiting for me from Steve. I clicked on the message and opened it up.
The message was pretty much straight to the point, Steve was never the kind for wasting time.
Found the new facility, it’s pretty secure going to make a move on it for tomorrow at 11pm, Make sure you come prepared. I will be waiting near the entranced.
Below the message was an address which I wrote down, then picked up my phone and called Adam, hoping that he would have it on. It rang a few times before he answered.
“Hey baby, how’s my girl?”
I smiled,” I am doing pretty good honey but I need a favor.”
“What do you need, Sarah?”
“I need your car for tomorrow night, Steve and I are finely making our move.”
“I will drive you there myself.”
“You don’t have too, Adam, Steve and I will be alright.”
“I am not worried about Steve, you need someone there if everything goes to hell”
“Alright, but I want you wait with the car, if anything happens be ready”
“How about I skip school tomorrow and we can spend the day together?”
I smiled to myself, “I would like that Adam.”
Adam and I talked for the next couple of hours, about everyone and everything. I was hoping after tomorrow that the two of us could go back to being normal kids again and how much that he meant to me. I really didn’t know how things were going to go tomorrow and felt it was important that he knew that I truly loved him and was happy that the two of us had found one another.
After the call ended I picked up the phone and called Megan and told her what was going on, she was worried that something was going to go wrong, I told her that I was also but this was something that I needed to do, I was tired of running and wanted to get my life back. She wanted to come along but in the end I told her that it was too dangerous and that I really couldn’t live with myself is something happened to her.
I asked her to do me one more favor before we ended the call and that was too go over too my parents place, I needed to talk to them and didn’t want to risk talking over their phone, Sarah said Alright and she would call me in a few minutes then I told her that I loved her as we ended the call.
I went into the kitchen and took a coke out of the fridge grabbed a bag of chips from the pantry and filled up a bowl and sat them down on the table. I turned on the radio and listened to it for awhile until my phone rang and it was mom on the other end.
“Mom, it’s so good to hear your voice, I miss you much.”
“It’s good to hear you too baby, how are you doing, are you alright?”
“I am fine Mom, just missing you and Daddy.”
“Your Father and I miss you too baby, please come home.”
“I will be home soon, Mommy, It’s almost over now. If everything goes as planned I maybe home, tomorrow.”
“Just be careful, Sarah, and come home to us.”
“Is Daddy there?”
“Yes, Baby. He is standing here beside me”
“Can I talk to him?”
There was a few seconds of where the phone went dead, then I heard his voice.
“Hi Daddy, How are you doing?”
“I am doing alright, just happy to be able to talk to you, how have you been?”
Sorry that I couldn’t stay in touch more, there has been so much going on, but I am alright, Steve and I are making our move tomorrow night, if things go well. I maybe coming home soon.
“We will be happy when your home and put all of this insanity to rest.”
“I will too, Daddy, it’s been so hard being away from Mom and you.”
“You left to protect us, Sarah, we understand why you left.”
“I got to go Daddy; if everything goes as planed I will be home tomorrow. I love you Daddy and give mom a kiss for me."
“Goodbye, Baby, I love you too," Daddy said as he ended the call.
It as a pretty quiet night for me and I mostly spent it playing around on the computer and listening to the radio. Eventually though, the boredom started to get to me and I decided to call it a night and within minutes I was fast asleep.
That night, my dreams were pretty messed up. I dreamt that Anna had killed everyone that I loved, and all that I could to is sit and watch, no matter how hard that I tried to move my body would not obey me.
I woke up completely soaked in my own sweat, I knew that it was just a dream, but, I was scared half to death. I slowly pulled myself out of bed and made my way into the bathroom and ran my hands under the cold water and drenched my face with the cold water, trying to rinse the redness away. I have had dreams before, but nothing really compared to this one.
I made my way into the kitchen and put on a pot of coffee and took a seat at the table, looking over at the clock, it was still pretty early, it was 5:A.M., I knew though that I wouldn’t be going back to bed anytime soon. ' I was never really a coffee person, but needed it this morning.' I thought to myself as I took a drink.
I tried to put the nightmares behind me and get ready for my morning run. As I made my way around the lake, I felt a calmness fall over me and could feel the stress that I had been carrying slowly dissolve. Normally, I would just run for an hour, but today, I felt like taking it a little further, so I stripped down and took a swim.
The water was a little cold at first, but it didn’t take long for me to adjust to it. Before long, I was swimming laps across the lake and back. Well, it was just the one lap, and it was a big lake. After I finished, I decided that I had enough and just relaxed and let the water carry me for a bit.
When I finely made my way inside, it was 7:30A.M. The first thing that I did was run a nice hot bath and soaked for a bit, then spent the next hour getting dressed and doing my makeup and hair. I went pretty light on the makeup, considering I didn’t really have any plans for most of the day anyway.
Most of it was going to be spent with Adam, then I would meet Steve at 11:P.M., and the two of us would make our move on the facility, . But that was tonight and I didn’t want to even think about it. For the time being, I just wanted to be a normal girl, spending the day with the boy she loved. I could worry about everything else, later.
It was around 9:30A.M. when Adam arrived, it felt nice being in his arms again as he kissed me. The two of sat outside on the porch swing and he just held me as I curled up next to him with my head on his shoulder.
“I miss this Adam.”
“What do you miss, Honey?”
“I guess everything, it’s just nice having you here with me," I said with a smile.
Adam looked over at me, “It’s been hard on the both of us, Sarah. And there are times that I wonder if things will ever be normal between us.”
“I guess that I do carry a lot more baggage then most girls.”
“Yeah, Sarah. I can handle it, maybe after today we can get rid of some of it.”
“I hope so, Adam. But what will you if it doesn’t workout as planned?”
“If it doesn’t workout, then the two of us will leave town together. I know the risks, but I would rather face the risks with you then being without you.”
“Alright, Adam. I am not going to fight with you, because I don’t want to be without you either, but somehow I will find a way to get through this, tonight.”
Adam and I spent most of the morning just hanging around the cottage, we talked mostly and just enjoy each others company. At around noon, we went inside and I made up a light dinner for the two of us. I made us up some fish and chips, they were delicious, considering that they came out of a box. After the two of us ate, I washed the dishes while Adam dried them.
After we finished up, Adam suggested that the two of us go for a drive. I had been at the cottage all morning, so I jumped at the idea for sometime away. So a few minutes later, Adam and I were in his car.
Adam looked over at me then said, “Is there any where special you want to go?”
“It’s pretty hot, let’s head down to the beach.”
“Alright, Sarah. If that is where you want to go.”
It was a short ride to the beach, and most of the way there, I had a strange feeling that someone was following us. But when I looked into the mirror, I didn’t really see anything. Maybe I was just being paranoid, but Steve had taught me to listen to what my body was telling me, and something didn’t feel right.
Adam looked over at me, “Is everything alright?”
I didn’t want to worry him it could have just been my mind working overtime, “Yes, I guess that I am just a little worried about tonight.”
“Try not to think about it, worrying about isn’t going to do you any good”
“I know, but it’s easier said then done.”
As the two of walked along the beach, Adam took my hand and the two of us walked along the waters edge. I removed my sandals and walked in the wet sand. I would have loved to have gone into the water, but hadn’t brought my bathing suit with me and there were really too many people around to risk skinny dipping, although, I am sure that Adam wouldn’t have minded seeing me in my birthday suit.
Eventually, the two of us found a nice secluded place along one of the many trails that had a park bench. I took a seat next to him and he put his arm around me, I couldn’t help but cuddle into him and placed my head against his shoulder.
He looked down at me then pulled me closer, it wasn’t long before he was kissing me and I found my arms around his neck kissing him back with just as much passion as he was showing me.
When he finely pulled away, he looked over at me, ”I love you, Sarah.”
I smiled then lead over and gave him a kiss, “I love you more,” I said with a smile.
“Promise me that whatever happens, Sarah, that we will be together.”
“Don’t worry, if I have to leave, you and I will leave together.”
“Good, because I don’t want to be without you,” Adam then leaned over and he kissed me again.
The two of us just stayed there for God knows how long, just holding one another. There was an old couple that passed us, they had to be in there 60’s, I could see the smile on her face when she saw us together.
I thought to myself,'How cool it would be for Adam and me too grow old together like that old couple had done.', When I looked over at Adam, I thought, 'That kind of love was still possible, even in this day and age. Although most people choose to leave, rather then face their problems.'
"Penny for your thoughts," asked Adam,
”I was just thinking about that old couple, do you think that kind of love is still possible?”
“Anything is possible if both people really want something,” Adam said with a smile
“I guess your right, Adam. Most of the people have problems, but don't find a way to work them out. It scary how many people just leave at the first sign of trouble.”
Adam looked over at me and pulled me closer and kissed me,
I smiled and kissed him back, ”Good, because I would really hate to hunt you down.”
The day had gone pretty fast, after we left the beach, the two of us went into town and had a nice super together. It was so much fun being able to spend the day with the man that I loved.
After supper the two of us returned to the cottage and one thing let to another and before I knew it, Adam and I were making love. When the two of us were completely spent, he just held me and the two of us laid there for what seemed like hours talking to and caressing one another.
It was around 10:P.M. when I finely had to get out of bed, I took a quick shower and then started getting dressed, Steve had bought various items for me while he was here, helping with my training. One of them was a black jumpsuit that had lots of pockets for holding various items. After I put the jumpsuit on, I went over to the closet and took out my black duffel, inside it was all the tools that I would need. There was one item inside that I truly hated and hoped that I would never have to use, but I was glad that it was there all the same.
I reached inside and pulled out my holster that held the gun that Steve had bought me it was a Glock 17. It was a powerful weapon and being semi automatic, meant I just needed too load the clips and it was ready for use.
I took the gun out of it holder and inserted the clip then placed it back and placed the extra clips into another pocket. On the other side of the holster was on another pocket that held a knife, there was also a pocket to hold a radio which I inserted and plugged in the earpiece so that Steve and I would have two way communication.
“Do you really need all that stuff, Sarah?” asked Adam
“I have no idea, Adam. I have no idea what I am up against. It’s best to be prepared.”
Adam frowned, “I still don’t like the idea of you going in alone.”
“I am not going to be alone; Steve will be there with me Adam.”
“I still don’t like it, Sarah. What if something goes wrong?”
“Nothing is going to go wrong, I’m sure that Steve has a plan once we are in. What would you have me do?”
“We can just leave, Sarah. We have the files and we can send them to the press.”
"Yes, we could do that Adam. But how long do you think it will take them to start the program again under another name? Do you want to be running for the rest of your life with me? They are not going to let me go, and eventually, they will find us. I don’t want to spend the rest of my life in hiding, I want to be with my family and friends and I want to marry the man that I love."
“Alright, Sarah. I understand. But I don’t have to like it.”
“I don’t like it, either, Adam. But this is the way it has to be.”
I walked over and picked up my cell phone and dialed Megan’s number. It rang a few times before she answered.
”Hi Sarah, what are you up to?”
“I am just getting ready to meet Steve, it’s time to start sending out the files.”
“I will make the calls and let everyone know, the press should have the files within the next couple of hours. Be careful tonight, I love you sis.”
“I love you too, Megan. I will talk to you later and thanks.”
After I ended the call to Megan, I turned to Adam, “We better get going, Honey.”
Adam and I arrived at the location where Steve had told me to meet him, but didn’t seem very impressed when he saw that Adam was with me.
Steve looked over to me then Adam, “I told you to come alone, Sarah.”
“I know, but it couldn’t be helped. I needed a ride and he insisted on waiting.”
“Alright, let get going then.”
I walked over to Adam and said,"I will see you when it’s over with.”
Adam leaned over and gave me a kiss while at the same time he slipped his cell phone into my pocket, ”Just in case you need me”, he said looking worried.
“What was that about?” asked Steve
“Nothing, he was just saying 'good luck'.”
Steve and I made our way through the woods, the trees provided us with pretty good cover, making it hard for anyone to see our approach. Eventually we made it too a fence.
“Don’t touch the fence, it’s electric, there is enough power to knock you out.”
I looked over at Steve, “How are we going to get past it?”
“Very carefully.”
Steve reached into his knapsack and took out a pair of cutters and used them too cut enough of the fence so that the two of us could make it through. Then I followed him, he seemed too know exactly where he was going.
“How did you find out about this place Steve?”
“I have a friend on the inside who feeds me information, when I need it.”
“How reliable is this information?”
“It’s legit, he has helped me in the past, and I have never had a problem with him.”
"OK."
"Yhis is where we split up, we need too hit the lab and the server at the same time, I will take care of the server and you will take the lab, turn on your radio on and wait till I contact you."
“I will see you when we're done, good luck.”
“Remember what I taught you and you will be alright," Steve said with a smile, he then made his way toward the other side of the building.
There was a security system on the door, so the first thing that I needed to do was to disarm it long enough so that I could make it inside the building. I reached into my knapsack and took out my tools and within a few minutes, I had disabled the door and made my way inside the building.
I had memorized the blueprints that Steve had sent me, so I pretty much knew where I needed to go. I needed to make it to the third floor, but couldn’t take the elevator because it was key coded. So that left me with taking the stairs, once I was on the third floor, I would have too disable the lock to gain entrance.
Like I had expected, there was a couple of guards monitoring each floor, and camera’s that needed too be temporary disabled. The first camera that I came to was on a motion tracker. So I had to wait till it was pointed away, then I ran right up underneath it, waited then used made my move the rest of the way until I had made it safely around the corner and straight into an armed guard that I took by surprise.
I could see he was going for his gun, but I was faster and grabbed my tazer and stepped into him with it. The charge from the tazer was enough to knock him to his feet and I quickly used a move that Steve had taught me to choke him out.
Once that I was sure that he was out cold, I dragged his body to a closet and used his own handcuffs to secure him, while at the same time, taking his radio and key card. I placed the radio on the other side of the room, then left him to sleep it off and made my way to the stairs.
A few minutes later, I was on the third floor. I used the key card that I had taken off of the guard to open the door. Like the previous floor, there was a camera, except this one over looked the stairs and would be more of a challenge to bypass. So I made a leap of faith and ran for it, then used my camera to take another picture and placed the picture in front of the lenses.
As I got closer to the lab, I noticed that there was a guard outside of the lab. I needed to take him out before I could make it to the lab. I reached into my bag and pulled out a flash grenade, I needed to act fast so he wouldn’t have time to call for help.
I threw the grenade across to him and it went off, temporarily blinding him. I made my move and was on him so fast that the first thing I did was us my tazer as I had done to the other guard. I choked him out, too.
The coast was clear and I made my way inside. Something wasn’t right though, this was the place that Steve had given me to go to, but this wasn’t lab. It was at that moment that I heard yelling coming from the inside of my head telling me to get down. I listened and dropped too the floor fast only to see a dart fly past my head.
When I turned around, it was Steve, but there was a vacant look in his eyes. He had missed me, but instead of stopping went for his gun. I was too far to do anything and did the only thing that I could do, beat him to my own gun.
I aimed for his shoulder. I didn’t want to kill him, I just wanted to stop him and it worked, I was able to get my shot off first. Steve went down hard. I made my way over to him and kicked his gun away. Then I bent down beside him and said two words,”Why Steve?”
To be continued in part 18
Synopsis:Sarah and Steve make there move to take down the super soldier program and all is going well until the unthinkable happens, Steve turns on Sarah leaving her with only one choice. She draws her gun and has no choice but to shoot her friend, leaving her with two choices; save her friend Steve or take down the program herself. What will be her choice, saving Steve or the destruction of the program?
I was leaning over Steve, asking him why he turned on me, but there was no sign of the man that I had known. I knew the answer; Anna had got to him and did something to him. The man that I knew was still there, somewhere, buried deep inside. There was no way that I could break his programming and get the answers I needed. Well, there was always my nanites, but they were sitting in a fridge back at the cottage.
The only real thing that I knew was that Steve would want me to carry out the mission; he hated these people as much as I did, but without his help, I had to do it alone. This wasn’t going to be easy. I hated doing what I had to do next, Steve was still my friend and what happened wasn’t his fault, but I couldn’t risk him coming after me.
I needed time to finish what the two of us had started. I used Steve’s handcuffs to bind his hands behind his back then dragged him into a closet that was inside the room and took some duck tape and placed it over his mouth, “Sorry Steve but the mission has to come first.”
I was left with another problem, now, the information Steve gave me was a trap. I suspected that I was still in the right building because Anna wanted me here for a reason. I needed to find the location of her ab and the buildings server. This meant a three prong attack. First, I needed to take out the phones so that the server didn’t up load the files to another location, then take out the server and Lab at the same time. This was going too take some ingenuity.
I went through Steve’s knapsack and found that the explosives were still there along with his tools, so I knew that he was planning on carrying out the mission, but his programming took over before he was able to.
I took everything that I would need and transferred it to my knapsack, then found a map inside of the bag which showed the server room. I assumed that it was correct. I looked over at Steve, “I promise that I will be back for you, just hang in there.”
Looking at the map, I knew the server and phone hook ups were in the basement, which meant that I had to go back downstairs. So, I grabbed my knapsack and placed it on my back and started making my way back to the stairs. I left the camera disabled because I knew that I would have to come back for Steve, later, provided I made it out of here alive.
After arriving on the second floor, I had to make my way down along hallway to get to another set of stairs which would lead me to the basement. As I made my way down, I saw that there were various labs, I used the key card that I had taken off the guard and opened the door.
I had an idea that might just make my job a little easier. I went over to one of the computers and used the password that I had used to break into Anna’s laptop, hoping that she hadn’t bother changing it yet. It worked and I was able to pull up the buildings blueprints and now had the location of her lab, it was on the 4th floor. I tried to gain access to her files, but when I receive a message stating that the files were not available over the network I knew that I had to take care of them inside of her lab.
I now had a choice of which direction to go first, and decided that I would go to the basement, first. Along the way, I heard someone come up behind me and yell. "STOP!"
I slowly turned around, he had his gun pointed at me, with his other hand reaching for his radio. I had to think fast, if he got on the radio it wouldn’t be long before everyone knew that I was here. I looked over at him and thought about the movie 'Star Wars' and smiled, ”You don’t want to call anyone do you?”
He looked over at me in almost a blank state, ”I don’t want too call anyone,” he said.
I smiled, ”You didn’t see me, you are tired go to the nearest room and take a long nap.”
The guard started to yawn, then placed his gun back into his holster then walked into another room and closed the door behind him. I could only assume my Jedi mind tricks were still working, but I didn’t stick around to give him a chance to come back to his senses. I made it too the stairs quickly. The basement was the most heavily defended and I soon found myself surrounded as entered the basement.
I could only assume this was where security had their main office. I was left with one choice. I drew my weapon and started shooting, took out three of the guards, leaving four other for me too deal with. By this time, they were firing back at me. I ran faster then I ever have and managed to get behind a counter that provided a little more cover.
I looked around the room, then looked eyes on one of the guards and did something that I had never done before. Some how, I was able to scan his memories, he had a daughter, I knew her name and could even picture her in my mind.
It was a long shot, but I projected the image of his daughter in his mind so that when he saw me, he would see his daughter. Then after I sent the command, I cried out, ”Daddy help me!”
Before the other guards knew what hit them they were fired on by one of there own that believed that he was protecting his daughter. In the end, there was just me and the guard who thought that I was his daughter, I looked over at him, ”Go back to sleep, Daddy, you are having a bad dream.” With that said, he slowly leaned against the wall, dropped into a sitting position and fell asleep.
It was at that moment that I noticed the blood that was coming out of my side, I had been shot and it looked pretty bad. I quickly found a place where I could take care of it. I took out a bandage from my knapsack and covered the cut, then took an elastic wrap and wrapped it around my side tightly to keep from bleeding out. I knew in time that my nanites would take care of it for me, but I was in danger for the mean while.
One thing for sure, I knew that I had to be close to the server. I followed the map and found my first location, it was where the phone lines came into the building. I reached into my bag and took out the explosives and placed them inside of the junction box and set the timer for 35 minutes, I figured that would give me the time to take care of the other two locations and get back to Steve.
The server room was just down the hall and only it only took me a few minutes before I was inside. I reached into my bag and took out a screw driver and used it to open up the box that held all the hard drives, place the bomb inside and set the timer based on my watch which the time was set according to the first bomb. I then sealed back up the casing and made my way back to the stairs.
It took me close to 15 minutes before I made it to the fourth floor. Her lab was in an area that was hard to get to unless you took the elevator straight there. I didn’t dare take it because was monitored by cameras at all times and since she worked with the military, chances were that there was someone watching it. So, I found myself outside of the door to the fourth floor with a now useless key card.
I knew that there was only one way that I was getting past that door and just hoped that no one was near as I placed a small amount of C4 over the lock, then ran the fuse and took cover as the C4 exploded. I then ran over and pushed the door open and turned part way in and took a look and saw a soldier running towards me. I fired, aiming for his head, knowing that any other place would be covered with Kevlar armor. When Steve told me to do this, I'd hoped that I would never have to do it, but I was committed to it now. I picked up the soldiers ak47, it would be better then my Glock for what needed to be done next.
It wasn’t long before the commotion brought more soldiers, but I found a spot where I was pretty safe. As they came running into view, I threw a flash grenade into the middle of them. I was a safe distance when it went off and opened fire with the AK47. When I finished, there was no one left standing.
I made my way past their bodies and down the hallway to the lab there were two guards waiting for me. I kept my distance and made sure that they didn’t see me, then sent one of the guards a signal for him to shot the other and then himself. The guard did as he was told and opened fire on the other one then, took his own life.
It was sick and sadistic, but it was also my only choice. I had wasted enough time just trying to get to the lab. The way to the lab was now clear. When I made it inside, I realized that I had just walked into a trap because before me was Anna and another woman.
I looked over at Anna then the other woman, “I thought that I took care of you Anna?”
“You took care of me alright, Sarah. But you didn’t consider that those nanites inside you could also heal me! Thanks to my daughter, Carol, I am better then I have ever been and more then a match for you!”
“So, I take it that you are the one responsible for Steve?” I asked
"Yes, it was really quiet easy. All I needed to do was inject him with my new little toys and he was quiet accommodating, but I really didn’t expect him to lose. I guess he trained you well. It’s a shame that I have to terminate you."
"Fat chance, bitch!"
"I can see after today you have a lot of potential, but I can always make new toys. This time I can transfer your knowledge too the new recruits and thanks to you my dear, I have a whole army of men to choose from inside of this building."
I looked over at Anna and couldn’t believe what she had just said, I knew that there was no way that I could let her leave this room alive. She was too dangerous, but I had to fight the both of them and Anna was now a super soldier. I had no idea what to think when it came to her daughter Carol, but when the two of them started to come at me I knew that I would have to fight the two of them together.
Meanwhile, inside another room on the third floor, a man wakes up and hearing a girl’s voice, He looks around the room but no one is there.
“Wake up Steve, Sarah needs you, she will die without you, and I can’t help her anymore I have done everything that I can. Please, Steve, fight the nanites! They will listen!”
Steve slowly pushes himself up and finds his hand are cuffed behind his back, he slowly works them under his legs and brings them to the front, then he digs inside his boot an pulls out the extra key and frees himself.
“Who are you?" asked Steve to the unseen voice.
“I am the real Sarah Tanner. Now go! She is on the fourth floor fighting Anna and Carol."
Steve didn’t understand what was happening, but knew that he would question Sarah, later. But for now, he had to find a way to get to her and just hoped she could hold out till he could get there.
As Steve made his way through the building, he found bodies everywhere, Sarah had been an excellent student and he was proud of her. She was like a daughter to him, now, at least that is how he felt about her.
The good thing about having all these dead bodies lying around meant that Steve didn’t have to fight anyone and it made it easy for him to get to where Sarah was.
When he finely arrived he could see that she was in trouble and when he came through the door Anna smiled and said, ”And now it’s three on one.”
“No Anna, I am not here to help you,” Steve said as he went right for Carol.
Sarah smiled, “It’s nice to have you back, Steve, but how?”
“Let’s just say you have some pretty powerful friends”, Steve said as he punched Carol into the wall.
Myself, I was still busy fighting off, Anna’s attack, and thew a roundhouse kick that knocked her onto her ass. Then took off my knapsack and quickly threw it to Steve who had just knocked out Carol, “Take care of the computer Steve, I am kind of busy at the moment,”
He caught the bag and started placing the explosives. Anna came running at me and I used a move that Steve had taught me and flipped her so she went flying into the air and went head first into the concrete wall.
I came up behind her and grabbed her by the head and start pounding her face into the wall then locked her into a head lock and twisted till I heard a snap. It was finely over.
I looked at the watch we had 5 minutes and turned to Steve, “We need to go now!!!”
The two of us wasted no time and ran for our lives, we made it too the first floor just as the first charge went of followed by the next two which were seconds apart. By the time we reached the exit, I could see that the building was collapsing.
It was along track through the woods for both of us and in the fight with Anna, I had reopened the wound from being shot and Steve was not faring all that well either. I could see that his wound was still opened and for some reason, his nanites were not closing the wound. I was worried that Anna had program him for one last fight and that he was why he was bleeding out the way he was.
The two of us walked for another 10 minute when Steve collapsed and fell to the ground. I knew then that he was in big trouble, Steve had lost a lot of blood between the time that I had shot him and now. I had no choice but to bend down and somehow find the strength to carry his weight over my shoulder. With ever step, I felt the pain of my own injury. I somehow managed to carry him to the road where Steve and I had left Adam.
"ADAM!" I yelled as loud as I could.
"Sarah! Where are you," He yelled back.
“I need your help! Hurry!”
Adam followed the sound of my voice till he was standing in front of me. He
looked over at me, then Steve and saw that the both of us were covered in blood, “You're hurt!”
“No, Adam, I will be alright. Help me get Steve to the car.”
Adam came over and picked up Steve like he weighed nothing and carried him back to the car with me following behind. Once he was in the back of the car I climbed in beside Steve and turned to Adam, “We need to find Dr. Picard, fast!”
“He is likely at home,” Adam said.
I pulled the phone out of my jumpsuit pocket and dialed Dr. Picard's home number and explained what had happen. He told me to go straight to his office, he'd meet us there and to make sure that I put pressure over Steve’s wound.
We arrived at Dr. Picard office a half an hour later, and Leo was already parked outside waiting in his car. When he saw us pull into the parking spot next to the door, he came over and opened the door then helped us to bring Steve inside.
Once all of us were inside, he looked over Steve and said, "He has lost a lot of blood and his wound doesn’t seem too be clotting."
"DAMN!"
Leo looked over at me then asked,”Do you know what they did to him?”
“Anna said that they reprogrammed him, using some of her new toys, I am guessing that she used nanites, but they are not healing him.”
Dr. Picard looked over at me then Steve, “I think that I know what is going on, they didn’t want Steve to live past this mission. The nanites are programmed to let him die.”
“I can only think of one thing that might save him, we can do a blood transfusion and maybe once your nanites are inside him, they can take control and heal him.”
Doctor Picard walked over to the medicine cabinet and took out a vile and a needle, then injected it into Steve’s arm and within a few minutes Steve was awake.
"Steve, I need to ask you a few question. My name is Leo Picard. Sarah brought you to me, I know all about the two of you. I am her doctor and have been taking care of her from the start of all of this insanity."
"OK."
"Steve, your nanites are not working. You have lost a lot of blood and if you don’t have a blood infusion you are going to die. I need to know your blood type if Sarah and yours are the compatible we can use her blood and nanites to heal you.
“My blood type is, A Negative”, Steve said weakly.
Leo walked over to his computer and pulled up my file and turned to me, “You are, O Negative, the transfusion should work.”
I was soon on a table next to Steve with tubes running from my arm to his. While this happened, Dr. Picard took a look at my wound, "I don’t think the bullet hit anything serious, but I think it would be a good idea to take it out before the cut closes up completely."
I nodded to him to proceed
Leo looked at me then said, “I can’t give you anything too dull the pain as whatever I give you will also end up inside Steve.”
“Just take it out,” I said with a frown.
To say having a bullet removed is easy would be an understatement! It was really painful. When Adam took my hand while Leo was pulling out the bullet, he realized just how painful is was because I came pretty close to breaking his poor hand because I was squeezing it so hard. But the bullet was out and after a quick look Leo said, "You will be alright," And covered it up with a clean bandage.
Shortly after that, Steve started coming around again and turned to me, and smiled, “It finely over with, we are finely free.”
I smiled back at and took his hand in mine, “Yes, Steve. They can’t hurt us, anymore.”
“I need to talk to you alone for a few minutes."
"OK."
"Could the two of you give us a few minutes?" Steve asked Leo and Adam.
After Steve and I were alone, he turned to me and said, “I know that you are not the real Sarah Tanner. Who are you really?”
I looked over at Steve, “How do you know about that?”
When you left me in the storage room, I had a visitor, she said her name was Sarah Tanner. I couldn’t see her, but I could hear her. She told me that she had done all she could to help you and that if I didn’t get up and fight, you were going to die. "Somehow I was able to break the programming that Anna gave me and with her help, I found you."
“Now I am asking you again. Who are you really?”
“My name was John Stevens. At least it was before I woke up in this body, I had always believed I was a woman inside. So when it happened I was happy, but I thought the real Sarah was gone.”
“The real Sarah Tanner gave you a gift and I believe that is the only reason you are here. The programming they gave you should have worked, and for some reason it didn’t work. I believe that you were being protected by the real Sarah Tanner, she gave you this life for a reason, and now that you are safe I believe that she is finely at rest, herself.”
I thought about what Steve just told me, was the real Sarah here all along and I just couldn’t see it? Then I thought about how powerful that my abilities had become, was that Sarah taking care of me by making changes to my nanites? If so, then I owed her a lot more then just the life she had given me.
I turned to Steve and said, ”You know that this has to be a secret, right?”
“Yes, I will never tell a soul, you have my word.”
I smiled at Steve then asked, “What will you do now?”
“I guess that I will spend the first little while getting to know my family again, after that, I really don’t know, what about you?”
“It will be nice to go home and see my family and friends, then I will be back to school and will likely end up marrying Adam and having a family of my own, but for now I just want to be a kid again. I have the life that I always wanted and plan on living it.”
It was time for Adam and I too leave, so I leaned over and gave Steve a hug and kiss on the cheek and told him, "Don't be a stranger."
He smiled at me and said, "You’re like a daughter to me, you will always be a big part of my life."
I smiled and told him, "Take care of yourself, see you soon."
I then turned to Leo and smiled, “Thanks for everything; you have been a good friend even after I kidnapped you at gun point.”
I reached over and gave him a hug and kiss then reached over and took Adam’s hand and gave it a squeezes, “And you my love I think that you already know how I feel about you.”
Adam Smiled,” I love you too, Sarah.”
“You better because I plan on marrying you.”
Adam and I arrived at my home around 1:30A.M. I had picked up the phone before I left Dr. Picard’s office and woke my parents up and let them know that I was coming home. They were both very excited and met us at the door.
It was an emotional homecoming for all of us. I even dragged Adam inside with us. As far as I was concerned, he was my husband and when I told mom and Dad, they accepted the fact that their little girl was engaged.
I spent the following day with my family and friends, when Amy arrived, she was carrying a newspaper and came running over to me and gave me a big hug, handed me the newspaper and said. Look at this!
On the page was the title 'Sleeper Program Exposed' and it followed with a story I was so relieved that I was unable to read it aloud. Megan came over and said, "I will read it," and took the paper from me, then took a seat on the couch next to me.
Newspaper Article
As many of you might have heard, many of the news services received files that came from the computer of the Dr. Anna Vandervolt. After going though the files on the computer, we found out that she was working for a government agency who’s main objective was to create super soldiers by any means possible.
Over the years there had been many test subjects, but only two survived the process. These two people were placed into this program without their consent and programmed to be trained killers, one of them in still considered to be a minor being only sixteen years old.
In espionage, a sleeper agent is one who has infiltrated into the target country and 'gone to sleep', sometimes for many years. That is, he or she does nothing to communicate with his or her sponsor or any existing agents, or to obtain information beyond that in public sources. They can also be referred to as 'deep cover' agents. They acquire jobs and identities, ideally ones which will prove useful in the future and attempt to blend into everyday life as normal citizens.
Theses agents were created as assassins, once activated, they go after the target and terminate them, and they have no knowledge of committing the crimes. Even if they are caught, there is nothing to lead anyone back to who actually ordered the attacks.
As of yet, the we have heard nothing back from the military or any other government agency But thanks to the files that we have in our position, we expect that we will be contacted soon for possible press conference and will keep looking into the story for more possible leads.
Sandy Reynolds,
The Vancouver Sun
“How do I look, Megan?”
“Sarah, for the fifteenth time, you look beautiful.”
“God! I am so nervous!”
“Sarah, you are supposed to be, you getting married,” Megan said with a grin.
I looked over at Megan, “I guess you're right, and I wonder how Adam is doing?”
“Likely a nervous wreck, and most likely nursing one hell of a hangover.”
“Serves him right going to a strip bar with the guys,” I said with a smile.
“You know he only has eyes for you Sarah,” Megan said with a smile.
“Yeah, I know Megan. And I am lucky to have him.”
They say that one of the happiest days in a girl’s life is the day her father walks her down the isle to marry the man she loves, and it’s true! But there is one other time, that is when the minister says, “You are now man and wife, you may kiss the bride.”
When Adam kissed me, I knew that I was a lucky girl and when the baby is born, He would be the perfect father to our child.
The End
I would like to thank Stanman63 and SuZie for all the help they gave me with the editing of the story, being a new writer you tend to miss a lot and for me this has also been a learning experience and I will be putting out another story soon. I hope you enjoyed the story as much as I have enjoyed writing it.
The End
Finis